Skip to main content

Full text of "The red fairy book"

See other formats


••'    , 

v  •.    • 


THE 


RED    FAIRY    BOOK 


WORKS  BY  ANDREW  LANG. 


CUSTOM  AND  MYTH :  Studies  of  Early  Usage  and 
Belief.  With  15  Illustrations.  Grown  8vo.  Is.  6<Z. 

BOOKS  AND  BOOKMEN.  With  2  Coloured  Plates 
and  17  Illustrations.  Crown  8vo.  G.«.  («1. 

GRASS  OF  PARNASSUS.  A  Volume  of  Selected 
Verses.  Fcp.  8vo.  6s. 

LETTERS  ON  LITERATURE.     Crown  8vo.  (5s.  V>d. 
OLD  FRIENDS  :  Essays  in  Epistolary  Parody.   6s.  6d. 

BALLADS  OF  BOOKS.  Edited  by  ANDREW  LANG. 
Fcp.  8vo.  6s. 

THE  BLUE  FAIRY  BOOK.  Edited  by  ANDREW 
LANfi.  With  numerous  Illustrations  by  II.  J.  1'ord  and 
< i.  1>.  Jacomb  Hood,  down  8vo.  6*. 

THE  RED  FAIRY  BOOK.    Edited  by  ANDREW  LANG. 

With  numerous  Illustrations  by  II.  J.  Ford  and  Lancelot  Speed. 
Crown  8vo.  6j. 

London:  LONGMANS,  GUKEX,  X  CO. 


THE    TWELVE    PRINCESSES    QUIT    THE    CASTLE    BY    THE    SECKET    STAIRCASE. 


THE 


EDITED    BY 

ANDREW    LANG 

WITH    y (\\fL~llurS   ILLUSTRATIONS    BY   11.  .1.  J-'oKD 
AXD    LANCELOT  SPEED 


LONDON 

LONGMANS,     GREEN,     AND     CO. 

AND  NEW  YORK  :  15  EAST  16th  STREET 
1890 


right* 


TO 

MASTER    BILLY    TBEUAYNE    MILES 
A    PROFOUND    STUDENT 

YET 

AN  AMIABLE   CRITIC 


2009971 


PREF A C  E 

lx  ;i  second  gleaning  of  the  fields  of  Fairy  Land  we  cannot 
expect  to  find  a  second  Perrault.  But  there  are  good  stories 
enough  left,  and  it  is  hoped  that  some  in  the  Red  Fairy  Book 
may  have  the  attraction  of  being  less  familiar  than  many  of 
the  old  friends.  The  tales  have  been  translated,  or,  in  the 
case  of  those  from  Madame  d'Aumoy's  long  stories,  adapted, 
by  Mrs.  Hunt  from  the  Norse,  by  Miss  Minnie  Wright  from 
Madame  d'Aulnoy,  by  Mrs.  Lang  and  Miss  Bruce  from  other 
French  sources,  by  Miss  May  Sellar,  Miss  Farquharson,  and 
Miss  Blackley  from  the  German,  while  the  story  of  '  Sigurd  ' 
is  condensed  by  the  Editor  from  Mr.  William  Morris's  prose 
version  of  the  '  Volsunga  Saga.'  The  Editor  has  to  thank 
his  friend,  M.  Charles  Marelles,  for  permission  to  reproduce 
his  versions  of  the  'Pied  Piper,'  of  '  Drakestail,'  and  of 
•  Little  Golden  Hood  '  from  the  French,  and  M.  Henri  Carnoy 
for  the  same  privilege  in  regard  to  '  The  Six  Sillies  '  from  La 
Tradition. 

Lady  Frances  Balfour  has  kindly  copied  an  old  version  of 
'  Jack  and  the  Beanstalk,'  and  Messrs.  Smith  and  Elder  have 
permitted  the  publication  of  two  of  Mr.  Balston's  versions 
from  the  Russian. 

A.  L. 


CONTENTS 


The  Twelve  Dancing  Prin- 
cesses        ....  1 
The  Princess  Mayblossom     .  13 
Soria  Moria  Castle      .        .  30 
The  Death    of  Koschei   the 

Deathless      .        .        .     .  42 
The  Black  Thief  and  Knight 

of  the  Glen        ...  54 

The  Master  Thief    .        .     .  67 

Brother  and  Sister       .         .  82 

Princess  Rosette       .        .     .  89 

The  Enchanted  Pig      .         .  104 

The  Norka       .        .        .     .  116 

The  Wonderful  Birch  .        .  123 

Jack  and  the  Beanstalk  .     .  133 

The  Little  Good  Mouse        .  146 

Graciosa  and  Percinet     .     .  158 
The     Three     Princesses     of 

Whiteland        .        .        .  175 

The  Voice  of  Death  .         .     .  182 

The  Six  Sillies     ,  186 


Kari  Woodengown    .        .     .  189 

Drakestail    ....  202 

The  Ratcatcher         .         .     .  208 
The  True  History  of  Little 

Goldenhood       .        .        .  215 

The  Golden  Branch         .     .  220 

The  Three  Dwarfs        .         .  238 

Dapplegrim      .        .        .     .  246 

The  Enchanted  Canary       .  257 

The  Twelve  BrotJiers        .     .  274 

Rapunzel      ....  282 

The  Nettle  Spinner .        .     .  286 

Farmer  Weatherbeard .         .  294 

Mother  Hollc    .         .         .     .  303 

Minnikin     ....  307 

Bushy  Bride    .         .         .     .  322 

Snoivdrop     ....  329 

The  Golden  Goose    .         .     .  340 

The  Seven  Foals  .         .         .  346 

The  Marvellous  Musician     .  354 

The  Story  of  Sigurd     .         .  357 


PLATES 

The    Twelve    Princesses  quit   the  Castle  by  the  secret^      ^       . •     • 

f  rontispiece 
staircase J 

Father  Laicrencc,  conceiving  himself  to  be  addressed  by 

an  Angel,  falls  on  his  knees  before  him  .  .  .  To  face  page  76 

Drakestail,  with  his  friends  stowed  away  in  his  gizzard, 

demands  speech  of  the  King „  204 

The  sleeping  King,  guided  by  his  attendants,  cuts  the 

finger  of  the  bearitiful  Maiden  ....  „  328 


THE   TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES 


OXCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  in  the  village  of  Montignies-sur- 
Roc  a  little  cow-boy,  without  either  father  or  mother.  His 
real  name  was  Michael,  but  he  was  always  called  the  Star  Gazer, 
because  when  he  drove  his  cows  over  the  commons  to  seek  for 
pasture,  he  went  along  with  his  head  in  the  air,  gaping  at  nothing. 

As  he  had  a  white  skin,  blue  eyes,  and  hair  that  curled  all  over 
his  head,  the  village  girls  used  to  cry  after  him,  '  Well,  Star  Gazer, 
what  are  you  doing '? '  and  Michael  would  answer,  '  Oh,  nothing,' 
and  go  on  his  way  without  even  turning  to  look  at  them. 

The  fact  was  he  thought  them  very  ugly,  with  their  sun-burnt 
necks,  their  great  red  hands,  their  coarse  petticoats  and  their 
wooden  shoes.  He  had  heard  that  somewhere  in  the  world  there 
were  girls  whose  necks  were  white  and  whose  hands  were  small, 
who  were  always  dressed  in  the  finest  silks  and  laces,  and  were 
called  princesses,  and  while  his  companions  round  the  fire  saw 
nothing  in  the  flames  but  common  everyday  fancies,  he  dreamed 
that  he  had  the  happiness  to  marry  a  princess. 

II 

One  morning  about  the  middle  of  August,  just  at  mid-day  when 
the  sun  was  hottest,  Michael  ate  his  dinner  of  a  piece  of  dry  bread, 
and  went  to  sleep  under  an  oak.  And  while  he  slept  he  dreamt 
that  there  appeared  before  him  a  beautiful  lady,  dressed  in  a  robe 
of  cloth  of  gold,  who  said  to  him :  '  Go  to  the  castle  of  Beloeil,  and 
there  you  shall  marry  a  princess.' 

That  evening  the  little  cow-boy,  who  had  been  thinking  a  great 
deal  about  the  advice  of  the  lady  in  the  golden  dress,  told  his  dream 
to  the  farm  people.  But,  as  was  natural,  they  only  laughed  at  the 
Star  Gazer. 

R.  B 


2  THE   TWELVE  DANCING  PBINCESSES 

The  next  day  at  the  same  hour  he  went  to  sleep  again  under 
the  same  tree.  The  lady  appeared  to  him  a  second  time,  and  said  : 
'  Go  to  the  castle  of  Belceil,  and  you  shall  marry  a  princess.' 

In  the  evening  Michael  told  his  friends  that  he  had  dreamed 
the  same  dream  again,  buo  they  only  laughed  at  him  more  than 
before.  '  Never  mind,'  he  thought  to  himself ;  '  if  the  lady  appears 
to  me  a  third  time,  I  will  do  as  she  tells  me.' 

The  following  day,  to  the  great  astonishment  of  all  the  village, 
about  two  o'clock  in  the  afternoon  a  voice  was  heard  singing  : 

'  Raleo,  raleo, 

How  the  cattle  go  !  ' 

It  was  the  little  cow-boy  driving  his  herd  back  to  the  byre. 

The  farmer  began  to  scold  him  furiously,  but  he  answered 
quietly,  '  I  am  going  away,'  made  his  clothes  into  a  bundle,  said 
good-bye  to  all  his  friends,  and  boldly  set  out  to  seek  his  fortunes. 

There  was  great  excitement  through  all  the  village,  and  on  the 
top  of  the  hill  the  people  stood  holding  their  sides  with  laughing, 
as  they  watched  the  Star  Gazer  trudging  bravely  along  the  valley 
with  his  bundle  at  the  end  of  his  stick. 

It  was  enough  to  make  anyone  laugh,  certainly. 

Ill 

It  was  well  known  for  full  twenty  miles  round  that  there  lived 
in  the  castle  of  Beloeil  twelve  princesses  of  wonderful  beauty,  and 
as  proud  as  they  were  beautiful,  and  who  were  besides  so  very 
sensitive  and  of  such  truly  royal  blood,  that  they  would  have  felt 
at  once  the  presence  of  a  pea  in  their  beds,  even  if  the  mattresses 
had  been  laid  over  it. 

It  was  whispered  about  that  they  led  exactly  the  lives  that 
princesses  ought  to  lead,  sleeping  far  into  the  morning,  and  never 
getting  up  till 'mid- day.  They  had  twelve  beds  all  in  the  same 
room,  but  what  was  very  extraordinary  was  the  fact  that  though 
they  were  locked  in  by  triple  bolts,  every  morning  their  satin  shoea 
were  found  worn  into  holes. 

When  they  were  asked  what  they  had  been  doing  all  night, 
they  always  answered  that  they  had  been  asleep ;  and,  indeed, 
no  noise  was  ever  heard  in  the  room,  yet  the  shoes  could  not  wear 
themselves  out  alone ! 

At  last  the  Duke  of  Beloeil  ordered  the  trumpet  to  be  sounded, 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES  3 

and  a  proclamation  to  be  made  that  whoever  could  discover  how 
his  daughters  wore  out  their  shoes  should  choose  one  of  them  for 
his  wife. 

On  hearing  the  proclamation  a  number  of  princes  arrived  at 
the  castle  to  try  their  luck.  They  watched  all  night  behind  the 
open  door  of  the  princesses,  but  when  the  morning  came  they  had 
all  disappeared,  and  no  one  could  tell  what  had  become  of  them. 

IV 

When  he  reached  the  castle,  Michael  went  straight  to  the 
gardener  and  offered  his  services.  Now  it  happened  that  the 
garden  boy  had  just  been  sent  away,  and  though  the  Star  Gazer 
did  not  look  very  sturdy,  the  gardener  agreed  to  take  him,  as  he 
thought  that  his  pretty  face  and  golden  curls  would  please  the 
princesses. 

The  first  thing  he  was  told  was  that  when  the  princesses  got 
up  he  was  to  present  each  one  with  a  bouquet,  and  Michael  thought 
that  if  he  had  nothing  more  unpleasant  to  do  than  that  he  should 
get  on  very  well. 

Accordingly  he  placed  himself  behind  the  door  of  the  princesses' 
room,  with  the  twelve  bouquets  in  a  basket.  He  gave  one  to  each 
of  the  sisters,  and  they  took  them  without  even  deigning  to  look  at 
the  lad,  except  Lina  the  youngest,  who  fixed  her  large  black  eyes 
as  soft  as  velvet  on  him,  and  exclaimed, '  Oh,  how  pretty  he  is — our 
new  flower  boy ! '  The  rest  all  burst  out  laughing,  and  the  eldest 
pointed  out  that  a  princess  ought  never  to  lower  herself  by  looking 
at  a  garden  boy. 

Now  Michael  knew  quite  well  what  had  happened  to  all  the 
princes,  but  notwithstanding,  the  beautiful  eyes  of  the  Princess 
Lina  inspired  him  with  a  violent  longing  to  try  his  fate.  Un- 
happily he  did  not  dare  to  come  forward,  being  afraid  that  he 
should  only  be  jeered  at,  or  even  turned  away  from  the  castle  on 
account  of  his  impudence. 


Nevertheless,  the  Star  Gazer  had  another  dream.  The  lady  in 
the  golden  dress  appeared  to  him  once  more,  holding  in  one  hand 
two  young  laurel  trees,  a  cherry  laurel  and  a  rose  laurel,  and  in 
the  other  hand  a  little  golden  rake,  a  little  golden  bucket,  and  a 
silken  towel.  She  thus  addressed  him  : 

B  2 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES 


'  Plant  these  two  laurels  in  two  large  pots,  rake  them  over  with 
the  rake,  water  them  with  the  bucket,  and  wipe  them  with  the  towel. 
When  they  have  grown  as  tall  as  a  girl  of  fifteen,  say  to  each  of 
them,  "  My  beautiful  laurel,  with  the  golden  rake  I  have  raked  you, 
with  the  golden  bucket  I  have  watered  you,  with  the  silken  towel  I 

have  wiped  you."  Then 
after  that  ask  anything 
you  choose,  and  the 
laurels  will  give  it  to 
you.' 

Michael  thanked 
the  lady  in  the  golden 
dress,  and  when  he 
woke  he  found  the  two 
laurel  bushes  beside 
him.  So  he  carefully 
obeyed  the  orders  he 
had  been  given  by  the 
lady. 

The  trees  grew  very 
fast,  and  when  they 
were  as  tall  as  a  girl 
of  fifteen  he  said  to 
the  cherry  laurel,  '  My 
lovely  cherry  laurel, 
with  the  golden  rake  I 
have  raked  thee,  with 
the  golden  bucket  I 
have  watered  thee,  with 
the  silken  towel  I  have 

wiped  thee.  Teach  me  how  to  become  invisible.'  Then  there  in- 
stantly appeared  on  the  laurel  a  pretty  white  flower,  which  Michael 
gathered  and  stuck  into  his  button-hole. 


VI 

That  evening,  when  the  princesses  went  upstairs  to  bed,  he  fol- 
lowed them  barefoot,  so  that  he  might  make  no  noise,  and  hid  him- 
self under  one  of  the  twelve  beds,  so  as  not  to  take  up  much  room. 

The  princesses  began  at  once  to  open  their  wardrobes  and  boxes. 
They  took  out  of  them  the  most  magnificent  dresses,  which  they 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES  5 

put  on  before  their  mirrors,  and  when  they  had  finished,  turned 
themselves  all  round  to  admire  their  appearances. 

Michael  could  see  nothing  from  his  hiding-place,  but  he  could 
hear  everything,  and  he  listened  to  the  princesses  laughing  and 
jumping  with  pleasure.  At  last  the  eldest  said,  '  Be  quick,  my 
sisters,  our  partners  will  be  impatient.'  At  the  end  of  an  hour, 
when  the  Star  Gazer  heard  no  more  noise,  he  peeped  out  and  saw 
the  twelve  sisters  in  splendid  garments,  with  their  satin  shoes  on 
their  feet,  and  in  their  hands  the  bouquets  he  had  brought  them. 

'  Are  yon  ready  ?  '  asked  the  eldest. 

'  Yes,'  replied  the  other  eleven  in  chorus,  and  they  took  their 
places  one  by  one  behind  her. 

Then  the  eldest  Princess  clapped  her  hands  three  times  and  a 
trap  door  opened.  All  the  princesses  disappeared  down  a  secret 
staircase,  and  Michael  hastily  followed  them. 

As  he  was  following  on  the  stops  of  the  Princess  Lina,  he  care- 
lessly trod  on  her  dress. 

'  There  is  somebody  behind  me,'  cried  the  Princess  ;  '  they  are 
holding  my  dress.' 

'  You  foolish  thing,'  said  her  eldest  sister, '  you  are  always  afraid 
of  something.  It  is  only  a  nail  which  caught  you.' 

VII 

They  went  down,  down,  down,  till  at  last  they  came  to  a  passage 
with  a  door  at  one  end,  which  was  only  fastened  with  a  latch.  The 
eldest  Princess  opened  it,  and  they  found  themselves  immediately 
in  a  lovely  little  wood,  where  the  leaves  were  spangled  with  drops 
of  silver  which  shone  in  the  brilliant  light  of  the  moon. 

They  next  crossed  another  wood  where  the  leaves  were  sprinkled 
with  gold,  and  after  that  another  still,  where  the  leaves  glittered 
with  diamonds. 

At  last  the  Star  Gazer  perceived  a  large  lake,  and  on  the  shores 
of  the  lake  twelve  little  boats  with  awnings,  in  which  were  seated 
twelve  princes,  who,  grasping  their  oars,  awaited  the  princesses. 

Each  princess  entered  one  of  the  boats,  and  Michael  slipped  into 
that  which  held  the  youngest.  The  boats  glided  along  rapidly,  but 
Lina's,  from  being  heavier,  was  always  behind  the  rest.  '  We  never 
went  so  slowly  before,'  said  the  Princess ;  '  what  can  be  the  reason  ?' 

'  I  don't  know,'  answered  the  Prince.  '  I  assure  you  I  am  row- 
ing as  hard  as  I  can.' 


6  THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES 

On  the  other  side  of  the  lake  the  garden  boy  saw  a  beautiful 
castle  splendidly  illuminated,  whence  came  the  lively  music  of 
fiddles,  kettle-drums,  and  trumpets. 

In  a  moment  they  touched  land,  and  the  company  jumped  out 
of  the  boats ;  and  the  princes,  after  having  securely  fastened  their 
barques,  gave  their  arms  to  the  princesses  and  conducted  them  to 
the  castle. 

VIII 

Michael  followed,  and  entered  the  ball-room  in  their  train. 
Everywhere  were  mirrors,  lights,  flowers,  and  damask  hangings. 

The  Star  Gazer  was  quite  bewildered  at  the  magnificence  of  the 
sight. 

He  placed  himself  out  of  the  way  in  a  corner,  admiring  the  grace 
and  beauty  of  the  princesses.  Their  loveliness  was  of  every  kind. 
Some  were  fair  and  some  were  dark ;  some  had  chestnut  hair,  or 
curls  darker  still,  and  some  had  golden  locks.  Never  were  so  many 
beautiful  princesses  seen  together  at  one  time,  but  the  one  whom 
the  cow-boy  thought  the  most  beautiful  and  the  most  fascinating 
was  the  little  Princess  with  the  velvet  eyes. 

With  what  eagerness  she  danced !  leaning  on  her  partner's 
shoulder  she  swept  by  like  a  whirlwind.  Her  cheeks  flushed,  her 
eyes  sparkled,  and  it  was  plain  that  she  loved  dancing  better  than 
anything  else. 

The  poor  boy  envied  those  handsome  young  men  with  whom 
she  danced  so  gracefully,  but  he  did  not  know  how  little  reason  he 
had  to  be  jealous  of  them. 

The  young  men  were  really  the  princes  who,  to  the  number  of 
fifty  at  least,  had  tried  to  steal  the  princesses'  secret.  The  princesses 
had  made  them  drink  something  of  a  philtre,  which  froze  the 
heart  and  left  nothing  but  the  love  of  dancing. 


IX 

They  danced  on  till  the  shoes  of  the  princesses  were  worn  into 
holes.  When  the  cock  crowed  the  third  time  the  fiddles  stopped, 
and  a  delicious  supper  was  served  by  negro  boys,  consisting  of 
sugared  orange  flowers,  crystallised  rose  leaves,  powdered  violets, 
cracknels,  wafers,  and  other  dishes,  which  are,  as  everyone  knows, 
the  favourite  food  of  princesses. 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES  1 

After  supper,  the  dancers  all  went  back  to  their  boats,  and  this 
time  the  Star  Gazer  entered  that  of  the  eldest  Princess.  They  crossed 
again  the  wood  with  the  diamond-spangled  leaves,  the  wood  with 
gold- sprinkled  leaves,  and  the  wood  whose  leaves  glittered  with 
drops  of  silver,  and  as  a  proof  of  what  he  had  seen,  the  boy  broke 
a  small  branch  from  a  tree  in  the  last  wood.  Lina  turned  as  she 
heard  the  noise  made  by  the  breaking  of  the  branch. 

'  What  was  that  noise  '? '  she  said. 

'It  was  nothing,'  replied  her  eldest  sister;  'it  was  only  the 
screech  of  the  barn-owl  that  roosts  in  one  of  the  turrets  of  the 
castle.' 

While  she  was  speaking  Michael  managed  to  slip  in  front,  and 
running  up  the  staircase,  he  reached  the  princesses'  room  first.  He 
Hung  open  the  window,  and  sliding  down  the  vine  which  climbed 
up  the  wall,  found  himself  in  the  garden  just  as  the  sun  was  begin- 
ning to  rise,  and  it  was  time  for  him  to  set  to  his  work. 


That  day,  when  he  made  up  the  bouquets,  Michael  hid  the  branch 
with  the  silver  drops  in  the  nosegay  intended  for  the  youngest 
Princess. 

When  Lina  discovered  it  she  was  much  surprised.  However, 
she  said  nothing  to  her  sisters,  but  as  she  met  the  boy  by  accident 
while  she  was  walking  under  the  shade  of  the  elms,  she  suddenly 
stopped  as  if  to  speak  to  him  ;  then,  altering  her  mind,  went  on  her 
way. 

The  same  evening  the  twelve  sisters  went  again  to  the  ball,  and 
the  Star  Gazer  again  followed  them  and  crossed  the  lake  in  Lina's 
boat.  This  time  it  was  the  Prince  who  complained  that  the  boat 
seemed  very  heavy. 

'  It  is  the  heat,'  replied  the  Princess.  '  I,  too,  have  been  feeling 
very  warm.' 

During  the  ball  she  looked  everywhere  for  the  gardener's  boy, 
but  she  never  saw  him. 

As  they  came  back,  Michael  gathered  a  branch  from  the  wood 
with  the  gold-spangled  leaves,  and  now  it  was  the  eldest  Princess 
who  heard  the  noise  that  it  made  in  breaking. 

'  It  is  nothing,'  said  Lina  ;  '  only  the  cry  of  the  owl  which  roosts 
in  the  turrets  of  the  castle.' 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES 


XI 

As  soon  as  she  got  up  she  found  the  branch  in  her  bouquet. 
When  the  sisters  went  down  she  stayed  a  little  behind  and  said  to 
the  cow-boy :  '  "Where  does  this  branch  coine  from  ?  ' 

'  Your  Royal  Highness  knows  well  enough,'  answered  Michael. 

1  So  you  have  followed  us  ?  ' 


'  Yes,  Princess.' 

'  How  did  you  manage  it  ?  we  never  saw  you.' 

'  I  hid  myself,'  replied  the  Star  Gazer  quietly. 

The  Princess  was  silent  a  moment,  and  then  said  : 

,'  You  know  our  secret  I—keep  it.  Here  is  the  reward  of  your 
discretion.'  And  she  flung  the  boy  a  purse  of  gold. 

'  I  do  not  sell  my  silence,'  answered  Michael,  and  lie  went  away 
without  picking  up  the  purse. 


THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PBINCESSES  9 

For  three  nights  Lina  neither  saw  nor  heard  anything  extra- 
ordinary ;  on  the  fourth  she  heard  a  rustling  among  the  diamond- 
spangled  leaves  of  the  wood.  That  day  there  was  a  branch  of  the 
trees  in  her  bouquet. 

She  took  the  Star  Gazer  aside,  and  said  to  him  in  a  harsh  voice  : 

'  You  know  what  price  my  father  has  promised  to  pay  for  our 
secret  ? ' 

'  I  know,  Princess,'  answered  Michael. 

'  Don't  you  mean  to  tell  him  '?  ' 

'  That  is  not  my  intention.' 

'  Are  you  afraid  ?  ' 

'  No,  Princess.' 

'  What  makes  you  so  discreet,  then  ?  ' 

But  Michael  was  silent. 

XII 

Lina's  sisters  had  seen  her  talking  to  the  little  garden  boy,  and 
jeered  at  her  for  it. 

'  What  prevents  your  marrying  him  '?  '  asked  the  eldest,  '  you 
would  become  a  gardener  too ;  it  is  a  charming  profession.  You 
could  live  in  a  cottage  at  the  end  of  the  park,  and  help  your  husband 
to  draw  up  water  from  the  well,  and  when  \ve  get  up  you  could 
bring  us  our  bouquets.' 

The  Princess  Lina  was  very  angry,  and  when  the  Star  Gazer  pre- 
sented her  bouquet,  she  received  it  in  a  disdainful  manner. 

Michael  behaved  most  respectfully.  He  never  raised  his  eyes  to 
her,  but  nearly  all  day  she  felt  him  at  her  side  without  ever  seeing 
him. 

One  day  she  made  up  her  mind  to  tell  everything  to  her  eldest 
sister. 

'  What !  '  said  she,  '  this  rogue  knows  our  secret,  and  you  never 
told  me  !  I  must  lose  no  time  in  getting  rid  of  him.' 

'  But  how  ?  ' 

'  Why,  by  having  him  taken  to  the  tower  with  the  dungeons,  of 
course.' 

For  this  was  the  way  that  in  old  times  beautiful  princesses  got 
rid  of  people  who  knew  too  much. 

But  the  astonishing  part  of  it  was  that  the  youngest  sister  did 
not  seem  at  all  to  relish  this  method  of  stopping  the  mouth  of  the 
gardener's  boy,  who,  after  all,  had  said  nothing  to  their  father. 


10  THE    TWELVE  DANCING  PBINCESSES 


XIII 

It  was  agreed  that  the  question  should  be  submitted  to  the  other 
ten  sisters.  All  were  on  the  side  of  the  eldest.  Then  the  youngest 
sister  declared  that  if  they  laid  a  finger  on  the  little  garden  boy,  she 
would  herself  go  and  tell  their  father  the  secret  of  the  holes  in  their 
shoes. 

At  last  it  was  decided  that  Michael  should  be  put  to  the  test ; 
that  they  would  take  him  to  the  ball,  and  at  the  end  of  supper  would 
give  him  the  philtre  which  was  to  enchant  him  like  the  rest. 

They  sent  for  the  Star  Gazer,  and  asked  him  how  he  had  contrived 
to  learn  their  secret ;  but  still  he  remained  silent. 

Then,  in  commanding  tones,  the  eldest  sister  gave  him  the  order 
they  had  agreed  upon. 

He  only  answered : 

'  I  will  obey.' 

He  had  really  been  present,  invisible,  at  the  council  of  princesses, 
and  had  heard  all ;  but  he  had  make  up  his  mind  to  drink  of  the 
philtre,  and  sacrifice  himself  to  the  happiness  of  her  he  loved. 

Not  wishing,  however,  to  cut  a  poor  figure  at  the  ball  by  the  side 
of  the  other  dancers,  he  went  at  once  to  the  laurels,  and  said  : 

'  My  lovely  rose  laurel,  with  the  golden  rake  I  have  raked  thee, 
with  the  golden  bucket  I  have  watered  thee,  with  a  silken  towel  I 
have  dried  thee.  Dress  me  like  a  prince.' 

A  beautiful  pink  flower  appeared.  Michael  gathered  it,  and 
found  himself  in  a  moment  clothed  in  velvet,  which  was  as  black  as 
the  eyes  of  the  little  Princess,  with  a  cap  to  match,  a  diamond 
aigrette,  and  a  blossom  of  the  rose  laurel  in  his  button-hole. 

Thus  dressed,  he  presented  himself  that  evening  before  the  Duke 
of  Belceil,  and  obtained  leave  to  try  and  discover,  his  daughters' 
secret.  He  looked  so  distinguished  that  hardly  anyone  would  have 
known  who  he  was. 

XIV 

The  twelve  princesses  went  upstairs  to  bed.  Michael  followed 
them,  and  waited  behind  the  open  door  till  they  gave  the  signal  for 
departure. 

This  time  he  did  not  cross  in  Lina's  boat.  He  gave  his  arm  to 
the  eldest  sister,  danced  with  each  in  turn,  and  was  so  graceful  that 
everyone  was  delighted  with  him.  At  last  the  time  came  for  him 


THE   TWELVE  DANCING  PRINCESSES  11 

to  dance  with  the  little  Princess.  She  found  him  the  best  partner 
in  the  world,  but  he  did  not  dare  to  speak  a  single  word  to  her. 

When  he  was  taking  her  back  to  her  place  she  said  to  him  in  a 
mocking  voice : 

'  Here  you  are  at  the  summit  of  your  wishes  :  you  are  being 
treated  like  a  prince.' 

'  Don't  be  afraid,'  replied  the  Star  Gazer  gently.  '  You  shall 
never  be  a  gardener's  wife.' 

The  little  Princess  stared  at  him  with  a  frightened  face,  and  he 
left  her  without  waiting  for  an  answer. 

When  the  satin  slippers  were  worn  through  the  fiddles  stopped, 
and  the  negro  boys  set  the  table.  Michael  was  placed  next  to  the 
eldest  sister,  and  opposite  to  the  youngest. 

They  gave  him  the  most  exquisite  dishes  to  eat,  and  the  most 
delicate  wines  to  drink ;  and  in  order  to  turn  his  head  more  com- 
pletely, compliments  and  flattery  were  heaped  on  him  from  every 
side. 

But  he  took  care  not  to  be  intoxicated,  either  by  the  wine  or  the 
compliments. 

XV 

At  last  the  eldest  sister  made  a  sign,  and  one  of  the  black  pages 
brought  in  a  large  golden  cup. 

'  The  enchanted  castle  has  no  more  secrets  for  you,'  she  said  to 
the  Star  Gazer.  '  Let  us  drink  to  your  triumph.' 

He  cast  a  lingering  glance  at  the  little  Princess,  and  without 
hesitation  lifted  the  cup. 

'  Don't  drink  ! '  suddenly  cried  out  the  little  Princess  ;  '  I  would 
rather  marry  a  gardener.' 

And  she  burst  into  tears. 

Michael  flung  the  contents  of  the  cup  behind  him,  sprang  over 
the  table,  and  fell  at  Lina's  feet.  The  rest  of  the  princes  fell  like- 
wise at  the  knees  of  the  princesses,  each  of  whom  chose  a  husband 
and  raised  him  to  her  side.  The  charm  was  broken. 

The  twelve  couples  embarked  in  the  boats,  which  crossed  back 
many  times  in  order  to  carry  over  the  other  princes.  Then  they  all 
went  through  the  three  woods,  and  when  they  had  passed  the  door 
of  the  underground  passage  a  great  noise  was  heard,  as  if  the 
enchanted  castle  was  crumbling  to  the  earth. 

They  went  straight  to  the  room  of  the  Duke  of  Beloeil,  who  had 


12  THE    TWELVE   DANCING  PIUN  CESSES 

just  awoke.     Michael  held  in  his  hand  the  golden  cup,  and  he  re- 
vealed the  secret  of  the  holes  in  the  shoes. 

'  Choose,  then,'  said  the  Duke,  '  whichever  you  prefer.' 
'  My  choice  is  already  made,'  replied  the  garden  boy,  and  he 
offered    his    hand  to   the    youngest   Princess,   who   blushed   and 
lowered  her  eyes. 

XVI 

The  Princess  Lina  did  not  become  a  gardener's  wife  ;  on  the 
contrary,  it  was  the  Star  Gazer  who  became  a  Prince :  but  before 
the  marriage  ceremony  the  Princess  insisted  that  her  lover  should 
tell  her  how  he  came  to  discover  the  secret. 

So  he  showed  her  the  two  laurels  which  had  helped  him,  and 
she,  like  a  prudent  girl,  thinking  they  gave  him  too  much  advantage 
over  his  wife,  cut  them  off  at  the  root  and  threw  them  in  the  fire. 

And  this  is  why  the  country  girls  go  about  singing  : 

Nous  n'irons  plus  an  bois, 
Les  lauriers  sont  coupes,' 

and  dancing  in  summer  by  the  light  of  the  moon. 


13 


THE  PEINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  and  Queen  whose  children 
had  all  died,  first  one  and  then  another,  until  at  last  only  one 
little  daughter  remained,  and  the  Queen  was  at  her  wits'  end  to 
know  where  to  find  a  really  good  nurse  who  would  take  care  of  her, 
and  bring  her  up.  A  herald  was  sent  who  blew  a  trumpet  at  every 
street  corner,  and  commanded  all  the  best  nurses  to  appear  before 
the  Queen,  that  she  might  choose  one  for  the  little  Princess.  So  on 
the  appointed  day  the  whole  palace  was  crowded  with  nurses,  who 
came  from  the  four  corners  of  the  world  to  offer  themselves,  until  the 
Queen  declared  that  if  she  was  ever  to  see  the  half  of  them,  they 
must  be  brought  out  to  her.  one  by  one,  as  she  sat  in  a  shady  wood 
near  the  palace. 

This  was  accordingly  done,  and  the  nurses,  after  they  had  made 
their  curtsey  to  the  King  and  Queen,  ranged  themselves  in  a  line 
before  her  that  she  might  choose.  Most  of  them  were  fair  and  fat 
and  charming,  but  there  was  one  who  was  dark-skinned  and  ugly, 
and  spoke  a  strange  language  which  nobody  could  understand.  The 
Queen  wondered  how  she  dared  offer  herself,  and  she  was  told  to 
go  away,  as  she  certainly  would  not  do.  Upon  which  she  muttered 
something  and  passed  on,  but  hid  herself  in  a  hollow  tree,  from 
which  she  could  see  all  that  happened.  The  Queen,  without  giving 
her  another  thought,  chose  a  pretty  rosy-faced  nurse,  but  no  sooner 
was  her  choice  made  than  a  snake,  which  was  hidden  in  the  grass, 
bit  that  very  nurse  on  her  foot,  so  that  she  fell  down  as  if  dead. 
The  Queen  was  very  much  vexed  by  this  accident,  but  she  soon 
selected  another,  who  was  just  stepping  forward  when  an  eagle  flew 
by  and  dropped  a  large  tortoise  upon  her  head,  which  was  cracked 
in  pieces  like  an  egg-shell.  At  this  the  Queen  was  much  horrified ; 
nevertheless,  she  chose  a  third  time,  but  with  no  better  fortune,  for 
the  nurse,  moving  quickly,  ran  into  the  branch  of  a  tree  and  blinded 
herself  with  a  thorn.  Then  the  Queen  in  dismay  cried  that  there 


14 

must  be  some  malignant  influence  at  work,  and  that  she  would 
choose  no  more  that  day  ;  and  she  had  just  risen  to  return  to  the 
palace  when  she  heard  peals  of  malicious  laughter  behind  her,  and 
turning  round  saw  the  ugly  stranger  whom  she  had  dismissed,  who 
was  making  very  merry  over  the  disasters  and  mocking  everyone, 
but  especially  the  Queen.  This  annoyed  Her  Majesty  very  much, 
and  she  was  about  to  order  that  she  should  be  arrested,  when  the 
witch- — for  she  was  a  witch — with  two  blows  from  a  wand  summoned 
a  chariot  of  fire  drawn  by  winged  dragons,  and  was  whirled  off 
through  the  air  uttering  threats  and  cries.  When  the  King  saw  this 
he  cried : 

'  Alas !  now  we  are  ruined  indeed,  for  that  was  no  other  than 
the  Fairy  Carabosse,  who  has  had  a  grudge  against  me  ever  since 
I  was  a  boy  and  put  sulphur  into  her  porridge  one  day  for  fun.' 

Then  the  Queen  began  to  cry. 

'  If  I  had  only  known  who  it  was,'  she  said,  '  I  would  have  done 
my  best  to  make  friends  with  her  ;  now  I  suppose  all  is  lost.' 

The  King  was  sorry  to  have  frightened  her  so  much,  and  pro- 
posed that  they  should  go  and  hold  a  council  as  to  what  was  best  to 
be  done  to  avert  the  misfortunes  which  Carabosse  certainly  meant 
to  bring  upon  the  little  Princess. 

So  all  the  counsellors  were  summoned  to  the  palace,  and  when 
they  had  shut  every  door  and  window,  and  stuffed  up  every  keyhole 
that  they  might  not  be  overheard,  they  talked  the  affair  over,  and 
decided  that  every  fairy  for  a  thousand  leagues  round  should  be 
invited  to  the  christening  of  the  Princess,  and  that  the  time  of  the 
ceremony  should  be  kept  a  profound  secret,  in  case  the  Fairy  Cara- 
bosse should  take  it  into  her  head  to  attend  it. 

The  Queen  and  her  ladies  set  to  work  to  prepare  presents  for 
the  fairies  who  were  invited :  for  each  one  a  blue  velvet  cloak,  a 
petticoat  of  apricot  satin,  a  pair  of  high-heeled  shoes,  some  sharp 
needles,  and  a  pair  of  golden  scissors.  Of  all  the  fairies  the  Queen 
knew,  only  five  were  able  to  come  on  the  day  appointed,  but  they 
began  immediately  to  bestow  gifts  upon  the  Princess.  One  promised 
that  she  should  be  perfectly  beautiful,  the  second  that  she  should 
understand  anything — no  matter  what — the  first  time  it  was  ex- 
plained to  her,  the  third  that  she  should  sing  like  a  nightingale,  the 
fourth  that  she  should  succeed  in  everything  she  undertook,  and 
the  fifth  was  opening  her  mouth  to  spaak  when  a  tremendous 
rumbling  was  heard  in  the  chimney,  and  Carabosse,  all  covered 
with  soot,  came  rolling  down,  crying  : 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM  15 

'  I  say  that  she  shall  be  the  unluckiest  of  the  unlucky  until  she 
is  twenty  years  old.' 

Then  the  Queen  and  all  the  fairies  began  to  beg  and  beseech 
her  to  think  better  of  it,  and  not  be  so  unkind  to  the  poor  little 
Princess,  who  had  never  done  her  any  harm.  But  the  ugly  old 
Fairy  only  grunted  and  made  no  answer.  So  the  last  Fairy,  who 
had  not  yet  given  her  gift,  tried  to  mend  matters  by  promising  the 
Princess  a  long  and  happy  life  after  the  fatal  time  was  over.  At 
this  Carabosse  laughed  maliciously,  and  climbed  away  up  the 
chimney,  leaving  them  all  in  great  consternation,  and  especially  the 
Queen.  However,  she  entertained  the  fairies  splendidly,  and  gave 
them  beautiful  ribbons,  of  which  they  are  very  fond,  in  addition  to 
the  other  presents. 

When  they  were  going  away  the  oldest  Fairy  said  that  they 
were  of  opinion  that  it  would  be  best  to  shut  the  Princess  up  in  some 
place,  with  her  waiting- women,  so  that  she  might  not  see  anyone 
else  until  she  was  twenty  years  old.  So  the  King  had  a  tower  built 
on  purpose.  It  had  no  windows,  so  it  was  lighted  with  wax  candles, 
and  the  only  way  into  it  was  by  an  underground  passage,  which 
had  iron  doors  only  twenty  feet  apart,  and  guards  were  posted  every- 
where. 

The  Princess  had  been  named  Mayblossom,  because  she  was  as 
fresh  and  blooming  as  Spring  itself,  and  she  grew  up  tall  and  beauti- 
ful, and  everything  she  did  and  said  was  charming.  Every  time  the 
King  and  Queen  came  to  see  her  they  were  more  delighted  with  her 
than  before,  but  though  she  was  weary  of  the  tower,  and  often 
begged  them  to  take  her  away  from  it,  they  always  refused.  The 
Princess's  nurse,  who  had  never  left  her,  sometimes  told  her  about 
the  world  outside  the  tower,  and  though  the  Princess  had  never 
seen  anything  for  herself,  yet  she  always  understood  exactly,  thanks 
to  the  second  Fairy's  gift.  Often  the  King  said  to  the  Queen : 

'  We  were  cleverer  than  Carabosse  after  all.  Our  Mayblossom 
will  be  happy  in  spite  of  her  predictions.' 

And  the  Queen  laughed  until  she  was  tired  at  the  idea  of  having 
outwitted  the  old  Fairy.  They  had  caused  the  Princess's  portrait  to 
be  painted  and  sent  to  all  the  neighbouring  Courts,  for  in  four  days  she 
would  have  completed  her  twentieth  year,  and  it  was  time  to  decide 
whom  she  should  marry.  All  the  town  was  rejoicing  at  the  thought 
of  the  Princess's  approaching  freedom,  and  when  the  news  came 
that  King  Merlin  was  sending  his  ambassador  to  ask  her  in  marriage 
for  his  son,  they  were  still  more  delighted.  The  nurse,  who  kept 


16  THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 

the  Princess  informed  of  everything  that  went  forward  in  the  town, 
did  not  fail  to  repeat  the  news  that  so  nearly  concerned  her,  and 
gave  such  a  description  of  the  splendour  in  which  the  ambassador 
Fanfaronade  would  enter  the  town,  that  the  Princess  was  wild  to 
see  the  procession  for  herself. 

•  What  an  unhappy  creature  I  am,'  she  cried,  '  to  be  shut  up  in 
this  dismal  tower  as  if  I  had  committed  some  crime  !  I  have  never 
seen  the  sun,  or  the  stars,  or  a  horse,  or  a  monkey,  or  a  lion,  except 
in  pictures,  and  though  the  King  and  Queen  tell  me  I  am  to  be  set 
free  when  I  am  twenty,  I  believe  they  only  say  it  to  keep  me  amused, 
when  they  never  mean  to  let  me  out  at  all.' 

And  then  she  began  to  cry,  and  her  nurse,  and  the  nurse's 
daughter,  and  the  cradle-rocker,  and  the  nursery-maid,  who  all  loved 
her  dearly,  cried  too  for  company,  so  that  nothing  could  be  heard 
but  sobs  and  sighs.  It  was  a  scene  of  woe.  When  the  Princess  saw 
that  they  all  pitied  her  she  made  up  her  mind  to  have  her  own  way. 
So  she  declared  that  she  would  starve  herself  to  death  if  they  did 
not  find  some  means  of  letting  her  see  Fanfaronade's  grand  entry 
into  the  town. 

'  If  you  really  love  me,'  she  said,  '  you  will  manage  it,  somehow 
or  other,  and  the  King  and  Queen  need  never  know  anything 
about  it.' 

Then  the  nurse  and  all  the  others  cried  harder  than  ever,  and 
said  everything  they  could  think  of  to  turn  the  Princess  from  her 
idea.  But  the  more  they  said  the  more  determined  she  was,  and  at 
last  they  consented  to  make  a  tiny  hole  in  the  tower  on  the  side 
that  looked  towards  the  city  gates. 

After  Scratching  and  scraping  all  day  and  all  night,  they  presently 
made  a  hole  through  which  they  could,  with  great  difficulty,  push  a 
very  slender  needle,  and  out  of  this  the  Princess  looked  at  the  day- 
light for  the  first  time.  She  was  so  dazzled  and  delighted  by  what 
she  saw,  that  there  she  stayed,  never  taking  her  eyes  away  from  the 
peep-hole  for  a  single  minute,  until  presently  the  ambassador's  pro- 
cession appeared  in  sight. 

At  the  head  of  it  rode  Fanfaronade  himself  upon  a  white  horse, 
which  pranced  and  caracoled  to  the  sound  of  the  trumpets.  Nothing 
could  have  been  more  splendid  than  the  ambassador's  attire.  His 
coat  was  nearly  hidden  under  an  embroidery  of  pearls  and  diamonds, 
his  boots  were  solid  gold,  and  from  his  helmet  floated  scarlet  plumes. 
At  the  sight  of  him  the  Princess  lost  her  wits  entirely,  and  deter- 
mined that  Fanfaronade  and  nobody  else'would  she  marry. 


THE   PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM  17 

'  It  is  quite  impossible,'  she  said,  '  that  his  master  should  be  half 
as  handsome  and  delightful.  I  am  uot  ambitious,  and  having  spent 
all  my  life  in  this  tedious  tower,  anything — even  a  house  in  the 
country — will  seem  a  delightful  change.  I  am  sure  that  bread  and 
water  shared  with  Fanfaronade  will  please  me  far  better  than  roast 
chicken  and  sweetmeats  with  anybody  else.' 

And  so  she  went  on  talk,  talk,  talking,  until  her  waiting-women 
wondered  where  she  got  it  all  from.  But  when  they  tried  to  stop 
her,  and  represented  that  her  high  rank  made  it  perfectly  impossible 
that  she  should  do  any  such  thing,  she  would  not  listen,  and 
ordered  them  to  be  silent. 

As  soon  as  the  ambassador  arrived  at  the  palace,  the  Queen 
started  to  fetch  her  daughter. 

All  the  streets  were  spread  with  carpets,  and  the  windows  were 
full  of  ladies  who  were  waiting  to  see  the  Princess,  and  carried 
baskets  of  flowers  and  sweetmeats  to  shower  upon  her  as  she 
passed. 

They  had  hardly  begun  to  get  the  Princess  ready  when  a  dwarf 
arrived,  mounted  upon  an  elephant.  He  came  from  the  five  fairies, 
and  brough  t  for  the  Princess  a  crown,  a  sceptre,  and  a  robe  of  golden 
brocade,  with  a  petticoat  marvellously  embroidered  with  butterflies' 
wings.  They  also  sent  a  casket  of  jewels,  so  splendid  that  no  one 
had  ever  seen  anything  like  it  before,  and  the  Queen  was  perfectly 
dazzled  when  she  opened  it.  But  the  Princess  scarcely  gave  a  glance 
to  any  of  these  treasures,  for  she  thought  of  nothing  but  Fanfaronade. 
The  Dwarf  was  rewarded  with  a  gold  piece,  and  decorated  with  so 
many  ribbons  that  it  was  hardly  possible  to  see  him  at  all.  The 
Princess  sent  to  each  of  the  fairies  a  new  spinning-wheel  with  a 
distaff  of  cedar  wood,  and  the  Queen  said  she  must  look  through 
her  treasures  and  find  something  very  charming  to  send  them 
also. 

When  the  Princess  was  arrayed  in  all  the  gorgeous  things  the 
Dwarf  had  brought,  she  was  more  beautiful  than  ever,  and  as  she 
walked  along  the  streets  the  people  cried :  '  How  pretty  she  is  ! 
How  pretty  she  is  ! ' 

The  procession  consisted  of  the  Queen,  the  Princess,  five  dozen 
other  princesses  her  cousins,  and  ten  dozen  who  came  from  the 
neighbouring  kingdoms  ;  and  as  they  proceeded  at  a  stately  pace  the 
sky  began  to  grow  dark,  then  suddenly  the  thunder  growled,  and 
rain  and  hail  fell  in  torrents.  The  Queen  put  her  royal  mantle 
over  her  head,  and  all  the  princesses  did  the  same  with  their  trains. 
R.  c 


18  THE  PEINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 

Mayblossom  was  just  about  to  follow  their  example  when  a  terrific 
croaking,  as  of  an  immense  army  of  crows,  rooks,  ravens,  screech- 
owls,  and  all  birds  of  ill-omen  was  heard,  and  at  the  same  instant  a 
huge  owl  skimmed  up  to  the  Princess,  and  threw  over  her  a  scarf 
woven  of  spiders'  webs  and  embroidered  with  bats'  wings.  And 
then  peals  of  mocking  laughter  rang  through  the  air,  and  they 
guessed  that  this  was  another  of  the  Fairy  Carabosse's  unpleasant 
jokes. 

The  Queen  was  terrified  at  such  an  evil  omen,  and  tried  to  pull 
the  black  scarf  from  the  Princess's  shoulders,  but  it  really  seemed 
as  if  it  must  be  nailed  on,  it  clung  so  closely. 

'  Ah ! '  cried  the  Queen,  '  can  nothing  appease  this  enemy  of 
ours  ?  What  good  was  it  that  I  sent  her  more  than  fifty  pounds  of 
sweetmeats,  and  as  much  again  of  the  best  sugar,  not  to  mention 
two  Westphalia  hams  ?  She  is  as  angry  as  ever.' 

While  she  lamented  in  this  way,  and  everybody  was  as  wet  as 
if  they  had  been  dragged  through  a  river,  the  Princess  still  thought 
of  nothing  but  the  ambassador,  and  just  at  this  moment  he  appeared 
before  her,  with  the  King,  and  there  was  a  great  blowing  of 
trumpets,  and  all  the  people  shouted  louder  than  ever.  Fanfaronade 
was  not  generally  at  a  loss  for  something  to  say,  but  when  he  saw 
the  Princess,  she  was  so  much  more  beautiful  and  majestic  than  he 
had  expected  that  he  could  only  stammer  out  a  few  words,  and 
entirely  forgot  the  harangue  which  he  had  been  learning  for 
months,  and  knew  well  enough  to  have  repeated  it  in  his  sleep.  To 
gain  time  to  remember  at  least  part  of  it,  he  made  several  low  bows 
to  the  Princess,  who  on  her  side  dropped  half-a-dozen  curtseys  with- 
out stopping  to  think,  and  then  said,  to  relieve  his  evident  embar- 
rassment : 

'  Sir  Ambassador,  I  am  sure  that  everything  yoii  intend  to  say 
is  charming,  since  it  is  you  who  mean  to  say  it ;  but  let  us  make 
haste  into  the  palace,  as  it  is  pouring  cats  and  dogs,  and  the  wicked 
Fairy  Carabosse  will  be  amused  to  see  us  all  stand  dripping  here. 
When  we  are  once  under  shelter  we  can  laugh  at  her.' 

Upon  this  the  Ambassador  fcmnd  his  tongue,  and  replied 
gallantly  that  the  Fairy  had  evidently  foreseen  the  flames  that 
would  be  kindled  by  the  bright  eyes  of  the  Princess,  and  had  sent 
this  deluge  to  extinguish  them.  Then  he  offered  his  hand  to  con- 
duct the  Princess,  and  she  said  softly  : 

'As  you  could  not  possibly  guess  how  much  I  like  you,  Sir 
Fanfaronade,  I  am  obliged  to  tell  you  plainly  that,  since  I  saw  you 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM  19 

enter  the  town  on  your  beautiful  prancing  horse,  I  have  been  sorry 
that  yon  came  to  speak  for  another  instead  of  for  yourself.  So,  if 
you  think  about  it  as  I  do,  I  will  marry  you  instead  of  your  master. 
Of  course  I  know  you  are  not  a  prince,  but  I  shall  be  just  as  fond  of 
you  as  if  you  were,  and  we  can  go  and  live  in  some  cosy  little 
corner  of  the  world,  and  be  as  happy  as  the  days  are  long.' 

The  Ambassador  thought  he  must  be  dreaming,  and  could  hardly 
believe  what  the  lovely  Princess  said.  He  dared  not  answer,  but 
only  squeezed  the  Princess's  hand  until  he  really  hurt  her  little 
finger,  but  she  did  not  cry  out.  When  they  reached  the  palace  the 
King  kissed  his  daughter  on  both  cheeks,  and  said  : 

'  My  little  lambkin,  are  you  willing  to  marry  the  great  King 
Merlin's  son,  for  this  Ambassador  has  come  on  his  behalf  to  fetch 
you  ?  ' 

'  If  you  please,  sire,'  said  the  Princess,  dropping  a  curtsey. 

'  I  consent  also,'  said  the  Queen ;  '  so  let  the  banquet  be  pre- 
pared.' 

This  was  done  with  all  speed,  and  everybody  feasted  except 
Mayblossom  and  Fanfaronade,  who  looked  at  one  another  and  for- 
got everything  else. 

After  the  banquet  came  a  ball,  and  after  that  again  a  ballet,  and 
ati  last  they  were  ail  so  tired  that  everyone  fell  asleep  just  where 
he  sat.  Only  the  lovers  were  as  wide-awake  as  mice,  and  the 
Princess,  seeing  that  there  was  nothing  to  fear,  said  to  Fanfaronade  : 

'  Let  us  be  quick  and  run  away,  for  we  shall  never  have  a  better 
chance  than  this.' 

Then  she  took  the  King's  dagger,  which  was  in  a  diamond 
sheath,  and  the  Queen's  neck-handkerchief,  and  gave  her  hand  to 
Fanfaronade,  who  carried  a  lantern,  and  they  ran  out  together  into 
the  muddy  street  and  down  to  the  sea-shore.  Here  they  got  into 
a  little  boat  in  which  the  poor  old  boatman  was  sleeping,  and  when 
he  woke  up  and  saw  the  lovely  Princess,  with  all  her  diamonds  and 
her  spiders' -web  scarf,  he  did  not  know  what  to  think,  and  obeyed 
her  instantly  when  she  commanded  him  to  set  out.  They  could  see 
neither  moon  nor  stars,  but  in  the  Queen's  neck-handkerchief  there 
was  a  carbuncle  which  glowed  like  fifty  torches.  Fanfaronade 
asked  the  Princess  where  she  would  like  to  go,  but  she  only 
answered  that  she  did  not  care  where  she  went  as  long  as  he  was 
with  her. 

'  But,  Princess,'  said  he,  '  I  dare  not  take  you  back  to  King 
Merlin's  court.  He  would  think  hanging  too  good  for  me.' 

c2 


20 


THE  PRINCESS  MAY  BLOSSOM 


'  Oh,  in  that  case,'  she  answered,  '  we  had  better  go  to  Squirrel 
Island ;  it  is  lonely  enough,  and  too  far  off  for  anyone  to  follow  us 
there.' 

So  she  ordered  the  old  boatman  to  steer  for  Squirrel  Island. 


Meanwhile  the  day  was  breaking,  and  the  King  and  Queen  and 
all  the  courtiers  began  to  wake  up  and  rub  their  eyes,  and  think 
it  was  time  to  finish  the  preparations  for  the  wedding.  And  the 
Queen  asked  for  her  neck -handkerchief,  that  she  might  look  smart. 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM  21 

Then  there  was  a  scurrying  hither  and  thither,  and  a  hunting  every- 
where :  they  looked  into  every  place,  from  the  wardrobes  to  the 
stoves,  and  the  Queen  herself  ran  about  from  the  garret  to  the 
cellar,  but  the  handkerchief  was  nowhere  to  be  found. 

By  this  time  the  King  had  missed  his  dagger,  and  the 
search  began  all  over  again.  They  opened  boxes  and  chests  of 
which  the  keys  had  been  lost  for  a  hundred  years,  and  found 
numbers  of  curious  things,  but  not  the  dagger,  and  the  King  tore 
his  beard,  and  the  Queen  tore  her  hair,  for  the  handkerchief  and 
the  dagger  were  the  most  valuable  things  in  the  kingdom. 

When  the  King  saw  that  the  search  was  hopeless  he  said  : 

•  Never  mind,  let  us  make  haste  and  get  the  wedding  over  before 
anything  else  is  lost.'  And  then  he  asked  where  the  Princess  was. 
Upon  this  her  nurse  came  forward  and  said  : 

'  Sire,  I  have  been  seeking  her  these  two  hours,  but  she  is  no- 
where to  be  found.'  This  was  more  than  the  Queen  could  bear. 
She  gave  a  shriek  of  alarm  and  fainted  away,  and  they  had  to  pour 
two  barrels  of  eau-de-cologne  over  her  before  she  recovered.  When 
she  came  to  herself  everybody  was  looking  for  the  Princess  in  the 
greatest  terror  and  confusion,  but  as  she  did  not  appear,  the  King 
said  to  his  page  : 

'  Go  and  find  the  Ambassador  Fanfaronade,  who  is  doubtless 
asleep  in  some  corner,  and  tell  him  the  sad  news.' 

So  the  page  hunted  hither  and  thither,  but  Fanfaronade  was 
no  more  to  be  found  than  the  Princess,  the  dagger,  or  the  neck- 
handkerchief  ! 

Then  the  King  summoned  his  counsellors  and  his  guards,  and, 
accompanied  by  the  Queen,  went  into  his  great  hall.  As  he  had  not 
had  time  to  prepare  his  speech  beforehand,  the  King  ordered  that 
silence  should  be  kept  for  three  hours,  and  at  the  end  of  that  time 
he  spoke  as  follows  : 

'  Listen,  great  and  small !  My  dear  daughter  Mayblossom  is 
lost :  whether  she  has  been  stolen  away  or  has  sirnpty  disappeared 
I  cannot  tell.  The  Queen's  neck-handkerchief  and  my  sword, 
which  are  worth  their  weight  in  gold,  are  also  missing,  and,  what 
is  worst  of  all,  the  Ambassador  Fanfaronade  is  nowhere  to  be 
found.  I  greatly  fear  that  the  King,  his  master,  when  he  receives 
no  tidings  from  him,  will  come  to  seek  him  among  us,  and  will 
accuse  iis  of  having  made  mince-meat  of  him.  Perhaps  I  could 
bear  even  that  if  I  had  any  money,  but  I  assure  you  that  the  ex- 
penses of  the  wedding  have  completely  ruined  me.  Advise  me, 


22  THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 

then,  ray  dear  subjects,  what  had  I  better  do  to  recover  my  daughter, 
Fanfaronade,  and  the  other  things.1 

This  was  the  most  eloquent  speech  the  King  had  been  known 
to  make,  and  when  everybody  had  done  admiring  it  the  Prime 
Minister  made  answer : 

1  Sire,  we  are  all  very  sorry  to  see  you  so  sorry.  We  would 
give  everything  we  value  in  the  world  to  take  away  the  cause  of 
your  sorrow,  but  this  seems  to  be  another  of  the  tricks  of  the  Fairy 
Carabosse.  The  Princess's  twenty  unlucky  years  were  not  quite 
over,  and  really,  if  the  truth  must  be  told,  I  noticed  that  Fanfaronade 
and  the  Princess  appeared  to  admire  one  another  greatly.  Perhaps 
this  may  give  some  clue  to  the  mystery  of  their  disappearance.' 

Here  the  Queen  interrupted  him,  saying,  '  Take  care  what  you 
say,  sir.  Believe  me,  the  Princess  Mayblossom  was  far  too  well 
brought  up  to  think  of  falling  in  love  with  an  Ambassador.' 

At  this  the  nurse  came  forward,  and,  falling  on  her  knees,  con- 
fessed how  they  had  made  the  little  needle -hole  in  the  tower,  and 
how  the  Princess  had  declared  when  she  saw  the  Ambassador  that 
she  would  marry  him  and  nobody  else.  Then  the  Queen  was  very 
angry,  and  gave  the  nurse,  and  the  cradle -rocker,  and  the  nursery- 
maid such  a  scolding  that  they  shook  in  their  shoes.  But  the 
Admiral  Cocked-Hat  interrupted  her,  crying: 

'  Let  us  be  off  after  this  good-for-nothing  Fanfaronade,  for  with- 
out a  doubt  he  has  run  away  with  our  Princess.' 

Then  there  was  a  great  clapping  of  hands,  and  everybody 
shouted,  '  By  all  means  let  us  be  after  him." 

So  while  some  embarked  upon  the  sea,  the  others  ran  from 
kingdom  to  kingdom  beating  drums  and  blowing  trumpets,  and 
wherever  a  crowd  collected  they  cried  : 

'  Whoever  wants  a  beautiful  doll,  sweetmeats  of  all  kinds,  a 
little  pair  of  scissors,  a  golden  robe,  and  a  satin  cap  has  only  to 
say  where  Fanfaronade  has  hidden  the  Princess  Mayblossom.' 

But  the  answer  everywhere  was,  '  You  must  go  farther,'we  have 
not  seen  them." 

However,  those  who  went  by  sea  were  more  fortunate,  for  after 
sailing  about  for  some  time  they  noticed  a  light  before  them  which 
burned  at  night  like  a  great  fire.  At  first  they  dared  not  go  near 
it,  not  knowing  what  it  might  be,  but  by-and-by  it  remained 
stationary  over  Squirrel  Island,  for,  as  you  have  guessed  already, 
the  light  was  the  glowing  of  the  carbuncle.  The  Princess  and 
Fanfaronade  on  landing  upon  the  island  had  given  the  boatman 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM  23 

a  hundred  gold  pieces,  and  made  him  promise  solemnly  to  tell  no 
one  where  he  had  taken  them ;  but  the  first  thing  that  happened 
was  that,  as  he  rowed  away,  he  got  into  the  midst  of  the  fleet,  and 
before  he  could  escape  the  Admiral  had  seen  him  and  sent  a  boat 
after  him. 

When  he  was  searched  they  found  the  gold  pieces  in  his  pocket, 
and  as  they  were  quite  new  coins,  struck  in  honour  of  the  Princess's 
wedding,  the  Admiral  felt  certain  that  the  boatman  must  have 
been  paid  by  the  Princess  to  aid  her  in  her  flight.  But  he  would 
not  answer  any  questions,  and  pretended  to  be  deaf  and  dumb. 

Then  the  Admiral  said  :  '  Oh  !  deaf  and  dumb  is  he  ?  Lash 
him  to  the  mast  and  give  him  a  taste  of  the  cat-o'-nine-tails.  I 
don't  know  anything  better  than  that  for  curing  the  deaf  and 
dumb ! ' 

And  when  the  old  boatman  saw  that  he  was  in  earnest,  he  told 
all  he  knew  about  the  cavalier  and  the  lady  whom  he  had  landed 
upon  Squirrel  Island,  and  the  Admiral  knew  it  must  be  the 
Princess  and  Fanfaronade  ;  so  he  gave  the  order  for  the  fleet  to 
surround  the  island. 

Meanwhile  the  Princess  Mayblossom,  who  was  by  this  time 
terribly  sleepy,  had  found  a  grassy  bank  in  the  shade,  and  throwing 
herself  down  had  already  fallen  into  a  profound  slumber,  when 
Fanfaronade,  who  happened  to  be  hungry  and  not  sleepy,  came 
and  woke  her  up,  saying,  very  crossly : 

'  Pray,  madam,  how  long  do  you  mean  to  stay  here  ?  I  see 
nothing  to  eat,  and  though  you  may  be  very  charming,  the  sight 
of  you  does  not  prevent  me  from  famishing.' 

'  What !  Fanfaronade,"  said  the  Princess,  sitting  up  and  rubbing 
her  eyes,  '  is  it  possible  that  when  I  am  here  with  you  you  can 
want  anything  else  ?  You  ought  to  be  thinking  all  the  time  how 
happy  you  are.' 

'  Happy !  '  cried  he  ;  '  say  rather  unhappy.  I  wish  with  all  my 
heart  that  you  were  back  in  your  dark  tower  again.' 

'  Darling,  don't  be  cross,'  said  the  Princess.  '  I  will  go  and  see 
if  I  can  find  some  wild  fruit  for  you.' 

'  I  wish  you  might  find  a  wolf  to  eat  you  up,'  growled  Fan- 
faronade. 

The  Princess,  in  great  dismay,  ran  hither  and  thither  all  about 
the  wood,  tearing  her  dress,  and  hurting  her  pretty  white  hands 
with  the  thorns  and  brambles,  but  she  could  find  nothing  good  to 
eat,  and  at  last  she  had  to  go  back  sorrowfully  to  Fanfaronade. 


24  THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 

When  he  saw  that  she  came  empty-handed  he  got  tip  and  left  her, 
grumbling  to  himself. 

The  next  day  they  searched  again,  but  with  no  better  success. 

'  Alas ! '  said  the  Princess,  '  if  only  I  could  find  something  for 
you  to  eat,  I  should  not  mind  being  hungry  myself.' 

'  No,  I  should  not  mind  that  either,'  answered  Fanfaronade. 

'  Is  it  possible,'  said  she,  '  that  you  would  not  care  if  I  died  of 
hunger  ?  Oh,  Fanfaronade,  you  said  you  loved  me  ! ' 

'  That  was  when  we  were  in  quite  another  place  and  I  was  not 
hungry,'  said  he.  '  It  makes  a  great  difference  in  one's  ideas  to  be 
dying  of  hunger  and  thirst  on  a  desert  island.' 

At  this  the  Princess  was  dreadfully  vexed,  and  she  sat  down 
under  a  white  rose  bush  and  began  to  cry  bitterly. 

'  Happy  roses,'  she  thought  to  herself, '  they  have  only  to  blossom 
in  the  sunshine  and  be  admired,  and  there  is  nobody  to  be  unkind 
to  them.'  And  the  tears  ran  down  her  cheeks  and  splashed  on  to 
the  rose-tree  roots.  Presently  she  was  surprised  to  see  the  whole 
bush  rustling  and  shaking,  and  a  soft  little  voice  from  the  prettiest 
rosebud  said  : 

'  Poor  Princess  !  look  in  the  trunk  of  that  tree,  and  you  will 
find  a  honeycomb,  but  don't  be  foolish  enough  to  share  it  with 
Fanfaronade.' 

Mayblossom  ran  to  the  tree,  and  sure  enough  there  was  the 
honey.  Without  losing  a  moment  she  ran  with  it  to  Fanfaronade, 
crying  gaily  : 

'  See,  here  is  a  honeycomb  that  I  have  found.  I  might  have 
eaten  it  up  all  by  myself,  but  I  had  rather  share  it  with  you.' 

But  without  looking  at  her  or  thanking  her  he  snatched  the  honey- 
comb out  of  her  hands  and  ate  it  all  vip — every  bit,  without  offering 
her  a  morsel.  Indeed,  when  she  humbly  asked  for  some  he  said 
mockingly  that  it  was  too  sweet  for  her,  and  would  spoil  her  teeth. 

Mayblossom,  more  downcast  than  ever,  went  sadly  away  and 
sat  down  under  an  oak  tree,  and  her  tears  and  sighs  were  so 
piteous  that  the  oak  fanned  her  with  his  rustling  leaves,  and  said : 

'  Take  courage,  pretty  Princess,  all  is  not  lost  yet.  Take  this 
pitcher  of  milk  and  drink  it  up,  and  whatever  you  do,  don't  leave  a 
drop  for  Fanfaronade.' 

The  Princess,  quite  astonished,  looked  round,  and  saw  a  big 
pitcher  full  of  milk,  but  before  she  could  raise  it  to  her  lips  the 
thought  of  how  thirsty  Fanfaronade  must  be,  after  eating  at  least 
fifteen  pounds  of  honey,  made  her  run  back  to  him  and  say  : 


25 

'  Here  is  a  pitcher  of  milk  ;  drink  some,  for  you  must  be  thirsty, 
I  am  sure ;  but  pray  save  a  little  for  me,  as  I  am  dying  of  hunger 
and  thirst.' 

But  he  seized  the  pitcher  and  drank  all  it  contained  at  a  single 
draught,  and  then  broke  it  to  atoms  on  the  nearest  stone,  saying, 
with  a  malicious  smile  :  '  As  you  have  not  eaten  anything  you  can- 
not be  thirsty.' 

'  Ah  !  '  cried  the  Princess,  '  I  am  well  punished  for  disappointing 
the  King  and  Qiieen,  and  running  away  with  this  Ambassador, 
about  whom  I  knew  nothing.' 

And  so  saying  she  wandered  away  into  the  thickest  part  of  the 
wood,  and  sat  down  under  a  thorn  tree,  where  a  nightingale  was 
singing.  Presently  she  heard  him  say  :  '  Search  under  the  bush, 
Princess ;  you  will  find  some  sugar,  almonds,  and  some  tarts  there. 
But  don't  be  silly  enough  to  offer  Fanfaronade  any.'  And  this 
time  the  Princess,  who  was  fainting  with  hunger,  took  the  nightin- 
gale's advice,  and  ate  what  she  found  all  by  herself.  But  Fan- 
faronade, seeing  that  she  had  found  something  good,  and  was  not 
going  to  share  it  with  him,  ran  after  her  in  such  a  fury  that  she 
hastily  drew  out  the  Queen's  carbuncle,  which  had  the  property  of 
rendering  people  invisible  if  they  were  in  danger,  and  when  she 
was  safely  hidden  from  him  she  reproached  him  gently  for  his 
unkindness. 

Meanwhile  Admiral  Cocked-Hat  had  despatched  Jack-the- 
Chatterer-of-the-Straw-Boots,  Courier  in  Ordinary  to  the  Prime 
Minister,  to  tell  the  King  that  the  Princess  and  the  Ambassador 
had  landed  on  Squirrel  Island,  but  that  not  knowing  the  country 
he  had  not  pursued  them,  for  fear  of  being  captured  by  concealed 
enemies.  Their  Majesties  were  overjoyed  at  the  news,  and  the 
King  sent  for  a  great  book,  each  leaf  of  which  was  eight  ells  long. 
It  was  the  work  of  a  very  clever  Fairy,  and  contained  a  description 
of  the  whole  earth.  He  very  soon  found  that  Squirrel  Island  was 
uninhabited. 

'  Go,'  said  he,  to  Jack-the-Chatterer,  '  tell  the  Admiral  from  me 
to  land  at  once.  I  am  surprised  at  his  not  having  done  so  sooner.' 
As  soon  as  this  message  reached  the  fleet,  every  preparation  was 
made  for  war,  and  the  noise  was  so  great  that  it  reached  the  ears  of 
the  Princess,  who  at  once  flew  to  protect  her  lover.  As  he  was  not 
very  brave  he  accepted  her  aid  gladly. 

'  You  stand  behind  me,'  said  she,  '  and  I  will  hold  the  carbuncle 
which  will  make  us  invisible,  and  with  the  King's  dagger  I  can 


26 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 


protect  you  from  the  enemy.'  So  when  the  soldiers  landed  they 
could  see  nothing,  but  the  Princess  touched  them  one  after  another 
with  the  dagger,  and  they  fell  insensible  upon  the  sand,  so  that  at 
last  the  Admiral,  seeing  that  there  was  some  enchantment,  hastily 
gave  orders  for  a  retreat  to  be  sounded,  and  got  his  men  back  into 

their  boats  in  great 
confusion. 

Fanfaronade, 
being  once  more  left 
with  the  Princess, 
began  to  think  that 
if  he  could  get  rid 
of  her,  and  possess 
himself  of  the  car- 
buncle and  the 
dagger,  he  would  be 
able  to  make  his 
escape.  So  as  they 
walked  back  over 
the  cliffs  he  gave 
the  Princess  a  great 
push,  hoping  she 
would  fall  into  the 
sea ;  but  she  stepped 
aside  so  quickly  that 
he  only  succeeded 
in  overbalancing 
himself,  and  over 
he  went,  and  sank 
to  the  bottom  of  the 
sea  like  a  lump  of 
lead,  and  was  never 
heard  of  any  more. 
While  the  Prin- 
cess was  still  looking  after  him  in  horror,  her  attention  was  attracted 
by  a  rushing  noise  over  her  head,  and  looking  up  she  saw  two  chariots 
approaching  rapidly  from  opposite  directions.  One  was  bright  and 
glittering,  and  drawn  by  swans  and  peacocks,  while  the  Fairy  who  sat 
in  it  was  beautiful  as  a  sunbeam ;  but  the  other  was  drawn  by  bats  and 
ravens,  and  contained  a  frightful  little  Dwarf,  who  was  dressed  in  a 
snake's  skin,  and  wore  a  great  toad  upon  her  head  for  a  hood.  The 


THE  PEINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 


27 


chariots  met  with  a  frightful  crash  in  mid-air,  and  the  Princess- 
looked  on  in  breathless  anxiety  Awhile  a  furious  battle  took  place  be 


tween  the  lovely  Fairy  with  her  golden  lance,  and  the  hideous  little 
Dwarf  and  her  rusty  pike.  But  very  soon  it  was  evident  that  the 
Beauty  had  the  best  of  it,  and  the  Dwarf  turned  her  bats'  heads  and 


28  THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 

flickered  away  in  great  confusion,  while  the  Fairy  came  down  to 
where  the  Princess  stood,  and  said,  smiling,  'You  see  Princess,  I  have 
completely  routed  that  malicious  old  Carabosse.  Will  you  believe  it ! 
she  actually  wanted  to  claim  authority  over  you  for  ever,  because 
you  came  out  of  the  tower  four  days  before  the  twenty  years  were 
ended.  However,  I  think  I  have  settled  her  pretensions,  and  I 
hope  you  will  be  very  happy  and  enjoy  the  freedom  I  have  won  for 
you.' 

The  Princess  thanked  her  heartily,  and  then  the  Fairy  despatched 
one  of  her  peacocks  to  her  palace  to  bring  a  gorgeous  robe  for  May- 
blossorn,  who  certainly  needed  it,  for  her  own  was  torn  to  shreds 
by  the  thorns  and  briars.  Another  peacock  was  sent  to  the  Admiral 
to  tell  him  that  he  could  now  land  in  perfect  safety,  which  he  at 
once  did,  bringing  all  his  men  with  him,  even  to  Jack-the-Chatterer, 
who,  happening  to  pass  the  spit  upon  which  the  Admiral's  dinner 
was  roasting,  snatched  it  up  and  brought  it  with  him. 

Admiral  Cocked-Hat  was  immensely  surprised  when  he  came 
upon  the  golden  chariot,  and  still  more  so  to  see  two  lovely  ladies 
walking  under  the  trees  a  little  farther  away.  When  he  reached 
them,  of  course  he  recognised  the  Princess,  and  he  went  down  on 
his  knees  and  kissed  her  hand  quite  joyfully.  Then  she  presented 
him  to  the  Fairy,  and  told  him  how  Carabosse  had  been  finally 
routed,  and  he  thanked  and  congratulated  the  Fairy,  who  was  most 
gracious  to  him.  While  they  were  talking  she  cried  suddenly : 

'  I  declare  I  smell  a  savoury  dinner.' 

'  Why  yes,  Madam,  here  it  is,'  said  Jack-the-Chatterer,  holding 
up  the  spit,  where  all  the  pheasants  and  partridges  were  frizzling. 
'  Will  your  Highness  please  to  taste  any  of  them  ?  ' 

'  By  all  means,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  especially  as  the  Princess  will 
certainly  be  glad  of  a  good  meal.' 

So  the  Admiral  sent  back  to  bis  ship  for  everything  that  was 
needful,  and  they  feasted  merrily  under  the  trees.  By  the  time 
they  had  finished  the  peacock  had  come  back  with  a  robe  for  the 
Princess,  in  which  the  Fairy  arrayed  her.  It  was  of  green  and  gold 
brocade,  embroidered  with  pearls  and  rubies,  and  her  long  golden 
hair  was  tied  back  with  strings  of  diamonds  and  emeralds,  and 
crowned  with  flowers.  The  Fairy  made  her  mount  beside  her  in 
the  golden  chariot,  and  took  her  on  board  the  Admiral's  ship,  where 
she  bade  her  farewell,  sending  many  messages  of  friendship  to  the 
Queen,  and  bidding  the  Princess  tell  her  that  she  was  the  fifth 
Fairy  who  had  attended  the  christening.  Then  salutes  were  fired, 


THE  PRINCESS  MAYBLOSSOM 


29 


the  Heet  weighed  anchor,  and  very  soon  they  reached  the  port. 
Here  the  King  and  Queen  were  waiting,  and  they  received  the 
Princess  with  such  joy  and  kindness  that  she  could  not  get  a  word 
in  edgewise,  to  sa,y  how  sorry  she  was  for  having  run  away  with 
such  a  very  poor  spirited  Ambassador.  But,  after  all,  it  must  have 
been  all  Carabosse's  fault.  Just  at  this  lucky  moment  who  should 
arrive  but  King  Merlin's  son,  who  had  become  uneasy  at  not 


receiving  any  news  from  his  Ambassador,  and  so  had  started  him- 
self with  a  magnificent  escort  of  a  thousand  horsemen,  and  thirty 
body-guards  in  gold  and  scarlet  uniforms,  to  see  what  could  havo 
happened.  As  he  was  a  hundred  times  handsomer  and  braver 
than  the  Ambassador,  the  Princess  found  she  could  like  him  veiy 
much.  So  the  wedding  was  held  at  once,  with  so  much  splendour 
and  rejoicing  that  all  the  previous  misfortunes  were  quite  forgotten.1 

1  La  Princtsse  Pnntanitre.    Par  Mine.  d'Auluoy. 


30 


SOEIA   MOEIA   CASTLE 


rPHERE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  couple  of  folks  who  had  a  son 
-L  called  Halvor.  Ever  since  he  had  been  a  little  boy  he  had  been 
unwilling  to  do  any  work,  and  had  just  sat  raking  about  among  the 
ashes.  His  parents  sent  him  away  to  learn  several  things,  but 
Halvor  stayed  nowhere,  for  when  he  had  been  gone  two  or  three 
days  he  always  ran  away  from  his  master,  hurried  off  home,  and 
sat  down  in  the  chimney  corner  to  grub  among  the  ashes  again. 

One  day,  however,  a  sea  captain  came  and  asked  Halvor  if  he 
hadn't  a  fancy  to  come  with  him  and  go  to  sea,  and  behold  foreign 
lands.  And  Halvor  had  a  fancy  for  that,  so  he  was  not  long  in 
getting  ready. 

How  long  they  sailed  I  have  no  idea,  but  after  a  long,  long  time 
there  was  a  terrible  storm,  and  when  it  was  over  and  all  had  become 
calm  again,  they  knew  not  where  they  were,  for  they  had  been 
driven  away  to  a  strange  coast  of  which  none  of  them  had  any 
knowledge. 

As  there  was  no  wind  at  all  they  lay  there  becalmed,  and  Halvor 
asked  the  skipper  to  give  him  leave  to  go  on  shore  to  look  about 
him,  for  he  would  much  rather  do  that  than  lie  there  and  sleep. 

'  Dost  thou  think  that  thou  art  fit  to  go  where  people  can  see 
thee  ?  '  said  the  skipper  ;  '  thou  hast  no  clothes  but  those  rags  thou 
art  going  about  in  !  ' 

Halvor  still  begged  for  leave,  and  at  last  got  it,  but  he  was  to 
come  back  at  once  if  the  wind  began  to  rise. 

So  he  went  on  shore,  and  it  was  a  delightful  country  ;  whither- 
soever he  went  there  were  wide  plains  with  fields  and  meadows, 
but  as  for  people,  there  were  none  to  be  seen.  The  wind  began  to 
rise,  but  Halvor  thought  that  he  had  not  seen  enough  yet,  and  that 
he  would  like  to  walk  about  a  little  longer,  to  try  if  he  could  not 
meet  somebody.  So  after  a  while  he  came  to  a  great  highway,  which 
was  so  smooth  that  an  egg  might  have  been  rolled  along  it  without 


31 

breaking.  Halvor  followed  this,  and  when  evening  drew  near  he 
saw  a  big  castle  far  awTay  in  the  distance,  and  there  were  lights  in 
it.  So  as  he  had  now  been  walking  the  whole  day  and  had  not 
brought  anything  to  eat  away  with  him,  he  was  frightfully  hungry. 
Nevertheless,  the  nearer  he  came  to  the  castle  the  more  afraid 
he  was. 

A  fire  was  burning  in  the  castle,  and  Halvor  went  into  the  kitchen, 
which  was  more  magnificent  than  any  kitchen  he  had  ever  yet  be- 
held. There  were  vessels  of  gold  and  silver,  but  not  one  human 
being  was  to  be  seen.  When  Halvor  had  stood  there  for  some  time, 
and  no  one  had  come  out,  he  went  in  and  opened  a  door,  and  inside 
a  Princess  was  sitting  at  her  wheel  spinning. 

'  Nay  !  '  she  cried,  '  can  Christian  folk  dare  to  come  hither  ?  But 
the  best  thing  that  you  can  do  is  to  go  away  again,  for  if  not  the 
Troll  will  devour  you.  A  Troll  with  three  heads  lives  here.' 

'  I  should  have  been  just  as  well  pleased  if  he  had  had  four  heads 
more,  for  I  should  have  enjoyed  seeing  the  fellow,'  said  the  youth ; 
'  and  I  won't  go  away,  for  I  have  done  no  harm,  but  you  must  give 
me  something  to  eat,  for  I  am  frightfully  hungry.' 

When  Halvor  had  eaten  his  fill,  the  Princess  told  him  to  try  if 
he  could  wie]d  the  sword  which  was  hanging  on  the  wall,  but  he 
could  not  wield  it,  nor  could  he  even  lift  it  up. 

'  Well,  then,  you  must  take  a  drink  out  of  that  bottle  which  is 
hanging  by  its  side,  for  that's  what  the  Troll  does  whenever  he  goes 
out  and  wants  to  use  the  sword,'  said  the  Princess. 

Halvor  took  a  draught,  and  in  a  moment  he  was  able  to  swing 
the  sword  about  with  perfect  ease.     And  now  he  thought  it  was 
high  time  for  the  Troll  to  make  his  appearance,  and  at  that  very 
moment  he  came,  panting  for  breath. 
Halvor  got  behind  the  door. 

'  Hutetu  ! '  said  the  Troll  as  he  put  his  head  in  at  the  door.  '  It 
smells  just  as  if  there  were  Christian  man's  blood  here  ! ' 

'  Yes,  j-ou  shall  learn  that  there  is  ! '  said  Halvor,  and  cut  off  all 
his  heads. 

The  Princess  was  so  rejoiced  to  be  free  that  she  danced  and  sang, 
but  then  she  remembered  her  sisters,  and  said :  '  If  my  sisters  were 
but  free  too  ! ' 

'  Where  are  they  ?  '  asked  Halvor. 

So  she  told  him  where  they  were.  One  of  them  had  been  taken 
away  by  a  Troll  to  his  castle,  which  was  six  miles  off,  and  the  other 
had  been  carried  off  to  a  castle  which  was  nine  miles  farther  off  stillt 


32  SOEIA   MOEIA    CASTLE 

'  But  now,'  said  she,  '  you  must  first  help  rue  to  get  this  dead 
body  away  from  here.' 

Halvor  was  so  strong  that  he  cleared  everything  away,  and  made 
all  clean  and  tidy  very  quickly.  So  then  they  ate  and  drank,  and 
were  happy,  and  next  morning  he  set  off  in  the  grey  light  of  dawn. 
He  gave  himself  no  rest,  but  walked  or  ran  the  livelong  day. 
When  he  came  in  sight  of  the  castle  he  was  again  just  a  little  afraid. 
It  was  much  more  splendid  than  the  other,  hut  here  too  there  was 
not  a  human  being  to  be  seen.  So  Halvor  went  into  the  kitchen, 
and  did  not  linger  there  either,  but  went  straight  in. 

'  Nay  !  do  Christian  folk  dare  to  come  here  ?  '  cried  the  second 
Princess.  '  I  know  not  how  long  it  is  since  I  myself  came,  but  during 
all  that  time  I  have  never  seen  a  Christian  man.  It  will  be  better  for 
you  to  depart  at  once,  for  a  Troll  lives  here  who  has  six  heads." 

'  No,  I  shall  not  go,'  said  Halvor ;  '  even  if  he  had  six  more  I 
would  not.' 

'  He  will  swallow  you  up  alive,'  said  the  Princess. 

But  she  spoke  to  no  purpose,  for  Halvor  would  not  go  ;  he  was 
not  afraid  of  the  Troll,  but  he  wanted  some  meat  and  drink,  for  he 
was  hungry  after  his  journey.  So  she  gave  him  as  much  as  he 
would  have,  and  then  she  once  more  tried  to  make  him  go  away. 

'  No,'  said  Halvor,  '  I  will  not  go,  for  I  have  not  done  anything 
wrong,  and  I  have  no  reason  to  be  afraid.' 

'  He  won't  ask  any  questions  about  that,'  said  the  Princess,  '  for 
he  will  take  you  without  leave  or  right ;  but  as  you  will  not  go,  try 
if  you  can  wield  that  sword  which  the  Troll  uses  in  battle.' 

He  could  not  brandish  the  sword  ;  so  the  Princess  said  that  he 
was  to  take  a  draught  from  the  flask  which  hung  by  its  side,  and 
when  he  had  done  that  he  could  wield  the  sword. 

Soon  afterwards  the  Troll  came,  and  he  was  so  large  and  stout 
that  he  was  forced  to  go  sideways  to  get  through  the  door.  When 
the  Troll  got  his  first  head  in  he  cried  :  '  Hutetu !  It  smells  of  a 
Christian  man's  blood  here  !  ' 

With  that  Halvor  cut  off  the  first  head,  and  so  on  with  all  the 
rest.  The  Princess  was  now  exceedingly  delighted,  but  then  she 
remembered  her  sisters,  and  wished  that  they  too  were  free.  Halvor 
thought  that  might  be  managed,  and  wanted  to  set  off  immediately  ; 
but  first  he  had  to  help  the  Princess  to  remove  the  Troll's  body,  so 
it  was  not  until  morning  that  he  set  forth  on  his  way. 

It  was  a  long  way  to  the  castle,  and  he  both  walked  and  ran  to 
get  there  in  time.  Late  in  the  evening  he  caught  sight  of  it,  and  it 


33 

was  very  much  more  magnificent  than  either  of  the  others.  And 
this  time  he  was  not  in  the  least  afraid,  but  went  into  the  kitchen, 
and  then  straight  on  inside  the  castle.  There  a  Princess  was  sitting, 
who  was  so  beautiful  that  there  was  never  anyone  to  equal  her.  She 


too  said  what  the  others  had  said,  that  no  Christian  folk  had  ever 
been  there  since  she  had  come,  and  entreated  him  to  go  away  again, 
or  else  the  Troll  would  swallow  him  up  alive.  The  Troll  had  nine 
heads,  she  told  him. 

1  Yes,  and  if  he  had  nine  added  to  the  nine,  and  then  nine  more 

R.  D 


34  SOEIA   MOBIA   CASTLE 

still,  I  would  not  go  away,'  said  Halvor,  and  went  and  stood  by  the 
stove. 

The  Princess  begged  him  very  prettily  to  go  lest  the  Troll 
should  devour  him;  but  Halvor  said,  'Let  him  come  when  he 
will.' 

So  she  gave  him  the  Troll's  sword,  and  bade  him  take  a  drink 
from  the  flask  to  enable  him  to  wield  it. 

At  that  same  moment  the  Troll  came,  breathing  hard,  and  he 
was  ever  so  much  bigger  and  stouter  than  either  of  the  others,  and 
he  too  was  forced  to  go  sideways  to  get  in  through  the  door. 

'  Hutetu  !  what  a  smell  of  Christian  blood  there  is  here  !  '  said  he. 

Then  Halvor  cut  off  the  first  head,  and  after  that  the  others,  but 
the  last  was  the  toughest  of  them  all,  and  it  was  the  hardest  work 
that  Halvor  had  ever  done  to  get  it  off,  but  he  still  believed  that 
he  would  have  strength  enough  to  do  it. 

And  now  all  the  Princesses  came  to  the  castle,  and  were  together 
again,  and  they  were  happier  than  they  had  ever  been  in  their  lives ; 
and  they  were  delighted  with  Halvor,  and  he  with  them,  and  he 
was  to  choose  the  one  he  liked  best ;  but  of  the  three  sisters  the 
youngest  loved  him  best. 

But  Halvor  went  about  and  was  so  strange  and  so  mournful 
and  quiet  that  the  Princesses  asked  what  it  was  that  he  longed  for, 
and  if  he  did  not  like  to  be  with  them.  He  said  that  he  did  like  to 
be  with  them,  for  they  had  enough  to  live  on,  and  he  was  very  com- 
fortable there  ;  but  he  longed  to  go  home,  for  his  father  and  mother 
were  alive,  and  he  had  a  great  desire  to  see  them  again. 

They  thought  that  this  might  easily  be  done. 

1  You  shall  go  and  return  in  perfect  safety  if  you  will  follow  our 
advice,'  said  the  Princesses. 

So  he  said  that  he  would  do  nothing  that  they  did  not  wish. 

Then  they  dressed  him  so  splendidly  that  he  was  like  a  King's 
son ;  and  they  put  a  ring  on  his  finger,  and  it  was  one  which  would 
enable  him  to  go  there  and  back  again  by  wishing,  but  they  told 
him  that  he  must  not  throw  it  away,  or  name  their  names ;  for  if  he 
did,  all  his  magnificence  would  be  at  an  end,  and  then  he  would  never 
see  them  more. 

1  If  I  were  but  at  home  again,  or  if  home  were  but  here  ! '  said 
Halvor,  and  no  sooner  had  he  wished  this  than  it  was  granted. 
Halvor  was  standing  outside  his  father  and  mother's  cottage  before 
he  knew  what  he  was  about.  The  darkness  of  night  was  coming 
on,  and  when  the  father  and  mother  saw  such  a  splendid  and  stately 


SORIA  MORIA    CASTLE  35 

stranger  walk  in,  they  were  so  startled  that  they  both  began  to  bow 
and  curtsey. 

Halvor  then  inquired  if  he  could  stay  there  and  have  lodging  for 
the  night.  No,  that  he  certainly  could  not.  '  We  can  give  you  no 
such  accommodation,'  they  said,  '  for  we  have  none  of  the  things  that 
are  needful  when  a  great  lord  like  you  is  to  be  entertained.  It  will 
be  better  for  you  to  go  up  to  the  farm.  It  is  not  far  off,  yon  can  see 
the  chimney-pots  from  here,  and  there  they  have  plenty  of  every- 
thing.' 

Halvor  would  not  hear  of  that,  he  was  absolutely  determined  to 
stay  where  he  was  ;  but  the  old  folks  stuck  to  what  they  had  said, 
and  told  him  that  he  was  to  go  to  the  farm,  where  he  could  get  both 
meat  and  drink,  whereas  they  themselves  had  not  even  a  chair  to 
offer  him. 

'  No,'  said  Halvor,  '  I  will  not  go  lip  there  till  early  to-morrow 
morning ;  let  me  stay  here  to-night.  I  can  sit  down  on  the 
hearth.' 

They  could  say  nothing  against  that,  so  Halvor  sat  down  on  the 
hearth,  and  began  to  rake  about  among  the  ashes  just  as  he  had 
done  before,  when  he  lay  there  idling  away  his  time. 

They  chattered  much  about  many  things,  and  told  Halvor  of 
this  and  of  that,  and  at  last  he  asked  them  if  they  had  never  had 
any  child. 

'  Yes,'  they  said ;  they  had  had  a  boy  who  was  called  Halvor, 
but  they  did  not  know  where  he  had  gone,  and  they  could  not  even 
say  whether  he  were  dead  or  alive. 
'  Could  I  be  he  ?  '  said  Halvor. 

'  I  should  know  him  well  enough,'  said  the  old  woman  rising. 
'  Our  Halvor  was  so  idle  and  slothful  that  he  never  did  anything  at 
all,  and  he  was  so  ragged  that  one  hole  ran  into  another  all  over 
his  clothes.  Such  a  fellow  as  he  was  could  never  turn  into  such  a 
man  as  you  are,  sir.' 

In  a  short  time  the  old  woman  had  to  go  to  the  fireplace  to  stir 
the  fire,  and  when  the  blaze  lit  up  Halvor,  as  it  used  to  do  when  he 
was  at  home  raking  up  the  ashes,  she  knew  him  again. 

'  Good  Heavens  !  is  that  you,  Halvor  ?  '  said  she,  and  such  great 
gladness  fell  on  the  old  parents  that  there  were  no  bounds  to  it.  And 
now  he  had  to  relate  everything  that  had  befallen  him,  and  the  old 
woman  was  so  delighted  with  him  that  she  would  take  him  up  to 
the  farm  at  once  to  show  him  to  the  girls  who  had  formerly  looked 
down  on  him  so.  She  went  there  first,  and  Halvor  followed  her. 

D2 


36  SOEIA  MOEIA   CASTLE 

When  she  got  there  she  told  them  how  Halvor  had  come  home 
again,  and  now  they  should  just  see  how  magnificent  he  was.  '  He 
looks  like  a  prince,'  she  said. 

'  We  shall  see  that  he  is  just  the  same  ragamuffin  that  he  was 
before,'  said  the  girls,  tossing  their  heads. 

At  that  same  moment  Halvor  entered,  and  the  girls  were  so 
astonished  that  they  left  their  kirtles  lying  in  the  chimney  corner, 
and  ran  away  in  nothing  but  their  petticoats.  When  they  came 
in  again  they  were  so  shamefaced  that  they  hardly  dared  to  look 
at  Halvor,  towards  whom  they  had  always  been  so  proud  and 
haughty  before. 

'  Ay,  ay !  you  have  always  thought  that  you  were  so  pretty  and 
dainty  that  no  one  was  equal  to  you,'  said  Halvor,  '  but  you  should 
just  see  the  eldest  Princess  whom  I  set  free.  You  look  like  herds- 
women  compared  with  her,  and  the  second  Princess  is  also  much 
prettier  than  you ;  but  the  youngest,  who  is  my  sweetheart,  is  more 
beautiful  than  either  sun  or  moon.  I  wish  to  Heaven  they  were 
here,  and  then  you  would  see  them.' 

Scarcely  had  he  said  this  before  they  were  standing  by  his  side, 
but  then  he  was  very  sorrowful,  for  the  words  which  they  had  said 
to  him  came  to  his  mind. 

Up  at  the  farm  a  great  feast  was  made  ready  for  the  Princesses, 
and  much  respect  paid  to  them,  but  they  would  not  stay  there. 

'  We  want  to  go  down  to  your  parents,'  they  said  to  Halvor,  '  so 
we  will  go  out  and  look  about  us.' 

He  followed  them  out,  and  they  came  to  a  large  pond  outside 
the  farm-house.  Very  near  the  water  there  was  a  pretty  green 
bank,  and  there  the  Princesses  said  they  would  sit  down  and  while 
away  an  hour,  for  they  thought  that  it  would  be  pleasant  to  sit  and 
look  out  over  the  water,  they  said. 

There  they  sat  down,  and  when  they  had  sat  for  a  short  time 
the  youngest  Princess  said,  '  I  may  as  well  comb  your  hair  a  little, 
Halvor.1 

So  Halvor  laid  his  head  down  on  her  lap,  and  she  combed  it,  and 
it  was  not  long  before  he  fell  asleep.  Then  she  took  her  ring  from 
him  and  put  another  in  its  place,  and  then  she  said  to  her  sisters  : 
'  Hold  me  as  I  am  holding  you.  I  would  that  we  were  at  Soria 
Moria  Castle.' 

When  Halvor  awoke  he  knew  that  he  had  lost  the  Princesses, 
and  began  to  weep  and  lament,  and  was  so  unhappy  that  he  could 
not  be  comforted.  In  spite  of  all  his  father's  and  mother's  entreaties, 


SOBIA  MOEIA   CASTLE  37 

he  would  not  stay,  but  bade  them  farewell,  saying  that  he  would 
never  see  them  more,  for  if  he  did  not  find  the  Princess  again  he 
did  not  think  it  worth  while  to  live. 

He  again  had  three  hundred  dollars,  which  he  put  into  his  pocket 
and  went  on  his  way.  When  he  had  walked  some  distance  he  met 
a  man  with  a  tolerably  good  horse.  Halvor  longed  to  buy  it,  and 
began  to  bargain  with  the  man. 

'Well,  I  have  not  exactly  been  thinking  of  selling  him,'  said  the 
man,  '  but  if  we  could  agree,  perhaps ' 

Halvor  inquired  how  much  he  wanted  to  have  for  the  horse. 

'  I  did  not  give  much  for  him,  and  he  is  not  worth  much  ;  he  is 
a  capital  horse  to  ride,  but  good  for  nothing  at  drawing ;  but  he  will 
always  be  able  to  carry  your  bag  of  provisions  and  you  too,  if  you 
walk  and  ride  by  turns.'  At  last  they  agreed  about  the  price,  and 
Halvor  laid  his  bag  on  the  horse,  and  sometimes  he  walked  and 
sometimes  he  rode.  In  the  evening  he  came  to  a  green  field,  where 
stood  a  great  tree,  under  which  he  seated  himself.  Then  he  let  the 
horse  loose  and  lay  down  to  sleep,  but  before  he  did  that  he  took 
his  bag  off  the  horse.  At  daybreak  he  set  off  again,  for  he  did  not 
feel  as  if  he  could  take  any  rest.  So  he  walked  and  rode  the  whole 
day,  through  a  great  wood  where  there  were  many  green  places 
which  gleamed  very  prettily  among  the  trees.  He  did  not  know 
where  he  was  or  whither  he  was  going,  but  he  never  lingered  longer 
in  any  place  than  was  enough  to  let  his  horse  get  a  little  food 
when  they  came  to  one  of  these  green  spots,  while  he  himself  took 
out  his  bag  of  provisions. 

So  he  walked  and  he  rode,  and  it  seemed  to  him  that  the  wood 
would  never  come  to  an  end.  But  on  the  evening  of  the  second 
day  he  saw  a  light  shining  through  the  trees. 

'  If  only  there  were  some  people  up  there  I  might  warm  myself 
and  get  something  to  eat,'  thought  Halvor. 

When  he  got  to  the  place  where  the  light  had  come  from,  he 
saw  a  wretched  little  cottage,  and  through  a  small  pane  of  glass  he 
saw  a  couple  of  old  folks  inside.  They  were  very  old,  and  as  grey- 
headed as  a  pigeon,  and  the  old  woman  had  such  a  long  nose  that 
she  sat  in  the  chimney  corner  and  used  it  to  stir  the  fire. 

'  Good  evening  !  good  evening !  '  said  the  old  hag ;  '  but  what 
errand  have  you  that  can  bring  you  here  ?  No  Christian  folk  have 
been  here  for  more  than  a  hundred  years.' 

So  Halvor  told  her  that  he  wanted  to  get  to  Soria  Moria  Castle, 
and  inquired  if  she  knew  the  way  thither. 


38  SOBIA   MORIA   CASTLE       . 

'  No,'  said  the  old  woman,  '  that  I  do  not,  but  the  Moon  will  be 
here  presently,  and  I  will  ask  her,  and  she  will  know.  She  can 
easily  see  it,  for  she  shines  on  all  things.' 

So  when  the  Moon  stood  clear  and  bright  above  the  tree-tops 
the  old  woman  went  out.  '  Moon  !  Moon  ! '  she  screamed.  '  Canst 
thou  tell  me  the  way  to  Soria  Moria  Castle  ?  ' 

'  No,'  said  the  Moon,  '  that  I  can't,  for  when  I  shone  there,  there 
was  a  cloud  before  me.' 

1  Wait  a  little  longer,'  said  the  old  woman  to  Halvor,  '  for  the 
West  Wind  will  presently  be  here,  and  he  will  know  it,  for  he 
breathes  gently  or  blows  into  every  corner.' 

'  What !  have  ymi  a  horse  too  ? '  she  said  when  she  came  in 
again.  '  Oh  !  let  the  poor  creature  loose  in  our  bit  of  fenced-in  pas- 
ture, and  don't  let  it  stand  there  starving  at  our  very  door.  But 
won't  you  exchange  him  with  me  ?  We  have  a  pair  of  old  boots 
here  with  which  you  can  go  fifteen  quarters  of  a  mile  at  each  step. 
You  shall  have  them  for  the  horse,  and  then  you  will  be  able  to  get 
sooner  to  Soria  Moria  Castle.' 

Halvor  consented  to  this  at  once,  and  the  old  woman  was  so 
delighted  with  the  horse  that  she  was  ready  to  dance.  '  For  now  I, 
too,  shall  be  able  to  ride  to  church,'  she  said.  Halvor  could  take  no 
rest,  and  wanted  to  set  off  immediately  ;  but  the  old  woman  said 
that  there  was  no  need  to  hasten.  '  Lie  down  on  the  bench  and 
sleep  a  little,  for  we  have  no  bed  to  offer  you,'  said  she,  '  and  I  will 
watch  for  the  coming  of  the  West  Wind.' 

Ere  long  came  the  West  Wind,  roaring  so  loud  that  the  walls 
creaked. 

The  old  woman  went  out  and  cried : 

'  West  Wind !  West  Wind  !  Canst  thou  tell  me  the  way  to 
Soria  Moria  Castle  ?  Here  is  one  who  would  go  thither.' 

'  Yes,  I  know  it  well,'  said  the  West  Wind.  '  I  am  just  on  my 
way  there  to  dry  the  clothes  for  the  wedding  which  is  to  take  place. 
If  he  is  fleet  of  foot  he  can  go  with  me.' 

Out  ran  Halvor. 

'  You  will  have  to  make  haste  if  you  mean  to  go  with  me,'  said 
the  West  Wind  ;  and  away  it  went  over  hill  and  dale,  and  moor  and 
morass,  and  Halvor  had  enough  to  do  to  keep  up  with  it. 

'  Well,  now  I  have  no  time  to  stay  with  you  any  longer,'  said 
the  West  Wind,  '  for  I  must  first  go  and  tear  down  a  bit  of  spruce 
fir  before  I  go  to  the  bleaching-ground  to  dry  the  clothes ;  but  just 
go  along  the  side  of  the  hill,  and  you  will  come  to  some  girls  who 


SOEIA   MOBIA   CASTLE 


39 


are  standing  there  washing  clothes,  and  then  you  will  not  have  to 
walk  far  before  you  are  at  Soria  Moria  Castle.' 

Shortly  afterwards  Halvor  came  to  the  girls  who  were  stand- 
ing washing,  and  they  asked  him  if  he  had  seen  anything  of  the 
West  Wind,  who  was  to  come  there  to  dry  the  clothes  for  the 
wedding. 

'  Yes,'  said  Halvor,  '  he  has  only  gone  to  break  down  a  bit  of 
spruce  fir.  It  won't  be  long  before  he  is  here.'  And  then  he  asked 
them  the  way  to  Soria  Moria  Castle.  They  piit  him  in  the  right 


way,  and  when  he  came  in  front  of  the  castle  it  was  so  full  of 
horses  and  people  that  it  swarmed  with  them.  But  Halvor  was  so 
ragged  and  torn  with  following  the  West  Wind  through  bushes 
and  bogs  that  he  kept  on  one  side,  and  would  not  go  among  the 
crowd  until  the  last  day,  when  the  feast  was  to  be  held  at  noon. 

So  when,  as  was  the  usage  and  custom,  all  were  to  drink  to  the 
bride  and  the  young  girls  who  were  present,  the  cup-bearer  filled 
the  cup  for  each  in  turn,  both  bride  and  bridegroom,  and  knights 
and  servants,  and  at  last,  after  a  very  long  time,  he  came  to  Halvor. 


40 


SOEIA  MOEIA   CASTLE 


He  drank  their  health,  and  then  slipped  the  ring  which  the  Princess 
had  put  on  his  finger  when  they  were  sitting  by  the  waterside  into 


the  glass,  and  ordered  the  cup-bearer  to  carry  the  glass  to  the  bride 
from  him  and  greet  her. 

Then  the  Princess  at  once  rose  up  from  the  table,  and  said, 


SORIA  MOEIA   CASTLE  41 

'  Who  is  most  worthy  to  have  one  of  us — he  who  has  delivered  us 
from  the  Trolls  or  he  who  is  sitting  here  as  bridegroom  ?  ' 

There  coxild  be  but  one  opinion  as  to  that,  everyone  thought, 
and  when  Halvor  heard  what  they  said  he  was  not  long  in  flinging 
off  his  beggar's  rags  and  arraying  himself  as  a  bridegroom. 

'  Yes,  he  is  the  right  one,'  cried  the  youngest  Princess  when  she 
caught  sight  of  him  ;  so  she  flung  the  other  out  of  the  window  and 
held  her  wedding  with  Halvor. l 

1  From  P.  C.  Asbjornseu . 


42 


THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI 
THE  DEATHLESS 

IN  a  certain  kingdom  there  lived  a  Prince  Ivan.  He  had  three 
sisters.  The  first  was  the  Princess  Marya,  the  second  the  Prin- 
cess Olga,  the  third  the  Princess  Anna.  When  their  father  and 
mother  lay  at  the  point  of  death,  they  had  thus  enjoined  their 
son :  '  Give  your  sisters  in  marriage  to  the  very  first  suitors  who 
come  to  woo  them.  Don't  go  keeping  them  by  you  ! ' 

They  died,  and  the  Prince  buried  them,  and  then,  to  solace  his 
grief,  he  went  with  his  sisters  into  the  garden  green  to  stroll. 
Suddenly  the  sky  was  covered  by  a  black  cloud  ;  a  terrible  storm 
arose. 

1  Let  us  go  home,  sisters  ! '  he  cried. 

Hardly  had  they  got  into  the  palace,  when  the  thunder  pealed, 
the  ceiling  split  open,  and  into  the  room  where  they  were  came 
flying  a  falcon  bright.  The  Falcon  smote  upon  the  ground,  became 
a  brave  youth,  and  said  : 

'  Hail,  Prince  Ivan  !  Before  I  came  as  a  guest,  but  now  I  have 
come  as  a  wooer  !  I  wish  to  propose  for  your  sister,  the  Princess 
Marya.' 

'  If  you  find  favour  in  the  eyes  of  my  sister.  I  will  not  interfere 
with  her  wishes.  Let  her  marry  you,  in  God's  name  !  ' 

The  Princess  Marya  gave  her  consent ;  the  Falcon  married  her 
and  bore  her  away  into  his  own  realm. 

Days  follow  clays,  hours  chase  hours ;  a  whole  year  goes  by.  One 
day  Prince  Ivan  and  his  two  sisters  went  out  to  stroll  in  the  garden 
green.  Again  there  arose  a  storm-cloud,  with  whirlwind  and  lightning. 

'  Let  us  go  home,  sisters  1 '  cries  the  Prince.  Scarcely  had  they 
entered  the  palace  when  the  thunder  crashed,  the  roof  burst  into  a 
blaze,  the  ceiling  split  in  twain,  and  in  flew  an  eagle.  The  Eagle 
smote  upon  the  ground  and  became  a  brave  youth. 

'  Hail,  Prince  Ivan  !  Before  I  came  as  a  guest,  but  now  I  have 
come  as  a  wooer  !  ' 


THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI  THE  DEATHLESS    43 

And  he  asked  for  the  hand  of  the  Princess  Olga.  Prince  Ivan 
replied : 

'  If  you  find  favour  in  the  eyes  of  the  Princess  Olga,  then  let 
her  marry  yoxi.  I  will  not  interfere  with  her  liberty  of  choice.' 

The  Princess  Olga  gave  her  consent  and  married  the  Eagle. 
The  Eagle  took  her  and  carried  her  off  to  his  own  kingdom. 

Another  year  went  by.  Prince  Ivan  said  to  his  youngest 
sister  : 

'  Let  us  go  out  and  stroll  in  the  garden  green  !  ' 

They  strolled  about  for  a  time.  Again  there  arose  a  storm-cloud, 
with  whirlwind  and  lightning. 

'  Let  us  return  home,  sister  !  '  said  he. 

They  returned  home,  but  they  hadn't  had  time  to  sit  down 
when  the  thunder  crashed,  the  ceiling  split  open,  and  in  flew  a 
raven.  The  Haven  smote  upon  the  floor  and  became  a  brave 
youth.  The  former  youths  had  been  handsome,  but  this  one  was 
handsomer  still. 

'  Well,  Prince  Ivan  !  Before  I  came  as  a  guest,  but  now  I  have 
come  as  a  wooer  !  Give  me  the  Princess  Anna  to  wife.' 

'  I  won't  interfere  with  my  sister's  freedom.  If  you  gain  her 
affections,  let  her  marry  you.' 

So  the  Princess  Anna  married  the  Raven,  and  he  bore  her  away 
into  his  own  realm.  Prince  Ivan  was  left  alone.  A  whole  year  he 
lived  without  his  sisters  ;  then  he  grew  weary,  and  said  : 

'  I  will  set  out  in  search  of  my  sisters.' 

He  got  ready  for  the  journey,  he  rode  and  rode,  and  one  day 
he  saw  a  whole  army  lying  dead  on  the  plain.  He  cried  aloud, 
'  If  there  be  a  living  man  there,  let  him  make  answer !  Who  has 
slain  this  mighty  host  ?  ' 

There  replied  unto  him  a  living  man  : 

'  All  this  mighty  host  has  been  slain  by  the  fair  Princess  Marya 
Morevna.' 

Prince  Ivan  rode  further  on,  and  came  to  a  white  tent,  and  forth 
came  to  meet  him  the  fair  Princess  Marya  Morevna. 

'  Hail,  Prince  ! '  says  she ;  '  whither  does  God  send  you  ?  and  is 
it  of  your  free  will  or  against  your  will  ?  ' 

Prince  Ivan  replied,  '  Not  against  their  will  do  brave  youths 
ride !  ' 

'  Well,  if  your  business  be  not  pressing,  tarry  awhile  in  my 
tent.' 

Thereat  was  Prince  Ivan  glad.     He  spent  two  nights  in  the 


tent,  and  he  found  favour  in  the  eyes  of  Marya  Morevna,  and  she 
married  him.  The  fair  Princess,  Marya  Morevna,  carried  him  off 
into  her  own  realm. 

They  spent  some  time  together,  and  then  the  Princess  took  it 
into  her  head  to  go  a  warring.  So  she  handed  over  all  the  house- 
keeping affairs  to  Prince  Ivan,  and  gave  him  these  instructions  : 

'  Go  about  everywhere,  keep  watch  over  everything ;  only  do 
not  venture  to  look  into  that  closet  there.' 

He  couldn't  help  doing  so.  The  moment  Marya  Morevna  had 
gone  he  rushed  to  the  closet,  pulled  open  the  door,  and  looked  in — 
there  hung  Koshchei  the  Deathless,  fettered  by  twelve  chains.  Then 
Koshchei  entreated  Prince  Ivan,  saying : 

'  Have  pity  upon  me  and  give  me  to  drink  !  Ten  years  long 
have  I  been  here  in  torment,  neither  eating  nor  drinking ;  my 
throat  is  utterly  dried  up.' 

The  Prince  gave  him  a  bucketful  of  water  ;  he  drank  it  up  and 
asked  for  more,  saying  : 

'  A  single  bucket  of  water  will  not  quench  my  thirst ;  give  me 
more  ! ' 

The  Prince  gave  him  a  second  bucketful.  Koshchei  drank  it 
up  and  asked  for  a  third,  and  when  he  had  swallowed  the  third 
bucketful,  he  regained  his  former  strength,  gave  his  chains  a  shake, 
and  broke  all  twelve  at  once. 

'  Thanks,  Prince  Ivan  ! '  cried  Koshchei  the  Deathless, '  now  you 
will  sooner  see  your  own  ears  than  Marya  Morevna !  '  and  out  of  the 
window  he  flew  in  the  shape  of  a  terrible  whirlwind.  And  he  came 
up  with  the  fair  Princess  Marya  Morevna  as  she  was  going  her 
way,  laid  hold  of  her  and  carried  her  off  home  with  him.  But 
Prince  Ivan  wept  full  sore,  and  he  arrayed  himself  and  set  out  a- 
wandering,  saying  to  himself,  '  Whatever  happens,  I  will  go  and 
look  for  Marya  Morevna  !  ' 

One  day  passed,  another  day  passed ;  at  the  dawn  of  the  third 
day  he  saw  a  wondrous  palace,  and  by  the  side  of  the  palace  stood 
an  oak,  and  on  the  oak  sat  a  falcon  bright.  Down  flew  the  Falcon 
from  the  oak,  smote  upon  the  ground,  turned  into  a  brave  youth, 
and  cried  aloud  : 

'  Ha,  dear  brother-in-law  !  how  deals  the  Lord  with  you  ?  ' 

Out  came  running  the  Princess  Marya,  joyfully  greeted  her 
brother  Ivan,  and  began  inquiring  after  his  health,  and  telling  him 
all  about  herself.  The  Prince  spent  three  days  with  them  ;  then  he 
said : 


THE  DEATH   OF  KOSHCHEI  TEE  DEATHLESS    45 

'  I  cannot  abide  with  you ;  I  must  go  in  search  of  rny  wife,  the 
fair  Princess  Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Hard  will  it  be  for  you  to  find  her,'  answered  the  Falcon.  '  At 
all  events  leave  with  us  your  silver  spoon.  We  will  look  at  it  and 


remember  you.'      So   Prince   Ivan  left   his   silver  spoon  at  the 
Falcon's,  and  went  on  his  way  again. 

On  he  went  one  day,  on  he  went  another  day,  and  by  the  dawn 
of  the  third  day  he  saw  a  palace  still  grander  than  the  former  one 


46    THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI   THE  DEATHLESS 

and  hard  by  the  palace  stood  an  oak,  and  011  the  oak  sat  an  eagle. 
Down  flew  the  Eagle  from  the  oak,  smote  upon  the  ground,  turned 
into  a  brave  youth,  and  cried  aloud  : 

'  Rise  up,  Princess  Olga  !     Hither  comes  our  brother  dear  !  ' 
The  Princess  Olga  immediately  ran  to  meet  him,  and  began 
kissing  him  and  embracing  him,  asking  after  his  health,  and  telling 
him  all  abotit  herself.     With  them  Prince  Ivan  stopped  three  days  ; 
then  he  said : 

'  I  cannot  stay  here  any  longer.  I  am  going  to  look  for  my 
wife,  the  fair  Princess  Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Hard  will  it  be  for  you  to  find  her,'  replied  the  Eagle.  '  Leave 
with  us  a  silver  fork.  We  will  look  at  it  and  remember  you.' 

He  left  a  silver  fork  behind,  and  went  his  way.  He  travelled 
one  day,  he  travelled  two  days ;  at  daybreak  on  the  third  day  he 
saw  a  palace  grander  than  the  first  two,  and  near  the  palace  stood 
an  oak,  and  on  the  oak  sat  a  raven.  Down  flew  the  Raven  from 
the  oak,  smote  upon  the  ground,  turned  into  a  brave  youth,  and 
cried  aloud : 

'  Princess  Anna,  come  forth  quickly  !  our  brother  is  coming.' 
Out  ran  the  Princess  Anna,  greeted  him  joyfully,  and  began 
kissing  and  embracing  him,  asking  after  his  health  and  telling  him 
all  about  herself.     Prince  Ivan  stayed  with  them  three  days ;  then 
he  said : 

'  Farewell !  I  am  going  to  look  for  my  wife,  the  fair  Princess 
Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Hard  will  it  be  for  you  to  find  her,'  replied  the  Raven.  '  Any- 
how, leave  your  silver  snuff-box  with  us.  We  will  look  at  it  and 
remember  you.' 

The  Prince  handed  over  his  silver  snuff-box,  took  his  leave,  and 
went  his  way.  One  day  he  went,  another  day  he  went,  and  on  the 
third  day  he  came  to  where  Marya  Morevna  was.  She  caught 
sight  of  her  love,  flung  her  arms  around  his  neck,  burst  into  tears, 
and  exclaimed : 

'  Oh,  Prince  Ivan  !  why  did  you  disobey  me  and  go  looking  into 
the  closet  and  letting  out  Koshchei  the  Deathless  ?  ' 

'  Forgive  me,  Marya  Morevna  !  Remember  not  the  past ;  much 
better  fly  with  me  while  Koshchei  the  Deathless  is  out  of  sight. 
Perhaps  he  won't  catch  us.' 

So  they  got  ready  and  fled.  Now  Koshchei  was  out  hunting. 
Towards  evening  he  was  returning  home,  when  his  good  steed 
stumbled  beneath  him. 


THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI  THE  DEATHLESS    47 

'  Why  stumblest  thou,  sorry  jade  ?     Scentest  thou  some  ill  ?  ' 

The  steed  replied : 

'  Prince  Ivan  has -come  and  carried  off  Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Is  it  possible  to  catch  them  ?  ' 

'  It  is  possible  to  sow  wheat,  to  wait  till  it  grows  up,  to  reap  it 
and  thresh  it,  to  grind  it  to  flour,  to  make  five  pies  of  it,  to  eat 
those  pies,  and  then  to  start  in  pursuit — and  even  then  to  be  in  time.' 

Koshchei  galloped  off  and  caught  up  Prince  Ivan. 

'  Now,'  says  he,  '  this  time  I  will  forgive  you,  in  return  for  your 
kindness  in  giving  me  water  to  drink.  And  a  second  time  I  will 
forgive  you ;  but  the  third  time  beware  !  I  will  cut  you  to  bits.' 

Then  he  took  Marya  Morevna  from  him,  and  carried  her  off. 
But  Prince  Ivan  sat  down  on  a  stone  and  burst  into  tears.  He 
wept  and  wept — and  then  returned  back  again  to  Marya  Morevna. 
Now  Koshchei  the  Deathless  happened  not  to  be  at  home. 

'  Let  us  fly,  Marya  Morevna  !  ' 

'  Ah,  Prince  Ivan  !  he  will  catch  us.' 

'  Suppose  he  does  catch  us.  At  all  events  we  shall  have  spent 
an  hour  or  two  together.' 

So  they  got  ready  and  fled.  As  Koshchei  the  Deathless  was 
returning  home,  his  good  steed  stumbled  beneath  him. 

'  Why  stumblest  thou,  sorry  jade  ?     Scentest  thou  some  ill  ?  ' 

'  Prince  Ivan  has  come  and  carried  off  Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Is  it  possible  to  catch  them  ?  ' 

'  It  is  possible  to  sow  barley,  to  wait  till  it  grows  up,  to  reap  it 
and  thresh  it,  to  brew  beer,  to  drink  ourselves  drunk  on  it,  to  sleep 
our  fill,  and  then  to  set  off  in  pursuit — and  yet  to  be  in  time.' 

Koshchei  galloped  off,  caught  up  Prince  Ivan  : 

'  Didn't  I  tell  you  that  you  should  not  see  Marya  Morevna  any 
more  than  j'our  own  ears  ?  ' 

And  he  took  her  away  and  carried  her  off  home  with  him. 

Prince  Ivan  was  left  there  alone.  He  wept  and  wept ;  then  he 
went  back  again  after  Marya  Morevna.  Koshchei  happened  to  be 
away  from  home  at  that  moment. 

'  Let  us  fly,  Marya  Morevna  ! ' 

'  Ah,  Prince  Ivan !  he  is  sure  to  catch  us  and  hew  you  in 
pieces.' 

'  Let  him  hew  away  1     I  cannot  live  without  you.' 

So  they  got  ready  and  fled. 

Koshchei  the  Deathless  was  returning  home  when  his  good 
steed  stumbled  beneath  him. 


48  THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI  THE  DEATHLESS 

'  Why  stuniblest  them  ?  Scentest  them  any  ill  ?  ' 

'  Prince  Ivan  has  come  and  has  carried  off  Marya  Morevna.' 

Koshchei  galloped  off,  caught  Prince  Ivan,  chopped  him  into 
little  pieces,  put  them  into  a  harrel,  smeared  it  with  pitch  and  bound 
it  with  iron  hoops,  and  flung  it  into  the  blue  sea.  But  Marya 
Morevna  he  carried  off  home. 

At  that  very  time  the  silver  articles  turned  black  which  Prince 
Ivan  had  left  with  his  brothers-in-law. 

'  Ah  ! '  said  they,  '  the  evil  is  accomplished  sure  enough ! ' 

Then  the  Eagle  hurried  to  the  blue  sea,  caught  hold  of  the 
barrel,  and  dragged  it  ashore  ;  the  Falcon  flew  away  for  the  Water 
of  Life,  and  the  Eaven  for  the  Water  of  Death. 

Afterwards  they  all  three  met,  broke  open  the  barrel,  took  out 
the  remains  of  Prince  Ivan,  washed  them,  and  put  them  together 
in  fitting  order.  The  Eaven  sprinkled  them  with  the  Water  of 
Death — the  pieces  joined  together,  the  body  became  whole.  The 
Falcon  sprinkled  it  with  the  Water  of  Life — Prince  Ivan  shuddered, 
stood  up,  and  said  : 

'  Ah  !  what  a  time  I  ve  been  sleeping ! ' 

'  You'd  have  gone  on  sleeping  a  good  deal  longer  if  it  hadn't 
been  for  us,'  replied  his  brothers-in-law.  '  Now  come  and  pay  us  a 
visit.' 

'  Not  so,  brothers ;  I  shall  go  and  look  for  Marya  Morevna.' 

And  when  he  had  found  her,  he  said  to  her  : 

'  Find  out  from  Koshchei  the  Deathless  whence  he  got  so  good 
a  steed." 

So  Marya  Morevna  chose  a  favourable  moment,  and  began  ask- 
ing Koshchei  about  it.  Koshchei  replied : 

'  Beyond  thrice  nine  lands,  in  the  thirtieth  kingdom,  on  the 
other  side  of  the  fiery  river,  there  lives  a  Baba  Yaga.  She  has  BO 
good  a  rnare  that  she  flies  right  round  the  world  on  it  every  day. 
And  she  has  many  other  splendid  mares.  I  watched  her  herds  for 
three  days  without  losing  a  single  mare,  and  in  return  for  that  the 
Baba  Yaga  gave  me  a  foal.' 

'  But  how  did  you  get  across  the  fiery  river  ?  ' 

1  Why,  I've  a  handkerchief  of  this  kind — when  I  wave  it  thrice 
on  the  right  hand,  there  springs  up  a  very  lofty  bridge,  and  the  fire 
cannot  reach  it.' 

Marya  Morevna  listened  to  all  this,  and  repeated  it  to  Prince 
Ivan,  and  she  carried  off  the  handkerchief  and  gave  it  to  him.  So 
he  managed  to  get  across  the  fiery  river,  and  then  went  on  to  the 


THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI  THE  DEATHLESS    49 

Baba  Yaga's.  Long  went  he  on  without  getting  anything  either  to 
eat  or  to  drink.  At  last  he  came  across  an  outlandish  bird  and  its 
young  ones.  Says  Prince  Ivan  : 

'  I'll  eat  one  of  these  chickens.' 

'  Don't  eat  it,  Prince  Ivan  ! '  begs  the  oiitlandish  bird  ;  '  some 
time  or  other  I'll  do  you  a  good  turn.' 

He  went  on  farther  and  saw  a  hive  of  bees  in  the  forest. 


'  I'll  get  a  bit  of  honeycomb,'  says  he. 

'  Don't  disturb  my  honey,  Prince  Ivan ! '  exclaims  the  queen- 
bee  ;  '  some  tune  or  other  I'll  do  you  a  good  turn.' 

So  he  didn't  disturb  it,  but  went  on.     Presently  there  met  him 
a  lioness  with  her  cub. 

'  Anyhow,  I'll  eat  this  lion  cub,'  says  he ;  '  I'm  so  hungry  I  feel 
quite  unwell !  ' 

K.  E 


50    THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI   THE   DEATHLESS 

'  Please  let  us  alone,  Prince  Ivan  ! '  begs  the  lioness ;  '  some 
time  or  other  I'll  do  you  a  good  turn.' 

'  Very  well ;  have  it  your  own  way,'  says  he. 

Hungry  and  faint  he  wandered  on,  walked  farther  and  farther, 
and  at  last  came  to  where  stood  the  house  of  the  Baba  Yaga. 
Eound  the  house  were  set  twelve  poles  in  a  circle,  and  on  each  of 
eleven  of  these  poles  was  stuck  a  human  head ;  the  twelfth  alone 
remained  unoccupied. 

'  Hail,  granny  !  ' 

'  Hail,  Prince  Ivan  !  wherefore  have  you  come  ?  Is  it  of  your 
own  accord,  or  on  compulsion  ?  ' 

'  I  have  come  to  earn  from  you  an  heroic  steed.' 

'  So  be  it,  Prince  !  You  won't  have  to  serve  a  year  with  me,  but 
just  three  days.  If  you  take  good  care  of  my  mares,  I'll  give  you 
an  heroic  steed.  But  if  you  don't — why,  then  3^011  mustn't  be  annoyed 
at  finding  your  head  stuck  on  top  of  the  last  pole  up  there.' 

Prince  Ivan  agreed  to  these  terms.  The  Baba  Yaga  gave  him 
food  and  drink,  and  bade  him  set  about  his  business.  But  the 
moment  he  had  driven  the  mares  afield,  they  cocked  up  their  tails, 
and  away  they  tore  across  the  meadows  in  all  directions.  Before 
the  Prince  had  time  to  look  round  they  were  all  out  of  sight. 
Thereupon  he  began  to  weep  and  to  disquiet  himself,  and  then  he 
sat  down  upon  a  stone  and  went  to  sleep.  But  when  the  sun  was 
near  its  setting  the  outlandish  bird  came  flying  up  to  him,  and 
awakened  him,  saying : 

'  Arise,  Prince  Ivan  !  The  mares  are  at  home  now.' 

The  Prince  arose  and  returned  home.  There  the  Baba  Yaga 
was  storming  and  raging  at  her  mares,  and  shrieking : 

1  Whatever  did  ye  come  home  for  ?  ' 

'  How  could  we  help  coming  home  ?  '  said  they.  '  There  came 
flying  birds  from  every  part  of  the  world,  and  all  but  pecked  our 
eyes  out.' 

'  Well,  well !  to-morrow  don't  go  galloping  over  the  meadows, 
but  disperse  amid  the  thick  forests.' 

Prince  Ivan  slept  all  night.  In  the  morning  the  Baba  Yaga  says 
to  him : 

'  Mind,  Prince  !  if  you  don't  take  good  care  of  the  mares,  if 
you  lose  merely  one  of  them — your  bold  head  will  be  stuck  on 
that  pole  !  ' 

He  drove  the  mares  afield.  Immediately  they  cocked  up  their 
tails  and  dispersed  among  the  thick  forests.  Again  did  the  Prince 


THE  DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI   THE   DEATHLESS    51 

sit  down  on  the  stone,  weep  and  weep,  and  then  go  to  sleep.  The 
sun  went  down  behind  the  forest.  Up  came  running  the  lioness. 

'  Arise,  Prince  Ivan  !     The  mares  are  all  collected.' 

Prince  Ivan  arose  and  went  home.  More  than  ever  did  the 
Baba  Yaga  storm  at  her  mares  and  shriek  : 

'  Whatever  did  ye  come  back  home  for  ?  ' 

'  How  could  we  help  coming  back  ?  Beasts  of  prey  came 
running  at  us  from  all  parts  of  the  world,  and  all  but  tore  us  utterly 
to  pieces.' 

'  Well,  to-morrow  run  off  into  the  blue  sea.1 

Again  did  Prince  Ivan  sleep  through  the  night.  Next  morning 
the  Baba  Yaga  sent  him  forth  to  watch  the  mares. 

'  If  you  don't  take  good  care  of  them,'  says  she,  '  your  bold  head 
will  be  stuck  on  that  pole  !  ' 

He  drove  the  mares  afield.  Immediately  they  cocked  up  their 
tails,  disappeared  from  sight,  and  fled  into  the  blue  sea.  There 
they  stood,  up  to  their  necks  in  water.  Prince  Ivan  sat  down  on 
the  stone,  wept,  and  fell  asleep.  But  when  the  sun  had  set  behind 
the  forest,  up  came  flying  a  bee,  and  said  : 

'  Arise,  Prince  !  The  mares  are  all  collected.  But  when  you 
get  home,  don't  let  the  Baba  Yaga  set  eyes  on  you,  but  go  into  the 
stable  and  hide  behind  the  mangers.  There  you  will  find  a  sorry 
colt  rolling  in  the  muck.  Do  you  steal  it,  and  at  the  dead  of  night 
ride  away  from  the  house.' 

Prince  Ivan  arose,  slipped  into  the  stable,  and  lay  down  behind 
the  mangers,  while  the  Baba  Yaga  was  storming  away  at  her  mares 
and  shrieking  : 

'  Why  did  ye  come  back  ?  ' 

'  How  could  we  help  coming  back  ?  There  came  flying  bees  in 
countless  numbers  from  all  parts  of  the  world,  and  began  stinging 
us  on  all  sides  till  the  blood  came  ! ' 

The  Baba  Yaga  went  to  sleep.  In  the  dead  of  the  night  Prince 
Ivan  stole  the  sorry  colt,  saddled  it,  jumped  on  its  back,  and  gal- 
loped away  to  the  fiery  river.  When  he  came  to  that  river  he 
waved  the  handkerchief  three  times  on  the  right  hand,  and  suddenly, 
springing  goodness  knows  whence,  there  hung  across  the  river,  high 
in  the  air,  a  splendid  bridge.  The  Prince  rode  across  the  bridge  and 
waved  the  handkerchief  twice  only  on  the  left  hand ;  there  remained 
across  the  river  a  thin,  ever  so  thin  a  bridge  ! 

When  the  Baba  Yaga  got  up  in  the  morning  the  sorry  colt  was 
not  to  be  seen  !  Off  she  set  in  pursuit.  At  full  speed  did  she  fly 

E2 


52    THE  DEATH   OF  KOSHCHEI   THE  DEATHLESS 

in  her  iron  mortar,  urging  it  on  with  the  pestle,  sweeping  away  her 
traces  with  the  broom.  She  dashed  up  to  the  fiery  river,  gave  a 
glance,  and  said,  '  A  capital  bridge  ! '  She  drove  on  to  the  bridge, 
but  had  only  got  half-way  when  the  bridge  broke  in  two,  and  the 
Baba  Yaga  went  flop  into  the  river.  There  truly  did  she  meet  with 
a  cruel  death ! 

Prince  Ivan  fattened  up  the  colt  in  the  green  meadows,  and  it 
turned  into  a  wondrous  steed.     Then  he  rode  to  where   Marya 


Morevna  was.     She  came  running  out,  and  flung  herself  on  his 

neck,  crying: 

'  By  what  means  has  God  brought  you  back  to  life  ?  ' 

'  Thus  and  thus,'  says  he.     '  Now  come  along  with  me.' 

'  I  am  afraid,  Prince  Ivan !     If  Koshchei  catches  us   you  will 

be  cut  in  pieces  again.' 

'  No,  he  won't  catch  us  !     I  have  a  splendid  heroic  steed  now  ; 

it  flies  just  like  a  bird.'     So  they  got  on  its  back  and  rode  away. 


THE   DEATH  OF  KOSHCHEI   THE   DEATHLESS    53 

Koshcbei  the  Deathless  was  returning  home  when  his  horse 
stumbled  beneath  him. 

'  What  art  thou  stumbling  for,  sorry  jade  ?  Dost  thou  scent  any 
ill  ? ' 

'  Prince  Ivan  lias  come  and  carried  off  Marya  Morevna.' 

'  Can  we  catch  them  ?  ' 

'  God  knows !  Prince  Ivan  has  a  horse  now  which  is  better 
than  I.' 

'  Well,  I  can't  stand  it,'  says  Koshchei  the  Deathless.  '  I  will 
pursue.' 

After  a  time  he  came  up  with  Prince  Ivan,  lighted  on  the 
ground,  and  was  going  to  chop  him  up  with  his  sharp  sword. 
But  at  that  moment  Prince  Ivan's  horse  smote  Koshchei  the  Death- 
less full  swing  with  its  hoof,  and  cracked  his  skull,  and  the  Prince 
made  an  end  of  him  with  a  club.  Afterwards  the  Prince  heaped  up 
a  pile  of  wood,  set  fire  to  it,  burnt  Koshchei  the  Deathless  on  the 
pyre,  and  scattered  his  ashes  to  the  wind.  Then  Marya  Morevna 
mounted  Koshchei's  horse  and  Prince  Ivan  got  on  his  own,  and  they 
rode  away  to  visit  first  the  Raven,  and  then  the  Eagle,  and  then 
the  Falcon.  Wherever  they  went  they  met  with  a  joyful  greeting. 

'  Ah,  Prince  Ivan !  why,  we  never  expected  to  see  you  again. 
"Well,  it  wasn't  for  nothing  that  you  gave  yourself  so  much  trouble. 
Such  a  beauty  as  Marya  Morevna  one  might  search  for  all  the 
world  over — and  never  find  one  like  her  ! ' 

And  so  they  visited,  and  they  feasted ;  and  afterwards  they  went 
off  to  then:  own  realm.1 

1  Ralston. 


54 


THE  BLACK  THIEF 
AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN. 


IN  times  of  yore  there  was  a  King  and  a  Queen  in  the  south  of 
Ireland  who  had  three  sons,  all  beautiful  children ;  but  the 
Queen,  their  mother,  sickened  unto  death  when  they  were  yet  very 
young,  which  caused  great  grief  throughout  the  Court,  particularly 
to  the  King,  her  husband,  who  could  in  no  wise  be  comforted. 
Seeing  that  death  was  drawing  near  her,  she  called  the  King  to  her 
and  spoke  as  follows : 

'  I  am  now  going  to  leave  you,  and  as  you  are  young  and  in 
your  prime,  of  course  after  my  death  you  will  marry  again.  Now 
all  the  request  I  ask  of  you  is  that  you  will  build  a  tower  in  an 
island  in  the  sea,  wherein  you  will  keep  your  three  sons  until  they 
are  come  of  age  and  fit  to  do  for  themselves  ;  so  that  they  may  not 
be  under  the  power  or  jurisdiction  of  any  other  woman.  Neglect  not 
to  give  them  education  suitable  to  their  birth,  and  let  them  be 
trained  up  to  every  exercise  and  pastime  requisite  for  king's  sons  to 
learn.  This  is  all  I  have  to  say,  so  farewell.' 

The  King  had  scarce  time,  with  tears  in  his  eyes,  to  assure  her 
she  should  be  obeyed  in  everything,  when  she,  tvirning  herself  in 
her  bed,  with  a  smile  gave  up  the  ghost.  Never  was  greater 
mourning  seen  than  was  throughout  the  Court  and  the  whole 
kingdom ;  for  a  better  woman  than  the  Queen,  to  rich  and  poor, 
was  not  to  be  found  in  the  world.  She  was  interred  with  great 
pomp  and  magnificence,  and  the  King,  her  husband,  became  in 
a  manner  inconsolable  for  the  loss  of  her.  However,  he  caused 
the  tower  to  be  built  and  his  sons  placed  in  it,  under  proper 
guardians,  according  to  his  promise. 

In  process  of  time  the  lords  and  knights  of  the  kingdom  coun- 
selled the  King  (as  he  was  young)  to  live  no  longer  as  he  had  done, 
but  to  take  a  wife  ;  which  counsel  prevailing,  they  chose  him  a  rich 
and  beautiful  princess  to  be  his  consort— a  neighbouring  King's 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    55 

daughter,  of  whom  he  was  very  fond.  Not  long  after,  the  Queen 
had  a  fine  son,  which  caused  great  feasting  and  rejoicing  at  the 
Court,  insomuch  that  the  late  Queen,  in  a  manner,  was  entirely 
forgotten.  That  fared  well,  and  King  and  Queen  lived  happy 
together  for  several  years. 

At  length  the  Queen,  having  some  business  with  the  hen-wife, 
went  herself  to  her,  and,  after  a  long  conference  passed,  was  taking 
leave  of  her,  when  the  hen-wife  prayed  that  if  ever  she  should  come 
back  to  her  again  she  might  break  her  neck.  The  Queen,  greatly 
incensed  at  such  a  daring  insult  from  one  of  her  meanest  subjects,  de- 
manded immediately  the  reason,  or  she  would  have  her  put  to  death. 

'  It  was  worth  your  while,  madam,'  says  the  hen-wife, '  to  pay  me 
well  for  it,  for  the  reason  I  prayed  so  on  you  concerns  you  much.' 

'  What  must  I  pay  you  ?  '  asked  the  Queen. 

'  You  must  give  me,'  says  she,  '  the  full  of  a  pack  of  wool,  and  I 
have  an  ancient  crock  which  you  must  fill  with  butter,  likewise  a 
barrel  which  you  must  fill  for  me  full  of  wheat.' 

4  How  much  wool  will  it  take  to  the  pack  ?  '  says  the  Queen. 

'  It  will  take  seven  herds  of  sheep,'  said  she, '  and  their  increase 
for  seven  years.' 

4  How  much  butter  will  it  take  to  fill  your  crock  ?  ' 

'  Seven  dairies,'  said  she,  '  and  their  increase  for  seven  years.' 

'  And  how  much  will  it  take  to  fill  the  barrel  you  have  ?  '  says 
the  Queen. 

'  It  will  take  the  increase  of  seven  barrels  of  wheat  for  seven 
years.' 

4  That  is  a  great  quantity,'  says  the  Queen ;  '  but  the  reason 
must  be  extraordinary,  and  before  I  want  it,  I  will  give  you  all  you 
demand.' 

'Well,'  says  the  hen-wife,  '  it  is  because  you  are  so  stupid  that 
you  don't  observe  or  find  out  those  affairs  that  are  so  dangerous 
and  hurtful  to  yourself  and  your  child.' 

'  What  is  that  ?  '  says  the  Queen. 

'  Why,'  says  she,  '  the  King  your  husband  has  three  fine  sons  he 
had  by  the  late  Queen,  whom  he  keeps  shut  up  in  a  tower  until 
they  come  of  age,  intending  to  divide  the  kingdom  between  them, 
and  let  your  son  push  his  fortune ;  now,  if  you  don't  find  some 
means  of  destroying  them  ;  your  child  and  perhaps  yourself  will  be 
left  desolate  in  the  end.' 

4  And  what  would  you  advise  me  to  do  ?  '  said  she ;  '  I  am 
wholly  at  a  loss  in  what  manner  to  act  in  this  affair.' 


66     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 

'  You  must  make  known  to  the  King,'  says  the  hen-wife,  '  that 
you  heard  of  his  sons,  and  wonder  greatly  that  he  concealed  them 
all  this  time  from  yon ;  tell  him  you  wish  to  see  them,  and  that  it 
is  full  time  for  them  to  be  liberated,  and  that  you  would  be  desirous 
he  would  bring  them  to  the  Court.  The  King  will  then  do  so,  and 
there  will  be  a  great  feast  prepared  on  that  account,  and  also  diver- 
sions of  every  sort  to  amuse  the  people ;  and  in  these  sports,'  said 
she,  '  ask  the  King's  sons  to  play  a  game  at  cards  with  you,  which 
they  will  not  refuse.  Now,'  says  the  hen-wife,  '  you  must  make  a 
bargain,  that  if  you  win  they  must  do  whatever  you  command  them, 
and  if  they  win,  that  you  must  do  whatever  they  command  you 
to  do ;  this  bargain  must  be  made  before  the  assembly,  and  here 
is  a  pack  of  cards,'  says  she,  '  that  I  am  thinking  you  will  not 
lose  by.' 

The  Queen  immediately  took  the  cards,  and,  after  returning  the 
hen-wife  thanks  for  her  kind  instruction,  went  back  to  the  palace, 
where  she  was  quite  uneasy  until  she  got  speaking  to  the  King  in 
regard  of  his  children ;  at  last  she  broke  it  off  to  him  in  a  very 
polite  and  engaging  manner,  so  that  he  could  see  no  muster  or 
design  in  it.  He  readily  consented  to  her  desire,  and  his  sons  were 
sent  for  to  the  tower,  who  gladly  came  to  Court,  rejoicing  that  they 
were  freed  from  such  confinement.  They  were  all  very  handsome, 
and  very  expert  in  all  arts  and  exercises,  so  that  they  gained  the 
love  and  esteem  of  all  that  had  seen  them. 

The  Queen,  more  jealous  with  them  than  ever,  thought  it  an  age 
until  all  the  feasting  and  rejoicing  was  over,  that  she  might  get 
making  her  proposal,  depending  greatly  on  the  power  of  the  hen- 
wife's  cards.  At  length  this  royal  assembly  began  to  sport  and  play 
at  all  kinds  of  diversions,  and  the  Queen  very  cunningly  challenged 
the  three  Princes  to  play  at  cards  with  her,  making  bargain  with 
them  as  she  had  been  instructed. 

They  accepted  the  challenge,  and  the  eldest  son  and  she  played 
the  first  game,  which  she  won ;  then  the  second  son  played,  and 
she  won  that  game  likewise  ;  the  third  son  and  she  then  played  the 
last  game,  and  he  won  it,  which  sorely  grieved  her  that  she  had  not 
him  in  her  power  as  well  as  the  rest,  being  by  far  the  handsomest 
and  most  beloved  of  the  three. 

However,  everyone  wa#  anxious  to  hear  the  Queen's  commands 
in  regard  to  the  two  Princes,  not  thinking  that  she  had  any  ill 
design  in  her  head  against  them.  Whether  it  was  the  hen-wife 
instructed  her,  or  whether  it  was  from  her  own  knowledge,  I  cannot 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    57 

toll  ;  but  she  gave  out  they  must  go  and  bring  her  the  Knight  of 
the  Glen's  wild  Steed  of  Bells,  or  they  should  lose  their  heads. 

The  young  Princes  were  not  in  the  least  concerned,  not  knowing 
what  they  had  to  do ;  but  the  whole  Court  was  amazed  at  her 
demand,  knowing  very  well  that  it  was  impossible  for  them  ever  to 
get  the  steed,  as  all  that  ever  sought  him  perished  in  the  attempt. 
However,  they  could  not  retract  the  bargain,  and  the  youngest 


Prince  was  desired  to  tell  what  demand  he  had  on  the  Queen,  as  he 
had  won  his  game. 

'  My  brothers,'  says  he,  '  are  now  going  to  travel,  and,  as  I  under- 
stand, a  perilous  journey  wherein  they  know  not  what  road  to  take 
or  what  may  happen  them.  I  am  resolved,  therefore,  not  to  stay 
here,  but  to  go  with  them,  let  what  will  betide;  and  I  request  and 
command,  according  to  mj-  bargain,  that  the  Queen  shall  stand  on 


58     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 

the  highest  tower  of  the  palace  until  we  come  back  (or  find  out  that 
we  are  certainly  dead),  with  nothing  but  sheaf  corn  for  her  food  and 
cold  water  for  her  drink,  if  it  should  be  for  seven  years  and  longer.' 

AH  things  being  now  fixed,  the  three  princes  departed  the  Court 
in  search  of  the  Knight  of  the  Glen's  palace,  and  travelling  along 
the  road  they  came  up  with  a  man  who  was  a  little  lame,  and 
seemed  to  be  somewhat  advanced  in  years ;  they  soon  fell  into 
discourse,  and  the  youngest  of  the  princes  asked  the  stranger  his 
name,  or  what  was  the  reason  he  wore  so  remarkable  a  black  cap 
as  he  saw  on  him. 

'  I  am  called,'  said  he,  '  the  Thief  of  Sloan,  and  sometimes  the 
Black  Thief  from  my  cap  ;  '  and  so  telling  the  prince  the  most  of  his 
adventures,  he  asked  him  again  where  they  were  bound  for,  or 
what  they  were  about. 

The  prince,  willing  to  gratify  his  request,  told  him  their  affairs 
from  the  beginning  to  the  end.  '  And  now,'  said  he, '  we  are  travelling, 
and  do  not  know  whether  we  are  on  the  right  road  or  not." 

'  Ah !  my  brave  fellows,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  you  little  know 
the  danger  you  run.  I  am  after  that  steed  myself  these  seven 
years,  and  can  never  steal  him  on  account  of  a  silk  covering  he  has 
on  him  in  the  stable,  with  sixty  bells  fixed  to  it,  and  whenever  you 
approach  the  place  he  quickly  observes  it  and  shakes  himself; 
which,  by  the  sound  of  the  bells,  not  only  alarms  the  prince  and  his 
guards,  but  the  whole  country  round,  so  that  it  is  impossible  ever 
to  get  him,  and  those  that  are  so  unfortunate  as  to  be  taken  by  the 
Knight  of  the  Glen  are  boiled  in  a  red-hot  fiery  furnace.' 

'  Bless  me,'  says  the  young  prince,  '  what  will  we  do  ?  If  we 
return  without  the  steed  we  will  lose  our  heads,  so  I  see  we  are  ill 
fixed  on  both  sides.' 

'  Well,'  says  the  Thief  of  Sloan,  '  if  it  were  my  case  I  would 
rather  die  by  the  Knight  than  by  the  wicked  Queen  ;  besides,  I  will 
go  with  you  myself  and  show  you  the  road,  and  whatever  fortune 
you  will  have,  I  will  take  chance  of  the  same.' 

They  returned  him  sincere  thanks  for  his  kindness,  and  he, 
being  well  acquainted  with  the  road,  in  a  short  time  brought  them 
within  view  of  the  knight's  castle. 

'  Now,'  says  he, '  we  must  stay  here  till  night  comes ;  for  I  know 
all  the  ways  of  the  place,  and  if  there  be  any  chance  for  it,  it  is 
when  they  are  all  at  rest ;  for  the  steed  is  all  the  watch  the  knight 
keeps  there.' 

Accordingly,  in  the  dead  hour  of  the  night,  the  King's  three  sons 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    59 

and  the  Thief  of  Sloan  attempted  the  Steed  of  Bells  in  order  to 
carry  him  away,  but  before  they  could  reach  the  stables  the  steed 
neighed  most  terribly  and  shook  himself  so,  and  the  bells  rung  with 
such  noise,  that  the  knight  and  all  his  men  were  up  in  a  moment. 

The  Black  Thief  and  the  King's  sons  thought  to  make  their 
escape,  but  they  were  suddenly  surrounded  by  the  knight's  guards 
and  taken  prisoners;  where  they  were  brought  into  that  dismal 
part  of  the  palace  where  the  knight  kept  a  furnace  always  boiling, 
in  which  he  threw  all  offenders  that  ever  came  in  his  way,  which 
in  a  few  moments  would  entirely  consume  them. 

'  Audacious  villains  ! '  says  the  Knight  of  the  Glen,  '  how  dare 
you  attempt  so  bold  an  action  as  to  steal  my  steed  ?  See,  now,  the 
reward  of  your  folly ;  for  your  greater  punishment  I  will  not  boil 
you  all  together,  but  one  after  the  other,  so  that  he  that  survives 
may  witness  the  dire  afflictions  of  his  unfortunate  companions.7 

So  saying  he  ordered  his  servants  to  stir  up  the  fire  :  '  We  will 
boil  the  eldest-looking  of  these  young  men  first,'  said  he, '  and  so  on 
to  the  last,  which  will  be  this  old  champion  with  the  black  cap.  He 
seems  to  be  the  captain,  and  looks  as  if  lie  had  come  through  many 
toils.' 

'  I  was  as  near  death  once  as  the  prince  is  yet,'  says  the  Black 
Thief,  '  and  escaped ;  and  so  will  he  too.' 

'  No,  you  never  were,'  said  the  knight ;  '  for  he  is  within  two  or 
three  minutes  of  his  latter  end.' 

'  But,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  I  was  within  one  moment  of  my 
death,  and  I  arn  here  yet.' 

'  How  was  that  ?  '  says  the  knight ;  '  I  would  be  glad  to  hear  it, 
for  it  seems  impossible.' 

'  If  you  think,  sir  knight,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  that  the  danger 
I  was  in  surpasses  that  of  this  young  man,  will  you  pardon  him  his 
crime  ? ' 

'  I  will,'  says  the  knight,  '  so  go  on  with  your  story.' 

'  I  was,  sir,'  says  he,  '  a  very  wild  boy  in  my  youth,  and  came 
through  many  distresses ;  once  in  particular,  as  I  was  on  my 
rambling,  I  was  benighted  and  could  find  no  lodging.  At  length  I 
came  to  an  old  kiln,  and  being  much  fatigued  I  went  up  and  lay  on 
the  ribs.  I  had  not  been  long  there  when  I  saw  three  witches 
coming  in  with  three  bags  of  gold.  Each  put  their  bags  of  gold 
under  their  heads,  as  if  to  sleep.  I  heard  one  of  them  say  to  the 
other  that  if  the  Black  Thief  came  on  them  while  they  slept,  he 
would  not  leave  them  a  penny.  I  found  by  their  discourse  that 


00     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 


everybody  had  got  my  name  into  their  mouth,  though  I  kept  silent 
as  death  during  their  discourse.    At  length  they  fell  fast  asleep,  and 
then  I   stole    softly    down, 
and  seeing  some   tiirf  con- 
venient, I  placed  one  under 
each    of  their    heads,    and 
off  I  went,  with  their  gold, 
as  fast  as  I  could. 

'  I  had  not  gone  far,' 
continued  the  Thief  of 
Sloan,  '  until  I  saw  a  grey- 
hound, a  hare,  and  a  hawk 
in  pursuit  of  me,  and  began 
to  think  it  must  be  the 
witches  that  had  taken  the 
shapes  in  order  that  I 
might  not  escape  them 
unseen  either  by  land  or 
water.  Seeing  they  did  not  appear  in  any  formidable  shape,  I  was 
more  than  once  resolved  to  attack  them,  thinking  that  with  my 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    61 

broad  sword  I  could  easily  destroy  them.  But  considering  again 
that  it  was  perhaps  still  in  their  power  to  become  alive  again,  I 
gave  over  the  attempt  and  climbed  with  difficulty  up  a  tree,  bringing 
my  sword  in  my  hand  and  all  the  gold  along  with  me.  However, 
when  they  came  to  the  tree  they  found  what  I  had  done,  and  making 
further  use  of  their  hellish  art,  one  of  them  was  changed  into  a 
smith's  anvil  and  another  into  a  piece  of  iron,  of  which  the  third 
soon  made  a  hatchet.  Having  the  hatchet  made,  she  fell  to  cutting 
down  the  tree,  and  in  the  course  of  an  hour  it  began  to  shake 
with  me.  At  length  it  began  to  bend,  and  I  found  that  one  or 
two  blows  at  the  most  would  put  it  down.  I  then  began  to  think 
that  my  death  was  inevitable,  considering  that  those  who  were 
capable  of  doing  so  much  would  soon  end  my  life ;  but  just 
as  she  had  the  stroke  drawn  that  would  terminate  my  fate,  the 
cock  crew,  and  the  witches  disappeared,  having  resumed  their 
natural  shapes  for  fear  of  being  known,  and  I  got  safe  off -with  my 
bags  of  gold. 

'  Now,  sir,'  says  he  to  the  Knight  of  the  Glen,  '  if  that  be  not  as 
great  an  adventure  as  ever  you  heard,  to  be  within  one  blow  of  a 
hatchet  of  my  end,  and  that  blow  even  drawn,  and  after  all  to 
escape,  I  leave  it  to  yourself.' 

'  Well,  I  cannot  say  but  it  is  very  extraordinary,'  says  the  Knight 
of  the  Glen, '  and  on  that  account  pardon  this  young  man  his  crime ; 
so  stir  up  the  fire,  till  I  boil,  this  second  one.' 

'  Indeed,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  I  would  fain  think  he  would  not 
die  this  time  either.' 

'  How  so  ?  '  says  the  knight ;  '  it  is  impossible  for  him  to  escape.' 

'I  escaped  death  more  wonderfully  myself,'  says  the  Thief  of 
Sloan,  '  than  if  you  had  him  ready  to  throw  into  the  furnace,  and  I 
hope  it  will  be  the  case  with  him  likewise.' 

'  Why,  have  you  been  in  another  great  danger  ? '  says  the  knight. 
'  I  would  be  glad  to  hear  the  story  too,  and  if  it  be  as  wonderful  as 
the  last,  I  will  pardon  this  young  man  as  I  did  the  other.1 

'  My  way  of  living,  sir,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  was  not  good, 
as  I  told  you  before ;  and  being  at  a  certain  time  fairly  run  out  of 
cash,  and  meeting  with  no  enterprise  worthy  of  notice,  I  was  reduced 
to  great  straits.  At  length  a  rich  bishop  died  in  the  neighbourhood  I 
was  then  in,  and  I  heard  he  was  interred  with  a  great  deal  of  jewels 
and  rich  robes  upon  him,  all  which  I  intended  in  a  short  time 
to  be  master  of.  Accordingly  that  very  night  I  set  about  it,  and 
coming  to  the  place,  I  understood  he  was  placed  at  the  further  end 


62     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 

of  a  long  dark  vault,  which  I  slowly  entered.  I  had  not  gone  in 
far  until  I  heard  a  foot  coming  towards  me  with  a  quick  pace,  and 
although  naturally  bold  and  daring,  yet,  thinking  of  the  deceased 
bishop  and  the  crime  I  was  engaged  in,  I  lost  courage,  and  ran 
towards  the  entrance  of  the  vault.  I  had  retreated  but  a  few  paces 
when  I  observed,  between  me  and  the  light,  the  figure  of  a  tall 
black  man  standing  in  the  entrance.  Being  in  great  fear  and  not 
knowing  how  to  pass,  I  fired  a  pistol  at  him,  and  he  immediately 
fell  across  the  entrance.  Perceiving  he  still  retained  the  figure  of 
a  mortal  man,  I  began  to  imagine  that  it  could  not  be  the  bishop's 
ghost ;  recovering  myself  therefore  from  the  fear  I  was  in,  I 
ventured  to  the  upper  end  of  the  vault,  where  I  found  a  large 
bundle,  and  upon  further  examination  I  found  that  the  corpse  was 
already  rifled,  and  that  which  I  had  taken  to  be  a  ghost  was  no 
more  than  one  of  his  own  clergy.  I  was  then  very  sorry  that  I  had 
the  misfortune  to  kill  him,  but  it  then  could  not  be  helped.  I  took 
up  the  bundle  that  contained  everything  belonging  to  the  corpse 
that  was  valuable,  intending  to  take  my  departure  from  this 
melancholy  abode;  but  just  as  I  came  to  the  mouth  of  the  entrance 
I  saw  the  guards  of  the  place  coming  towards  me,  and  distinctly 
heard  them  saying  that  they  would  look  in  the  vault,  for  that  the 
Black  Thief  would  think  little  of  robbing  the  corpse  if  he  was  any- 
where in  the  place.  I  did  not  then  know  in  what  manner  to  act, 
for  if  I  was  seen  I  would  surely  lose  my  life,  as  everybody  had  a 
look-out  at  that  time,  and  because  there  was  no  person  bold  enough 
to  come  in  on  me.  I  knew  very  well  on  the  first  sight  of  me  that 
could  be  got,  I  would  be  shot  like  a  dog.  However,  I  had  not  time  to 
lose.  I  took  and  raised  up  the  man  which  I  had  killed,  as  if  he  was 
standing  on  his  feet,  and  I,  crouching  behind  him,  bore  him  up  as 
well  as  I  could,  so  that  the  guards  readily  saw  him  as  they  came  up 
to  the  vault.  Seeing  the  man  in  black,  one  of  the  men  cried  that 
was  the  Black  Thief,  and,  presenting  his  piece,  fired  at  the  man,  at 
which  I  let  him  fall,  and  crept  into  a  little  dark  corner  myself,  that 
was  at  the  entrance  of  the  place.  When  they  saw  the  man  fall, 
they  ran  all  into  the  vault,  and  never  stopped  until  they  were  at  the 
end  of  it,  for  fear,  as  I  thought,  that  there  might  be  some  others 
along  with  him  that  was  killed.  But  while  they  were  busy  in- 
specting the  corpse  and  the  vatilt  to  see  what  they  could  miss,  I 
slipped  out,  and,  once  away,  and  still  away  ;  but  they  never  had  the 
Black  Thief  in  their  power  since.' 

'  Well,  my  brave  fellow,'  says  the  Knight  of  the  Glen,  '  I  see  you 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    63 

have  come  through  many  dangers  :  you  have  freed  these  two  princes 
by  your  stories  ;  but  I  am  sorry  myself  that  this  young  prince  has 
to  suffer  for  all.  Now,  if  you  could  tell  me  something  as  wonderful 
as  you  have  told  already,  I  would  pardon  him  likewise  ;  I  pity  this 
youth  and  do  not  want  to  put  him  to  death  if  I  could  help  it.' 

'That  happens  well,'  says  the  Thief  of  Sloan,  'for  I  like  him 
best  myself,  and  have  reserved  the  most  curious  passage  for  the  last 
on  his  account.' 

'  Well,  then,'  says  the  knight,  '  let  us  hear  it.' 

'  I  was  one  day  on  my  travels,'  says  the  Black  Thief,  '  and  I 
came  into  a  large  forest,  where  I  wandered  a  long  time,  and  could 
not  get  out  of  it.  At  length  I  came  to  a  large  castle,  and  fatigue 
obliged  me  to  call  in  the  same,  where  I  found  a  young  woman  and 
a  child  sitting  on  her  knee,  and  she  crying.  I  asked  her  what 
made  her  cry,  and  where  the  lord  of  the  castle  was,  for  I  wondered 
greatly  that  I  saw  no  stir  of  servants  or  any  person  about  the 
place. 

'  "  It  is  well  for  you,"  says  the  yoimg  woman,  "  that  the  lord  of 
this  castle  is  not  at  home  at  present ;  for  he  is  a  monstrous  giant, 
with  but  one  eye  on  his  forehead,  who  lives  on  human  flesh.  He 
brought  me  this  child,"  says  she,  "I  do  not  know  where  he  got  it, 
and  ordered  me  to  make  it  into  a  pie,  and  I  cannot  help  crying  at 
the  command." 

'  I  told  her  that  if  she  knew  of  any  place  convenient  that  I 
could  leave  the  child  safely  I  would  do  it,  rather  than  it  should  be 
killed  by  such  a  monster. 

'  She  told  me  of  a  house  a  distance  off  where  I  would  get  a 
woman  who  would  take  care  of  it.  "  But  what  will  I  do  in  regard 
of  the  pie  ?  " 

' "  Cut  a  finger  off  it,"  said  I,  "  and  I  will  bring  you  in  a  young 
wild  pig  out  of  the  forest,  which  you  may  dress  as  if  it  was  the 
child,  and  put  the  finger  in  a  certain  place,  that  if  the  giant  doubts 
anything  about  it  you  may  know  where  to  turn  it  over  at  the  first, 
and  when  he  sees  it  he  will  be  fully  satisfied  that  the  pie  is  made  of 
the  child." 

'  She  agreed  to  the  scheme  I  proposed,  and,  cutting  off  the  child's 
finger,  by  her  direction  I  soon  had  it  at  the  house  she  told  me  of, 
and  brought  her  the  little  pig  in  the  place  of  it.  She  then  made 
ready  the  pie,  and  after  eating  and  drinking  heartily  myself,  I  was 
just  taking  my  leave  of  the  young  woman  when  we  observed  the  giant 
coming  through  the  castle  gates. 


64     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 

'  "  Bless  me,"  said  she,  "  what  will  you  do  now  ?  Eun  away  and 
lie  down  among  the  dead  bodies  that  he  has  in  the  room  (showing 
me  the  place),  and  strip  off  your  clothes  that  he  may  not  know  you 
from  the  rest  if  he  has  occasion  to  go  that  way." 

'  I  took  her  advice,  and  laid  myself  down  among  the  rest,  as  it 
dead,  to  see  how  he  would  behave.  The  first  thing  I  heard  was 


him  calling  for  his  pie.  When  she  set  it  down  before  him  he  swore 
it  smelled  like  swine's  flesh,  but  knowing  where  to  find  the  finger, 
she  immediately  turned  it  up,  which  fairly  convinced  him  of  the 
contrary.  The  pie  only  served  to  sharpen  his  appetite,  and  I  heard 
him  sharpening  his  knife  and  saying  he  must  have  a  collop  or  two,  for 
he  was  not  near  satisfied.  But  what  was  my  terror  when  I  heard 


THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN    65 

the  giant  groping  among  the  bodies,  and,  fancying  myself,  cut  the 
half  of  my  hip  off,  and  took  it  with  him  to  be  roasted.  You  maybe 
certain  I  was  in  great  pain,  but  the  fear  of  being  killed  prevented 
me  from  making  any  complaint.  However,  when  he  had  eaten  all 
he  began  to  drink  hot  liquors  in  great  abundance,  so  that  in  a  short 
time  he  could  not  hold  up  his  head,  but  threw  himself  on  a  large  creel 
he  had  made  for  the  purpose,  and  fell  fast  asleep.  When  I  heard 
him  snoring,  as  I  was  I  went  up  and  caused  the  woman  to  bind  rny 
wound  with  a  handkerchief;  and,  taking  the  giant's  spit,  reddened  it 
in  the  fire,  and  ran  it  through  the  eye,  but  was  not  able  to  kill  him. 

'  However,  I  left  the  spit  sticking  in  his  head,  and  took  to  my 
heels  ;  but  I  soon  found  he  was  in  pursuit  of  me,  although  blind ; 
and  having  an  enchanted  ring  he  threw  it  at  me,  and  it  fell  on  my 
big  toe  and  remained  fastened  to  it. 

'  The  giant  then  called  to  the  ring,  where  it  was,  and  to  my  great 
surprise  it  made  him  answer  on  my  foot ;  and  he,  guided  by  the 
same,  made  a  leap  at  me  which  I  had  the  good  luck  to  observe,  and 
fortunately  escaped  the  danger.  However,  I  found  running  was  of 
no  use  in  saving  me,  as  long  as  I  had  the  ring  on  my  foot ;  so  I 
took  my  sword  and  cut  off  the  toe  it  was  fastened  on,  and  threw 
both  into  a  large  fish-pond  that  was  convenient.  The  giant  called 
again  to  the  ring,  which  by  the  power  of  enchantment  always  made 
him  answer;  but  he,  not  knowing  what  I  had  done,  imagined  it  was 
still  on  some  part  of  me,  and  made  a  violent  leap  to  seize  me,  when 
he  went  into  the  pond,  over  head  and  ears,  and  was  drowned.  Now, 
sir  knight,'  says  the  Thief  of  Sloan,  '  you  see  what  dangers  I  came 
through  and  always  escaped ;  but,  indeed,  I  am  lame  for  the  want 
of  my  toe  ever  since.' 

•  My  lord  and  master,'  says  an  old  woman  that  was  listening  all 
the  time,  '  that  story  is  but  too  true,  as  I  well  know,  for  I  am  the 
very  woman  that  was  in  the  giant's  castle,  and  you,  rny  lord,  the 
child  that  I  was  to  make  into  a  pie ;  and  this  is  the  very  man  that 
saved  your  life,  which  you  may  know  by  the  want  of  your  finger 
that  was  taken  off,  as  you  have  heard,  to  deceive  the  giant.' 

The  Knight  of  the  Glen,  greatly  surprised  at  what  he  had  heard 
the  old  woman  tell,  and  knowing  he  wanted  his  finger  from  his 
childhood,  began  to  understand  that  the  story  was  true  enough. 

'  And  is  this  my  deliverer  ?  '  says  he.  '  O  brave  fellow,  I  not 
only  pardon  you  all,  but  will  keep  you  with  myself  while  you  live, 
where  you  shall  feast  like  princes,  and  have  every  attendance  that 
I  have  myself.' 


66     THE  BLACK  THIEF  AND  KNIGHT  OF  THE  GLEN 

They  all  returned  thanks  on  their  knees,  and  the  Black  Thief 
told  him  the  reason  they  attempted  to  steal  the  Steed  of  Bells,  and 
the  necessity  they  were  under  in  going  home. 

'  Well,'  says  the  Knight  of  the  Glen,  '  if  that's  the  case  I  bestow 
you  my  steed  rather  than  this  hrave  fellow  should  die ;  so  you  may 
go  when  you  please,  only  remember  to  call  and  see  me  betimes, 
that  we  may  know  each  other  well.' 

They  promised  they  would,  and  with  great  joy  they  set  off  for 
the  King  their  father's  palace,  and  the  Black  Thief  along  with 
them. 

The  wicked  Queen  was  standing  all  this  time  on  the  tower,  and, 
hearing  the  bells  ringing  at  a  great  distance  off,  knew  very  well  it 
was  the  princes  corning  home,  and  the  steed  with  them,  and  through 
spite  and  vexation  precipitated  herself  from  the  tower  and  was 
shattered  to  pieces. 

The  three  princes  lived  happy  and  well  during  their  father's 
reign,  and  always  keeping  the  Black  Thief  along  with  them  ;  but 
how  they  did  after  the  old  King's  death  is  not  known.1 

1  The  Hibernian  Tales. 


67 


THE  MASTER   THIEF 


was  once  upon  a  time  a  husbandman  who  had  three  sons. 
-L  He  had  no  property  to  bequeath  to  them,  and  no  means  of  put- 
ting them  in  the  way  of  getting  a  living,  and  did  not  know  what  to 
do,  so  he  said  that  they  had  his  leave  to  take  to  anything  they  most 
fancied,  and  go  to  any  place  they  best  liked.  He  would  gladly  ac- 
company them  for  some  part  of  their  way,  he  said,  and  that  he  did. 
He  went  with  them  till  they  came  to  a  place  where  three  roads 
met,  and  there  each  of  them  took  his  own  way,  and  the  father  bade 
them  farewell  and  returned  to  his  own  home  again.  What  became 
of  the  two  elder  I  ha^e  never  been  able  to  discover,  but  the  youngest 
went  both  far  and  wide. 

It  came  to  pass,  one  night,  as  he  was  going  through  a  great 
wood,  that  a  terrible  storm  came  on.  It  blew  so  hard  and  rained 
so  heavily  that  he  could  scarcely  keep  his  eyes  open,  and  before  he 
was  aware  of  it  he  had  got  quite  out  of  the  track,  and  could  neither 
find  road  nor  path.  But  he  went  on,  and  at  last  he  saw  a  light  far 
away  in  the  wood.  Then  he  thought  he  must  try  and  get  to  it,  and 
after  a  long,  long  time  he  did  reach  it.  There  was  a  large  house, 
and  the  fire  was  burning  so  brightly  inside  that  he  could  tell  that 
the  people  were  not  in  bed.  So  he  went  in,  and  inside  there  was 
an  old  woman  who  was  busy  about  some  work. 

'  Good  evening,  mother  !  '  said  the  youth. 

'  Good  evening ! '  said  the  old  woman. 

'  Hutetu  !  it  is  terrible  weather  outside  to-night,'  said  the  young 
fellow. 

'  Indeed  it  is,'  said  the  old  woman. 

'  Can  I  sleep  here,  and  have  shelter  for  the  night  ?  '  asked  the 
yoxith. 

'  It  wouldn't  be  good  for  you  to  sleep  here,'  said  the  old  hag, 
'  for  if  the  people  of  the  house  come  home  and  find  you,  they  will 
kill  both  you  and  me.' 

F2 


G8  THE   MASTER    THIEF 

'  What  kind  of  people  are  they  then,  who  dwell  here  ?  '  said  the 
youth. 

'  Oh !  robbers,  and  rabble  of  that  sort,'  said  the  old  woman ; 
'  they  stole  me  away  when  I  was  little,  and  I  have  had  to  keep 
house  for  them  ever  since.' 

'  I  still  think  I  will  go  to  bed,  all  the  same,'  said  the  youth. 
'  No  matter  what  happens,  I'll  not  go  out  to-night  in  such  weather 
as  this.' 

'  Well,  then,  it  will  be  the  worse  for  yourself,'  said  the  old 
woman. 

The  young  man  lay  down  in  a  bed  which  stood  near,  but  he 
dared  not  go  to  sleep;  and  it  was  better  that  he  didn't,  for  the 
robbers  came,  and  the  old  woman  said  that  a  young  fellow  who  was 
a  stranger  had  come  there,  and  she  had  not  been  able  to  get  him 
to  go  away  again. 

'  Did  you  see  if  he  had  any  money  ?  '  said  the  robbers. 

'  He's  not  one  to  have  money,  he  is  a  tramp  !  If  he  has  a  few 
clothes  to  his  back,  that  is  all.' 

Then  the  robbers  began  to  mutter  to  each  other  apart  about 
what  they  should  do  with  him,  whether  they  should  murder  him, 
or  what  else  they  should  do.  In  the  meantime  the  boy  got  up  and 
began  to  talk  to  them,  and  ask  them  if  they  did  not  want  a  man- 
servant, for  he  could  find  pleasure  enough  in  serving  them. 

'  Yes,'  said  they,  '  if  you  have  a  mind  to  take  to  the  trade  that 
we  follow,  you  may  have  a  place  here.' 

'  It's  ah1  the  same  to  me  what  trade  I  follow,'  said  the  youth, 
'  for  when  I  came  away  from  home  my  father  gave  me  leave  to 
take  to  any  trade  I  fancied.' 

'  Have  you  a  fancy  for  stealing,  then  ?  '  said  the  robbers. 

'  Yes,"  said  the  boy,  for  he  thought  that  was  a  trade  which  would 
not  take  long  to  learn. 

Not  very  far  off  there  dwelt  a  man  who  had  three  oxen,  one  of 
which  he  was  to  take  to  the  town  to  sell.  The  robbers  had  heard 
of  this,  so  they  told  the  youth  that  if  he  were  able  to  steal  the  ox 
from  him  on  the  way,  without  his  knowing,  and  without  doing  him 
any  harm,  he  should  have  leave  to  be  their  servant-man.  So  the 
youth  set  off,  taking  with  him  a  pretty  shoe  with  a  silver  buckle 
that  was  lying  about  in  the  house.  He  put  this  in  the  road  by 
which  the  man  must  go  with  his  ox,  and  then  went  into  the  wood 
and  hid  himself  under  a  bush.  When  the  man  came  up  he  at  once 
saw  the  shoe. 


THE  MASTER    THIEF  69 

'That's  a  brave  shoe,'  said  he.  '  If  I  had  but  the  fellow  to  it,  I 
would  carry  it  home  with  me,  and  then  I  should  put  my  old  woman 
into  a  good  humour  for  once.' 

For  he  had  a  wife  who  was  so  cross  and  ill-tempered  that  the 
time  between  the  beatings  she  gave  him  was  very  short.  But  then 
he  bethought  himself  that  he  could  do  nothing  with  one  shoe  if  he 
had  not  the  fellow  to  it,  so  he  journeyed  onwards  and  let  it  lie 
where  it  was.  Then  the  youth  picked  up  the  shoe  and  hurried  off 
away  through  the  wood  as  fast  as  he  was  able,  to  get  in  front  of  the 
man,  and  then  put  the  shoe  in  the  road  before  him  again. 

When  the  man  came  with  the  ox  and  saw  the  shoe,  he  was 
quite  vexed  at  having  been  so  stupid  as  to  leave  the  fellow  to  it 
lying  where  it  was,  instead  of  bringing  it  on  with  him. 

'  I  will  just  run  back  again  and  fetch  it  now,'  he  said  to  himself, 
'  and  then  I  shall  take  back  a  pair  of  good  shoes  to  the  old  woman, 
and  she  may  perhaps  throw  a  kind  word  to  me  for  once.' 

So  he  went  and  searched  and  searched  for  the  other  shoe  for  a 
long,  long  time,  but  no  shoe  was  to  be  found,  and  at  last  he  was 
forced  to  go  back  with  the  one  which  he  had. 

In  the  meantime  the  youth  had  taken  the  ox  and  gone  off  with 
it.  When  the  man  got  there  and  found  that  his  ox  was  gone,  he 
began  to  weep  and  wail,  for  he  was  afraid  that  when  his  old  woman 
got  to  know  she  would  be  the  death  of  him.  But  all  at  once  it  came 
into  his  head  to  go  home  and  get  the  other  ox,  and  drive  it  to  the  town, 
and  take  good  care  that  his  old  wife  knew  nothing  about  it.  So  he 
did  this ;  he  went  home  and  took  the  ox  without  his  wife's  knowing 
about  it,  and  went  on  his  way  to  the  town  with  it.  But  the  robbers 
they  knew  it  well,  because  they  got  out  their  magic.  So  they  told 
the  youth  that  if  he  could  take  this  ox  also  without  the  man  know- 
ing anything  about  it,  and  without  doing  him  any  hurt,  he  should 
then  be  on  an  equalitj*  with  them. 

'  Well,  that  will  not  be  a  very  hard  thing  to  do,'  thought  the 
youth. 

This  time  he  took  with  him  a  rope  and  put  it  under  his  arms  and 
tied  himself  up  to  a  tree,  which  hung  over  the  road  that  the  man 
would  have  to  take.  So  the  man  came  with  his  ox,  and  when  he 
saw  the  body  hanging  there  he  felt  a  little  queer. 

'  What  a  hard  lot  yours  must  have  been  to  make  you  hang 
yourself ! '  said  he.  'Ah,  well !  you  may  hang  there  for  me ;  I  can't 
breathe  life  into  you  again.' 

So  on  he  went  with  his  ox.     Then  the  youth  sprang  down  from 


70 


THE  MASTER    THIEF 


the  tree,  ran  by  a  short  cut  and  got  before  him,  and  once  more  hung 
himself  up  on  a  tree  in  the  road  before  the  man. 

'  How  I  should  like  to  know  if  you  really  were  so  sick  at  heart 
that  you  hanged  yourself  there,  or  if  it  is  only  a  hobgoblin  that's 


before  me  ! '  said  the  man.   '  Ah,  well !  you  may  hang  there  for  me, 
whether  you  are  a  hobgoblin  or  not,'  and  on  he  went  with  his  ox. 

Once  more  the  youth  did  just  as  he  had  done  twice  already ; 
jumped  down  from  the  tree,  ran  by  a  short  cut  through  the  wood, 
and  again  hanged  himself  in  the  very  middle  of  the  road  before  him. 


THE   MASTER    THIEF  71 

But  when  the  man  once  more  saw  tins  lie  said  to  himself, 
'  What  a  bad  business  this  is  !  Can  they  all  have  been  so  heavy- 
hearted  that  they  have  all  three  hanged  themselves  '?  No,  I  can't 
believe  that  it  is  anything  but  witchcraft  !  But  I  will  know  the 
truth,'  he  said  ;  '  if  the  two  others  are  still  hanging  there  it  is  true 
but  if  they  are  not  it's  nothing  else  but  witchcraft.' 

So  he  tied  up  his  ox  and  ran  back  to  see  if  they  really  were 
hanging  there.  While  he  was  going,  and  looking  up  at  every  tree 
as  he  went,  the  youth  leapt  down  and  took  his  ox  and  went  off  with 
it.  Any  one  may  easily  imagine  what  a  fury  the  man  fell  into 
when  he  came  back  and  saw  that  his  ox  was  gone.  He  wept  and 
he  raged,  biit  at  last  he  took  comfort  and  told  himself  that  the  best 
thing  to  do  was  to  go  home  and  take  the  third  ox,  without  letting 
his  wife  know  anything  about  it,  and  then  try  to  sell  it  so  well 
that  he  got  a  good  sum  of  money  for  it.  So  he  went  home  and 
took  the  third  ox,  and  drove  it  off  without  his  wife  knowing  any- 
thing about  it.  But  the  robbers  knew  all  about  it,  and  they  told 
the  youth  that  if  he  could  steal  this  as  he  had  stolen  the  two 
others,  he  should  be  master  of  the  whole  troop.  So  the  youth 
set  out  and  went  to  the  wood,  and  when  the  man  was  coming  along 
with  the  ox  he  began  to  bellow  loudly,  just  like  a  great  ox  some- 
where inside  the  wood.  When  the  man  heard  that  he  was  right 
glad,  for  he  fancied  he  recognised  the  voice  of  his  big  bullock,  and 
thought  that  now  he  should  find  both  of  them  again.  So  he  tied 
up  the  third,  and  ran  away  off  the  road  to  look  for  them  in  the 
wood.  In  the  meantime  the  youth  went  away  with  the  third  ox. 
When  the  man  returned  and  found  that  he  had  lost  that  too,  he  fell 
into  such  a  rage  that  there  was  no  bounds  to  it.  He  wept  and 
lamented,  and  lor  many  days  he  did  not  dare  to  go  home  again,  for 
he  was  afraid  that  the  old  woman  would  slay  him  outright.  The 
robbers,  also,  were  not  very  well  pleased  at  this,  for  they  were  forced 
to  own  that  the  youth  was  at  the  head  of  them  all.  So  one  day 
they  made  up  their  minds  to  set  to  work  to  do  something  which  it 
was  not  in  his  power  to  accomplish,  and  they  all  took  to  the  road 
together,  and  left  him  at  home  alone.  When  they  were  well  out  of 
the  house,  the  first  thing  that  he  did  was  to  drive  the  oxen  out  on 
the  road,  whereupon  they  all  ran  home  again  to  the  man  from  whom 
he  had  stolen  them,  and  right  glad  was  the  husbandman  to  see 
them.  Then  he  brought  out  all  the  horses  the  robbers  had,  and 
loaded  them  with  the  most  valuable  things  which  he  could  find — 
vessels  of  gold  and  of  silver,  and  clothes  and  other  magnificent 


72  THE  MASTER   THIEF 

things — and  then  he  told  the  old  woman  to  greet  the  robbers  from 
him  and  thank  them  from  him,  and  say  that  he  had  gone  away, 
and  that  they  would  have  a  great  deal  of  difficulty  in  finding  him 
again,  and  with  that  he  drove  the  horses  out  of  the  courtyard. 
After  a  long,  long  time  he  came  to  the  road  on  which  he  was  travel- 
ling when  he  came  to  the  robbers.  And  when  he  had  got  very  near 
home,  and  was  in  sight  of  the  house  where  his  father  lived,  he  put 
on  a  uniform  which  he  had  found  among  the  things  he  had  taken 
from  the  robbers,  and  which  was  made  just  like  a  general's,  and 
drove  into  the  yard  just  as  if  he  were  a  great  man.  Then  he  entered 
the  house  and  asked  if  he  could  find  a  lodging  there. 

'  No,  indeed  you  can't ! '  said  his  father.  '  How  could  I  possibly 
be  able  to  lodge  such  a  great  gentleman  as  you  ?  It  is  all  that  I 
can  do  to  find  clothes  and  bedding  for  myself,  and  wretched  they 
are.' 

'  You  were  always  a  hard  man,'  said  the  youth,  '  and  hard  you 
are  still  if  you  refuse  to  let  your  own  son  come  into  your  house.' 

'  Are  you  rny  son  ?  '  said  the  man. 

'  Do  you  not  know  me  again  then  ?  '  said  the  youth. 

Then  he  recognised  him  and  said,  '  But  what  trade  have  you 
taken  to  that  has  made  you  such  a  great  man  in  so  short  a 
time  ?  ' 

'  Oh,  that  I  will  tell  you,'  answered  the  youth.  '  You  said  that  I 
might  take  to  anything  I  liked,  so  I  apprenticed  myself  to  some 
thieves  and  robbers,  and  now  I  have  served  my  time  and  have 
become  Master  Thief.' 

Now  the  Governor  of  the  province  lived  by  his  father's  cottage, 
and  this  Governor  had  such  a  large  house  and  so  much  money  that 
he  did  not  even  know  how  much  it  was,  and  he  had  a  daughter  too 
who  was  both  pretty  and  dainty,  and  good  and  wise.  So  the 
Master  Thief  was  determined  to  have  her  to  wife,  and  told  his 
father  that  he  was  to  go  to  the  Governor,  and  ask  for  his  daughter 
for  him.  '  If  he  asks  what  trade  I  follow,  you  may  say  that  I  am  a 
Master  Thief,'  said  he. 

' I  think  you  must  be  crazy,'  said  the  man,  'for  you  can't  be  in 
your  senses  if  you  think  of  anything  so  foolish.' 

'  You  must  go  to  the  Governor  and  beg  for  his  daughter — there 
is  no  help,'  said  the  youth. 

'  But  I  dare  not  go  to  the  Governor  and  say  this.  He  is  so  rich 
and  has  so  much  wealth  of  all  kinds,'  said  the  man. 

'  There  is  no  help  for  it,'  said  the  Master  Thief;  'go  you  must, 


THE   MASTEE    THI1.1  73 

whether  you  like  it  or  not.  If  I  can't  get  you  to  go  by  using  good 
words,  I  will  soon  make  you  go  with  bad  ones.' 

But  the  man  was  still  unwilling,  so  the  Master  Thief  followed 
him,  threatening  him  with  a  great  birch  stick,  till  he  went  weeping 
and  wailing  through  the  door  to  the  Governor  of  the  province. 

'  Now,  my  man,  and  what's  amiss  with  yoii  ?  '  said  the  Governor. 

So  he  told  him  that  he  had  three  sons  wrho  had  gone  away  one 
day,  and  how  he  had  given  them  permission  to  go  where  they 
chose,  and  take  to  whatsoever  work  they  fancied.  '  Now,'  he 
said,  '  the  youngest  of  them  has  come  home,  and  has  threatened 
me  till  I  have  come  to  you  to  ask  for  your  daughter  for  him,  and 
I  am  to  say  that  he  is  a  Master  Thief,'  and  again  the  man  fell 
a-weeping  and  lamenting. 

'  Console  yourself,  my  man,'  said  the  Governor,  laughing.  '  You 
may  tell  him  from  me  that  he  must  first  give  me  some  proof  of 
this.  If  he  can  steal  the  joint  off  the  spit  in  the  kitchen  on  Sunday, 
when  every  one  of  us  is  watching  it,  he  shall  have  my  daughter. 
Will  you  tell  him  that  ?  ' 

The  man  did  tell  him,  and  the  youth  thought  it  would  be  easy 
enough  to  do  it.  So  he  set  himself  to  work  to  catch  three  hares 
alive,  put  them  in  a  bag,  clad  himself  in  some  old  rags  so  that  he 
looked  so  poor  and  wretched  that  it  was  quite  pitiable  to  see  him, 
and  in  this  guise  on  Sunday  forenoon  he  sneaked  into  the  passage 
with  his  bag,  like  any  beggar  boy.  The  Governor  himself  and 
every  one  in  the  house  was  in  the  kitchen,  keeping  watch  over  the 
joint.  While  they  were  doing  this  the  youth  let  one  of  the  hares 
slip  out  of  his  bag,  and  off  it  set  and  began  to  run  round  the  yard. 

'  Just  look  at  that  hare,'  said  the  people  in  the  kitchen,  and 
wanted  to  go  out  and  catch  it. 

The  Governor  saw  it  too,  but  said,  '  Oh,  let  it  go  !  it's  no  use  to 
think  of  catching  a  hare  when  it's  running  away.' 

It  was  not  long  before  the  youth  let  another  hare  out,  and  the 
people  in  the  kitchen  saw  this  too,  and  thought  that  it  was  the  same. 
So  again  they  wanted  to  go  out  and  catch  it,  but  the  Governor  again 
told  them  that  it  was  of  no  use  to  try. 

Very  soon  afterwards,  however,  the  youth  let  slip  the  third 
hare,  and  it  set  off  and  ran  round  and  round  the  courtyard.  The 
people  in  the  kitchen  saw  this  too,  and  believed  that  it  was  still  the 
same  hare  that  was  running  about,  so  they  wanted  to  go  out  and 
catch  it. 

'  It's   a  remarkably  fine  hare  !  '  said  the   Governor.      '  Conie 


74 


THE   MASTER    THIEF 


and  let  us  see  if  we  can  get  hold  of  it.'  So  out  he  went,  and  the 
others  with  him,  and  away  went  the  hare,  and  they  after  it,  in  real 
earnest. 

In  the  meantime,  however,  the  Master  Thief  took  the  joint  and 
ran  off  with  it,  and  whether  the  Governor  got  any  roast  meat  for 
his  dinner  that  day  I  know  not,  but  I  know  that  he  had  no  roast 
hare,  though  he  chased  it  till  he  was  both  hot  and  tired. 

At  noon  came  the  Priest,  and  when  the  Governor  had  told  him 


of  the  trick  played  by  the  Master  Thief  there  was  no  end  to  the 
ridicule  he  cast  on  the  Governor. 

'  For  my  part,'  said  the  Priest,  '  I  can't  imagine  myself  being 
made  a  fool  of  by  such  a  fellow  as  that ! ' 

'  Well,  I  advise  you  to  be  careful,'  said  the  Governor,  '  for  he 
may  be  with  you  before  you  are  at  all  aware.' 

But  the  Priest  repeated  what  he  had  said,  and  mocked  the 
Governor  for  having  allowed  himself  to  be  made  such  a  fool  of. 


THE   MASTER    THIEF  15 

Later  in  the  afternoon  the  Master  Thief  came  and  wanted  to 
have  the  Governor's  daughter  as  he  had  promised. 

'  Yon  must  first  give  some  more  samples  of  your  skill,'  said  the 
Governor,  trying  to  speak  him  fair, '  for  what  you  did  to-day  was  no 
such  very  great  thing  after  all.  Couldn't  you  play  off  a  really  good 
trick  on  the  Priest  ?  for  he  is  sitting  inside  there  and  calling  me  a 
fool  for  having  let  myself  be  taken  in  by  such  a  fellow  as  you.' 

'  Well,  it  wouldn't  be  very  hard  to  do  that,'  said  the  Master 
Thief.  So  he  dressed  himself  up  like  a  bird,  and  threw  a  great  white 
sheet  over  himself;  broke  off  a  goose's  wings,  and  set  them  on  his 
back ;  and  in  this  attire  climbed  into  a  great  maple  tree  which  stood 
in  the  Priest's  garden.  So  when  the  Priest  returned  home  in  the 
evening  the  youth  began  to  cry,  '  Father  Lawrence !  Father 
Lawrence  !  '  for  the  Priest  was  called  Father  Lawrence. 

'  "Who  is  calling  me  ?  '  said  the  Priest. 

'  I  am  an  angel  sent  to  announce  to  thee  that  because  of  thy 
piety  thou  shalt  be  taken  away  alive  into  heaven,'  said  the  Master 
Thief.  '  Wilt  thou  hold  thyself  in  readiness  to  travel  away  next 
Monday  night  ?  for  then  will  I  come  and  fetch  thee,  and  bear  thee 
away  with  me  in  a  sack,  and  thou  must  lay  all  thy  gold  and  silver, 
and  whatsoever  thou  may 'st  possess  of  this  world's  wealth,  in  a  heap 
in  thy  best  parlour.' 

So  Father  Lawrence  fell  down  on  his  knees  before  the  angel 
and  thanked  him,  and  the  following  Sunday  he  preached  a  farewell 
sermon,  and  gave  out  that  an  angel  had  come  down  into  the  large 
maple  tree  in  his  garden,  and  had  announced  to  him  that,  because 
of  his  righteousness,  he  should  be  taken  up  alive  into  heaven,  and 
as  he  thus  preached  and  told  them  this  everyone  in  the  church, 
old  or  young,  wept. 

On  Monday  night  the  Master  Thief  once  more  came  as  an  angel, 
and  before  the  Priest  was  put  into  the  sack  he  fell  on  his  knees  and 
thanked  him ;  but  no  sooner  was  the  Priest  safely  inside  it  than  the 
Master  Thief  began  to  drag  him  away  over  stocks  and  stones. 

'  Oh  !  oh  ! '  cried  the  Priest  in  the  sack.  '  Where  are  you  taking 
me?  ' 

'  This  is  the  way  to  heaven.  The  way  to  heaven  is  not  an  easy 
one,'  said  the  Master  Thief,  and  dragged  him  along  till  he  all  but 
killed  him. 

At  last  he  flung  him  into  the  Governor's  goose-house,  and  the 
geese,  began  to  hiss  and  peck  at  him,  till  he  felt  more  dead  than 
alive. 


76  THE  MASTER    THIEF 

'  Oh  !  oh  !  oh  !     Where  am  I  now  ?  '  asked  the  Priest. 

'Now  \ou  are  in  Purgatory,'  said  the  Master  Thief,  and  off  he 
went  and  took  the  gold  and  the  silver  and  all  the  precious  things 
which  the  Priest  had  laid  together  in  his  best  parlour. 

Next  morning,  when  the  goose-girl  came  to  let  out  the  geese,  she 
heard  the  Priest  bemoaning  himself  as  he  lay  in  the  sack  in  the 
goose-house. 

'  Oh,  heavens  !  who  is  that,  and  what  ails  you  ?  '  said  she. 

'  Oh,'  said  the  Priest,  '  if  you  are  an  angel  from  heaven  do  let 
me  out  and  let  me  go  back  to  earth  again,  for  no  place  was  ever  so 
bad  as  this — the  little  fiends  nip  me  so  with  their  tongs.' 

'  I  am  no  angel,'  said  the  girl,  and  helped  the  Priest  out  of  the 
sack.  '  I  only  look  after  the  Governor's  geese,  that's  what  I  do, 
and  they  are  the  little  fiends  which  have  pinched  your  reverence.' 

'  This  is  the  Master  Thief's  doing !  Oh,  my  gold  and  my  silver 
and  my  best  clothes  ! '  shrieked  the  Priest,  and,  wild  with  rage,  he 
ran  home  so  fast  that  the  goose-girl  thought  he  had  suddenly  gone 
mad. 

When  the  Governor  learnt  what  had  happened  to  the  Priest  he 
laughed  till  he  nearly  killed  himself,  but  when  the  Master  Thief 
came  and  wanted  to  have  his  datighter  according  to  promise,  he 
once  more  gave  him  nothing  but  fine  words,  and  said,  '  You  must 
give  me  one  more  proof  of  your  skill,  so  that  I  can  really  j ml g<> 
of  your  worth.  I  have  twelve  horses  in  my  stable,  and  I  will  put 
twelve  stable  boys  in  it,  one  on  each  horse.  If  you  are  clever 
enough  to  steal  the  horses  from  under  them,  I  will  see  what  I  can 
do  for  you.' 

'  What  you  set  me  to  do  can- be  done,'  said  the  Master  Thief, '  but 
am  I  certain  to  get  your  daughter  when  it  is  ?  ' 

'  Yes ;  if  you  can  do  that  I  will  do  my  best  for  you,'  said  the 
Governor. 

So  the  Master  Thief  went  to  a  shop,  and  bought  enough  brandy 
to  fill  two  pocket  flasks,  and  he  put  a  sleeping  drink  into  one  of 
these,  but  into  the  other  he  poured  brandy  only.  Then  he  engaged 
eleven  men  to  he  that  night  in  hiding  behind  the  Governor's 
stable.  After  this,  by  fair  words  and  good  payment,  he  borrowed  ;i 
ragged  gown  and  a  jerkin  from  an  aged  woman,  and  then,  with  a 
staff  in  his  hand  and  a  poke  on  his  back,  he  hobbled  off  as  evening 
came  on  towards  the  Governor's  stable.  The  stable  boys  were  just 
watering  the  horses  for  the  night,  and  it  was  quite  as  much  as  they 
could  do  to  attend  to  that. 


FATHER    LAWRENCE,    CONCEIVING    HIMSELF    TO    BE    ADDRESSED    BY    AN 
ANGEL,    FALLS    ON    HIS    KNEES    BEFORE    HIM. 


THE   MASTER    THII-.l'  77 

'  What  on  earth  do  you  want  here  ?  '  said  one  of  them  to  the 
old  woman. 

'  Oh  dear  !  oh  dear !  How  cold  it  is  ! '  she  said,  sobbing,  and 
shivering  with  cold.  '  Oh  dear  !  oh  dear  !  it's  cold  enough  to  freeze 
a  poor  old  body  to  death  !  '  and  she  shivered  and  shook  again,  and 
said,  '  For  heaven's  sake  give  me  leave  to  stay  here  and  sit  just  in- 
side the  stable  door.' 

'  You  will  get  nothing  of  the  kind  !  Be  off  this  moment !  If  the 
Governor  were  to  catch  sight  of  you  here,  he  would  lead  us  a  pretty 
dance,'  said  one. 

'  Oh  !  what  a  poor  helpless  old  creature  !  '  said  another,  who  felt 
sorry  for  her.  '  That  poor  old  woman  can  do  no  harm  to  anyone. 
She  may  sit  there  and  welcome.' 

The  rest  of  them  thought  that  she  ought  not  to  stay,  but  while 
they  were  disputing  about  this  and  looking  after  the  horses,  she 
crept  farther  and  farther  into  the  stable,  and  at  last  sat  down  behind 
the  door,  and  when  once  she  was  inside  no  one  took  any  more  notice 
of  her. 

As  the  night  wore  on  the  stable  boys  found  it  rather  cold  work 
to  sit  still  on  horseback. 

'  Hutetu  !  But  it  is  fearfully  cold  ! '  said  one,  and  began  to  beat 
his  arms  backwards  and  forwards  across  his  breast. 

'  Yes,  I  am  so  cold  that  my  teeth  are  chattering,'  said  another. 

'  If  one  had  but  a  little  tobacco,'  said  a  third. 

Well,  one  of  them  had  a  little,  so  they  shared  it  among  them, 
though  there  was  very  little  for  each  man,  but  they  chewed  it.  This 
wa-  some  help  to  them,  but  very  soon  they  were  just  as  cold  as  before. 

'  Hutetu  !  '  said  one  of  them,  shivering  again. 

'  Hutetu  !  '  said  the  old  woman,  gnashing  her  teeth  together  till 
they  chattered  inside  her  mouth  ;  and  then  she  got  out  the  flask 
which  contained  nothing  but  brandy,  and  her  hands  trembled  so 
that  she  shook  the  bottle  about,  and  when  she  drank  it  made  a  great 
gulp  in  her  throat. 

•  What  is  that  you  have  in  your  flask,  old  woman  ?  '  asked  one 
of  the  stable  boy.-. 

'  Oh,  it's  only  a  little  drop  of  brandy,  your  honour,'  she  said. 

'  Brandy  !  "What  !  Let  me  have  a  drop  !  Let  me  have  a  drop  !  ' 
screamed  all  the  twelve  at  once. 

'  Oh,  but  what  I  have  is  so  little,'  whimpered  the  old  woman. 
'  It  will  not  even  wet  your  mouths.' 

But  they  were  determined  to  have  it,  and  there  was  nothing  to 


78  THE  MASTER   THIEF 

be  done  but  give  it ;  so  she  took  out  the  flask  with  the  sleeping  drink 
-and  put  it  to  the  lips  of  the  first  of  them  ;  and  now  she  shook  no 
more,  but  guided  the  flask  so  that  each  of  them  got  just  as  much  as 
he  ought,  and  the  twelfth  had  not  done  drinking  before  the  first 
was  already  sitting  snoring.  Then  the  Master  Thief  flung  off  his 
beggar's  rags,  and  took  one  stable  boy  after  the  other  and  gently 
set  him  astride  on  the  partitions  which  divided  the  stalls,  and  then 
he  called  his  eleven  men  who  were  waiting  outside,  and  they  rode 
off  with  the  Governor's  horses. 

In  the  moTning  when  the  Governor  came  to  look  after  his  stable 
boys  they  were  just  beginning  to  come  to  again.  They  were  driv- 
ing their  spurs  into  the  partition  till  the  splinters  flew  about,  and 
some  of  the  boys  fell  off,  and  some  still  hung  on  and  sat  looking  like 
fools.  '  Ah,  well,'  said  the  Governor,  '  it  is  easy  to  see  who  has  been 
here  ;  but  what  a  worthless  set  of  fellows  you  must  be  to  sit  here  and 
let  the  Master  Thief  steal  the  horses  from  under  you  ! '  And  they 
all  got  a  beating  for  not  having  kept  watch  better. 

Later  in  the  day  the  Master  Thief  came  and  related  what  he  had 
done,  and  wanted  to  have  the  Governor's  daughter  as  had  been  pro- 
mised. But  the  Governor  gave  him  a  hundred  dollars,  and  said  that 
he  must  do  something  that  was  better  still. 

'  Do  you  think  you  can  steal  my  horse  from  under  me  when  I  am 
out  riding  on  it  ?  '  said  he. 

'  Well,  it  might  be  done,'  said  the  Master  Thief,  '  if  I  were 
absolutely  certain  that  I  should  get  your  daughter.' 

So  the  Governor  said  that  he  would  see  what  he  could  do,  and 
then  he  said  that  on  a  certain  day  he  would  ride  out  to  a  great 
common  where  they  drilled  the  soldiers. 

So  the  Master  Thief  immediately  got  hold  of  an  old  worn-out 
mare,  and  set  himself  to  work  to  make  a  collar  for  it  of  green  withies 
and  branches  of  broom ;  boxight  a  shabby  old  cart  and  a  great  cask, 
and  then  he  told  a  poor  old  beggar  woman  that  he  would  give  her 
ten  dollars  if  she  would  get  into  the  cask  and  keep  her  mouth  wide- 
open  beneath  the  tap-hole,  into  which  he  was  going  to  stick  his 
finger.  No  harm  should  happen  to  her,  he  said  ;  she  should  only  be 
driven  about  a  little,  and  if  he  took  his  finger  out  more  than  once, 
she  should  have  ten  dollars  more.  Then  he  dressed  himself  in  rags, 
dyed  himself  with  soot,  and  put  on  a  wig  and  a  great  beard  of  goat's 
hair,  so  that  it  was  impossible  to  recognise  him,  and  went  to  the 
parade  ground,  where  the  Governor  had  already  been  riding  about 
a  long  time. 


79 

When  the  Master  Thief  got  there  the  mare  went  along  so  slowly 
and  quietly  that  the  cart  hardly  seemed  to  move  from  the  spot. 
The  mare  pulled  it  a  little  forward,  and  then  a  little  back,  and  then 
it  stopped  quite  short.  Then  the  mare  pulled  a  little  forward  again, 
and  it  moved  with  such  difficulty  that  the  Governor  had  not  the  least 
idea  that  this  was  the  Master  Thief.  He  rode  straight  up  to  him, 
and  asked  if  he  had  seen  anyone  hiding  anywhere  about  in  a  wood 
that  was  close  by. 

'  No,'  said  the  man,  '  that  have  I  not.' 

'  Hark  you,'  said  the  Governor.  '  If  you  will  ride  into  that  wood, 


and  search  it  carefully  to  see  if  you  can  light  upon  a  fellow  who  is 
hiding  in  there,  you  shall  have  the  loan  of  my  horse  and  a  good 
present  of  money  for  your  trouble.' 

'  I  am  not  sure  that  I  can  do  it,'  said  the  man,  'for  I  have  to  go 
to  a  wedding  with  this  cask  of  mead  which  I  have  been  to  fetch, 
and  the  tap  has  fallen  out  on  the  waj7,  so  now  I  have  to  keep  my 
finger  in  the  tap-hole  as  I  drive.' 

'  Oh,  just  ride  off,'  said  the  Governor,  '  and  I  will  look  after  the 
cask  and  the  horse  too.' 

So  the  man  said  that  if  he  would  do  that  he  would  go,  but  he 


80  THE  MASTER   THIEF 

begged  the  Governor  to  be  very  careful  to  put  his  finger  into  the 
tap-hole  the  moment  he  took  his  out. 

So  the  Governor  said  that  he  would  do  his  very  best,  and  the 
Master  Thief  got  on  the  Governor's  horse. 

But  time  passed,  and  it  grew  later  and  later,  and  still  the  man 
did  not  come  back,  and  at  last  the  Governor  grew  so  weary  of  keep- 
ing his  finger  in  the  tap-hole  that  he  took  it  oiit. 

'  Now  I  shall  have  ten  dollars  more  !  '  cried  the  old  woman 
inside  the  cask  ;  so  he  soon  saw  what  kind  of  mead  it  was,  and  set 
out  homewards.  "When  he  had  gone  a  very  little  way  he  met  his 
servant  bringing  him  the  horse,  for  the  Master  Thief  had  already 
taken  it  home. 

The  following  day  he  went  to  the  Governor  and  wanted  to  have 
his  daughter  according  to  promise.  But  the  Governor  again  put 
him  off  with  fine  words,  and  only  gave  him  three  hundred  dollars, 
saying  that  he  must  do  one  more  masterpiece  of  skill,  and  if  he 
were  but  able  to  do  that  he  should  have  her. 

Well,  the  Master  Thief  thought  he  might  if  he  could  hear  what 
it  was. 

'  Do  you  think  you  can"  steal  the  sheet  off  our  bed,  and  my  wife's 
night-gown  ?  '  said  the  Governor. 

'  That  is  by  no  means  impossible,'  said  the  Master  Thief.  '  I 
only  wish  I  could  get  your  daughter  as  easily.' 

So  late  at  night  the  Master  Thief  went  and  cut  down  a  thief 
who  was  hanging  on  the  galJows,  laid  him  on  his  own  shoulders, 
and  took  him  away  with  him.  Then  he  got  hold  of  a  long  ladder, 
set  it  up  against  the  Governor's  bedroom  window,  and  climbed 
up  and  moved  the  dead  man's  head  up  and  down,  just  as  if  he  were 
some  one  who  was  standing  outside  and  peeping  in. 

'  There's  the  Master  Thief,  mother  ! '  said  the  Governor,  nudging 
his  wife.  '  Now  I'll  just  shoot  him,  that  I  will ! ' 

So  he  took  up  a  rifle  which  he  had  laid  at  his  bedside. 

'  Oh  no,  you  must  not  do  that,'  said  his  wife;  'you  yourself 
arranged  that  he  was  to  come  here.' 

'  Yes,  mother,  I  will  shoot  him,'  said  he,  and  lay  there  aiming, 
and  then  aiming  again,  for  no  sooner  was  the  head  up  and  he  caught 
sight  of  it  than  it  was  gone  again.  At  last  he  got  a  chance  and 
fired,  and  the  dead  body  fell  with  a  loud  thud  to  the  ground,  and 
down  went  the  Master  Thief  too,  as  fast  as  he  could. 

'  Well,'  said  the  Governor,  '  I  certainly  am  the  chief  man  about 
here,  but  people  soon  begin  to  talk,  and  it  would  be  very  unpleasant 


THE  MASTER    THIEF  81 

if  they  were  to  see  this  dead  body ;  the  best  thing  that  I  can  do  is 
to  go  out  and  bury  him.' 

'  Just  do  what  you  think  best,  father,'  said  his  wife. 

So  the  Governor  got  up  and  went  downstairs,  and  as  soon  as  he 
had  gone  out  through  the  door,  the  Master  Thief  stole  in  and  went 
straight  upstairs  to  the  woman. 

'  Well,  father  dear,'  said  she,  for  she  thought  it  was  her  husband. 
'  Have  you  got  done  already  ?  ' 

'  Oh  yes,  I  only  put  him  into  a  hole,'  said  he,  '  and  raked  a  little 
earth  over  him ;  that's  all  I  have  been  able  to  do  to-night,  for  it  is 
fearful  weather  outside.  I  will  bury  him  better  afterwards,  but 
just  let  me  have  the  sheet  to  wipe  myself  with,  for  he  was  bleeding, 
and  I  have  got  covered  with  blood  with  carrying  him.' 

So  she  gave  him  the  sheet. 

'  You  will  have  to  let  me  have  your  night-gown  too,'  he  said, 
'  for  I  begin  to  see  that  the  sheet  won't  be  enough.' 

Then  she  gave  him  her  night-gown,  but  just  then  it  came  into 
his  head  that  he  had  forgotten  to  lock  the  door,  and  he  was  forced 
to  go  downstairs  and  do  it  before  he  could  lie  down  in  bed  again. 
So  off  he  went  with  the  sheet,  and  the  night-gown  too. 

An  hour  later  the  real  Governor  returned. 

'  Well,  what  a  time  it  has  taken  to  lock  the  house  door,  father  ! ' 
said  his  wife,  '  and  what  have  you  done  with  the  sheet  and  the 
night-gown  ?  ' 

'  What  do  you  mean  ?  '  asked  the  Governor. 

'  Oh,  I  am  asking  you  what  you  have  done  with  the  night-gown 
and  sheet  that  you  got  to  wipe  the  blood  off  yourself  with,'  said  she. 

'  Good  heavens  ! '  said  the  Governor,  '  has  he  actually  got  the 
better  of  me  again  ?  ' 

^'lien  day  came  the  Master  Thief  came  too,  and  wanted  to 
have  the  Governor's  daughter  as  had  been  promised,  and  the 
Governor  dared  do  no  otherwise  than  give  her  to  him,  and  much 
money  besides,  for  he  feared  that  if  he  did  not  the  Master  Thief 
might  steal  the  very  eyes  out  of  his  head,  and  that  he  himself  would 
be  ill  spoken  of  by  all  men.  The  Master  Thief  lived  well  and  happily 
from  that  time  forth,  and  whether  he  ever  stole  any  more  or  not  I 
cannot  tell  you,  but  if  he  did  it  was  but  for  pastime. 

1  From  P.  C.  Asbjornseii. 


B. 


82 


BROTHER  AND  SISTER 

"DBOTHER  took  sister  by  the  hand  and  said  :  '  Look  here  ;  we 
-L'  haven't  had  one  single  happy  hour  since  our  mother  died. 
That  stepmother  of  ours  beats  us  regularly  every  day,  and  if  we 
dare  go  near  her  she  kicks  us  away.  We  never  get  anything  but 
hard  dry  crusts  to  eat — why,  the  dog  under  the  table  is  better  off 
than  we  are.  She  does  throw  him  a  good  morsel  or  two  now  and 
then.  Oh  dear  !  if  our  own  dear  mother  only  knew  all  about  it ! 
Come  along,  and  let  us  go  forth  into  the  wide  world  together.' 

So  off  they  started  through  fields  and  meadows,  over  hedges  and 
ditches,  and  walked  the  whole  day  long,  and  when  it  rained  sister 
said : 

'  Heaven  and  our  hearts  are  weeping  together.' 

Towards  evening  they  came  to  a  large  forest,  and  were  so  tired 
out  with  hunger  and  their  long  walk,  as  well  as  all  their  trouble, 
that  they  crept  into  a  hollow  tree  and  soon  fell  fast  asleep. 

Next  morning,  when  they  woke  lip,  the  sun  was  already  high  in 
the  heavens  and  was  shining  down  bright  and  warm  into  the  tree. 
Then  said  brother : 

'  I'm  so  thirsty,  sister ;  if  I  did  but  know  where  to  find  a  little 
stream,  I'd  go  and  have  a  drink.  I  do  believe  I  hear  one.'  He 
jumped  up,  took  sister  by  the  hand,  and  they  set  off  to  hunt  for  the 
brook. 

Now  their  cruel  stepmother  was  in  reality  a  witch,  and  she 
knew  perfectly  well  that  the  two  children  had  run  away.  She  had 
crept  secretly  after  them,  and  had  cast  her  spells  over  all  the 
streams  in  the  forest. 

Presently  the  children  found  a  little  brook  dancing  and  glitter- 
ing over  the  stones,  and  brother  was  eager  to  drink  of  it,  but  as  it 
rushed  past  sister  heard  it  murmuring  : 

'  Who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a  tiger !  who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a 
tiger ! ' 


83 

So  she  cried  out,  '  Oh!  dear  brother,  pray  don't  drink,  or  you'll 
be  turned  into  a  wild  beast  and  tear  me  to  pieces.' 

Brother  was  dreadfully  thirsty,  but  he  did  not  drink. 

'  Very  well,'  said  he,  '  I'll  wait  till  we  corne  to  the  next  spring.' 

"NYhen  they  came  to  the  second  brook,  sister  heard  it  repeating 
too  : 

'  Who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a  wolf !  who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a 
wolf ! ' 

And  she  cried,  '  Oh  !  brother,  pray  don't  drink  here  either,  or 
you'll  be  turned  into  a  wolf  and  eat  me  up.' 


Again  brother  did  not  drink,  but  he  said : 

'  Well,  I'll  wait  a  little  longer  till  we  reach  the  next  stream,  but 
then,  whatever  you  may  say,  I  really  must  drink,  for  I  can  bear 
this  thirst  no  longer.' 

And  when  they  got  to  the  third  brook,  sister  heard  it  say  as  it 
rushed  past : 

•  Who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a  roe !  who  drinks  of  me  will  be  a 
roe ! ' 

And  she  begged,  '  Ah  !  brother,  don't  drink  yet,  or  you'll  be- 
come a  roe  and  run  away  from  me.' 

G2 


84  BE  OTHER  AND   SISTER 

But  her  brother  was  already  kneeling  by  the  brook  and  bending 
over  it  to  drink,  and,  sure  enough,  no  sooner  had  his  lips  touched 
the  water  than  he  fell  on  the  grass  transformed  into  a  little  Roe- 
buck. 

Sister  cried  bitterly  over  her  poor  bewitched  brother,  and  the  little 
Roe  wept  too,  and  sat  sadly  by  her  side.  At  last  the  girl  said  : 

'  Never  mind,  dear  little  fawn,  I  will  never  forsake  you,'  and  she 
took  off  her  golden  garter  and  tied  it  round  the  Hoe's  neck. 

Then  she  plucked  rushes  and  plaited  a  soft  cord  of  them,  which 
she  fastened  to  the  collar.  When  she  had  done  this  she  led  the 
Roe  farther  and  farther,  right  into  the  depths  of  the  forest. 

After  they  had  gone  a  long,  long  way  they  came  to  a  little  house, 
and  when  the  girl  looked  into  it  she  found  it  was  quite  empty,  and 
she  thought  'perhaps  we  might  stay  and  live  here.' 

So  she  hunted  lip  leaves  and  moss  to  make  a  soft  bed  for  the 
little  Roe,  and  every  morning  and  evening  she  went  out  and  gathered 
roots,  nuts,  and  berries  for  herself,  and  tender  young  grass  for  the 
fawn.  And  he  fed  from  her  hand,  and  played  round  her  and  seemed 
quite  happy.  In  the  evening,  when  sister  was  tired,  she  said  her 
prayers  and  then  laid  her  head  on  the  fawn's  back  and  fell  sound 
asleep  with  it  as  a  pillow.  And  if  brother  had  but  kept  his  natural 
form,  really  it  would  have  been  a  most  delightful  kind  of  life. 

They  had  been  living  for  some  time  in  the  forest  in  this  way, 
when  it  came  to  pass  that  the  King  of  that  country  had  a  great 
hunt  through  the  woods.  Then  the  whole  forest  rang  with  such  a 
blowing  of  horns,  baying  of  dogs,  and  joj'ful  cries  of  huntsmen,  that 
the  little  Roe  heard  it  and  longed  to  join  in  too. 

'  All ! '  said  he  to  sister,  '  do  let  me  go  off  to  the  hunt !  I  can't 
keep  still  any  longer.' 

And  he  begged  and  prayed  till  at  last  she  consented. 

'  But,'  said  she,  '  mind  you  come  back  in  the  evening.  I  shall 
lock  my  door  fast  for  fear  of  those  wild  huntsmen ;  so,  to  make 
sure  of  my  knowing  you,  knock  at  the  door  and  say,  "  My  sister 
dear,  open ;  I'm  here."  If  you  don't  speak  I  shan't  open  the  door.' 

So  off  sprang  the  little  Roe,  and  he  felt  quite  well  and  happy  in 
the  free  open  air. 

The  King  and  his  huntsmen  soon  saw  the  beautiful  creature  and 
started  in  pursuit,  but  they  could  not  come  up  with  it,  and  whenever 
they  thought  they  were  sure  to  catch  it,  it  bounded  off  to  one  side 
into  the  bushes  and  disappeared.  When  night  came  on  it  ran  home, 
and  knocking  at  the  door  of  the  little  house  cried  : 


BROTHER  AND   SISTER  85 

'  My  sister  dear,  open ;  I'm  here.'  The  door  opened,  and  he  ran 
in  and  rested  all  night  on  his  soft  mossy  bed. 

Next  morning  the  hunt  began  again,  and  as  soon  as  the  little 
Roe  heard  the  horns  and  the  '  Ho  !  ho  ! '  of  the  huntsmen,  he  could 
not  rest  another  moment,  and  said  : 

'  Sister,  open  the  door,  I  must  get  out.' 

So  sister  opened  the  door  and  said,  '  Now  mind  and  get  back  by 
nightfall,  and  say  your  little  rhj'ine.' 

As  soon  as  the  King  and  his  huntsmen  saw  the  Roe  with  the 
golden  collar  they  all  rode  off  after  it,  but  it  was  far  too  quick  and 
nimble  for  them.  This  went  on  all  day,  but  as  evening  came  on 
the  huntsmen  had  gradually  encircled  the  Roe,  and  one  of  them 
wounded  it  slightly  in  the  foot,  so  tha  t  it  limped  and  ran  off  slowly. 

Then  the  huntsman  stole  after  it  as  far  as  the  little  house,  and 
heard  it  call  out,  '  My  sister  dear,  open ;  I'm  here,'  and  he  saw  the 
door  open  and  close  immediately  the  fawn  had  run  in. 

The  huntsman  remembered  all  this  carefully,  and  went  off 
straight  to  the  King  and  told  him  all  he  had  seen  and  heard. 

'  To-morrow  we  will  hunt  again,'  said  the  King. 

Poor  sister  was  terribly  frightened  when  she  saw  how  her  little 
Fawn  had  been  wounded.  She  washed  off  the  blood,  bound  up  the 
injured  foot  with  herbs,  and  said:  '  Now,  dear,  go  and  lie  down  and 
rest,  so  that  your  wound  may  heal.' 

The  wound  was  really  so  slight  that  it  was  quite  well  next  dajr, 
and  the  little  Roe  did  not  feel  it  at  all.  No  sooner  did  it  hear  the 
sounds  of  hunting  in  the  forest  than  it  cried  : 

'  I  can't  stand  this,  I  must  be  there  too ;  I'll  take  care  they 
shan't  catch  me.' 

Sister  began  to  cry,  and  said,  '  They  are  certain  to  kill  you,  and 
then  I  shall  be  left  all  alone  in  the  forest  and  forsaken  by  everyone. 
I  can't  and  won't  let  you  out.' 

'  Then  I  shall  die  of  grief,'  replied  the  Roe,  '  for  when  I  hear  that 
horn  I  feel  as  if  I  must  jump  right  out  of  my  skin.' 

So  at  last,  when  sister  found  there  was  nothing  else  to  be  done, 
she  opened  the  door  with  a  heavy  heart,  and  the  Roe  darted  forth 
full  of  glee  and  health  into  the  forest. 

As  soon  as  the  King  saw  the  Roe,  he  said  to  his  huntsman, '  Now 
then,  give  chase  to  it  all  day  till  evening,  but  mind  and  be  careful 
not  to  hurt  it.' 

When  the  sun  had  set  the  King  said  to  his  huntsman, '  Now  come 
and  show  me  the  little  house  in  the  wood.' 


,86  BROTHER   AND   SISTER 

And  when  he  got  to  the  house  he  knocked  at  the  door  and  said, 
1  My  sister  dear,  open ;  I'm  here.'  Then  the  door  opened  and  the 
King  walked  in,  and  there  stood  the  loveliest  maiden  he  had  ever  seen. 

The  girl  was  much  startled  when  instead  of  the  little  Roe  she 
expected  she  saw  a  man  with  a  gold  crown  on  his  head  walk  in. 
But  the  King  looked  kindly  at  her,  held  out  his  hand,  and  said,  '  Will 
you  come  with  me  to  my  castle  and  be  my  dear  wife  ?  ' 

4  Oh  yes ! '  replied  the  maiden,  '  but  you  must  let  my  Roe  come 
too.  I  could  not  possibly  forsake  it.' 

'  It  shall  stay  with  you  as  long  as  you  live,  and  shall  want  for 
nothing,'  the  King  promised. 

In  the  meantime  the  Roe  came  bounding  in,  and  sister  tied  the 
rush  cord  once  more  to  its  collar,  took  the  end  in  her  hand,  and  so 
they  left  the  little  house  in  the  forest  together. 

The  King  lifted  the  lonely  maiden  on  to  his  horse,  and  led  her  to 
his  castle,  where  the  wedding  was  celebrated  with  the  greatest 
splendour.  The  Roe  was  petted  and  caressed,  and  ran  about  at  will 
in  the  palace  gardens. 

Now  all  this  time  the  wicked  stepmother,  who  had  been  the 
cause  of  these  poor  children's  misfortunes  and  trying  adventures, 
was  feeling  fully  persuaded  that  sister  had  been  torn  to  pieces  by 
wild  beasts,  and  brother  shot  to  death  in  the  shape  of  a  Roe.  When 
she  heard  how  happy  and  prosperous  they  were,  her  heart  was  filled 
with  envy  and  hatred,  and  she  could  think  of  nothing  but  how  to 
bring  some  fresh  misfortune  on  them.  Her  own  daughter,  who  was 
ae  hideous  as  night  and  had  only  one  eye,  reproached  her  by  saying, 
'  It  is  I  who  ought  to  have  had  this  good  luck  and  been  Queen.' 

'  Be  quiet,  will  you,'  said  the  old  woman ;  '  when  the  time  comes 
I  shall  be  at  hand.' 

Now  after  some  time  it  happened  one  day  when  the  King  was 
out  hunting  that  the  Queen  gave  birth  to  a  beautiful  little  boy. 
The  old  witch  thought  here  was  a  good  chance  for  her  ;  so  she  took 
the  form  of  the  lady  in  waiting,  and,  hurrying  into  the  room  where 
the  Queen  lay  in  her  bed,  called  out,  '  The  bath  is  quite  ready ;  it  will 
help  to  make  you  strong  again.  Come,  let  us  be  quick,  for  fear  the 
water  should  get  cold.'  Her  daughter  was  at  hand,  too,  and  between 
them  they  carried  the  Queen,  who  was  still  very  weak,  into  the 
bath-room  and  laid  her  in  the  bath  ;  then  they  locked  the  door  and 
ran  away. 

They  took  care  beforehand  to  make  a  bla/ing  hot  fire  under  the 
bath,  so  that  the  lovely  young  Queen  might  be  suffocated. 


BROTHER  AND   SISTER 


87 


As  soon  as  they  were  sure  this  was  the  case,  the  old  witch  tied  a 
cap  on  her  daiighter's  head  and  laid  her  in  the  Queen's  bed.  She 
managed,  too,  to  make  her  figure  and  general  appearance  look  like 
the  Queen's,  but  even  her  power  could  not  restore  the  eye  she  had 
lost ;  so  she  made  her  lie  on  the  side  of  the  missing  eye,  in  order  to 
prevent  the  King's  noticing  anything. 

In  the  evening,  when  the  King  came  home  and  heard  the  news 
of  his  son's  birth,  he 
was  full  of  delight,  and 
insisted  on  going  at 
once  to  his  dear  wife's 
bedside  to  see  how  she 
was  getting  on.  But 
the  old  witch  cried  out, 
'  Take  care  and  keep 
the  curtains  drawn ; 
don't  let  the  light  get 
into  the  Queen's  eyes ; 
she  must  be  kept  per- 
fectly quiet.'  So  the 
King  went  away  and 
never  knew  that  it  was 
a  false  Queen  who  lay 
in  the  bed. 

"When  midnight 
came  and  everyone  in 
the  palace  was  sound 
asleep,  the  nurse  who 
alone  watched  by  the 
baby's  cradle  in  the 
nursery  saw  the  door 
open  gently,  and  who 
should  come  in  but  the 

real  Queen.  She  lifted  the  child  from  its  cradle,  laid  it  on  her  arm, 
and  nursed  it  for  some  time.  Then  she  carefully  shook  up  the  pillows 
of  the  little  bed,  laid  the  baby  down  and  tucked  the  coverlet  in  all 
round  him.  She  did  not  forget  the  little  Roe  either,  but  went  to  the 
corner  where  it  lay,  and  gently  stroked  its  back.  Then  she  silently 
left  the  room,  and  next  morning  when  the  nurse  asked  the  sentries 
if  they  had  seen  any  one  go  into  the  castle  that  night,  they  all  said, 
'  No,  we  saw  no  one  at  all.' 


88  BROTHER  AND   SISTER 

For  many  nights  the  Queen  came  in  the  same  way,  but  she  never 
spoke  a  word,  and  the  nurse  was  too  frightened  to  say  anything 
about  her  visits. 

After  some  little  time  had  elapsed  the  Queen  spoke  one  night, 
and  said : 

'  Is  my  child  well  ?    Is  my  Eoe  well  ? 
I'll  come  back  twice  and  then  farewell.' 

The  nurse  made  no  answer,  hut  as  soon  as  the  Queen  had  dis- 
appeared she  went  to  the  King  and  told  him  all.  The  King  exclaimed, 
'  Good  heavens  !  what  do  you  say  ?  I  will  watch  myself  to-night 
by  the  child's  bed.' 

"When  the  evening  came  he  went  to  the  nursery,  and  at  midnight 
the  Queen  appeared  and  said : 

'  Is  my  child  well  ?    Is  my  Eoe  well  ? 
I'll  come  back  once  and  then  farewell.' 

And  she  nursed  and  petted  the  child  as  usual  before  she  dis- 
appeared. The  King  dared  not  trust  himself  to  speak  to  her,  but 
the  following  night  he  kept  watch  again. 

That  night  when  the  Queen  came  she  said  : 

'  Is  my  child  well  ?    Is  rny  Eoe  well  ? 
I've  come  this  once,  and  now  farewell.' 

Then  the  King  could  restrain  himself  no  longer,  but  sprang  to 
her  side  and  cried,  '  You  can  be  no  one  but  my  dear  wife !  ' 

'  Yes,'  said  she, '  I  am  your  dear  wife  ! '  and  in  the  same  moment 
she  was  restored  to  life,  and  was  as  fresh  and  well  and  rosy  as  ever. 
Then  she  told  the  King  all  the  cruel  things  the  wicked  witch  and 
her  daughter  had  done.  The  King  had  them  both  arrested  at  once 
and  brought  to  trial,  and  they  were  condemned  to  death.  The 
daughter  was  led  into  the  forest,  where  the  wild  beasts  tore  her  to 
pieces,  and  the  old  witch  was  burnt  at  the  stake. 

As  soon  as  she  was  reduced  to  ashes  the  spell  was  taken  off  the 
little  Eoe,  and  he  was  restored  to  his  natural  shape  once  more,  and 
so  brother  and  sister  lived  happily  ever  after.1 

1  Grimm. 


89 


PRINCESS  ROSETTE 


OXCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  and  Queen  who  had  two 
beautiful  sons  and  one  little  daughter,  who  was  so  pretty  that 
no  one  who  saw  her  could  help  loving  her.  "NYlien  it  was  time  for 
the  christening  of  the  Princess,  the  Queen — as  she  always  did — 
sent  for  all  the  fairies  to  be  present  at  the  ceremony,  and  afterwards 
invited  them  to  a  splendid  banquet. 

When  it  was  over,  and  they  were  preparing  to  go  away,  the 
Queen  said  to  them  : 

'  Do  not  forget  your  usual  good  custom.  Tell  me  what  is  going 
to  happen  to  Rosette.' 

For  that  was  the  name  they  had  given  the  Princess. 

But  the  fairies  said  they  had  left  their  book  of  magic  at  home, 
and  they  would  come  another  day  and  tell  her. 

'  Ah  !  '  said  the  Queen,  '  I  know  very  well  what  that  means — you 
have  nothing  good  to  say  ;  but  at  least  I  beg  that  you  will  not  hide 
anything  from  me.' 

So,  after  a  great  deal  of  persuasion,  they  said : 

•  Madam,  we  fear  that  Rosette  may  be  the  cause  of  great  mis- 
fortunes to  her  brothers ;  they  may  even  meet  with  their  death 
through  her  ;  that  is  all  we  have  been  able  to  foresee  about  your  dear 
little  daughter.  We  are  very  sorry  to  have  nothing  better  to  tell  you.' 

Then  they  went  away,  leaving  the  Queen  very  sad,  so  sad  that 
the  King  noticed  it,  and  asked  her  what  was  the  matter. 

The  Queen  said  that  she  had  been  sitting  too  near  the  fire,  and 
had  burnt  all  the  flax  that  was  upon  her  distaff. 

'  Oh  !  is  that  all  ?  '  said  the  King,  and  he  went  up  into  the 
garret  and  brought  her  down  more  flax  than  she  could  spin  in  a 
hundred  years.  But  the  Queen  still  looked  sad,  and  the  King 
asked  her  again  what  was  the  matter.  She  answered  that  she 
had  been  walking  by  the  river  and  had  dropped  one  of  her  green 
satin  slippers  into  the  water. 


90  PE1NCESS  EOSETTE 

'  Oh!  if  that's  all,'  said  the  King,  and  he  sent  to  all  the  shoe- 
makers in  his  kingdom,  and  they  very  soon  made  the  Queen  ten 
thousand  green  satin  slippers,  but  still  she  looked  sad.  So  the 
King  asked  her  again  what  was  the  matter,  and  this  time  she  an- 
swered that  in  eating  her  porridge  too  hastily  she  had  swallowed 
her  wedding-ring.  But  it  so  happened  that  the  King  knew  better, 
for  he  had  the  ring  himself,  and  he  said  : 

'  Oh  !  you  are  not  telling  me  the  truth,  for  I  have  your  ring  here 
in  my  purse.' 

Then  the  Queen  was  very  much  ashamed,  and  she  saw  that  the 
King  was  vexed  with  her ;  so  she  told  him  all  that  the  fairies  had 
predicted  about  Eosette,  and  begged  him  to  think  how  the  misfor- 
tunes might  be  prevented. 

Then  it  was  the  King's  turn  to  look  sad,  and  at  last  he  said : 

'  I  see  no  way  of  saving  our  sons  except  by  having  Rosette's 
head  cut  off  while  she  is  still  little.' 

But  the  Queen  cried  that  she  would  far  rather  have  her  own 
head  cut  off,  and  that  he  had  better  think  of  something  else,  for  she 
would  never  consent  to  such  a  thing.  So  they  thought  and  thought, 
but  they  could  not  tell  what  to  do,  until  at  last  the  Queen  heard 
that  in  a  great  forest  near  the  castle  there  was  an  old  hermit,  who 
lived  in  a  hollow  tree,  and  that  people  came  from  far  and  near  to 
consult  him ;  so  she  said  : 

'  I  had  better  go  and  ask  his  advice  ;  perhaps  he  will  know  what 
to  do  to  prevent  the  misfortunes  which  the  fairies  foretold.' 

She  set  out  very  early  the  next  morning,  mounted  iipon  a  pretty 
little  white  mule,  which  was  shod  with  solid  gold,  and  two  of  her 
ladies  rode  behind  her  on  beautiful  horses.  When  they  reached 
the  forest  they  dismounted,  for  the  trees  grew  so  thickly  that  the 
horses  could  not  pass,  and  made  their  way  on  foot  to  the  hollow 
tree  where  the  hermit  lived.  At  first  when  he  saw  them  coming  he 
was  vexed,  for  he  was  not  fond  of  ladies ;  but  when  he  recognised 
the  Queen,  he  said : 

'  You  are  welcome,  Queen.     \Vhat  do  you  come  to  ask  of  me  ?  ' 

Then  the  Queen  told  him  all  the  fairies  had  foreseen  for  Rosette, 
and  asked  what  she  should  do,  and  the  hermit  answered  that  she 
must  shut  the  Princess  up  in  a  tower  and  never  let  her  come  out  of 
it  again.  The  Queen  thanked  and  rewarded  him,  and  hastened 
back  to  the  castle  to  tell  the  King.  When  he  heard  the  news  he 
had  a  great  tower  built  as  quickly  as  possible,  and  there  the  Prin- 
cess was  shut  up,  and  the  King  and  Queen  and  her  two  brothers 


PRINCESS  EOSETTE 


91 


went  to  see  her  every  day  that  she  might  not  be  dull.  The  eldest 
brother  was  called  '  the  Great  Prince,'  and  the  second  '  the  Little 
Prince.'  They  loved  their  sister  dearly,  for  she  was  the  sweetest, 
prettiest  princess  who  was  ever  seen,  and  the  least  little  smile  from 
her  was  worth  more  than  a  hundred  pieces  of  gold.  When  Rosette 
was  fifteen  years  old  the  Great  Prince  went  to  the  King  and  asked 
if  it  would  not  soon  be  time  for  her  to  be  married,  and  the  Little 
Prince  put  the  same  question  to  the  Queen. 

Their  majesties  were  amused  at  them  for  thinking  of  it,  but  did 


not  make  any  reply,  and  soon  after  both  the  King  and  the  Queen 
were  taken  iU,  and  died  on  the  same  day.  Everybody  was 
sorry,  Kosette  especially,  and  all  the  bells  in  the  kingdom  were 
tolled. 

Then  all  the  dukes  and  counsellors  put  the  Great  Prince  upon  a 
golden  throne,  and  crowned  him  with  a  diamond  crown,  and  they 
all  cried,  '  Long  live  the  King!  '  And  after  that  there  was  nothing 
but  feasting  and  rejoicing. 

The  new  King  and  his  brother  said  to  one  another  : 


92  PRINCESS  ROSETTE 

'  Now  that  we  are  the  masters,  let  us  take  our  sister  out  of  that 
dull  tower  which  she  is  so  tired  of.' 

They  had  only  to  go  across  the  garden  to  reach  the  tower,  which 
was  very  high,  and  stood  up  in  a  corner.  Eosette  was  busy  at  her 
embroidery,  but  when  she  saw  her  brothers  she  got  up,  and  taking 
the  King's  hand  cried : 

'  Good  morning,  dear  brother.  Now  that  you  are  King,  please 
take  me  out  of  this  dull  tower,  for  I  am  so  tired  of  it.' 

Then  she  began  to  cry,  but  the  King  kissed  her  and  told  her  to 
dry  her  tears,  as  that  was  just  what  they  had  come  for,  to  take  her 
out  of  the  tower  and  bring  her  to  their  beaiitiful  castle,  and  the 
Prince  showed  her  the  pocketful  of  sugar  plums  he  had  brought  for 
her,  and  said : 

'  Make  haste,  and  let  us  get  away  from  this  ugly  tower,  and  very 
soon  the  King  will  arrange  a  grand  marriage  for  you.' 

When  Eosette  saw  the  beautiful  garden,  full  of  fruit  and  flowers, 
with  green  grass  and  sparkling  fountains,  she  was  so  astonished 
that  not  a  word  could  she  say,  for  she  had  never  in  her  life  seen 
anything  like  it  before.  She  looked  about  her,  and  ran  hither  and 
thither  gathering  fruit  and  flowers,  and  her  little  dog  Frisk,  who 
was  bright  green  all  over,  and  had  but  one  ear,  danced  before  her, 
crying  '  Bow-wow-wow,'  and  turning  head  over  heels  in  the  most 
enchanting  way. 

Everybody  was  amused  at  Frisk's  antics,  but  all  of  a  sudden  he 
ran  away  into  a  little  wood,  and  the  Princess  was  following  him, 
when,  to  her  great  delight,  she  saw  a  peacock,  who  was  spreading 
his  tail  in  the  sunshine.  Eosette  thought  she  had  never  seen  any- 
thing so  pretty.  She  could  not  take  her  eyes  off  him,  and  there  she 
stood  entranced  until  the  King  and  the  Prince  came  up  and  asked 
what  was  amusing  her  so  much.  She  showed  them  the  peacock, 
and  asked  what  it  was,  and  they  answered  that  it  was  a  bird  which 
people  sometimes  ate. 

'  What ! '  said  the  Princess,  '  do  they  dare  to  kill  that  beautiful 
creature  and  eat  it  ?  I  declare  that  I  will  never  marry  any  one  but 
the  King  of  the  Peacocks,  and  when  I  am  Queen  I  will  take  very 
good  care  that  nobody  eats  any  of  my  subjects.' 

At  this  the  King  was  very  much  astonished. 

'  But,  little  sister,'  said  he,  '  where  shall  we  find  the  King  of  the 
Peacocks  ? ' 

'  Oh  !  wherever  you  like,  sire,'  she  answered,  '  but  I  will  never 
marry  any  one  else.' 


PRINCESS  ROSETTE  93 

After  this  they  took  Rosette  to  the  beautiful  castle,  and  the  pea- 
cock was  brought  with  her,  and  told  to  walk  about  on  the  terrace 
outside  her  windows,  so  that  she  might  always  see  him,  and  then 
the  ladies  of  the  court  came  to  see  the  Princess,  and  they  brought 
her  beautiful  presents — dresses  and  ribbons  and  sweetmeats,  dia- 
monds and  pearls  and  dolls  and  embroidered  slippers,  and  she  was 
so  well  brought  up,  and  said,  '  Thank  you !  '  so  prettily,  and  was  so 
gracious,  that  everyone  went  away  delighted  with  her. 

Meanwhile  the  King  and  the  Prince  were  considering  how  they 
should  find  the  King  of  the  Peacocks,  if  there  was  such  a  person  in 
the  world.  And  first  of  all  they  had  a  portrait  made  of  the  Princess, 
which  was  so  like  her  that  you  really  would  not  have  been  surprised 
if  it  had  spoken  to  you.  Then  they  said  to  her  : 

'  Since  you  will  not  marry  anyone  but  the  King  of  the  Peacocks, 
we  are  going  out  together  into  the  wide  world  to  search  for  him. 
If  we  find  him  for  you  we  shall  be  very  glad.  In  the  meantime, 
mind  you  take  good  care  of  our  kingdom.' 

Rosette  thanked  them  for  all  the  trouble  they  were  taking  on  her 
account,  and  promised  to  take  great  care  of  the  kingdom,  and  only  to 
amuse  herself  by  looking  at  the  peacock,  and  making  Frisk  dance 
while  they  were  away. 

So  they  set  out,  and  asked  everyone  they  met — 

'  Do  you  know  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  ?  ' 

But  the  answer  was  always,  '  No,  no.' 

Then  they  went  on  and  on,  so  far  that  no  one  has  ever  been 
farther,  and  at  last  they  came  to  the  Kingdom  of  the  Cockchafers. 

They  had  never  before  seen  such  a  number  of  cockchafers,  and 
the  buzzing  was  so  loud  that  the  King  was  afraid  he  should  be 
deafened  by  it.  He  asked  the  most  distinguished-looking  cock- 
chafer they  met  if  he  knew  where  they  could  find  the  King  of  the 
Peacocks. 

'  Sire,'  replied  the  cockchafer,  '  his  kingdom  is  thirty  thousand 
leagues  from  this  ;  you  have  come  the  longest  way.' 

'  And  how  do  you  know  that  ?  '  said  the  King. 

'  Oh ! '  said  the  cockchafer,  '  we  all  know  you  very  well,  since  we 
spend  two  or  three  months  in  your  garden  every  year.' 

Thereupon  the  King  and  the  Prince  made  great  friends  with  him, 
and  they  all  walked  arm-in-arm  and  dined  together,  and  afterwards 
the  cockchafer  showed  them  all  the  curiosities  of  his  strange  country, 
where  the  tiniest  green  leaf  costs  a  gold  piece  and  more.  Then 
they  set  out  again  to  finish  their  journey,  and  this  time,  as  they  knew 


94 


PRINCESS  BOSETTE 


the  way,  they  were  not  long  upon  the  road.  It  was  easy  to  guess 
that  they  had  come  to  the  right  place,  for  they  saw  peacocks  in 
every  tree,  and  their  cries  could  be  heard  a  long  way  off. 

When  they  reached  the  city  they  found  it  full  of  men  and  women 
who  were  dressed  entirely  in  peacocks'  feathers,  which  were  evidently 
thought  prettier  than  anything  else. 

They  soon  met  the  King,  who  was  driving  about  in  a  beautiful 
little  golden  carriage  which  glittered  with  diamonds,  and  was  drawn 


at  full  speed  by  twelve  peacocks.  The  King  and  the  Prince  were 
delighted  to  see  that  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  was  as  handsome  as 
possible.  He  had  curly  golden  hair  and  was  very  pale,  and  he 
wore  a  crown  of  peacocks'  feathers. 

When  he  saw  Rosette's  brothers  he  knew  at  once  that  they  were 
strangers,  and  stopping  his  carriage  he  sent  for  them  to  speak  to 
him.  When  they  had  greeted  him  they  said : 

'  Sire,  we  have  come  from  very  far  away  to  show  you  a  beautiful 
portrait.' 


PEINCESS  BOSETTE  95 

So  saying  they  drew  from  their  travelling  bag  the  picture  of 
Rosette. 

The  King  looked  at  it  in  silence  a  long  time*  but  at  last  he  said  : 

'  I  could  not  have  believed  that  there  was  such  a  beautiful 
Princess  in  the  world  ! ' 

'Indeed,  she  is  really  a  hundred  times  as  pretty  as  that,'  said 
her  brothers. 

'  I  think  you  must  be  making  fun  of  me,'  replied  the  King  of  the 
Peacocks. 

'  Sire,'  said  the  Prince, '  my  brother  is  a  King,  like  yourself.  He 
is  called  "  the  King,"  I  am  called  "  the  Prince,"  and  that  is  the 
portrait  of  our  sister,  the  Princess  Rosette.  We  have  come  to  ask 
if  you  would  like  to  marry  her.  She  is  as  good  as  she  is  beauti- 
ful, and  we  will  give  her  a  bushel  of  gold  pieces  for  her  dowry.' 

'  Oh  !  with  all  my  heart,'  replied  the  King, '  and  I  will  make  her 
very  happy.  She  shall  have  whatever  she  likes,  and  I  shall  love 
her  dearly ;  only  I  warn  you  that  if  she  is  not  as  pretty  as  you  have 
told  me,  I  will  have  your  heads  cut  off.' 

'  Oh  !  certainly,  we  quite  agree  to  that,'  said  the  brothers  in  one 
breath. 

'  Very  well.  Off  with  you  into  prison,  and  stay  there  until  the 
Princess  arrives,'  said  the  King  of  the  Peacocks. 

And  the  Princes  were  so  sure  that  Rosette  was  far  prettier  than 
her  portrait  that  they  went  without  a  murmur.  They  were  very 
kindly  treated,  and  that  they  might  not  feel  dull  the  King  came 
often  to  see  them.  As  for  Rosette's  portrait  that  was  taken  up  to 
the  palace,  and  the  King  did  nothing  but  gaze  at  it  all  day  and  all 
night. 

As  the  King  and  the  Prince  had  to  stay  in  prison,  they  sent  a 
letter  to  the  Princess  telling  her  to  pack  up  all  her  treasures  as 
quickly  as  possible,  and  come  to  them,  as  the  King  of  the  Peacocks 
was  waiting  to  marry  her ;  but  they  did  not  say  that  they  were  in 
prison,  for  fear  of  making  her  uneasy. 

When  Rosette  received  the  letter  she  was  so  delighted  that  she 
ran  about  telling  everyone  that  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  was  found, 
and  she  was  going  to  marry  him. 

Guns  were  fired,  and  fireworks  let  off.  Everyone  had  as  many 
cakes  and  sweetmeats  as  he  wanted.  And  for  three  days  everybody 
who  came  to  see  the  Princess  was  presented  with  a  slice  of  bread- 
and-jam,  a  nightingale's  egg,  and  some  hippocras.  After  having 
thus  entertained  her  friends,  she  distributed  her  dolls  among  them, 


96  PRINCESS  ROSETTE 

and  left  her  brother's  kingdom  to  the  care  of  the  wisest  old  men  of 
the  city,  telling  them  to  take  charge  of  everything,  not  to  spend  any 
money,  but  save  it  all  up  until  the  King  should  return,  and  above 
all,  not  to  forget  to  feed  her  peacock.  Then  she  set  out,  only  taking 
with  her  her  nurse,  and  the  nurse's  daughter,  and  the  little  green 
dog  Frisk. 

They  took  a  boat  and  put  out  to  sea,  carrying  with  them  the 
bushel  of  gold  pieces,  and  enough  dresses  to  last  the  Princess  ten 
years  if  she  wore  two  every  day,  and  they  did  nothing  but  laugh  and 
sing.  The  nurse  aske.d  the  boatman  : 

'  Can  you  take  iis,  can  you  take  us  to  the  kingdom  of  the  pea- 
cocks ?  ' 

But  he  answered  : 

'  Oh  no  !  oh  no  !  ' 

Then  she  said : 

'  You  must  take  us,  you  must  take  us.' 

And  lie  answered : 

'Very  soon,  very  soon.' 

Then  the  nurse  said  : 

'  Will  you  take  us  ?  will  you  take  us  ?  ' 

And  the  boatman  answered  : 

'  Yes,  yes.' 

Then  she  whispered  in  his  ear  : 

'  Do  you  want  to  make  your  fortune  ?  ' 

And  he  said  : 

'  Certainly  I  do.' 

'  I  can  tell  you  how  to  get  a  bag  of  gold,'  said  she. 

'  I  ask  nothiqg  better,'  said  the  boatman. 

'  Well,'  said  the  nurse,  '  to-night,  when  the  Princess  is  asleep,  you 
must  help  me  to  throw  her  into  the  sea,  and  when  she  is  drowned 
I  will  put  her  beautiful  clothes  upon  my  daughter,  and  we  will  take 
her  to  the  King  of  the  Peacocks,  who  will  be  only  too  glad  to  marry 
her,  and  as  your  reward  you  shall  have  your  boat  full  of  diamonds.' 

The  boatman  was  very  much  surprised  at  this  proposal,  and 
said : 

'  But  what  a  pity  to  drown  such  a  pretty  Princess  ! ' 

However,  at  last  the  nurse  persuaded  him  to  help  her,  and  when 
the  night  came  and  the  Princess  was  fast  asleep  as  usual,  with  Frisk 
curled  up  on  his  own  cushion  at  the  foot  of  her  bed,  the  wicked  nurse 
fetched  the  boatman  and  her  daughter,  and  between  them  they 
picked  up  the  Princess,  feather  bed,  mattress,  pillows,  blankets  and 


97 

all,  and  threw  her  into  the  sea,  without  even  waking  her.  Now, 
luckily,  the  Princess's  lied  was  entirely  stuffed  with  phonix  feathers, 
which  are  very  rare,  and  have  the  property  of  always  floating  upon 
water,  so  Eosette  went  on  swimming  about  as  if  she  had  been  in  a 
boat.  After  a  little  while  she  began  to  feel  very  cold,  and  turned 
round  so  often  that  she  woke  Frisk,  who  started  up,  and.  having  a 
very  good  nose,  smelt  the  soles  and  herrings  so  close  to  him  that  he 
began  to  bark.  He  barked  so  long  and  so  loud  that  he  woke  all  the 
other  fish,  who  came  swimming  up  round  the  Princess's  bed,  and 
poking  at  it  with  their  great  heads.  As  for  her,  she  said  to  herself : 


'  How  our  boat  does  rock  upon  the  water  !  I  aui  really  glad 
that  I  am  not  often  as  uncomfortable  as  I  have  been  to-night.' 

The  wicked  nurse  and  the  boatman,  who  were  by  this  time  quite 
a  long  way  off,  heard  Frisk  barking,  and  said  to  each  other : 

'  That  horrid  little  animal  and  his  mistress  are  drinking  our 
health  in  sea-water  now.  Let  us  make  haste  to  land,  for  we  must 
be  quite  near  the  city  of  the  King  of  the  Peacocks.' 

The  King  had  sent  a  hundred  carriages  to  meet  them,  drawm  by 
every  kind  of  strange  animal.  There  were  lions,  bears,  wolves,  stags, 
horses,  buffaloes,  eagles,  and  peacocks.  The  carriage  intended  for 
the  Princess  Rosette  had  six  blue  monkeys,  which  could  turn  summer- 


98  PRINCESS  ROSETTE 

saults,  and  dance  on  a  tight-rope,  and  do  many  other  charming 
tricks.  Their  harness  was  all  of  crimson  velvet  with  gold  buckles, 
and  behind  the  carriage  walked  sixty  beautiful  ladies  chosen  by  the 
King  to  wait  upon  llosette  and  amuse  her. 

The  nurse  had  taken  all  the  pains  imaginable  to  deck  out  her 
daughter.  She  put  on  her  Eosette's  prettiest  frock,  and  covered  her 
with  diamonds  from  head  to  foot.  Biit  she  was  so  ugly  that  nothing 
could  make  her  look  nice,  and  what  was  worse,  she  was  sulky  and 
ill-tempered,  and  did  nothing  but  grumble  all  the  time. 

When  she  stepped  from  the  boat  and  the  escort  sent  by  the  King 
of  the  Peacocks  caught  sight  of  her,  they  were  so  surprised  that  they 
could  not  say  a  single  word. 

'  Now  then,  look  alive,'  cried  the  false  Princess.  '  If  you  don't 
bring  me  something  to  eat  I  will  have  all  your  heads  cut  off  1 ' 

Then  they  whispered  one  to  another  : 

'  Here's  a  pretty  state  of  things  !  she  is  as  wicked  as  she  is  ugly. 
"What  a  bride  for  our  poor  King  !  She  certainly  was  not  worth  bring- 
ing from  the  other  end  of  the  world  ! ' 

But  she  went  on  ordering  them  all  about,  and  for  no  fault  at  all 
would  give  slaps  and  pinches  to  everyone  she  could  reach. 

As  the  procession  was  so  long  it  advanced  but  slowly,  and  the 
nurse's  daughter  sat  up  in  her  carriage  trying  to  look  like  a  Queen. 
But  the  peacocks,  who  were  sitting  upon  every  tree  waiting  to  salute 
her,  and  who  had  made  up  their  minds  to  cry,  '  Long  live  our  beau- 
tiful Queen !  '  when  they  caught  sight  of  the  false  bride  could  not 
help  crying  instead : 

'  Oh  !  how  ugly  she  is  1 ' 

Which  offended  her  so  much  that  she  said  to  the  guards  : 

'  Make  haste  and  kill  all  these  insolent  peacocks  who  have  dared 
to  insult  me.' 

But  the  peacocks  only  flew  away,  laughing  at  her. 

The  rogue  of  a  boatman,  who  noticed  all  this,  said  softly  to  the 
nurse : 

'  This  is  a  bad  business  for  us,  gossip ;  your  daughter  ought  to 
have  been  prettier.' 

But  she  answered : 

'  Be  quiet,  stupid,  or  you  will  spoil  everything.' 

Now  they  told  the  King  that  the  Princess  was  approaching. 

'  Well,'  said  he, '  did  her  brothers  tell  me  truly  ?  Is  she  prettier 
than  her  portrait  ?  ' 

'  Sire,'  they  answered, '  if  she  were  as  pretty  that  would  do  very  well.' 


PRINCESS  ROSETTE  99 

'  That's  true,'  said  the  King ;  '  I  for  one  shall  be  quite  satisfied  if 
she  is.  Let  us  go  and  meet  her.'  For  they  knew  by  the  uproar  that 
she  had  arrived,  but  they  could  not  tell  what  all  the  shouting  was 
about.  The  King  thought  he  could  hear  the  words  : 

'  How  ugly  she  is !  How  ugly  she  is  !  '  and  he  fancied  they  must 
refer  to  some  dwarf  the  Princess  was  bringing  with  her.  It  never 
occurred  to  him  that  they  could  apply  to  the  bride  herself. 

The  Princess  Rosette's  portrait  was  carried  at  the  head  of  the 
procession,  and  after  it  walked  the  King  surrounded  by  his  courtiers. 
He  was  all  impatience  to  see  the  lovely  Princess,  but  when  he 
caught  sight  of  the  nurse's  daughter  he  was  furiously  angry,  and 
would  not  advance  another  step.  For  she  was  really  ugly  enough 
to  have  frightened  anybody. 

'  What ! '  he  cried,  '  have  the  two  rascals  who  are  my  prisoners 
dared  to  play  me  such  a  trick  as  this  ?  Do  they  propose  that  I 
shall  marry  this  hideous  creature  ?  Let  her  be  shut  up  in  my  great 
tower,  with  her  nurse  and  those  who  brought  her  here  ;  and  as  for 
them,  I  will  have  their  heads  cut  off.' 

Meanwhile  the  King  and  the  Prince,  who  knew  that  their 
sister  must  have  arrived,  had  made  themselves  smart,  and  sat  ex- 
pecting every  minute  to  be  summoned  to  greet  her.  So  when  the 
gaoler  came  with  soldiers,  and  carried  them  down  into  a  black  dun- 
geon which  swarmed  with  toads  and  bats,  and  where  they  were  up 
to  their  necks  in  water,  nobody  could  have  been  more  surprised  and 
dismayed  than  they  were. 

'  This  is  a  dismal  kind  of  wedding,"  they  said  ;  '  what  can  have 
happened  that  we  should  be  treated  like  this  ?  They  must  mean  to 
kill  us.' 

And  this  idea  annoyed  them  very  much.  Three  days  passed 
before  they  heard  any  news,  and  then  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  came 
and  berated  them  through  a  hole  in  the  wall. 

'  You  have  called  yourselves  King  and  Prince,'  he  cried,  '  to  try 
and  make  me  marry  your  sister,  but  you  are  nothing  but  beggars, 
not  worth  the  water  you  drink.  I  mean  to  make  short  work  with 
you,  and  the  sword  is  being  sharpened  that  will  cut  off  your  heads  ! ' 

'  King  of  the  Peacocks,'  answered  the  King  angrily,  '  you  had 
better  take  care  what  you  are  about.  I  am  as  good  a  King  as  your- 
self, and  have  a  splendid  kingdom  and  robes  and  crowns,  and 
plenty  of  good  red  gold  to  do  what  I  like  with.  You  are  pleased  to 
jest  about  having  our  heads  cut  off;  perhaps  you  think  we  have  stolen 
something  from  you  ?  ' 

H2 


100  PEINCES8  ROSETTE 

At  first  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  was  taken  aback  by  this  bold 
speech,  and  had  half  a  mind  to  send  them  all  away  together ;  but 
his  Prime  Minister  declared  that  it  woiild  never  do  to  let  such  a 
trick  as  that  pass  unpunished,  everybody  would  laugh  at  him ;  so  the 
accusation  was  drawn  up  against  them,  that  they  were  impostors, 
and  that  they  had  promised  the  King  a  beautiful  Princess  in  marriage 
who,  when  she  arrived,  proved  to  be  an  ugly  peasant  girl. 

This  accusation  was  read  to  the  prisoners,  who  cried  out  that 
they  had  spoken  the  truth,  that  their  sister  was  indeed  a  Princess 
more  beautiful  than  the  day,  and  that  there  was  some  mystery 
about  all  this  which  they  could  not  fathom.  Therefore  they  de- 
manded seven  days  in  which  to  prove  their  innocence,  The  King 
of  the  Peacocks  was  so  angry  that  he  would  hardly  even  grant  them 
this  favour,  but  at  last  he  was  persuaded  to  do  so. 

While  all  this  was  going  on  at  court,  let  us  see  what  had  been 
happening  to  the  real  Princess.  When  the  day  broke  she  and  Frisk 
were  equally  astonished  at  finding  themselves  alone  upon  the  sea, 
with  no  boat  and  no  one  to  help  them.  The  Princess  cried  and 
cried,  until  even  the  fishes  were  sorry  for  her. 

'  Alas ! '  she  said,  '  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  must  have  ordered 
me  to  be  thrown  into  the  sea  becaiise  he  had  changed  his  mind 
and  did  not  want  to  marry  me.  But  how  strange  of  him,  when  I 
should  have  loved  him  so  much,  and  we  should  have  been  so  happy 
together ! ' 

And  then  she  cried  harder  than  ever,  for  she  could  not  help  still 
loving  him.  So  for  two  days  they  floated  up  and  down  the  sea,  wet 
and  shivering  with  the  cold,  and  so  hungry  that  when  the  Princess 
saw  some  oysters  she  caught  them,  and  she  and  Frisk  both  ate  some, 
though  they  didn't  like  them  at  all.  When  night  came  the  Prin- 
cess was  so  frightened  that  she  said  to  Frisk : 

'  Oh !  Do  please  keep  on  barking  for  fear  the  soles  should  come 
and  eat  us  up  1 ' 

Now  it  happened  that  they  had  floated  close  in  to  the  shore, 
where  a  poor  old  man  lived  all  alone  in  a  little  cottage.  When  he 
heard  Frisk's  barking  he  thought  to  himself: 

'  There  must  have  been  a  shipwreck  ! '  (for  no  dogs  ever  passed 
that  way  by  any  chance),  and  he  went  out  to  see  if  he  could  be  of 
any  use.  He  soon  saw  the  Princess  and  Frisk  floating  up  and 
down,  and  Rosette,  stretching  out  her  hands  to  him,  cried  : 

'  Oh  !  Good  old  man,  do  save  me,  or  I  shall  die  of  cold  and 
hunger !  ' 


PRINCESS  ROSETTE 


101 


When  he  heard  her  cry  out  so  piteously  he  was  very  sorry  for 
her,  and  ran  back  into  his  house  to  fetch  a  longboat-hook.  Then  he 
waded  into  the  water  up  to  his  chin,  and  after  being  nearly  drowned 
once  or  twice  he  at  last  succeeded  in  getting  hold  of  the  Princess's 
bed  and  dragging  it  on  shore. 

Rosette  and  Frisk  were  joyful  enough  to  find  themselves  once 
more  on  dry  land,  and  the  Princess  thanked  the  old  man  heartily  ; 
then,  wrapping  herself  up  in  her  blankets,  she  daintily  picked  her  way 
up  to  the  cottage  on  her  little  bare  feet.  There  the  old  man  lighted 
a  fire  of  straw,  and  then  drew  from  an  old  box  his  wife's  dress  and 


shoes,  which  the  Princess  put  on,  and  thus  roughly  clad  looked  as 
charming  as  possible,  and  Frisk  danced  his  very  best  to  amuse  her. 

The  old  man  saw  that  Rosette  must  be  some  great  lady,  for  her 
bed  coverings  were  all  of  satin  and  gold.  He  begged  that  she 
would  tell  him  all  her  history,  as  she  might  safely  trust  him.  The 
Princess  told  him  everything,  weeping  bitterly  again  at  the  thought 
that  it  was  by  the  King's  orders  that  she  had  been  thrown  over- 
board. 

'  And  now,  my  daughter,  what  is  to  be  done  ?  '  said  the  old  man. 
'  You  are  a  great  Princess,  accustomed  to  fare  daintily,  and  I  have 
nothing  to  offer  you  but  black  bread  and  radishes,  which  will  not 


102  PRINCESS  ROSETTE 

suit  you  at  all.     Shall  I  go  and  tell  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  that 
you  are  here  ?     If  he  sees  you  he  will  certainly  wish  to  marry  you.' 

'Oh  no!'  cried  Eosette,  'he  must  be  wicked,  since  he  tried  to 
drown  me.  Don't  let  us  tell  him,  but  if  you  have  a  little  basket 
give  it  to  me.' 

The  old  man  gave  her  a  basket,  and  tying  it  round  Frisk's  neck 
she  said  to  him  :  '  Go  and  find  out  the  best  cooking-pot  in  the  town 
and  bring  the  contents  to  me.' 

Away  went  Frisk,  and  as  there  was  no  better  dinner  cooking  in 
all  the  town  than  the  King's,  he  adroitly  took  the  cover  off  the  pot 
and  brought  all  it  contained  to  the  Princess,  who  said : 

'  Now  go  back  to  the  pantry,  and  bring  the  best  of  everything  you 
find  there.' 

So  Frisk  went  back  and  filled  his  basket  with  white  bread,  and 
red  wine,  and  every  kind  of  sweetmeat,  until  it  was  almost  too 
heavy  for  him  to  carry. 

When  the  King  of  the  Peacocks  wanted  his  dinner  there  was 
nothing  in  the  pot  and  nothing  in  the  pantry.  All  the  courtiers 
looked  at  one  another  in  dismay,  and  the  King  was  terribly  cross. 

'  Oh  well !  '  he  said,  '  if  there  is  no  dinner  I  cannot  dine,  but 
take  care  that  plenty  of  things  are  roasted  for  supper.' 

When  evening  came  the  Princess  said  to  Frisk  : 

'  Go  into  the  town  and  find  out  the  best  kitchen,  and  bring  me 
all  the  nicest  morsels  that  are  being  roasted  upon  the  spit.' 

Frisk  did  as  he  was  told,  and  as  he  knew  of  no  better  kitchen 
than  the  King's,  he  went  in  softly,  and  when  the  cook's  back  was 
turned  took  everything  that  was  upon  the  spit,  As  it  happened  it 
was  all  done  to  a  turn,  and  looked  so  good  that  it  made  him  hungry 
only  to  see  it.  He  carried  his  basket  to  the  Princess,  who  at  once 
sent  him  back  to  the  pantry  to  bring  all  the  tarts  and  sugar  plums 
that  had  been  prepared  for  the  King's  supper. 

The  King,  as  he  had  had  no  dinner,  was  very  hungry  and 
wanted  his  supper  early,  but  when  he  asked  for  it,  lo  and  behold  it 
was  all  gone,  and  he  had  to  go  to  bed  half-starved  and  in  a  terrible 
temper.  The  next  day  the  same  thing  happened,  and  the  next,  so  that 
for  three  days  the  King  got  nothing  at  all  to  eat,  because  just  when 
the  dinner  or  the  supper  was  ready  to  be  served  it  mysteriously 
disappeared.  At  last  the  Prime  Minister  began  to  be  afraid  that 
the  King  would  be  starved  to  death,  so  he  resolved  to  hide  himself 
in  some  dark  corner  of  the  kitchen,  and  never  take  his  eyes  off  the 
cooking-pot.  His  surprise  was  great  when  he  presently  saw  a  little 


PRINCESS  ROSETTE  103 

green  clog  with  one  ear  slip  softly  into  the  kitchen,  uncover  the 
pot,  transfer  all  its  contents  to  his  basket,  and  run  off.  The  Prime 
Minister  followed  hastily,  and  tracked  him  all  through  the  town  to 
the  cottage  of  the  good  old  man  ;  'then  he  ran  back  to  the  King  and 
told  him  that  he  had  found  out  where  all  his  dinners  and  suppers 
went.  The  King,  who  was  very  much  astonished,  said  he  should 
like  to  go  and  see  for  himself.  So  he  set  out,  accompanied  by  the 
Prime  Minister  and  a  guard  of  archers,  and  arrived  just  in  time  to 
find  the  old  man  and  the  Princess  finishing  his  dinner. 

The  King  ordered  that  they  should  be  seized  and  bound  with 
ropes,  and  Frisk  also. 

When  they  were  brought  back  to  the  palace  some  one  told  the 
King,  who  said  : 

'  To-day  is  the  last  day  of  the  respite  granted  to  those  impostors ; 
they  shall  have  their  heads  cut  off  at  the  same  time  as  these 
stealers  of  my  dinner.'  Then  the  old  man  went  down  on  his  knees 
before  the  King  and  begged  for  time  to  tell  him  everything.  "While 
he  spoke  the  King  for  the  first  time  looked  attentively  at  the 
Princess,  because  he  was  sorry  to  see  how  she  cried,  and  when  he 
heard  the  old  man  saying  that  her  name  was  Rosette,  and  that  she 
had  been  treacherously  thrown  into  the  sea,  he  tttrned  head  over 
heels  three  times  without  stopping,  in  spite  of  being  quite  weak  from 
hunger,  and  ran  to  embrace  her,  and  untied  the  ropes  which  bound 
her  with  his  own  hands,  declaring  that  he  loved  her  with  all  his  heart. 

Messengers  were  sent  to  bring  the  Princes  out  of  prison,  and 
they  came  very  sadly,  believing  that  they  were  to  be  executed  at 
once  :  the  nurse  and  her  daughter  and  the  boatman  were  brought 
also.  As  soon  as  theycame  in  Rosette  ran  to  embrace  her  brothers, 
while  the  traitors  threw  themselves  down  before  her  and  begged  for 
mercy.  The  King  and  the  Princess  were  so  happy  that  they  freely  for- 
gave them,  and  as  for  the  good  old  man  he  was  splendidly  rewarded, 
and  spent  the  rest  of  his  days  in  the  palace.  The  King  of  the 
Peacocks  made  ample  amends  to  the  King  and  Prince  for  the  way 
in  which  they  had  been  treated,  and  did  everything  in  his  power  to 
show  how  sorry  he  was. 

The  nurse  restored  to  Rosette  all  her  dresses  and  jewels,  and  the 
bushel  of  gold  pieces  ;  the  wedding  was  held  at  once,  and  they  all 
lived  happily  ever  after — even  to  Frisk,  who  enjoyed  the  greatest 
luxury,  and  never  had  anything  worse  than  the  wing  of  a  partridge 

for  dinner  all  the  rest  of  his  life.' 
i 

1  Madamo  d'Aulnov. 


104 


THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  who  had  three  daughters. 
Now  it  happened  that  he  had  to  go  out  to  battle,  so  he  called 
his  daughters  and  said  to  them : 

'  My  dear  children,  I  am  obliged  to  go  to  the  wars.  The  enemy 
is  approaching  us  with  a  large  army.  It  is  a  great  grief  to  me  to 
leave  you  all.  During  my  absence  take  care  of  yourselves  and  bo 
good  girls ;  behave  well  and  look  after  everything  in  the  house. 
You  may  walk  in  the  garden,  and  you  may  go  into  all  the  rooms 
in  the  palace,  except  the  room  at  the  back  in  the  right-hand 
corner  ;  into  that  you  must  not  enter,  for  harm  would  befall  you.' 

'  You  may  keep  your  mind  easy,  father,'  they  replied.  '  We 
have  never  been  disobedient  to  you.  Go  in  peace,  and  may  heaven 
give  you  a  glorious  victory  !  ' 

When  everything  was  ready  for  his  departure,  the  King  gave 
them  the  keys  of  all  the  rooms  and  reminded  them  once  more  of 
what  he  had  said.  His  daughters  kissed  his  hands  with  tears  in 
their  eyes,  and  wished  him  prosperity,  and  lie  gave  the  eldest  the 
keys. 

Now  when  the  girls  found  themselves  alone  they  felt  so  sud  and 
dull  that  they  did  not  know  what  to  do.  So,  to  pass  the  time,  they 
decided  to  work  for  part  of  the  day,  to  read  for  part  of  the  day,  and 
to  enjoy  themselves  in  the  garden  for  part  of  the  day.  As  long  as 
they  did  this  all  went  well  with  them.  But  this  happy  state  of 
things  did  not  last  long.  Every  day  they  grew  more  and  more 
curious,  and  you  will  see  what  the  end  of  that  was. 

'  Sisters,'  said  the  eldest  Princess, '  all  day  long  we  sew,  spin,  and 
read.  We  have  been  several  days  quite  alone,  and  there  is  no 
corner  of  the  garden  that  we  have  not  explored.  We  luive  been 
in  all  the  rooms  of  our  father's  palace,  and  have  admired  the  rich 
and  beautiful  furniture  :  why  should  not  we  go  into  the  room  that 
our  father  forbad  us  to  enter  ?  ' 


THE   ENCHANTED  PIG  105 

Sister,'  said  the  youngest,  '  I  cannot  think  how  you  can  tempt 
us  to  break  our  father's  command.  When  he  told  us  not  to  go  into 
that  room  he  must  have  known  what  he  was  saying,  and  have  had 
a  good  reason  for  saying  it.' 

'  Surely  the  sky  won't  fall  about  our  heads  if  we  do  go  in,'  said 
the  second  Princess.  '  Dragons  and  such  like  monsters  that  would 
devour  us  will  not  be  hidden  in  the  room.  And  howT  will  our  father 
ever  find  out  that  we  have  gone  in  ?  ' 

While  they  were  speaking  thus,  encouraging  each  other,  they 
had  reached  the  room ;  the  eldest  fitted  the  key  into  the  lock,  and 
snap !  the  door  stood  open. 

The  three  girls  entered,  and  what  do  you  think  they  saw  ? 

The  room  was  quite  empty,  and  without  any  ornament,  but  in 
the  middle  stood  a  large  table,  with  a  gorgeous  cloth,  and  on  it  lay 
a  big  open  book. 

Now  the  Princesses  were  curious  to  know  what  was  written  in 
the  book,  especially  the  eldest,  and  this  is  what  she  read : 

'  The  eldest  daughter  of  this  King  will  marry  a  prince  from  the 
East.' 

Then  the  second  girl  stepped  forward,  and  turning  over  the  page 
she  read : 

'  The  second  daughter  of  this  King  will  marry  a  prince  from  the 
West.' 

The  girls  were  delighted,  and  laughed  and  teased  each  other. 

But  the  youngest  Princess  did  not  want  to  go  near  the  table  or 
to  open  the  book.  Her  elder  sisters  however  left  her  no  peace,  and 
will  she,  nill  she,  they  dragged  her  up  to  the  table,  and  in  fear  and 
trembling  she  turned  over  the  page  and  read  : 

'  The  youngest  daughter  of  this  King  will  be  married  to  a  pig  from 
the  North.' 

Now  if  a  thunderbolt  had  fallen  upon  her  from  heaven  it  would 
not  have  frightened  her  more. 

She  almost  died  of  misery,  and  if  her  sisters  had  not  held  her 
up,  she  would  have  sunk  to  the  ground  and  cut  her  head  open. 

When  she  came  out  of  the  fainting  fit  into  which  she  had 
fallen  in  her  terror,  her  sisters  tried  to  comfort  her,  saying : 

'  How  can  you  believe  such  nonsense  ?  When  did  it  ever  happen 
that  a  king's  daughter  married  a  pig  ?  ' 

'  What  a  baby  you  are !  '  said  the  other  sister ;  '  has  not  our 
father  enough  soldiers  to  protect  you,  even  if  the  disgusting  creature 
did  come  to  woo  you  ?  ' 


106  THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

The  youngest  Princess  would  fain  have  let  herself  be  convinced 
by  her  sisters'  words,  and  have  believed  what  they  said,  but  her  heart 
was  heavy.  Her  thoughts  kept  turning  to  the  book,  in  which  stood 
written  that  great  happiness  waited  her  sisters,  but  that  a  fate  was 
in  store  for  her  such  as  had  never  before  been  known  in  the  world. 

Besides,  the  thought  weighed  on  her  heart  that  she  had  been 
guilty  of  disobeying  her  father.  She  began  to  get  quite  ill,  and  in 
a  few  days  she  was  so  changed  that  it  was  difficult  to  recognise  her  ; 
formerly  she  had  been  rosy  and  rnerry,  now  she  was  pale  and 
nothing  gave  her  any  pleasure.  She  gave  up  playing  with  her  sisters 
in  the  garden,  ceased  to  gather  flowers  to  put  in  her  hair,  and  never 
sang  when  they  sat  together  at  their  spinning  and  sewing. 

In  the  meantime  the  King  won  a  great  victory,  and  having  com- 
pletely defeated  and  driven  off  the  enemy,  he  hurried  home  to  his 
daughters,  to  whom  his  thoughts  had  constantly  turned.  Everyone 
went  out  to  meet  him  with  cymbals  and  fifes  and  drums,  and  there- 
was  great  rejoicing  over  his  victorious  return.  The  King's  first  act 
on  reaching  home  was  to  thank  Heaven  for  the  victory  he  had  gained 
over  the  enemies  who  had  risen  against  him.  He  then  entered  his 
palace,  and  the  three  Princesses  stepped  forward  to  meet  him.  His 
joy  was  great  when  he  saw  that  they  were  ah1  well,  for  the  youngest 
did  her  best  not  to  appear  sad. 

In  spite  of  this,  however,  it  was  not  long  before  the  King  noticed 
that  his  third  daughter  was  getting  very  thin  and  sad-looking.  And 
all  of  a  sudden  he  felt  as  if  a  hot  iron  were  entering  his  soul,  for  it 
flashed  through  his  mind  that  she  had  disobeyed  his  word.  He  felt 
sure  he  was  right ;  but  to  be  quite  certain  he  called  his  daughters  to 
him,  questioned  them,  and  ordered  them  to  speak  the  truth.  They 
confessed  everything,  but  took  good  care  not  to  say  which  had  led 
the  other  two  into  temptation. 

The  King  WHS  so  distressed  when  he  heard  it  that  he  was  almost 
overcome  by  grief.  But  he  took  heart  and  tried  to  comfort  his 
daughters,  who  looked  frightened  to  death.  He  saw  that  what  had 
happened  had  happened,  and  that  a  thousand  words  would  not  alter 
matters  by  a  hair's-breadth. 

Well,  these  events  had  almost  been  forgotten  when  one  fine  day 
a  prince  from  the  East  appeared  at  the  Court  and  asked  the  King  for 
the  hand  of  his  eldest  daughter.  The  King  gladly  gave  his  consent. 
A  great  wedding  banquet  was  prepared,  and  after  three  days  of 
feasting  the  happy  pair  were  accompanied  to  the  frontier  with 
much  ceremony  and  rejoicing. 


THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 


107 


After  some  dine  the  same  thing  befell  the  second  daughter,  who 
was  wooed  and  won  by  a  prince  from  the  West. 

Now  when  the  young  Princess  saw  that  everything  fell  out 
exactly  as  had  been  written  in  the  book,  she  grew  very  sad.  She 
refused  to  eat,  and  would  not  put  on  her  fine  clothes  nor  go  out 
walking,  and  declared  that  she  would  rather  die  than  become  a 
laughing-stock  to  the  world.  But  the  King  would  not  allow  her  to 
do  anything  so  wrong,  and  he  comforted  her  in  all  possible  ways. 

So  the  time  passed,  till  lo  and  behold !  one  fine  day  an  enor- 
mous pig  from  the  North  walked  into  the  palace,  and  going  straight 


up  to  the  King  said,  '  Hail !  oh  King.  May  your  life  be  as  pro- 
sperous and  bright  as  sunrise  on  a  clear  day  !  ' 

'  I  am  glad  to  see  you  well,  friend,'  answered  the  King,  '  but 
what  wind  has  brought  you  hither  ?  ' 

'  I  come  a-wooing,'  replied  the  Pig. 

Now  the  King  was  astonished  to  hear  so  fine  a  speech  from  a  Pig, 
and  at  once  it  occurred  to  him  that  something  strange  was  the 
matter.  He  would  gladly  have  tiirned  the  Pig's  thoughts  in  another 
direction,  as  he  did  not  wish  to  give  him  the  Princess  for  a  wife  ;  but 
when  he  heard  that  the  Court,  and  the  whole  street  were  full  of  all 


108  THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

the  pigs  in  the  world  he  saw  that  there  was  no  escape,  and  that  he 
must  give  his  consent.  The  Pig  was  not  satisfied  with  mere  pro- 
mises, but  insisted  that  the  wedding  should  take  place  within  a 
week,  and  would  not  go  away  till  the  King  had  sworn  a  royal  oath 
upon  it. 

The  King  then  sent  for  his  daughter,  and  advised  her  to  submit 
to  fate,  as  there  was  nothing  else  to  be  done.  And  he  added  : 

'  My  child,  the  words  and  whole  behaviour  of  this  Pig  are  quite 
unlike  those  of  other  pigs.  I  do  not  myself  believe  that  he  always 
was  a  pig.  Depend  upon  it  some  magic  or  witchcraft  has  been  at 
work.  Obey  him,  and  do  everything  that  he  wishes,  and  I  feel  sure 
that  Heaven  will  shortly  send  you  release.' 

'  If  you  wish  me  to  do  this,  dear  father,  I  will  do  it,'  replied  the 
girl. 

In  the  meantime  the  wedding-day  drew  near.  After  the  marriage, 
the  Pig  and  his  bride  set  out  for  his  home  in  one  of  the  royal  car- 
riages. On  the  way  they  passed  a  great  bog,  and  the  Pig  ordered 
the  carriage  to  stop,  and  got  out  and  rolled  about  in  the  mire  till 
he  was  covered  with  mud  from  head  to  foot ;  then  he  got  back 
into  the  carriage  and  told  his  wife  to  kiss  him.  What  was  the 
poor  girl  to  do  ?  She  bethought  herself  of  her  father's  words,  and, 
pulling  out  her  pocket  handkerchief,  she  gently  wiped  the  Pig's 
snout  and  kissed  it. 

By  the  time  they  reached  the  Pig's  dwelling,  which  stood  in  a 
thick  wood,  it  was  quite  dark.  They  sat  down  quietly  for  a  little,  as 
they  were  tired  after  their  drive  ;  then  they  had  supper  together,  and 
lay  down  to  rest.  During  the  night  the  Princess  noticed  that  the  Pig 
had  changed  into  a  man.  She  was  not  a  little  surprised,  but  re- 
membering her  father's  words,  she  took  courage,  determined  to 
wait  and  see  what  would  happen. 

And  now  she  noticed  that  every  night  the  Pig  became  a  man, 
and  every  morning  he  was  changed  into  a  Pig  before  she  awoke. 
This  happened  several  nights  running,  and  the  Princess  could  not 
understand  it  at  all.  Clearly  her  husband  must  be  bewitched.  In 
time  she  grew  quite  fond  of  him,  he  was  so  kind  and  gentle. 

One  fine  day  as  she  was  sitting  alone  she  saw  an  old  witch  go  jmst. 
She  felt  quite  excited,  as  it  was  so  long  since  she  had  seen  :i  human 
being,  and  she  called  out  to  the  old  woman  to  come  and  talk  to  her. 
Among  other  things  the  witch  told  her  that  she  understood  all 
magic  arts,  and  that  she  could  foretell  the  future,  and  knew  the 
healing  powers  of  herbs  and  plants. 


THE  ENCHANTED  PIG  109 

'  I  shall  be  grateful  to  you  all  my  life,  old  dame,'  said  the 
Princess,  '  if  you  will  tell  me  what  is  the  matter  with  my  husband. 
Why  is  he  a  Pig  by  day  and  a  human  being  by  night  ?  ' 

'  I  was  just  going  to  tell  you  that  one  thing,  my  dear,  to  show 
you  what  a  good  fortune-teller  I  am.  If  you  like,  I  will  give  you  a 
herb  to  break  the  spell.' 

'  If  you  will  only  give  it  to  me,'  said  the  Princess,  '  I  will  give 
you  anything  you  choose  to  ask  for,  for  I  cannot  bear  to  see  him  in 
this  state.' 

'  Here,  then,  my  dear  child,'  said  the  witch,  '  take  this  thread, 
but  do  not  let  him  know  about  it,  for  if  he  did  it  would  lose  its 
healing  power.  At  night,  when  he  is  asleep,  you  must  get  up  very 
quietly,  and  fasten  the  thread  round  his  left  foot  as  firmly  as 
possible  ;  and  you  will  see  in  the  morning  he  will  not  have  changed 
back  into  a  Pig,  but  will  still  be  a  man.  I  do  not  want  any  reward. 
I  shall  be  sufficiently  repaid  by  knowing  that  you  are  happy.  It 
almost  breaks  my  heart  to  think  of  all  you  have  suffered,  and  I  only 
wish  I  had  known  it  sooner,  as  I  should  have  come  to  your  rescue 
at  once.' 

When  the  old  witch  had  gone  away  the  Princess  hid  the  thread 
very  carefully,  and  at  night  she  got  up  quietly,  and  with  a  beating 
heart  she  bound  the  thread  round  her  husband's  foot.  Just  as  she 
was  pulling  the  knot  tight  there  was  a  crack,  and  the  thread  broke, 
for  it  was  rotten. 

Her  husband  awoke  with  a  start,  and  said  to  her,  '  Unhappy 
woman,  what  have  you  done  ?  Three  days  more  and  this  unholy 
spell  would  have  fallen  from  me,  and  now,  who  knows  how  long  I 
may  have  to  go  about  in  this  disgusting  shape  ?  I  must  leave  you 
at  once,  and  we  shall  not  meet  again  until  you  have  worn  out  three 
pairs  of  iron  shoes  and  blunted  a  steel  staff  in  your  search  for  me.' 
So  saying  he  disappeared. 

Now,  when  the  Princess  was  left  alone  she  began  to  weep  and 
moan  in  a  way  that  was  pitiful  to  hear ;  but  when  she  saw  that 
her  tears  and  groans  did  her  no  good,  she  got  up,  determined  to  go 
wherever  fate  shoiild  lead  her. 

On  reaching  a  town,  the  first  thing  she  did  was  to  order  three 
pairs  of  iron  sandals  and  a  steel  staff,  and  having  made  these  pre- 
parations for  her  journey,  she  set  out  in  search  of  her  husband.  On 
and  on  she  wandered  over  nine  seas  and  across  nine  continents ; 
through  forests  with  trees  whose  stems  were  as  thick  as  beer- 
barrels  ;  stumbling  and  knocking  herself  against  the  fallen  branches, 


110  THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

then  picking  herself  up  and  going  on ;  the  boughs  of  the  trees  hit 
her  face,  and  the  shrubs  tore  her  hands,  but  on  she  went,  and  never 
looked  back.  At  last,  wearied  with  her  long  journey  and  worn  out 
and  overcome  with  sorrow,  but  still  with  hope  at  her  heart,  she 
reached  a  house. 

Now  who  do  you  think  lived  there  ?     The  Moon. 

The  Princess  knocked  at  the  door,  and  begged  to  be  let  in  that 
she  might  rest  a  little.  The  mother  of  the  Moon,  when  she  saw  her 
sad  plight,  felt  a  great  pity  for  her,  and  took  her  in  and  nursed  and 
tended  her.  And  while  she  was  here  the  Princess  had  a  little 
baby. 

One  day  the  mother  of  the  Moon  asked  her : 

'  How  was  it  possible  for  you,  a  mortal,  to  get  hither  to  the 
house  of  the  Moon  ?  ' 

Then  the  poor  Princess  told  her  all  that  happened  to  her,  and 
added :  '  I  shall  always  be  thankful  to  Heaven  for  leading  me 
hither,  and  grateful  to  you  that  you  took  pity  on  me  and  on  my 
baby,  and  did  not  leave  us  to  die.  Now  I  beg  one  last  favour  of 
you ;  can  your  daughter,  the  Moon,  tell  me  where  rny  husband  is  ?  ' 

'  She  cannot  tell  you  that,  my  child,'  replied  the  goddess,  'but, 
if  you  will  travel  towards  the  East  until  you  reach  the  dwelling  of 
the  Sun,  he  may  be  able  to  tell  you  something.' 

Then  she  gave  the  Princess  a  roast  chicken  to  eat,  and  warned 
her  to  be  very  careful  not  to  lose  any  of  the  bones,  because  they 
might  be  of  great  use  to  her. 

When  the  Princess  had  thanked  her  once  more  for  her  hospi- 
tality and  for  her  good  advice,  and  had  thrown  away  one  pair  of 
shoes  that  were  worn  out,  and  had  put  on  a  second  pair,  she  tied  up 
the  chicken  bones  in  a  bundle,  and  taking  her  baby  in  her  arms  and 
her  staff  in  her  hand,  she  set  out  once  more  on  her  wanderings. 

On  and  on  and  on  she  went  across  bare  sandy  deserts,  where  the 
roads  were  so  heavy  that  for  every  two  steps  that  she  took  forwards 
she  fell  back  one ;  but  she  struggled  on  till  she  had  passed  these 
dreary  plains ;  next  she  crossed  high  rocky  mountains,  jumping 
from  crag  to  crag  and  from  peak  to  peak.  Sometimes  she  would 
rest  for  a  little  on  a  mountain,  and  then  start  afresh  always  far- 
ther and  farther  on.  She  had  to  cross  swamps  and  to  scale  moun- 
tain peaks  covered  with  flints,  so  that  her  feet  and  knees  and 
elbows  were  all  torn  and  bleeding,  and  sometimes  she  came  to  a 
precipice  across  which  she  could  not  jump,  and  she  had  to  crawl 
round  on  hands  and  knees,  helping  herself  along  with  her  staff. 


THE   ENCHANTED  PIG 


111 


At  length,  wearied  to  death,  she  reached  the  palace  in  which  the 
Sun  lived.  She  knocked  and  begged  for  admission.  The  mother  of 
the  Sun  opened  the  door,  and  was  astonished  at  beholding  a  mortal 
from  the  distant  earthly  shores,  arid  wept  with  pity  when  she 
heard  of  all  she  had  suffered.  Then,  having  promised  to  ask  her 
son  about  the  Princess's  husband,  she  hid  her  in  the  cellar,  so  that 
the  Sun  might  notice  nothing  on  his  return  home,  for  he  was  always 
in  a  bad  temper  when 
he  came  in  at  night. 

The  next  day  the 
Princess  feared  that 
tilings  would  not  go 
well  with  her,  for  the 
Sun  had  noticed  that 
some  one  from  the 
other  world  had  been 
in  the  palace.  But  his 
mother  had  soothed 
him  with  soft  words, 
assuring  him  that  this 
was  not  so.  So  the 
Princess  took  heart 
when  she  saw  how 
kindly  she  was  treated, 
and  asked : 

'  But  how  in  the 
world  is  it  possible  for 
the  Sun  to  be  angry  ? 
He  is  so  beaiTtiful  and 
so  good  to  mortals.' 

'This  is  how  it 
happens,'  replied  the 
Sun's  mother.  '  In 
the  morning  when  he 

stands  at  the  gates  of  paradise  he  is  happy,  and  smiles  on  the  whole 
world,  but  during  the  day  he  gets  cross,  because  he  sees  all  the  evil 
deeds  of  men,  and  that  is  why  his  heat  becomes  so  scorching ;  but 
in  the  evening  he  is  both  sad  and  angry,  for  he  stands  at  the  gates 
of  death ;  that  is  his  usual  course.  From  there  he  comes  back 
here.' 

She  then  told  the  Princess  that  she  had  asked  about  her  hus- 


112  THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

band,  but  that  her  son  had  replied  that  he  knew  nothing  about  him, 
and  that  her  only  hope  was  to  go  and  inquire  of  the  Wind. 

Before  the  Princess  left  the  mother  of  the  Sun  gave  her  a  roast 
chicken  to  eat,  and  advised  her  to  take  great  care  of  the  bones, 
which  she  did,  wrapping  them  up  in  a  bundle.  She  then  threw 
away  her  second  pair  of  shoes,  which  were  quite  worn  out,  and  with 
her  child  on  her  arm  and  her  staff  in  her  hand,  she  set  forth  on 
her  way  to  the  Wind. 

In  these  wanderings  she  met  with  even  greater  difficulties  than 
before,  for  she  came  upon  one  mountain  of  flints  after  another,  out 
of  which  tongues  of  fire  would  flame  up ;  she  passed  through  woods 
which  had  never  been  trodden  by  human  foot,  and  had  to  cross 
fields  of  ice  and  avalanches  of  snow.  The  poor  woman  nearly 
died  of  these  hardships,  but  she  kept  a  brave  heart,  and  at  length 
she  reached  an  enormous  cave  in  the  side  of  a  mountain.  This 
was  where  the  Wind  lived.  There  was  a  little  door  in  the  railing 
in  front  of  the  cave,  and  here  the  Princess  knocked  and  begged  for 
admission.  The  mother  of  the  Wind  had  pity  on  her  and  took  her 
in,  that  she  might  rest  a  little.  Here  too  she  was  hidden  away,  so 
that  the  Wind  might  not  notice  her. 

The  next  morning  the  mother  of  the  Wind  told  her  that  her  hus- 
band was  living  in  a  thick  wood,  so  thick  that  no  axe  had  been  able 
to  cut  a  way  through  it ;  here  he  had  built  himself  a  sort  of  house 
by  placing  trunks  of  trees  together  and  fastening  them  with  withes 
and  here  he  lived  alone,  shunning  human  kind. 

After  the  mother  of  the  Wind  had  given  the  Princess  a  chicken 
to  eat,  and  had  warned  her  to  take  care  of  the  bones,  she  advised 
her  to  go  by  the  Milky  Way,  which  at  night  lies  across  the  sky,  and 
to  wander  on  till  she  reached  her  goal. 

Having  thanked  the  old  woman  with  tears  in  her  eyes  for  her 
hospitality,  and  for  the  good  news  she  had  given  her,  the  Princess 
set  out  on  her  journey  and  rested  neither  night  nor  day,  so  great 
was  her  longing  to  see  her  husband  again.  On  and  on  she  walked 
until  her  last  pair  of  shoes  fell  in  pieces.  So  she  threw  them  away 
and  went  on  with  bare  feet,  not  heeding  the  bogs  nor  the  thorns 
that  wounded  her,  nor  the  stones  that  bruised  her.  At  last  she 
reached  a  beautiful  green  meadow  on  the  edge  of  a  wood.  Her 
heart  was  cheered  by  the  sight  of  the  flowers  and  the  soft  cool 
grass,  and  she  sat  down  and  rested  for  a  little.  But  hearing  the 
birds  chirping  to  their  mates  among  the  trees  made  her  think  with 
longing  of  her  husband,  and  she  wept  bitterly,  and  taking  her  child 


THE   ES CHARTED   PIG 


113 


in  her  arms,  and  her  bundle  of  chicken  bones  on  her  shoulder,  she 
entered  the  wood. 

For  three  days  and  three  nights  she  struggled  through  it,  but 
could  find  nothing.  She  was  quite  worn  out  with  weariness  and 
hunger,  and  even  her  staff  was  no  further  help  to  her,  for  in  her 
many  wanderings  it  had  become  quite  blunted.  She  almost  gave 
up  in  despair,  but  made  one  last  great  effort,  and  suddenly  in  a 
thicket  she  came  upon  the  sort 
of  house  that  the  mother  of  the 
Wind  had  described.  It  had  no 
windows,  and  the  door  was  up 
in  the  roof.  Round  the  house 
she  went,  in  search  of  steps,  but 
could  find  none.  "What  was  she 
to  do  ?  How  was  she  to  get  in  ? 
She  thought  and  thought,  and 
tried  in  vain  to  climb  up  to  the 
door.  Then  suddenly  she  be- 
thought her  of  the  chicken  bones 
that  she  had  dragged  all  that 
weary  way,  and  she  said  to  her- 
self: '  They  would  not  all  have 
told  me  to  take  such  good  care 
of  these  bones  if  they  had  not 
had  some  good  reason  for  doing 
so.  Perhaps  now.  in  my  hour 
of  need,  they  may  be  of  use  to 
me.' 

So  she  took  the  bones  out  of 
her  bundle,  and  having  thought 
for  a  moment,  she  placed  the  two 
ends  together.  To  her  surprise 
they  stuck  tight ;  then  she  added 
the  other  bones,  till  she  had  two 

long  poles  the  height  of  the  house ;  these  she  placed  against  the  wall, 
at  a  distance  of  a  yard  from  one  another.  Across  them  she  placed 
the  other  bones,  piece  by  piece,  like  the  steps  of  a  ladder.  As  soon 
as  one  step  was  finished  she  stood  upon  it  and  made  the  next  one, 
and  then  the  next,  till  she  was  close  to  the  door.  But  just  as  she  got 
near  the  top  she  noticed  that  there  were  no  bones  left  for  the  last 
rung  of  the  ladder.  "What  was  she  to  do  ?  Without  that  last  step 

R.  I 


114  THE  ENCHANTED  PIG 

the  whole  ladder  was  useless.  She  must  have  lost  one  of  the  bones. 
Then  suddenly  an  idea  came  to  her.  Taking  a  knife  she  chopped 
off  her  little  finger,  and  placing  it  on  the  last  step,  it  stuck  as  the 
bones  had  done.  The  ladder  was  complete,  and  with  her  child  on 
her  arm  she  entered  the  door  of  the  house.  Here  she  found  every- 
thing in  perfect  order.  Having  taken  some  food,  she  laid  the  child 
down  to  sleep  in  a  trough  that  was  on  the  floor,  and  sat  down  her- 
self to  rest. 

When  her  husband,  the  Pig,  came  back  to  his  house,  he  was 
startled  by  what  he  saw.  At  first  he  could  not  believe  his  eyes, 
and  stared  at  the  ladder  of  bones,  and  at  the  little  finger  on  the  top 
of  it.  He  felt  that  some  fresh  magic  must  be  at  work,  and  in  his 
terror  he  almost  turned  away  from  the  house ;  but  then  a  better 
idea  came  to  him,  and  he  changed  himself  into  a  dove,  so  that  no 
witchcraft  could  have  power  over  him,  and  flew  into  the  room 
without  touching  the  ladder.  Here  he  found  a  woman  rocking  a 
child.  At  the  sight  of  her,  looking  so  changed  by  all  that  she  had 
suffered  for  his  sake,  his  heart  was  moved  by  such  love  and  longing 
and  by  so  great  a  pity  that  he  suddenly  became  a  man. 

The  Princess  stood  up  when  she  saw  him.  and  her  heart  beat 
with  fear,  for  she  did  not  know  him.  Pmt  when  he  had  told  her 
who  he  was,  in  her  great  joy  she  forgot  all  her  sufferings,  and  they 
seemed  as  nothing  to  her.  He  was  a  very  hands.ome  man,  as 
straight  as  a  fir  tree.  They  sat  down  together  and  she  told 
him  all  her  adventures,  and  he  wept  with  pity  at  the  tale.  And 
then  he  told  her  his  own  history. 

'  I  am  a  King's  son.  Once  when  my  father  was  fighting  against 
some  dragons,  who  were  the  scourge  of  our  country,  I  slew  the 
youngest  dragon.  His  mother,  who  was  a  witch,  cast  a  spell  over  me 
and  changed  me  into  a  Pig.  It  was  she  who  in  the  disguise  of  an 
old  woman  gave  you  the  thread  to  bind  round  my  foot.  So  that 
instead  of  the  three  days  that  had  to  run  before  the  spell  was  broken, 
I  was  forced  to  remain  a  Pig  for  three  more  years.  Now  that  we 
have  suffered  for  each  other,  and  have  found  each  other  again,  let 
us  forget  the  past.' 

And  in  their  joy  they  kissed  one  another. 

Next  morning  they  set  out  eaiiy  to  return  to  his  father's  king- 
dom. Great  was  the  rejoicing  of  all  the  people  when  they  saw  him 
and  his  wife  ;  his  father  and  his  mother  embraced  them  both,  and 
there  was  feasting  in  the  palace  for  three  days  and  three  nights. 

Then  they  set  out  to  see  her  father.     The  old  King  nearly  went 


THE  ENCHANTED   PIG  115 

out  of  his  inind  with  joy  at  beholding  his  daughter  again.  When 
she  had  told  him  all  her  adventures,  he  said  to  her : 

'  Did  not  I  tell  you  that  I  was  quite  sure  that  that  creature  who 
wooed  and  won  you  as  his  wife  had  not  been  born  a  Pig  ?  You  see, 
my  child,  how  wise  you  were  in  doing  what  I  told  you.' 

And  as  the  King  was  old  and  had  no  heirs,  he  put  them  on  the 
throne  in  his  place.  And  they  ruled  as  only  kings  rule  who  have 
suffered  many  things.  And  if  they  are  not  dead  they  are  still  living 
and  ruling  happily.1 

1  Runiaiiische  Marcheu  ubersetzt  von  Nite  Krenmitz. 


12 


116 


THE  NOEKA 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  and  Queen.  They  had  three 
sons,  two  of  them  with  their  wits  about  them,  but  the  third  a 
simpleton.  Now  the  King  had  a  deer  park  in  which  were  quantities 
of  wild  animals  of  different  kinds.  Into  that  park  there  used  to 
come  a  huge  beast — Norka  was  its  name — and  do  fearful  mischief. 
devouring  some  of  the  animals  every  night.  The  King  did  all  he 
could,  but  he  was  unable  to  destroy  it.  So  at  last  he  called  his 
sons  together  and  said,  '  Whoever  will  destroy  the  Norka,  to  him 
will  I  give  the  half  of  my  kingdom.' 

"Well,  the  eldest  son  undertook  the  task.  As  soon  as  it  was  night, 
he  took  his  weapons  and  set  out.  But  before  he  reached  the  park, 
he  went  into  a  traktir  (or  tavern),  and  there  he  spent  the  whole 
night  in  revelry.  When  he  came  to  his  senses  it  was  too  late  ;  the 
day  had  already  dawned.  He  felt  himself  disgraced  in  the  eyes  of 
his  father,  but  there  was  no  help  for  it.  The  next  day  the  second 
son  went,  and  did  just  the  same.  Their  father  scolded  them  both 
soundly,  and  there  was  an  end  of  it. 

"Well,  on  the  third  day  the  youngest  son  undertook  the  task. 
They  all  laughed  him  to  scorn,  because  he  was  so  stupid,  feeling 
sure  he  wouldn't  do  anything.  But  lie  took  his  arms,  and  went 
straight  into  the  park,  and  sat  down  on  the  grass  in  such  a  position 
that  the  moment  he  went  asleep  his  weapons  would  prick  him,  and 
he  would  awake. 

Presently  the  midnight  hour  sounded.  The  earth  began  to 
shake,  and  the  Norka  came  rushing  up,  and  burst  right  through 
the  fence  into  the  park,  so  huge  was  it.  The  Prince  pulled  himself 
together,  leapt  to  his  feet,  crossed  himself,  and  went  straight  at  I  lie 
beast.  It  fled  back,  and  the  Prince  ran  after  it.  But  lie  soon  saw 
that  he  couldn't  catch  it  on  foot,  so  he  hastened  to  the  stable,  laid 
his  hands  on  the  best  horse  there,  and  set  off  in  pursuit.  Presently 
he  came  up  with  the  beast,  and  they  began  a  fight.  They  fought 


THE   NOPKA  117 

and  fought ;  the  Prince  gave  the  beast  three  wounds.  At  last  they 
were  both  utterly  exhausted,  so  they  lay  down  to  take  a  short  rest. 
But  the  moment  the  Prince  closed  his  eyes,  up  jumped  the  beast 
and  took  to  flight.  The  Prince's  horse  awoke  him  ;  up  he  jumped 
in  a  moment,  and  set  off  again  in  pursuit,  caught  up  the  beast,  and 
again  began  fighting  with  it.  Again  the  Prince  gave  the  beast 
three  wounds,  and  then  he  and  the  beast  lay  down  again  to  rest. 
Thereupon  away  tied  the  beast  as  before.  The  Prince  caught  it  up, 
and  again  gave  it  three  wounds.  But  all  of  a  sudden,  just  as  the 
Prince  began  chasing  it  for  the  fourth  time,  the  beast  fled  to  a  great 
white  stone,  tilted  it  up,  and  escaped  into  the  other  world,  crying 
out  to  the  Prince  :  '  Then  only  will  yon  overcome  me,  when  you 
enter  here.' 

The  Prince  went  home,  told  his  father  all  that  had  happened, 
and  asked  him  to  have  a  leather  rope  plaited,  long  enough  to  reach 
to  the  other  world.  His  father  ordered  this  to  be  done.  When  the 
rope  was  made,  the  Prince  called  for  his  brothers,  and  he  and  they, 
having  taken  servants  with  them,  and  everything  that  was  needed 
for  a  whole  year,  set  oiit  for  the  place  where  the  beast  had  disap- 
peared under  the  stone.  When  they  got  there,  they  built  a  palace 
on  the  spot,  and  lived  in  it  for  some  time.  Biit  when  everything 
was  ready,  the  youngest  brother  said  to  the  others  :  '  Now,  brothers, 
who  is  going  to  lift  this  stone  ?  ' 

Neither  of  them  could  so  much  as  stir  it,  but  as  soon  as  he 
touched  it,  away  it  flew  to  a  distance,  though  it  was  ever  so  big — 
big  as  a  hill.  And  when  he  had  flung  the  stone  aside,  he  spoke  a 
second  time  to  his  brothers,  saying : 

'  Who  is  going  into  the  other  world,  to  overcome  the  Norka  ?  ' 

Neither  of  them  offered  to  do  so.  Then  he  laughed  at  them  for 
being  such  cowards,  and  said  : 

'  Well,  brothers,  farewell !  Lower  me  into  the  other  world,  and 
don't  go  away  from  here,  but  as  soon  as  the  cord  is  jerked,  pull  it 
up.' 

His  brothers  lowered  him  accordingly,  and  when  he  had 
reached  the  other  world,  underneath  the  earth,  he  went  on  his  way. 
He  walked  and  walked.  Presently  he  espied  a  horse  with  rich 
trappings,  and  it  said  to  him  : 

'  Hail,  Prince  Ivan  !     Long  have  I  awaited  thee  !  ' 

He  mounted  the  horse  and  rode  on— rode  and  rode,  until  he  saw 
standing  before  him  a  palace  made  of  copper.  He  entered  the 
courtyard,  tied  up  his  horse,  and  went  indoors.  In  one  of  the  rooms 


118 


THR  NORKA 


a  dinner  was  laid  out.  He  sat  down  and  dined,  and  then  went  into 
a  bedroom.  There  he  found  a  bed,  on  which  he  lay  down  to  rest. 
Presently  there  came  in  a  lady,  more  beautiful  than  can  be  imagined 
anywhere  but  in  a  fairy  tale,  who  said : 

'  Thou  who  art  in  my  house,  name  thyself!  If  thou  art  an  old 
man,  thou  shalt  be  my  father  ;  if  a  middle-aged  man,  my  brother ; 
but  if  a  young  man,  thou  shalt  be  my  husband  dear.  And  if  thoii 
art  a  woman,  and  an  old  one,  thou  shalt  be  my  grandmother ;  if 


middle-aged,  my  mother;  and  if  a  girl,  thou  shalt  bo  my  own 
sister.' 

Thereupon  he  came  forth.  And  when  she  saw  him  she  was 
delighted  with  him,  and  said  : 

'  Wherefore,  0  Prince  Ivan— my  husband  dear  shalt  thou  be ! — 
wherefore  hast  thou  come  hither  ?  ' 

Then  he  told  her  all  that  had  happened,  and  she  said  : 

'  That  beast  which  thou  wishest  to  overcome  is  my  brother. 
He  is  staying  just  now  with  my  second  sister,  who  lives  not  far  from 
here  in  a  silver  palace.  I  bound  up  three  of  the  wounds  which  thou 
didst  give  him.' 


THE  NORKA  119 

Well,  after  this  they  drank,  and  enjoyed  themselves,  and  held 
sweet  converse  together,  and  then  the  Prince  took  leave  of  her,  and 
went  on  to  the  second  sister,  the  one  who  lived  in  the  silver  palace, 
and  with  her  also  he  stayed  awhile.  She  told  him  that  her  brother 
Norka  was  then  at  her  youngest  sister's.  So  he  went  on  to  the 
youngest  sister,  who  lived  in  a  golden  palace.  She  told  him  that 
her  brother  was  at  that  time  asleep  on  the  blue  sea,  and  she  gave 
him  a  sword  of  steel  and  a  draught  of  the  Water  of  Strength,  and 
she  told  him  to  cut  off  her  brother's  head  at  a  single  stroke.  And 
when  he  had  heard  these  things,  he  went  his  way. 

And  when  the  Prince  came  to  the  bhie  sea,  he  looked — there 
slept  the  Norka  on  a  stone  in  the  middle  of  the  sea  ;  and  when  it 
snored,  the  water  was  agitated  for  seven  miles  around.  The  Prince 
crossed  himself,  went  up  to  it,  and  smote  it  on  the  head  with  his 
sword.  The  head  jumped  off,  saying  the  while,  '  Well,  I'm  done 
for  now  !  '•  and  rolled  far  away  into  the  sea. 

After  killing  the  beast,  the  Prince  went  back  again,  picking  up 
all  the  three  sisters  by  the  way,  with  the  intention  of  taking  them 
out  into  the  iipper  world :  for  they  all  loved  him  and  would  not  be 
separated  from  him.  Each  of  them  turned  her  palace  into  an  egg 
— for  they  were  all  enchantresses — and  they  taught  him  how  to 
turn  the  eggs  into  palaces,  and  back  again,  and  they  handed  over 
the  eggs  to  him.  And  then  they  all  went  to  the  place  from  which 
they  had  to  be  hoisted  into  the  upper  world.  And  when  they  came 
to  where  the  rope  was,  the  Prince  took  hold  of  it  and  made  the 
maidens  fast  to  it.  Then  he  jerked  away  at  the  rope  and  his 
brothers  began  to  haul  it  up.  And  when  they  had  hauled  it  up, 
and  had  set  eyes  on  the  wondrous  maidens,  they  went  aside  and 
said  :  '  Let's  lower  the  rope,  pull  our  brother  part  of  the  way  up, 
and  then  cut  the  rope.  Perhaps  he'll  be  killed ;  but  then  if  he  isn't, 
he'll  never  give  us  these  beauties  as  wives.' 

So  when  they  had  agreed  on  this,  they  lowered  the  rope.  But 
their  brother  was  no  fool ;  he  guessed  what  they  were  at,  so  he 
fastened  the  rope  to  a  stone,  and  then  gave  it  a  pull.  His  brothers 
hoisted  the  stone  to  a  great  height,  and  then  cut  the  rope.  Down 
fell  the  stone  and  broke  in  pieces ;  the  Prince  poured  forth  tears 
and  went  away.  Well,  he  walked  and  walked.  Presently  a  storm 
arose  ;  the  lightning  flashed,  the  thunder  roared,  the  rain  fell  in 
torrents.  He  went  up  to  a  tree  in  order  to  take  shelter  under  it, 
and  on  that  tree  he  saw  some  young  birds  which  were  being 
thoroughly  drenched.  So  he  took  off  his  coat  and  covered  them 


120 


THE   NOIiKA 


over  with  it,  and  he  himself  sat  down  under  the  tree.  Present  l\ 
there  came  Hying  a  bird — such  a  big  one  that  the  light  was  blotted 
o:tt  by  it.  It  had  been  dark  there  before,  but  now  it  became  darker 
still.  Now  this  was  the  mother  of  those  small  birds  which  the 
Prince  had  covered  up.  And  when  the  bird  had  come  flying  up, 


she  perceived  that  her  little  ones  were  covered  over,  and  she  s;iid, 
'  Who  has  wrapped  up  my  nestlings  ?  '  and  presently,  seeing  the 
Prince,  she  added  :  '  Didst  thou  do  that  ?     Thanks  !     In  return,  ask 
of  me  anything  thou  desirest.     I  will  do  anything  for  thee.' 
'  Then'  carry  me  into  the  other  world,'  he  replied. 


THE   NOPK.l  121 

'  Make  me  a  large  vessel  with  a  partition  in  the  middle,'  she 
said;  'catch  all  sorts  of  game,  and  put  them  into  one  half  of  it, 
and  into  the  other  half  pour  water  ;  so  that  there  may  he  meat  and 
drink  for  me.' 

All  this  the  Prince  did.  Then  the  bird — having  taken  the 
vessel  011  her  hack,  with  the  Prince  sitting  in  the  middle  of  it — 
began  to  fly.  And  after  flying  some  distance  she  brought  him  to 
his  journey's  end,  took  leave  of  him,  and  flew  away  back.  But  he 
went  to  the  house  of  a  certain  tailor,  and  engaged  himself  as  his 
servant.  So  much  the  worse  for  wear  was  he,  so  thoroughly  had  he 
altered  in  appearance,  that  nobody  would  have  suspected  him  of 
being  a  Prince. 

Having  entered  into  the  service  of  this  master,  the  Prince  began 
to  ask  what  was  going  on  in  that  country.  And  his  master  replied : 
'  Our  two  Princes — for  the  third  one  has  disappeared— have  brought 
away  brides  from  the  other  world,  and  want  to  marry  them,  but 
those  brides  refuse.  For  they  insist  on  having  all  their  wedding- 
clothes  made  for  them  first,  exactly  like  those  which  they  used  to 
have  in  the  other  world,  and  that  without  being  measured  for  them. 
The  King  has  called  all  the  workmen  together,  but  not  one  of  them 
will  undertake  to  do  it,' 

The  Prince,  having  heard  all  this,  said,  '  Go  to  the  King,  master, 
and  tell  him  that  you  will  provide  everything  that's  in  your  line.' 

'  However  can  I  undertake  to  make  clothes  of  that  sort  ?  I  work 
for  quite  common  folks,'  says  his  master. 

'  Go  along,  master !  I  will  answer  for  everything,'  says  the 
Prince. 

So  the  tailor  went.  The  King  was  delighted  that  at  least  one 
good  workman  had  been  found,  and  gave  him  as  much  money  as 
ever  he  wanted.  When  his  tailor  had  settled  everything,  he  went 
home.  And  the  Prince  said  to  him : 

'  Now  then,  pray  to  God,  and  lie  down  to  sleep;  to-morrow  all 
will  be  ready.'  And  the  tailor  followed  his  lad's  advice,  and  went 
to  bed. 

Midnight  sounded.  The  Prince  arose,  went  out  of  the  city  into 
the  fields,  took  out  of  his  pocket  the  eggs  which  the  maidens  had 
given  him,  and,  as  they  had  taught  him,  turned  them  into  three 
palaces.  Into  each  of  these  he  entered,  took  the  maidens'  robes, 
went  out  again,  turned  the  palaces  back  into  eggs,  and  went  home. 
And  when  lie  got  there  he  hung  up  the  robes  on  the  wall,  and  lay 
<lo\vn  to  sleep. 


122  THE  NORKA 

Early  in  the  morning  his  master  awoke,  and  behold  !  there 
hung  such  robes  as  he  had  never  seen  before,  all  shining  with  gold 
and  silver  and  precious  stones.  He  was  delighted,  and  he  seized 
them  and  carried  them  off  to  the  King.  When  the  Princesses  saw 
that  the  clothes  were  those  which  had  been  theirs  in  the  other 
world,  they  guessed  that  Prince  Ivan  was  in  this  world,  so  they 
exchanged  glances  with  each  other,  but  they  held  their  peace. 
And  the  master,  having  handed  over  the  clothes,  went  home,  but 
he  no  longer  found  his  dear  journeyman  there.  For  the  Prince  had 
gone  to  a  shoemaker's,  and  him  too  he  sent  to  work  for  the  King ; 
and  in  the  same  way  he  went  the  round  of  all  the  artificers,  and 
they  all  proffered  him  thanks,  inasmuch  as  through  him  they  were 
enriched  by  the  King. 

By  the  time  the  princely  workman  had  gone  the  round  of  all 
the  artificers,  the  Princesses  had  received  what  they  had  asked  for  ; 
all  their  clothes  were  just  like  what  they  had  been  in  the  other 
world.  Then  they  wept  bitterly  because  the  Prince  had  not  come, 
and  it  was  impossible  for  them  to  hold  out  any  longer ;  it  was 
necessary  that  they  should  be  married.  But  when  they  were  ready 
for  the  wedding,  the  youngest  bride  said  to  the  King : 

'  Allow  me,  my  father,  to  go  and  give  alms  to  the  beggars.' 

He  gave  her  leave,  and  she  went  and  began  bestowing  alms 
tipon  them,  and  examining  them  closely.  And  when  she  had 
come  to  one  of  them,  and  was  going  to  give  him  some  money,  she 
caught  sight  of  the  ring  which  she  had  given  to  the  Prince  in  the 
other  world,  and  her  sisters'  rings  too— for  it  really  was  he.  So 
she  seized  him  by  the  hand,  and  brought  him  into  the  hall,  and 
said  to  the  King  : 

'Here  is  he  who  brought  us  out  of  the  other  world.  His 
brothers  forbade  us  to  say  that  he  was  alive,  threatening  to  slay  us 
if  we  did.' 

Then  the  King  was  wroth  with  those  sons,  and  punished  them 
as  he  thought  best.  And  afterwards  three  weddings  were  cele- 
brated. 


123 


THE   WONDERFUL  BIRCH 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  were  a  man  and  a  woman,  who  had  an 
only  daughter.     Now  it  happened  that  one  of  their  sheep  went 
astray,  and  they  set  out  to  look  for  it,  and  searched  and  searched, 
each  in  a  different  part  of  the  wood.     Then  the  good  wife  met  a 
witch,  who  said  to  her  : 

'  If  you  spit,  you  miserable  creature,  if  you  spit  into  the  sheath 
of  my  knife,  or  if  you  run  between  my  legs,  I  shall  change  you  into 
a  black  sheep.' 

The  woman  neither  spat,  nor  did  she  run  between  her  legs,  but 
yet  the  witch  changed  her  into  a  sheep.     Then  she  made  herself 
look  exactly  like  the  woman,  and  called  out  to  the  good  man  : 
'  Ho,  old  man,  halloa  !     I  have  found  the  sheep  already  ! ' 

The  man  thought  the  witch  was  really  his  wife,  and  he  did 
not  know  that  his  wife  was  the  sheep  ;  so  he  went  home  with  her, 
glad  at  heart  because  his  sheep  was  found.  When  they  were  safe 
at  home  the  witch  said  to  the  man  : 

'Look  here,  old  man,  we  must  really  kill  that  sheep  lest  it  run 
away  to  the  wood  again.' 

The  man,  who  was  a  peaceable  quiet  sort  of  fellow,  made  no 
objections,  but  simply  said : 

'  Good,  let  us  do  so.' 

The  daughter,  however,  had  overheard  their  talk,  and  she  ran 
to  the  flock  and  lamented  aloud  : 

'  Oh,  dear  little  mother,  they  are  going  to  slaughter  you  ! ' 

'  Well,  then,  if  they  do  slaughter  me,'  was  the  black  sheep's 
answer,  '  eat  you  neither  the  meat  nor  the  broth  that  is  made  of 
me,  but  gather  all  my  bones,  and  bury  them  by  the  edge  of  the 
field.' 

Shortly  after  this  they  took  the  black  sheep  from  the  flock  and 
slaughtered  it.  The  witch  made  pease-soup  of  it,  and  set  it  before 
the  daughter.  But  the  girl  remembered  her  mother's  warning. 


1-24  THE    WONDERFUL   BIRCH 

She  did  not  touch  the  soup,  but  she  carried  the  bones  to  the  edge 
of  the  field  and  buried  them  there  ;  and  there  sprang  up  on  the 
spot  a  birch  tree — a  very  lovely  birch  tree. 

Some  time  had  passed  away — who  can  tell  how  long  they  might 
have  been  living  there  ? — when  the  witch,  to  whom  a  child  had  been 
born  in  the  meantime,  began  to  take  an  ill-will  to  the  man's 
daughter,  and  to  torment  her  in  all  sorts  of  ways. 

Now  it  happened  that  a  great  festival  was  to  be  held  at  the 
palace,  and  the  King  had  commanded  that  all  the  people  should  be 
invited,  and  that  this  proclamation  should  be  made  : 

'  Come,  people  all ! 
Poor  and  wretched,  one  and  all ! 
Blind  and  crippled  though  ye  be, 
Mount  your  steeds  or  come  by  sea.' 

And  so  they  drove  into  the  King's  feast  all  the  outcasts,  and  the 
maimed,  and  the  halt,  and  the  blind.  In  the  good  man's  house,  too, 
preparations  were  made  to  go  to  the  palace.  The  witch  said  to  the 
man : 

'  Go  you  on  in  front,  old  man,  with  our  youngest ;  1  will  give 
the  elder  girl  work  to  keep  her  from  being  dull  in  our  absence.' 

So  the  man  took  the  child  and  set  out.  But  the  witch  kindled 
a  fire  on  the  hearth,  threw  a  potful  of  barleycorns  among  the 
cinders,  and  said  to  the  girl : 

'  If  you  have  not  picked  the  barley  out  of  the  ashes,  and  put  it 
all  back  in  the  pot  before  nightfall,  I  shall  eat  you  up  !  ' 

Then  she  hastened  after  the  others,  and  the  poor  girl  stayed  at 
home  and  wept.  She  tried  to  be  sure  to  pick  up  the  grains  of 
barley,  but  she  soon  saw  how  useless  her  labour  was ;  and  so  she 
went  in  her  sore  trouble  to  the  birch  tree  on  her  mother's  grave, 
and  cried  and  cried,  because  her  mother  lay  dead  beneath  the  sod 
and  could  help  her  no  longer.  In  the  midst  of  her  grief  she  sud- 
denly heard  her  mother's  voice  speak  from  the  grave,  and  say  to 
her: 

'  Why  do  you  weep,  little  daughter  ?  ' 

'  The  witch  has  scattered  barleycorns  on  the  hearth,  and  bid 
me  pick  them  out  of  the  ashes,'  said  the  girl ;  '  that  is  why  I  weep, 
dear  little  mother.' 

'  Do  not  weep,'  said  her  mother  consolingly.  '  Break  off  one  oi 
my  branches,  and  strike  the  hearth  with  it  crosswise.  :md  all  will 
be  put  right.' 


THE    WONDERFUL    UIliCH 


125 


Tlie  girl  did  so.  She  struck  the  hearth  with  the  birchen  branch, 
and  lo  !  the  barleycorns  flew  into  the  pot,  and  the  hearth  was  clean. 
Then  she  went  back  to  the  birch  tree  and  laid  the  branch  upon  the 
grave.  Then  her  mother  bade  her  bathe  on  one  side  of  the  stem, 
dry  herself  on  another,  and  dress  on  the  third.  When  the  girl  had 
done  all  that,  she  had  grown  so  lovely  that  no  one  on  earth  could  rival 
her.  Splendid  clothing  was  given  to  her,  and  a  horse,  with  hair 
partly  of  gold,  partly  of  silver,  and  partly  of  something  more  precious 


pKsS'  ,.  jw/.~.v      - 


still.  The  girl  sprang  into  the  saddle,  and  rode  as  swift  as  an  arrow 
to  the  palace.  As  she  turned  into  the  courtyard  of  the  castle  the 
King's  son  came  out  to  meet  her,  tied  her  steed  to  a  pillar,  and  led 
her  in.  He  never  left  her  side  as  they  passed  through  the  castle 
rooms  ;  and  all  the  people  gazed  at  her,  and  wondered  who  the 
lovely  maiden  was,  and  from  what  castle  she  carne  ;  but  no  one 
knew  her — no  one  knew  anything  about  her.  At  the  banquet  the 
Prince  invited  her  to  sit  next  him  in  the  place  of  honour  ;  but  the 
witch's  daughter  gnawed  the  bones  under  the  table.  The  Prince 


126 

did  not  see  her,  and  thinking  it  was  a  dog,  he  gave  her  such  a  push 
with  his  foot  that  her  arm  was  broken.  Are  you  not  sorry  for  the 
witch's  daughter  ?  It  was  not  her  faiilt  that  her  mother  was  a 
witch. 

Towards  evening  the  good  man's  daughter  thought  it  was  time 
to  go  home ;  but  as  she  went,  her  ring  caught  on  the  latch  of  the 
door,  for  the  King's  son  had  had  it  smeared  with  tar.  She  did  not 
take  time  to  pull  it  off,  but,  hastily  unfastening  her  horse  from  the 
pillar,  she  rode  away  beyond  the  castle  walls  as  swift  as  an  arrow. 
Arrived  at  home,  she  took  oil'  her  clothes  by  the  birch  tree,  left  her 
horse  standing  there,  and  hastened  to  her  place  behind  the  stove. 
In  a  short  time  the  man  and  the  woman  came  home  again  too,  and 
the  witch  said  to  the  girl  : 

'  Ah  !  you  poor  thing,  there  you  are  to  be  sure  !  You  don't 
know  what  fine  times  we  have  had  at  the  palace  !  The  King's  son 
carried  my  daughter  about,  but  the  poor  thing  fell  and  broke  her 
arm.' 

The  girl  knew  well  how  matters  really  stood,  but  she  pretended 
to  know  nothing  about  it,  and  sat  dumb  behind  the  stove. 

The  next  day  they  were  invited  again  to  the  King's  banquet. 

'  Hey  !  old  man,'  said  the  witch,  '  get  on  your  clothes  as  quick 
as  you  can  ;  we  are  bidden  to  the  feast.  Take  you  the  child;  I  will 
give  the  other  one  work,  lest  she  weary.' 

She  kindled  the  fire,  threw  a  potful  of  hemp  seed  among  the 
ashes,  and  said  to  the  girl : 

'  If  yoii  do  not  get  this  sorted,  and  all  the  seed  back  into  the  pot, 
I  shall  kill  you  !  ' 

The  girl  wept  bitterly  ;  then  she  went  to  the  birch  tree,  washed 
herself  on  one  side  of  it  and  dried  herself  on  the  other ;  and  this 
time  still  finer  clothes  were  given  to  her,  and  a  very  beautiful 
steed.  She  broke  off  a  branch  of  the  birch  tree,  struck  the  hearth 
with  it,  so  that  the  seeds  flew  into  the  pot,  and  then  hastened  to  the 
castle. 

Again  the  King's  son  came  out  to  meet  her,  tied  her  horse  to  a 
pillar,  and  led  her  into  the  banqueting  hall.  At  the  feast  the  girl  sat 
next  him  in  the  place  of  honour,  as  she  had  done  the  day  before. 
But  the  witch's  daughter  gnawed  bones  under  the  table,  and  the 
Prince  gave  her  a  push  by  mistake,  which  broke  her  leg — lie  had 
never  noticed  her  crawling  about  among  the  people's  feet.  She 
was  very  unlucky  ! 

The  good  man's  daughter  hastened  home  again  betimes,  but  the 


THE    WONDERFUL   BIRCH  127 

King's  son  had  smeared  the  door-posts  with  tar,  and  the  girl's 
golden  circlet  stuck  to  it.  She  had  not  time  to  look  for  it,  but 
sprang  to  the  saddle  and  rode  like  an  arrow  to  the  birch  tree. 
There  she  left  her  horse  and  her  fine  clothes,  and  said  to  her 
mother : 

'  I  have  lost  my  circlet  at  the  castle  ;  the  door-post  was  tarred, 
and  it  stuck  fast.' 

'  And  even  had  you  lost  two  of  them,'  answered  her  mother,  '  I 
would  give  you  finer  ones.' 

Then  the  girl  hastened  home,  and  when  her  father  came  home 
from  the  feast  with  the  witch,  she  was  in  her  usual  place  behind 
the  stove.  Then  the  witch  said  to  her  : 

'  You  poor  thing  !  what  is  there  to  see  here  compared  with  what 
we  have  seen  at  the  palace  ?  The  King's  son  carried  my  daughter 
from  one  room  to  another  ;  he  let  her  fall,  'tis  true,  and  my  child's 
foot  was  broken.' 

The  man's  daughter  held  her  peace  all  the  time,  and  busied 
herself  about  the  hearth. 

The  night  passed,  and  when  the  day  began  to  dawn,  the  witch 
awakened  her  husband,  crying  : 

'  Hi !  get  up,  old  man  !     We  are  bidden  to  the  royal  banquet.' 

So  the  old  man  got  up.  Then  the  witch  gave  him  the  child, 
saying  : 

'  Take  you  the  little  one ;  I  will  give  the  other  girl  work  to  do, 
else  she  will  weary  at  home  alone.' 

She  did  as  usual.  This  time  it  was  a  dish  of  milk  she  poured 
upon  the  ashes,  saying : 

'  If  you  do  not  get  all  the  milk  into  the  dish  again  before  I  come 
home,  you  will  suffer  for  it.' 

How  frightened  the  girl  was  this  time  !  She  ran  to  the  birch 
tree,  and  by  its  magic  power  her  task  was  accomplished ;  and  then 
she  rode  away  to  the  palace  as  before.  When  she  got  to  the  court- 
yard she  found  the  Prince  waiting  for  her.  He  led  her  into  the 
hall,  where  she  was  highly  honoured ;  but  the  witch's  daughter 
sucked  the  bones  under  the  table,  and  crouching  at  the  people's  feet 
she  got  an  eye  knocked  out,  poor  thing  !  Now  no  one  knew  any 
more  than  before  about  the  good  man's  daughter,  no  one  knew 
whence  she  came ;  but  the  Prince  had  had  the  threshold  smeared 
with  tar,  and  as  she  fled  her  gold  slippers  stuck  to  it.  She  reached 
the  birch  tree,  and  laying  aside  her  finery,  she  said : 

'  Alas !  dear  little  mother,  I  have  lost  my  gold  slippers  !  ' 


128  THE    WONDERFUL  BIHC1I 

'  Let  them  be,'  was  her  mother's  reply ;  '  if  you  need  them  I 
shall  give  you  finer  ones.' 

Scarcely  was  she  in  her  usual  place  behind  the  stove  when  her 
father  came  home  with  the  witch.  Immediately  the  witch  began 
to  mock  her,  saying  : 

'  Ah  !  you  poor  thing,  there  is  nothing  for  you  to  see  here,  and 
we — ah  :  what  great  things  we  have  seen  at  the  palace  !  My  little 
girl  was  carried  about  again,  but  had  the  ill-luck  to  fall  and  get  her 
eye  knocked  out.  You  stupid  thing,  you,  what  do  you  know  about 
anything  ?  ' 

'  Yes,  indeed,  what  can  I  know  ?  '  replied  the  girl ;  '  I  had 
enough  to  do  to  get  the  hearth  clean.' 

Now  the  Prince  had  kept  all  the  things  the  girl  had  lost,  and  he 
soon  set  about  finding  the  owner  of  them.  For  this  purpose  a  great 
banquet  was  given  on  the  fourth  day,  and  all  the  people  were  in- 
vited to  the  palace.  The  witch  got  ready  to  go  too.  She  tied  a 
wooden  beetle  on  where  her  child's  foot  should  have  been,  a  log  of 
wood  instead  of  an  arm,  and  stuck  a  bit  of  dirt  in  the  empty  socket 
for  an  eye,  and  took  the  child  with  her  to  the  castle.  When  all  the 
people  were  gathered  together,  the  King's  son  stepped  in  among 
the  crowd  and  cried  : 

'  The  maiden  whose  finger  this  ring  slips  over,  whose  head  this 
golden  hoop  encircles,  and  whose  foot  this  shoe  fits,  shall  be  my 
bride.' 

What  a  great  trying  on  there  was  now  among  them  all !  The 
things  would  fit  no  one,  however. 

'  The  cinder  wench  is  not  hero,'  said  the  Prince  at  last ;  '  go  and 
fetch  her,  and  let  her  try  on  the  things.' 

So  the  girl  was  fetched,  and  the  Prince  was  just  going  to  hand 
the  ornaments  to  her,  when  the  witch  held  him  back,  saying  : 

'Don't  give  them  to  her;  she  soils  everything  with  cinders; 
give  them  to  my  daughter  rather.' 

Well,  then  the  Prince  gave  the  witch's  daughter  the  ring,  and 
the  woman  filed  and  pared  away  at  her  daughter's  finger  till  the 
ring  fitted.  It  was  the  aame  with  the  circlet  and  the  shoes  of  gold. 
The  witch  would  not  allow  them  to  be  handed  to  the  cinder  wench ; 
she  worked  at  her  own  daughter's  head  and  feet  till  she  got  the 
things  forced  on.  What  was  to  be  done  now  ?  The  IVincc  had  to 
take  the  witch's  daughter  for  his  bride  whether  he  would  or  no  ;  he 
sneaked  away  to  her  father's  house  with  her,  however,  for  he  was 
ashamed  to  hold  the  wedding  festivities  at  the  palace  with  so  strange 


THE    WONDERFUL   BIRCH  129 

a  bride.  Some  days  passed,  and  at  last  he  had  to  take  his  bride 
home  to  the  palace,  and  he  got  ready  to  do  so.  Just  as  they  were 
taking  leave,  the  kitchen  wench  sprang  down  from  her  place  by  the 
stove,  on  the  pretext  of  fetching  something  from  the  cowhouse,  and 
in  going  by  she  whispered  in  the  Prince's  ear  as  he  stood  in  the 
yard  : 

'  Alas  !  dear  Prince,  do  not  rob  nie  of  my  silver  and  my  gold.' 

Thereupon  the  King's  son  recognised  the  cinder  wench  ;  so  he 
took  both  the  girls  with  him,  and  set  out.  After  they  had  gone  some 
little  way  they  came  to  the  bank  of  a  river,  and  the  Prince  threw 
the  witch's  daughter  across  to  serve  as  a  bridge,  and  so  got  over 
with  the  cinder  wench.  There  lay  the  witch's  daughter  then,  like  a 
bridge  over  the  river,  and  could  not  stir,  though  her  heart  was 
consumed  with  grief.  No  help  was  near,  so  she  cried  at  last  in  her 
anguish : 

'  May  there  grow  a  golden  hemlock  out  of  my  body !  perhaps 
my  mother  will  know  me  by  that  token.' 

Scarcely  had  she  spoken  when  a  golden  hemlock  sprang  up  from 
her,  and  stood  upon  the  bridge. 

Now,  as  soon  as  the  Prince  had  got  rid  of  the  witch's  daughter 
he  greeted  the  cinder  wench  as  his  bride,  and  they  wandered  together 
to  the  birch  tree  which  grew  upon  the  mother's  grave.  There  they 
received  all  sorts  of  treasures  and  riches,  three  sacks  full  of  gold, 
and  as  much  silver,  and  a  splendid  steed,  which  bore  them  home  to 
the  palace.  There  they  lived  a  long  time  together,  and  the  young 
wife  bore  a  son  to  the  Prince.  Immediately  word  was  brought  to 
the  witch  that  her  daughter  had  borne  a  son— for  they  all  believed 
the  young  King's  wife  to  be  the  witch's  daughter. 

'  So,  so,'  said  the  witch  to  herself;  '  I  had  better  away  with  my 
gift  for  the  infant,  then.' 

And  so  saying  she  set  out.  Thus  it  happened  that  she  came  to 
the  bank  of  the  river,  and  there  she  saw  the  beautiful  golden  hem- 
lock growing  in  the  middle  of  the  bridge,  and  when  she  began  to 
cut  it  down  to  take  to  her  grandchild,  she  heard  a  voice  moaning : 

'  Alas  !  dear  mother,  do  not  cut  me  so  ! ' 

'  Are  you  here  ?  '  demanded  the  witch. 

'  Indeed  I  am,  dear  little  mother,'  answered  the  daughter 
'  They  threw  me  across  the  river  to  make  a  bridge  of  me.' 

In  a  moment  the  witch  had  the  biidge  shivered  to  atoms,  and 
then  she  hastened  away  to  the  palace.     Stepping  up  to  the  young 
Queen's  bed,  she  began  to  try  her  magic  arts  upon  her,  saying  : 
R.  K 


130  THE   WONDERFUL   BIRCH 

'  Spit,  you  wretch,  on  the  blade  of  my  knife  ;  bewitch  my  knife's 
blade  for  me,  and  I  shall  change  you  into  a  reindeer  of  the  forest.' 

'  Are  you  there  again  to  bring  trouble  upon  me  ?  '  said  the  young 
woman. 

She  neither  spat  nor  did  anything  else,  but  still  the  witch 
changed  her  into  a  reindeer,  and  smuggled  her  own  daughter  into 
her  place  as  the  Prince's  wife.  But  now  the  child  grew  restless 
and  cried,  because  it  missed  its  mother's  care.  They  took  it  to  the 
court,  and  tried  to  pacify  it  in  every  conceivable  way,  but  its  crying 
never  ceased. 

'  What  makes  the  child  so  restless  ?  '  asked  the  Prince,  and  he 
went  to  a  wise  widow  woman  to  ask  her  advice. 

'  Ay,  ay,  your  own  wife  is  not  at  home,'  said  the  widow  woman  ; 
4  she  is  living  like  a  reindeer  in  the  wood ;  you  have  the  witch's 
daughter  for  a  wife  now,  and  the  witch  herself  for  a  mother-in- 
law.' 

4  Is  there  any  way  of  getting  my  own  wife  back  from  the  wood 
again  ?  '  asked  the  Prince. 

'  Give  me  the  child,'  answered  the  widow  woman.  '  I'll  take  it 
with  me  to-morrow  when  I  go  to  drive  the  cows  to  the  wood.  I'll 
make  a  rustling  among  the  birch  leaves  and  a  trembling  among 
the  aspens — perhaps  the  boy  will  grow  quiet  when  he  hears  it.' 

'  Yes,  take  the  child  away,  take  it  to  the  wood  with  you  to  quiet 
it,'  said  the  Prince,  and  led  the  widow  woman  into  the  castle. 

4  How  now  ?  you  are  going  to  send  the  child  away  to  the  wood  ? ' 
said  the  witch  in  a  suspicious  tone,  and  tried  to  interfere. 

But  the  King's  son  stood  firm  by  what  he  had  commanded,  and 
said : 

'  Carry  the  child  about  the  wood ;  perhaps  that  will  pacify  it.' 

So  the  widow  woman  took  the  child  to  the  wood.  She  came  to 
the  edge  of  a  marsh,  and  seeing  a  herd  of  reindeer  there,  she  began 
all  at  once  to  sing — 

4  Little  Bright-eyes,  little  Redskin, 
Come  nurse  the  child  you  bore  ! 

That  bloodthirsty  monster, 

That  man-eater  grim, 
Shall  nurse  him,  shall  tend  him  no  more. 

They  may  threaten  and  force  as  they  will, 

He  turns  from  her,  shrinks  from  her  still,' 

and  immediately  the  reindeer  drew  near,  and  nursed  and  tended 


THE    WONDERFUL   BIECH  131 

the  child  the  whole  day  long ;  but  at  nightfall  it  had  to  follow  the 
herd,  and  said  to  the  widow  woman  : 

'  Bring  me  the  child  to-morrow,  and  again  the  following  day ; 
after  that  I  must  wander  with  the  herd  far  away  to  other  lands.' 

The  following  morning  the  widow  woman  went  back  to  the 
castle  to  fetch  the  child.  The  witch  interfered,  of  course,  but  the 
Prince  said : 

'  Take  it,  and  carry  it  about  in  the  open  air ;  the  boy  is  quieter 
at  night,  to  be  sure,  when  he  has  been  in  the  wood  all  day.' 

So  the  widow  took  the  child  in  her  arms,  and  carried  it  to  the 
marsh  in  the  forest.  There  she  sang  as  on  the  preceding  day — 

'  Little  Bright-eyes,  little  Eedskin, 
Come  nurse  the  child  you  bore  ! 

That  bloodthirsty  monster, 

That  man-eater  grim, 
Shall  nurse  him,  shall  tend  him  no  more. 

They  may  threaten  and  force  as  they  will, 

He  turns  from  her,  shrinks  from  her  still,' 

and  immediately  the  reindeer  left  the  herd  and  came  to  the  child, 
and  tended  it  as  on  the  day  before.  And  so  it  was  that  the  child 
throve,  till  not  a  finer  boy  was  to  be  seen  anj-where.  But  the 
King's  son  had  been  pondering  over  all  these  things,  and  he  said  to 
the  widow  woman : 

'  Is  there  no  way  of  changing  the  reindeer  into  a  human  being 
again  ? ' 

'  I  don't  rightly  know,'  was  her  answer.  '  Come  to  the  wood  with 
me,  however  ;  when  the  woman  puts  off  her  reindeer  skin  I  shall 
comb  her  head  for  her  ;  whilst  I  am  doing  so  you  must  burn  the  skin.' 

Thereupon  they  both  went  to  the  wood  with  the  child  ;  scarcely 
were  they  there  when  the  reindeer  appeared  and  nursed  the  child 
as  before.  Then  the  widow  woman  said  to  the  reindeer  : 

1  Since  you  are  going  far  away  to-morrow,  and  I  shall  not  see 
you  again,  let  me  comb  your  head  for  the  last  time,  as  a  remem- 
brance of  you.' 

Good ;  the  young  woman  stript  off  the  reindeer  skin,  and  let 
the  widow  woman  do  as  she  wished.  In  the  meantime  the  King's 
son  threw  the  reindeer  skin  into  the  fire  unobserved. 

'  What  smells  of  singeing  here  ?  '  asked  the  young  woman,  and 
looking  round  she  saw  her  own  husband.  '  Woe  is  me  !  you  have 
burnt  my  skin.  Why  did  you  do  that  ?  ' 

K2 


132 


THE    WONDEEFUL  BIRCH 


'  To  give  you  back  your  human  form  again.' 

'  Alack-a-day  !  I  have  nothing  to  cover  me  now,  poor  creature 
that  I  am  ! '  cried  the  young  woman,  and  transformed  herself  first 
into  a  distaff,  then  into  a  wooden  beetle,  then  into  a  spindle,  and 
into  all  imaginable  shapes.  But  all  these  shapes  the  King's  son 
went  on  destroying  till  she  stood  before  him  in  human  form  again. 


Alas !  wherefore  take  me  home  with  you  again,'  cried  the  young 
woman,  '  since  the  witch  is  sure  to  eat  me  up '?  ' 

'  She  will  not  eat  you  up,'  answered  her  husband ;  and  they 
started  for  home  with  the  child. 

But  when  the  witch  wife  saw  them  she  ran  away  with  hoi- 
daughter,  and  if  she  has  not  stopped  she  is  running  still,  though  at 
a  great  age.  And  the  Prince,  and  his  wife,  and  the  baby  lived 
happy  ever  afterwards.1 

1  From  the  Kusso-K.'iivliun. 


133 


JACK  AND   THE  BEANSTALK 

JACK  SELLS  THE  Cow 

ONCE  upon  a  time  there  was  a  poor  widow  who  lived  in  a  little 
cottage  with  her  only  son  Jack. 

Jack  was  a  giddy,  thoughtless  boy,  but  very  kind-hearted  and 
affectionate.  There  had  been  a  hard  winter,  and  after  it  the  poor 
woman,  had  suffered  from  fever  and  ague.  Jack  did  no  work  as  yet, 
and  by  degrees  they  grew  dreadfully  poor.  The  widow  saw  that 
there  was  no  means  of  keeping  Jack  and  herself  from  starvation 
but  by  selling  her  cow  ;  so  one  morning  she  said  to  her  son,  '  I  am 
too  weak  to  go  myself,  Jack,  so  yoii  must  take  the  cow  to  market 
for  me,  and  sell  her.' 

Jack  liked  going  to  market  to  sell  the  cow  very  much ;  but  as 
he  was  on  the  way,  he  met  a  butcher  who  had  some  beautiful 
beans  in  his  hand.  Jack  stopped  to  look  at  them,  and  the  butcher 
told  the  boy  that  they  were  of  great  value,  and  persuaded  the  silly 
lad  to  sell  the  cow  for  these  beans. 

AVhen  he  brought  them  home  to  his  mother  instead  of  the  money 
she  expected  for  her  nice  cow,  she  was  very  vexed  and  shed  many 
tears,  scolding  Jack  for  his  folly.  He  was  very  sorry,  and  mother 
and  son  went  to  bed  very  sadly  that  night ;  their  last  hope  seemed 
gone. 

At  daybreak  Jack  rose  and  went  out  into  the  garden. 

'  At  least,'  he  thought,  '  I  will  sow  the  wonderful  beans.  Mother 
says  that  they  are  just  common  scarlet-runners,  and  nothing  else  ; 
but  I  may  as  well  sow  them.' 

So  he  took  a  piece  of  stick,  and  made  some  holes  in  the  ground, 
and  put  in  the  beans. 

That  day  they  had  very  little  dinner,  and  went  sadly  to  bed, 
knowing  that  for  the  next  day  there  would  be  none  and  Jack, 
unable  to  sleep  from  grief  and  vexation,  got  up  at  day-dawn  and 
went  out  into  the  garden. 


134  JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK 

What  was  his  amazement  to  find  that  the  beans  had  grown  up 
in  the  night,  and  climbed  up  and  up  till  they  covered  the  high  cliff 
that  sheltered  the  cottage,  and  disappeared  above  it !  The  stalks 
had  twined  and  twisted  themselves  together  till  they  formed  quite 
a  ladder. 

'  It  would  be  easy  to  climb  it,'  thought  Jack. 

And,  having  thought  of  the  experiment,  he  at  once  resolved  to 
carry  it  out,  for  Jack  was  a  good  climber.  However,  after  his  late 
mistake  about  the  cow,  he  thought  he  had  better  consult  his  mother 
first. 

WONDERFUL  GROWTH  OF  THE  BEANSTALK 

So  Jack  called  his  mother,  and  they  both  gazed  in  silent  wonder 
at  the  Beanstalk,  which  was  not  only  of  great  height,  but  was  thick 
enough  to  bear  Jack's  weight. 

'  I  wonder  where  it  ends,'  said  Jack  to  his  mother ;  '  I  think  I 
will  climb  up  and  see.' 

His  mother  wished  him  not  to  venture  up  this  strange  ladder, 
but  Jack  coaxed  her  to  give  her  consent  to  the  attempt,  for  he  was 
certain  there  must  be  something  wonderful  in  the  Beanstalk ;  so  at 
last  she  yielded  to  his  wishes. 

Jack  instantly  began  to  climb,  and  went  up  and  up  on  the  ladder- 
like  bean  till  everything  he  had  left  behind  him — the  cottage,  the 
village,  and  even  the  tall  church  tower — looked  quite  little,  and  still 
he  could  not  see  the  top  of  the  Beanstalk. 

Jack  felt  a  little  tired,  and  thought  for  a  moment  that  he  would 
go  back  again ;  but  he  was  a  very  persevering  boy,  and  he  knew 
that  the  way  to  succeed  in  anything  is  not  to  give  up.  So  after 
resting  for  a  moment  he  -went  on. 

After  climbing  higher  and  higher,  till  he  grew  afraid  to  look 
down  for  fear  he  should  be  giddy,  Jack  at  last  reached  the  top  of 
the  Beanstalk,  and  found  himself  in  a  beautiful  country,  finely 
wooded,  with  beautiful  meadows  covered  with  sheep.  A  crystal 
stream  ran  through  the  pastures  ;  not  far  from  the  place  where  he 
had  got  off  the  Beanstalk  stood  a  fine,  strong  castle. 

Jack  wondered  very  much  that  he  had  never  heard  of  or  seen 
this  castle  before ;  but  when  he  reflected  on  the  subject,  he  saw  that 
it  was  as  much  separated  from  the  village  by  the  perpendicular 
rock  on  which  it  stood  as  if  it  were  in  another  land. 

While  Jack  was  standing  looking  at  the  castle,  a  very  strange- 
looking  woman  came  out  of  the  wood,  and  advanced  towards  him. 


JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK  135 

She  wore  a  pointed  cap  of  quilted  red  satin  turned  up  with 
ermine,  her  hair  streamed  loose  over  her  shoulders,  and  she  walked 
with  a  staff.  Jack  took  off  his  cap  and  made  her  a  bow. 

'  If  yon  please,  ma'am,'  said  he,  '  is  this  your  house  ?  ' 

'  No,'  said  the  old  lady.  '  Listen,  and  I  will  tell  you  the  story  of 
that  castle. 

'  Once  upon  a  time  there  was  a  noble  knight,  who  lived  in  this 
castle,  which  is  on  the  borders  of  Fairyland.  He  had  a  fair  and  be- 
loved wife  and  several  lovely  children  :  and  as  his  neighbours,  the 
little  people,  were  very  friendly  towards  him,  they  bestowed  on  him 
many  excellent  and  precious  gifts. 

.'  Rumour  whispered  of  these  treasures  ;  and  a  monstrous  giant, 
who  lived  at  no  great  distance,  and  who  was  a  very  wicked  being, 
resolved  to  obtain  possession  of  them. 

'  So  he  bribed  a  false  servant  to  let  him  inside  the  castle,  when 
the  knight  was  in  bed  and  asleep,  and  he  killed  him  as  he  lay.  Then 
he  went  to  the  part  of  the  castle  which  was  the  nursery,  and  also 
killed  all  the  poor  little  ones  he  found  there. 

'  Happily  for  her,  the  lady  was  not  to  be  found.  She  had  gone 
with  her  infant  son,  who  was  only  two  or  three  months  old,  to  visit 
her  old  nurse,  who  lived  in  the  valley  ;  and  she  had  been  detained 
all  night  there  by  a  storm. 

'  The  next  morning,  as  soon  as  it  was  light,  one  of  the  servants 
at  the  castle,  who  had  managed  to  escape,  came  to  tell  the  poor 
lady  of  the  sad  fate  of  her  husband  and  her  pretty  babes.  She 
could  scarcely  believe  him  at  first,  and  was  eager  at  once  to  go  back 
and  share  the  fate  of  her  dear  ones  ;  but  the  old  nurse,  with  many 
tears,  besought  her  to  remember  that  she  had  still  a  child,  and  that 
it  was  her  duty  to  preserve  her  life  for  the  sake  of  the  poor  innocent. 

'  The  lady  yielded  to  this  reasoning,  and  consented  to  remain  at 
her  nurse's  house  as  the  best  place  of  concealment ;  for  the  servant 
told  her  that  the  giant  had  vowed,  if  he  could  find  her,  he  would 
kill  both  her  and  her  baby.  Years  rolled  on.  The  old  nurse  died, 
leaving  her  cottage  and  the  few  articles  of  furniture  it  contained  to 
her  poor  lady,  who  dwelt  in  it,  working  as  a  peasant  for  her  daily 
bread.  Her  spinning-wheel  and  the  milk  of  a  cow,  which  she  had 
purchased  with  the  little  money  she  had  with  her,  sufficed  for  the 
scanty  subsistence  of  herself  and  her  little  son.  There  was  a  nice 
little  garden  attached  to  the  cottage,  in  which  they  cultivated  peas, 
beans,  and  cabbages,  and  the  lady  was  not  ashamed  to  go  out  at 
harvest  time,  and  glean  in  the  fields  to  supply  her  little  son's  wants. 


136  JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK 

'  Jack,  that  poor  lady  is  your  mother.  This  castle  was  once  your 
father's,  and  must  again  be  yours.' 

Jack  uttered  a  cry  of  surprise. 

'  My  mother  !  oh,  madam,  what  ought  I  to  do  ?  My  poor 
father  !  My  dear  mother ! ' 

'Your  duty  requires  you  to  win  it  back  for  your  mother.  But 
the  task  is  a  very  difficult  one,  and  full  of  peril,  Jack.  Have  you 
courage  to  undertake  it  ?  ' 

'  I  fear  nothing  when  I  am  doing  right,'  said  Jack. 

'  Then,'  said  the  lady  in  the  red  cap,  '  you  are  one  of  those  who 
slay  giants.  You  must  get  into  the  castle,  and  if  possible  possess 
yourself  of  a  hen  that  lays  golden  eggs,  and  a  harp  that  talks.  Ke- 
rnember,  all  the  giant  possesses  is  really  yours.'  As  she  ceased 
speaking,  the  lady  of  the  red  hat  suddenly  disappeared,  and  of  course 
Jack  knew  she  was  a  fairy. 

Jack  determined  at  once  to  attempt  the  adventure ;  so  he  ad- 
vanced, and  blew  the  horn  which  hung  at  the  castle  portal.  The 
door  was  opened  in  a  minute  or  two  by  a  frightful  giantess,  with 
one  great  eye  in  the  middle  of  her  forehead. 

As  soon  as  Jack  saw  her  he  turned  to  run  away,  but  she  caught 
him,  and  dragged  him  into  the  castle. 

'  Ho,  ho  ! '  she  laughed  terribly.  '  You  didn't  expect  to  see  me 
here,  that  is  clear  !  No,  I  shan't  let  you  go  again.  I  am  weaiy  of 
my  life.  I  am  so  overworked,  and  I  don't  see  why  I  should  not 
have  a  page  as  well  as  other  ladies.  And  you  shall  be  my  boy.  You 
shall  clean  the  knives,  and  black  the  boots,  and  make  the  fires,  and 
help  me  generally  when  the  giant  is  out.  When  he  is  at  home  I 
must  hide  you,  for  he  has  eaten  up  all  my  pages  hitherto,  and  you 
would  be  a  dainty  morsel,  my  little  lad.' 

While  she  spoke  she  dragged  Jack  right  into  the  castle.  The 
poor  boy  was  very  much  frightened,  as  I  am  sure  you  and  I 
would  have  been  in  his  place.  But  he  remembered  that  fear  dis- 
graces a  man ;  so  he  struggled  to  be  brave  and  make  the  best  of 
things. 

'  I  am  quite  ready  to  help  you,  and  do  all  I  can  to  serve  you, 
madam,'  he  said,  'only  I  beg  you  will  be  good  enough  to  hide  me 
from  your  husband,  for  I  should  not  like  to  be  eaten  at  all.' 

'  That's  a  good  boy,'  said  the  Giantess,  nodding  her  head  ;  '  it  is 
lucky  for  you  that  you  did  not  scream  out  when  you  saw  me,  as 
the  other  boys  who  have  been  here  did,  for  if  you  had  done  so  my 
husband  would  have  awakened  and  have  eaten  you,  as  he  did  them, 


JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK  137 

for  breakfast.     Come  here,  child  ;  go  into  my  wardrobe  :  he  never 
ventures  to  open  that ;  you  will  be  safe  there.' 

And  she  opened  a  huge  wardrobe  which  stood  in  the  great  hall, 
and  shut  him  into  it.     But  the  keyhole  was  so  large  that  it  ad- 


mitted plenty  of  air,  and  he  could  see  everything  that  took  place 
through  it.  By-aiid-by  he  heard  a  heavy  tramp  on  the  stairs,  like 
the  lumbering  along  of  a  great  cannon,  and  then  a  voice  like  thunder 
cried  out : 


138  JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK 

'  Fe,  fa,  fi-fo-fain, 

I  smell  the  breath  of  an  Englishman. 
Let  him  be  alive  or  let  him  be  dead, 
I'll  grind  his  bones  to  make  my  bread.' 

'  Wife,'  cried  the  Giant,  '  there  is  a  man  in  the  castle.  Let  me 
have  him  for  breakfast.' 

'  You  are  grown  old  and  stupid,'  cried  the  lady  in  her  loud 
tones.  '  It  is  only  a  nice  fresh  steak  "off  an  elephant,  that  I  have 
cooked  for  you,  which  you  smell.  There,  sit  down  and  make  a 
good  breakfast.' 

And  she  placed  a  huge  dish  before  him  of  savoury  steaming 
meat,  which  greatly  pleased  him,  and  made  him  forget  his  idea  of 
an  Englishman  being  in  the  castle.  When  he  had  breakfasted  he 
went  out  for  a  walk ;  and  then  the  Giantess  opened  the  door,  and 
made  Jack  come  out  to  help  her.  He  helped  her  all  day.  She 
fed  him  well,  and  when  evening  came  put  him  back  in  the  ward- 
robe. 

-H 

THE  HEN  THAT  LAYS  GOLDEN  EGGS. 

The  Giant  came  in  to  supper.  Jack  watched  him  through  the 
keyhole,  and  was  amazed  to  see  him  pick  a  wolf's  bone,  and  put 
half  a  fowl  at  a  time  into  his  capacious  mouth. 

When  the  supper  was  ended  he  bade  his  wife  bring  him  his  hen 
that  laid  the  golden  eggs. 

'  It  lays  as  well  as  it  did  when  it  belonged  to  that  paltry  knight,' 
he  said ;  '  indeed  I  think  the  eggs  are  heavier  than  ever.' 

The  Giantess  went  away,  and  soon  returned  with  a  little  brown 
hen,  which  she  placed  on  the  table  before  her  husband.  '  And  now, 
my  dear,'  she  said,  '  I  am  going  for  a  walk,  if  you  don't  want  me 
any  longer.' 

'  Go,'  said  the  Giant ;  '  I  shall  be  glad  to  have  a  nap  by-and-by.' 

Then  he  took  up  the  brown  hen  and  said  to  her  : 

'  Lay  ! '  And  she  instantly  laid  a  golden  egg. 

'  Lay ! '  said  the  Giant  again.     And  she  laid  another. 

'  Lay  ! '  he  repeated  the  third  time.  And  again  a  golden  egg  lay 
on  the  table. 

Now  Jack  was  sure  this  hen  was  that  of  which  the  fairy  had 
spoken. 

By-and-by  the  Giant  piit  the  hen  down  on  the  floor,  and  soon 
after  went  fast  asleep,  snoring  so  loud  that  it  sounded  like  thunder. 

Directly   Jack  perceived  that   the  Giant  was   fast   asleep,  he 


JACK  AND   THE  BEANSTALK  139 

pushed  open  the  door  of  the  wardrobe  and  crept  out ;  very  softly  he 
stole  across  the  room,  and,  picking  up  the  hen,  made  haste  to  quit 
the  apartment.  He  knew  the  way  to  the  kitchen,  the  door  of 
which  he  found  was  left  ajar  ;  he  opened  it,  shut  and  locked  it  after 
him,  and  flew  back  to  the  Beanstalk,  which  he  descended  as  fast 
as  his  feet  would  move. 

When  his  mother  saw  him  enter  the  house  she  wept  for  joy,  for 
she  had  feared  that  the  fairies  had  carried  him  away,  or  that  the 
Giant  had  found  him.  But  Jack  put  the  brown  hen  down  before 
her,  and  told  her  how  he  had  been  in  the  Giant's  castle,  and  all  his 
adventures.  She  was  very  glad  to  see  the  hen,  which  would  make 
them  rich  once  more. 

THE  MONEY  BAGS. 

Jack  made  another  journey  up  the  Beanstalk  to  the  Giant's 
castle  one  day  while  his  mother  had  gone  to  market  ;  but  first 
he  dyed  his  hair  and  disguised  himself.  The  old  woman  did  not 
know  him  again,  and  dragged  him  in  as  she  had  done  before,  to 
help  her  to  do  the  work  ;  but  she  heard  her  husband  coming,  and  hid 
him  in  the  wardrobe,  not  thinking  that  it  was  the  same  boy  who  had 
stolen  the  hen.  She  bade  him  stay  quite  still  there,  or  the  Giant 
would  eat  him. 

Then  the  Giant  came  in  saying : 

'  Fe,  fa,  fi-fo-fum, 

I  smell  the  breath  of  an  Englishman. 
Let  him  be  alive  or  let  him  be  dead, 
I'll  grind  his  bones  to  make  my  bread.' 

1  Nonsense  !  '  said  the  wife,  '  it  is  only  a  roasted  bullock  that  I 
thought  would  be  a  tit-bit  for  your  supper ;  sit  down  and  I  will 
bring  it  up  at  once.'  The  Giant  sat  down,  and  soon  his  wife 
brought  up  a  roasted  bullock  on  a  large  dish,  and  they  began  their 
supper.  Jack  was  amazed  to  see  them  pick  the  bones  of  the  bul- 
lock as  if  it  had  been  a  lark.  As  soon  as  they  had  finished  their 
meal,  the  Giantess  rose  and  said  : 

'  Now,  my  dear,  with  your  leave  I  am  going  up  to  my  room  to 
finish  the  story  I  ana  reading.  If  you  want  me  call  for  me.' 

'  First,'  answered  the  Giant,  '  bring  me  my  money  bags,  that  I 
may  count  my  golden  pieces  before  I  sleep.'  The  Giantess  obeyed. 
She  went  and  soon  returned  with  two  large  bags  over  her  shoulders, 
which  she  put  down  by  her  husband. 


140  JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK 

'  There,'  she  said ;  '  that  is  all  that  is  left  of  the  knight's  money. 
When  you  have  spent  it  you  must  go  and  take  another  baron's 
castle.' 

'  That  he  shan't,  if  I  can  help  it,'  thought  Jack. 

The  Giant,  when  his  wife  was  gone,  took  out  heaps  and  heaps  of 
golden  pieces,  and  counted  them,  and  put  them  in  piles,  till  he  was 
tired  of  the  amusement.  Then  he  swept  them  all  back  into  their 
bags,  and  leaning  back  in  his  chair  fell  fast  asleep,  snoring  so  loud 
that  no  other  soimd  was  audible. 

Jack  stole  softly  out  of  the  wardrobe,  and  taking  up  the  bags  of 
money  (which  were  his  very  own,  because  the  Giant  had  stolen 
them  from  his  father),  he  ran  off,  and  with  great  difficulty  descend- 
ing the  Beanstalk,  laid  the  bags  of  gold  on  his  mother's  table.  She 
had  just  returned  from  town,  and  was  crying  at  not  finding  Jack. 

'  There,  mother,  I  have  brought  you  the  gold  that  my  father 
lost.' 

'  Oh,  Jack  !  you  are  a  very  good  boy,  but  I  wish  you  would  not 
risk  your  precious  life  in  the  Giant's  castle.  Tell  me  how  you 
came  to  go  there  again.' 

And  Jack  told  her  all  about  it. 

Jack's  mother  was  very  glad  to  get  the  money,  but  she  did  not 
like  him  to  run  any  risk  for  her. 

But  after  a  time  Jack  made  up  his  mind  to  go  again  to  the 
Giant's  castle. 

THE  TALKING  HARP. 

So  he  climbed  the  Beanstalk  once  more,  and  blew  the  horn  at 
the  Giant's  gate.  The  Giantess  soon  opened  the  door ;  she  was 
very  stupid,  and  did  not  know  him  again,  but  she  stopped  a  minute 
before  she  took  him  in.  She  feared  another  robbery  ;  but  Jack's 
fresh  face  looked  so  innocent  that  she  could  not  resist  him,  and  so 
she  bade  him  come  in,  and  again  hid  him  away  in  the  wardrobe. 

By-and-by  the  Giant  came  home,  and  as  soon  as  he  had  crossed 
the  threshold  he  roared  out : 

'  Fe,  fa,  fi-fo-fum, 

I  smell  the  breath  of  an  Englishman. 
Let  him  be  alive  or  let  him  be  dead, 
I'll  grind  his  bones  to  make  my  bread.' 

'  You  stupid  old  Giant,'  said  his  wife,  '  you  only  smell  a  nice 
sheep,  which  I  have  grilled  for  your  dinner.' 


JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK 


141 


And  the  Giant  sat  down,  and  his  wife  brought  up  a  whole  sheep 
for  his  dinner.  When  he  had  eaten  it  all  up,  he  said : 

'  Now  bring  me  my  harp,  and  I  will  have  a  little  music  while 
you  take  your  walk.' 

The  Giantess  obeyed,  and  returned  with  a  beautiful  harp.  The 
framework  was  all  sparkling  with  diamonds  and  rubies,  and  the. 
strings  were  all  of  gold. 


'  This  is  one  of  the^nicest  things  I  took  from  the  knight,'  said 
the  Giant.  •  I  am  very  fond  of  music,  and  my  harp  is  a  faithful 
servant.' 

So  he  drew  the  harp  towards  him,  and  said  : 

'  Play  !  ' 

And  the  harp  played  a  very  soft,  sad  air. 


142  JACK  AND   THE  BEANSTALK 

1  Play  something  merrier ! '  said  the  Giant. 

And  the  harp  played  a  merry  tune. 

'  Now  play  me  a  lullaby,'  roared  the  Giant ;  and  the  harp  played 
a  sweet  lullaby,  to  the  sound  of  which  its  master  fell  asleep. 

Then  Jack  stole  softly  out  of  the  wardrobe,  and  went  into  the 
huge  kitchen  to  see  if  the  Giantess  had  gone  out ;  he  found  no  one 
there,  so  he  went  to  the  door  and  opened  it  softly,  for  he  thought  he 
could  not  do  so  with  the  harp  in  his  hand. 

Then  he  entered  the  Giant's  room  and  seized  the  harp  and  ran 
away  with  it ;  but  as  he  jumped  over  the  threshold  the  harp  called 
out : 

'  MASTER  !    MASTER  ! ' 

And  the  Giant  woke  up. 

With  a  tremendous  roar  he  sprang  from  his  seat,  and  in  two  strides 
had  reached  the  door. 

But  Jack  was  very  nimble.  He  fled  like  lightning  with  the  harp, 
talking  to  it  as  he  went  (for  he  saw  it  was  a  fairy),  and  telling  it  he 
was  the  son  of  its  old  master,  the  knight. 

Still  the  Giant  came  on  so  fast  that  he  was  quite  close  to  poor 
Jack,  and  had  stretched  out  his  great  hand  to  catch  him.  But, 
luckily,  just  at  that  moment  he  stepped  upon  a  loose  stone,  stumbled, 
and  fell  flat  on  the  groimd,  where  he  lay  at  his  full  length. 

This  accident  gave  Jack  time  to  get  on  the  Beanstalk  and  hasten 
down  it ;  but  just  as  he  reached  their  own  garden  he  beheld  the 
Giant  descending  after  him. 

'  Mother !  mother ! '  cried  Jack,  '  make  haste  and  give  me  the 
axe.' 

His  mother  ran  to  him  with  a  hatchet  in  her  hand,  and  Jack 
with  one  tremendous  blow  cut  through  all  the  Beanstalks  except 
one. 

'  Now,  mother,  stand  out  of  the  way  ! '  said  he. 


THE  GIANT  BREAKS  HIS  NECK. 

Jack's  mother  shrank  back,  and  it  was  well  she  did  so,  for  just 
as  the  Giant  took  hold  of  the  last  branch  of  the  Beanstalk,  Jack  cut 
the  stem  quite  through  and  darted  from  the  spot. 

Down  came  the  Giant  with  a  terrible  crash,  and  as  he  fell  on  his 
head,  he  broke  his  neck,  and  lay  dead  at  the  feet  of  the  woman  he 
had  so  much  injured. 


JACK  AND    THE   BEANSTALK 


143 


Before  Jack  and  his  mother  had  recovered  from  their  alarm  and 
agitation,  a  beautiful  lady  stood  before  them. 


'  Jack,'  said  she,  '  you  have  acted  like  a  brave  knight's  son,  and 
deserve  to  have  your  inheritance  restored  to  you.  Dig  a  grave  and 
bury  the  Giant,  and  then  go  and  kill  the  Giantess.' 


144  JACK  AND    THE   BEANSTALK 

'  But,'  said  Jack,  '  I  could  not  kill  anyone  unless  I  were  fighting 
with  him  ;  and  I  could  not  draw  my  sword  upon  a  woman.  More- 
over, the  Giantess  was  very  kind  to  me.' 

The  Fairy  smiled  on  Jack. 

'  I  am  very  much  pleased  with  your  generous  feeling,'  she 
said.  'Nevertheless,  return  to  the  castle,  and  act  as  you  will  find 
needful.' 

Jack  asked  the  Fairy  if  she  would  show  him  the  way  to  the  castle, 
as  the  Beanstalk  was  now  down.  She  told  him  that  she  would 
drive  him  there  in  her  chariot,  which  was  drawn  by  two  peacocks. 
Jack  thanked  her,  and  sat  down  in  the  chariot  with  her. 

The  Fairy  drove  him  a  long  distance  round,  till  they  reached  a 
village  which  lay  at  the  bottom  of  the  hill.  Here  they  found  a 
number  of  miserable-looking  men  assembled.  The  Fairy  stopped 
her  carriage  and  addressed  them : 

'  My  friends,'  said  she,  '  the  cruel  giant  who  oppressed  you  and 
ate  up  all  your  flocks  and  herds  is  dead,  and  this  young  gentleman 
was  the  means  of  your  being  delivered  from  him,  and  is  the  son  of 
your  kind  old  master,  the  knight.' 

The  men  gave  a  loud  cheer  at  these  words,  and  pressed  forward 
to  say  that  they  would  serve  Jack  as  faithfully  as  they  had  served 
his  father.  The  Fairy  bade  them  follow  her  to  the  castle,  and  they 
marched  thither  in  a  body,  and  Jack  blew  the  horn  and  demanded 
admittance. 

The  old  Giantess  saw  them  coming  from  the  turret  loop-hole. 
She  was  very  much  frightened,  for  she  guessed  that  something  had 
happened  to  her  husband ;  and  as  she  came  downstairs  very  fast 
she  caught  her  foot  in  her  dress,  and  fell  from  the  top  to  the  bottom 
and  broke  her  neck. 

When  the  people  outside  found  that  the  door  was  not  opened  to 
them,  they  took  crowbars  and  forced  the  portal.  Nobody  was  to  be 
seen,  but  on  leaving  the  hall  they  found  the  body  of  the  Giantess  at 
the  foot  of  the  stairs. 

Thus  Jack  took  possession  of  the  castle.  The  Fairy  went  and 
brought  his  mother  to  him,  with  the  hen  and  the  harp.  He  had  the 
Giantess  buried,  and  endeavoured  as  much  as  lay  in  his  power  to  do 
right  to  those  whom  the  Giant  had  robbed. 

Before  her  departure  for  fairyland,  the  Fairy  explained  to  Jack 
that  she  had  sent  the  butcher  to  meet  him  with  the  beans,  in  order 
to  try  what  sort  of  lad  he  was. 

If  you  had  looked  at  the  gigantic  Beanstalk  and  only  stupidly 


JACK  AND    THE  BEANSTALK  145 

wondered  about  it,'  she  said,  '  I  should  have  left  you  where  mis- 
fortune had  placed  you,  only  restoring  her  cow  to  your  mother. 
But  you  showed  an  inquiring  rnind,  and  great  courage  and  enterprise, 
therefore  you  deserve  to  rise ;  and  when  you  mounted  the  Beanstalk 
you  climbed  the  Ladder  of  Fortune.' 

She  then  took  her  leave  of  Jack  and  his  mother. 


146 


LITTLE  GOOD  MOUSE 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  and  Queen  who  loved  each 
other  so  much  that  they  were  never  happy  unless  they  were 
together.  Day  after  day  they  went  out  hunting  or  fishing ;  night 
after  night  they  went  to  balls  or  to  the  opera  ;  they  sang,  and  danced, 
and  ate  sugar-plums,  and  were  the  gayest  of  the  gay,  and  all  their 
subjects  followed  their  example  so  that  the  kingdom  was  called  the 
Joyous  Land.  Now  in  the  next  kingdom  everything  was  as  different 
as  it  could  possibly  be.  The  King  was  sulky  and  savage,  and  never 
enjoyed  himself  at  all.  He  looked  so  ugly  and  cross  that  all  his 
subjects  feared  him,  and  he  hated  the  very  sight  of  a  cheerful  face  ; 
so  if  he  ever  caught  anyone  smiling  he  had  his  head  cut  off  that 
very  minute.  This  kingdom  was  very  appropriately  called  the  Land 
of  Tears.  Now  when  this  wicked  King  heard  of  the  happiness  of 
the  Jolly  King,  he  was  so  jealous  that  he  collected  a  great  army 
and  set  out  to  fight  him,  and  the  news  of  his  approach  was  soon 
brought  to  the  King  and  Queen.  The  Queen,  when  she  heard  of  it, 
was  frightened  out  of  her  wits,  and  began  to  cry  bitterly.  '  Sire,' 
she  said,  '  let  us  collect  all  our  riches  and  run  away  as  far  as  ever 
we  can,  to  the  other  side  of  the  world.' 

But  the  King  answered  : 

'  Fie,  madam  !  I  am  far  too  brave  for  that.  It  is  better  to  die 
than  to  be  a  coward.' 

Then  he  assembled  all  his  armed  men,  and  after  bidding  the 
Queen  a  tender  farewell,  he  mounted  his  splendid  horse  and  rode 
away.  When  he  was  lost  to  sight  the  Queen  could  do  nothing  but 
weep,  and  wring  her  hands,  and  cry. 

'  Alas  !  If  the  King  is  killed,  what  will  become  of  me  and  of  my 
little  daughter  ?  '  and  she  was  so  sorrowful  that  she  could  neither  eat 
nor  sleep. 

The  King  sent  her  a  letter  every  day,  but  at  last,  one  morning. 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE  147 

as  she  looked  out  of  the  palace  window,  she  saw  a  messenger  ap- 
proaching in  hot  haste. 

'  What  news,  courier  ?  What  news  ?  '  cried  the  Queen,  and  he 
answered : 

'  The  battle  is  lost  and  the  King  is  dead,  and  in  another  moment 
the  enemy  will  be  here.' 

The  poor  Queen  fell  back  insensible,  and  all  her  ladies  carried 
her  to  bed,  and  stood  round  her  weeping  and  wailing.  Then  began 
a  tremendous  noise  and  confusion,  and  they  knew  that  the  enemy 
had  arrived,  and  very  soon  they  heard  the  King  himself  stamping 
about  the  palace  seeking  the  Queen.  Then  her  ladies  put  the  little 
Princess  into  her  arms,  and  covered  her  up,  head  and  all,  in  the 
bedclothes,  and  ran  for  their  lives,  and  the  poor  Queen  lay  there 
shaking,  and  hoping  she  would  not  be  found.  But  very  soon  the 
wicked  King  clattered  into  the  room,  and  in  a  fury  because  the 
Queen  would  not  answer  when  he  called  to  her,  he  tore  back  her 
silken  coverings  and  tweaked  off  her  lace  cap,  and  when  all  her 
lovely  hair  came  tumbling  down  over  her  shoulders,  he  wound  it 
three  times  round  his  hand  and  threw  her  over  his  shoulder,  where 
he  carried  her  like  a  sack  of  flour. 

The  poor  Queen  held  her  little  daughter  safe  in  her  arms  and 
shrieked  for  mercy,  but  the  wicked  King  only  mocked  her,  and 
begged  her  to  go  on  shrieking,  as  it  amused  him,  and  so  mounted 
his  great  black  horse,  and  rode  back  to  his  own  country.  When  he 
got  there  he  declared  that  he  would  have  the  Queen  and  the  little 
Princess  hanged  011  the  nearest  tree  ;  but  his  courtiers  said  that 
seemed  a  pity,  for  when  the  baby  grew  up  she  would  be  a  very  nice 
wife  for  the  King's  only  son. 

The  King  was  rather  pleased  with  this  idea,  and  shut  the  Queen 
up  in  the  highest  room  of  a  tall  tower,  which  was  very  tiny,  and 
miserably  furnished  with  a  table  and  a  very  hard  bed  upon  the  floor. 
Then  he  sent  for  a  fairy  who  lived  near  his  kingdom,  and  after 
receiving  her  with  more  politeness  than  he  generally  showed,  and 
entertaining  her  at  a  sumptuous  feast,  he  took  her  up  to  see  the 
Queen.  The  fairy  was  so  touched  by  the  sight  of  her  misery  that 
when  she  kissed  her  hand  she  whispered : 

'  Courage,  madam  !  I  think  I  see  a  way  to  help  you.' 

The  Queen,  a  little  comforted  by  these  words,  received  her  gra- 
ciously, and  begged  her  to  take  pity  upon  the  poor  little  Princess,  who 
had  met  with  such  a  sudden  reverse  of  fortune.  But  the  King  got 
very  cross  when  he  saw  them  whispering  together,  and  cried  harshly  : 

L2 


148  THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 

'  Make  an  end  of  these  fine  speeches,  madam.  I  brought  you 
here  to  tell  me  if  the  child  will  grow  up  pretty  and  fortunate.' 

Then  the  Fairy  answered  that  the  Princess  would  be  as  pretty, 
and  clever,  and  well  brought  up  as  it  was  possible  to  be,  and  the 
old  King  growled  to  the  Queen  that  it  was  lucky  for  her  that  it  was 
so,  as  they  would  certainly  have  been  hanged  if  it  were  otherwise. 
Then  he  stamped  off,  taking  the  Fairy  with  him,  and  leaving  the 
poor  Queen  in  tears. 

'  How  can  I  wish  my  little  daughter  to  grow  up  pretty  if  she  is 
to  be  married  to  that  horrid  little  dwarf,  the  King's  son,'  she  said 
to  herself,  'and  yet,  if  she  is  ugly  we  shall  both  be  killed.  If  I  could 
only  hide  her  away  somewhere,  so  that  the  cruel  King  could  never 
find  her.' 

As  the  days  went  on,  the  Queen  and  the  little  Princess  grew 
thinner  and  thinner,  for  their  hard-hearted  gaoler  gave  them  every 
day  only  three  boiled  peas  and  a  tiny  morsel  of  black  bread,  so 
they  were  always  terribly  hungry.  At  last,  one  evening,  as  the 
Queen  sat  at  her  spinning-wheel — for  the  King  was  so  avaricious 
that  she  was  made  to  work  day  and  night — she  saw  a  tiny,  pretty 
little  mouse  ci'eep  out  of  a  hole,  and  said  to  it : 

'  Alas,  little  creature !  what  are  you  coming  to  look  for  here  ? 
I  only  have  three  peas  for  my  day's  provision,  so  unless  you  wish 
to  fast  you  must  go  elsewhere.' 

But  the  mouse  ran  hither  and  thither,  and  danced  and  capered 
so  prettily,  that  at  last  the  Queen  gave  it  her  last  pea,  which  she 
was  keeping  for  her  supper,  saying  :  '  Here,  little  one,  eat  it  up ;  I 
have  nothing  better  to  offer  you,  but  I  give  this  willingly  in  return 
for  the  amusement  I  have  had  from  you.' 

She  had  hardly  spoken  when  she  saw  upon  the  table  a  delicious 
little  roast  partridge,  and  two  dishes  of  preserved  fruit.  '  Truly,'  said 
she,  '  a  kind  action  never  goes  unrewarded ;  '  and  she  and  the  little 
Princess  ate  their  supper  with  great  satisfaction,  and  then  the 
Queen  gave  what  was  left  to  the  little  mouse,  who  danced  better 
than  ever  afterwards.  The  next  morning  came  the  gaoler  with 
the  Queen's  allowance  of  three  peas,  which  he  brought  in  upon  a 
large  dish  to  make  them  look  smaller ;  but  as  soon  as  he  set  it 
down  the  little  mouse  came  and  ate  up  all  three,  so  that  when  the 
Queen  wanted  her  dinner  there  was  nothing  left  for  her.  Then 
she  was  quite  provoked,  and  said : 

'  What  a  bad  little  beast  that  mouse  must  be  !  If  it  goes  on  like 
this  I  shall  be  starved.'  But  when  she  glanced  at  the  dish  again 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE  149 

it  was  covered  with  all  sorts  of  nice  things  to  eat,  and  the  Queen 
made  a  very  good  dinner,  and  was  gayer  than  usual  over  it.  But 
afterwards  as  she  sat  at  her  spinning-wheel  she  began  to  consider 
what  would  happen  if  the  little  Princess  did  not  grow  up  pretty 
enough  to  please  the  King,  and  she  said  to  herself: 

'  Oh  !  if  I  could  only  think  of  some  way  of  escaping.' 

As  she  spoke  she  saw  the  little  mouse  playing  in  a  corner  with 
some  long  straws.  The  Queen  took  them  and  began  to  plait  them, 
saying  : 

'  If  only  I  had  straws  enoiigh  I  would  make  a  basket  with  them, 
and  let  my  baby  down  in  it  from  the  window  to  any  kind  passer- 
by who  would  take  care  of  her.' 

By  the  time  the  straws  were  all  plaited  the  little  mouse  had 
dragged  in  more  and  more,  until  the  Queen  had  plenty  to  make 
her  basket,  and  she  worked  at  it  day  and  night,  while  the  little 
mouse  danced  for  her  amusement ;  and  at  dinner  and  supper  time 
the  Queen  gave  it  the  three  peas  and  the  bit  of  black  bread,  and 
always  found  something  good  in  the  dish  in  their  place.  She 
really  could  not  imagine  where  all  the  nice  things  came  from. 
At  last  one  day  when  the  basket  was  finished,  the  Queen  was  look- 
ing out  of  the  window  to  see  how  long  a  cord  she  must  make  to 
lower  it  to  the  bottom  of  the  tower,  when  she  noticed  a  little  old 
woman  who  was  leaning  upon  her  stick  and  looking  up  at  her. 
Presently  she  said : 

'  I  know  your  trouble,  madam.     If  you  like  I  will  help  you.' 

'  Oh  !  my  dear  friend,'  said  the  Queen.  '  If  you  really  wish  to 
be  of  use  to  me  you  will  come  at  the  time  that  I  will  appoint,  and 
I  will  let  down  my  poor  little  baby  in  a  basket.  If  you  will  take 
her,  and  bring  her  up  for  me,  when  I  am  rich  I  will  reward  you 
splendidly.' 

'  I  don't  care  about  the  reward,'  said  the  old  woman,  '  but  there 
is  one  thing  I  should  like.  You  must  know  that  I  am  very  par- 
ticular about  what  I  eat,  and  if  there  is  one  thing  that  I  fancy 
above  all  others,  it  is  a  plump,  tender  little  mouse.  If  there  is 
such  a  thing  in  your  garret  just  throw  it  down  to  me,  and  in 
return  I  will  promise  that  your  little  daughter  shall  be  well  taken 
care  of.' 

The  Queen  when  she  heard  this  began  to  cry,  but  made  no 
answer,  and  the  old  woman  aftef  waiting  a  few  minutes  asked  her 
what  was  the  matter. 

'  Why,'  said  the  Queen,  '  there  is  only  one  mouse  in  this  garret, 


150  THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 

and  that  is  such  a  dear,  pretty  little  thing  that  I  cannot  bear  to 
think  of  its  being  killed.' 

I  What !  '  cried  the  old  woman,  in  a  rage.     '  Do  you  care  more 
for  a  miserable  mouse  than  for  your  own  baby  ?    Good-bye,  madam  ! 
I  leave  you  to  enjoy  its  company,  and  for  rny  own  part  I  thank  my 
stars  that  I  can  get  plenty  of  mice  without  troubling  you  to  give 
them  to  me.' 

And  she  hobbled  off  grumbling  and  growling.  As  to  the  Queen, 
she  was  so  disappointed  that,  in  spite  of  finding  a  better  dinner 
than  usual,  and  seeing  the  little  mouse  dancing  in  its  merriest 
mood,  she  could  do  nothing  but  cry.  That  night  when  her  baby 
was  fast  asleep  she  packed  it  into  the  basket,  and  wrote  on  a  slip 
of  paper,  '  This  unhappy  little  girl  is  called  Delicia  ! '  This  she 
pinned  to  its  robe,  and  then  very  sadly  she  was  shutting  the  basket, 
when  in  sprang  the  little  mouse  and  sat  on  the  baby's  pillow. 

'  Ah  !  little  one,'  said  the  Queen,  '  it  cost  me  dear  to  save  your 
life.  How  shall  I  know  now  whether  my  Delicia  is  being  taken  care 
of  or  no  ?  Anyone  else  would  have  let  the  greedy  old  woman  have 
you,  and  eat  you  up,  but  I  could  not  bear  to  do  it.'  Whereupon 
the  Mouse  answered  : 

'  Believe  me,  madam,  you  will  never  repent  of  your  kindness.' 

The  Queen  was  immensely  astonished  when  the  Mouse  began 
to  speak,  and  still  more  so  when  she  saw  its  little  sharp  nose  turn 
to  a  beautiful  face,  and  its  paws  to  hands  and  feet ;  then  it  suddenly 
grew  tall,  and  the  Queen  recognised  the  Fairy  who  had  come  with 
the  wicked  King  to  visit  her. 

The  Fairy  smiled  at  her  astonished  look,  and  said : 

I 1  wanted  to  see  if  you  were  faithful  and  capable  of  feeling  a 
real  friendship  for  me,  for  you  see  we  fairies  are  rich  in  everything 
but  Mends,  and  those  are  hard  to  find.' 

'  It  is  not  possible  that  you  should  want  for  friends,  you  charm- 
ing creature,'  said  the  Queen,  kissing  her. 

'  Indeed  it  is  so,'  the  Fairy  said.  '  For  those  who  are  only 
friendly  with  me  for  their  own  advantage,  I  do  not  count  at  all. 
But  when  you  cared  for  the  poor  little  mouse  you  could  not  have 
known  there  was  anything  to  be  gained  by  it,  and  to  try  you  further 
I  took  the  form  of  the  old  woman  whom  you  talked  to  from  the 
window,  an ,1  then  I  was  convinced  that  you  really  loved  me.'  Then, 
turning  to  the  little  Princess,  she  Tussed  her  rosy  lips  three  times, 
Baying : 

1  Dear  little  one,  I  promise  that  you  shall  be  richer  than  your 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD   MOUSE  151 

father,  and  shall  live  a  hundred  years,  always  pretty  and  happy, 
without  fear  of  old  age  and  wrinkles.' 

The  Queen,  quite  delighted,  thanked  the  Fairy  gratefully,  and 
begged  her  to  take  charge  of  the  little  Delicia  and  bring  her  up  as 
her  own  daughter.  This  she  agreed  to  do,  and  then  they  shut  the 
basket  and  lowered  it  carefully,  baby  and  all,  to  the  ground  at  the 
foot  of  the  tower.  The  Fairy  then  changed  herself  back  into  the 
form  of  a  mouse,  and  this  delayed  her  a  few  seconds,  after  which 
she  ran  nimbly  down  the  straw  rope,  but  only  to  find  when  she  got 
to  the  bottom  that  the  baby  had  disappeared. 

In  the  greatest  terror  she  ran  up  again  to  the  Queen,  crying  : 

'  All  is  lost !  my  enemy  Cancaline  has  stolen  the  Princess  away. 
You  must  know  that  she  is  a  cruel  fairy  who  hates  me,  and  as 
she  is  older  than  I  am  and  has  more  power,  I  can  do  nothing  against 
her.  I  know  no  way  of  rescuing  Delicia  from  her  clutches.' 

When  the  Queen  heard  this  terrible  news  she  was  heart-broken, 
and  begged  the  Fairy  to  do  all  she  could  to  get  the  poor  little  Princess 
back  again.  At  this  moment  in  came  the  gaoler,  and  when  he 
missed  the  little  Princess  he  at  once  told  the  King,  who  came  in  a 
great  fury  asking  what  the  Queen  had  done  with  her.  She  answered 
that  a  fairy,  whose  name  she  did  not  know,  had  come  and  carried 
her  off  by  force.  Upon  this  the  King  stamped  upon  the  ground,  and 
cried  in  a  terrible  voice  : 

'  You  shall  be  hung  !  I  always  told  you  you  should.'  And  with- 
out another  word  he  dragged  the  unlucky  Queen  out  into  the  nearest 
wood,  and  climbed  up  into  a  tree  to  look  for  a  branch  to  which  he 
could  hang  her.  But  when  he  was  qmte  high  up,  the  Fairy,  who 
had  made  herself  invisible  and  followed  them,  gave  him  a  sudden 
push,  which  made  him  lose  his  footing  and  fall  to  the  ground  with 
a  crash  and  break  four  of  his  teeth,  and  while  he  was  trying  to 
mend  them  the  fairy  carried  the  Queen  off  in  her  flying  chariot  to  a 
beautiful  castle,  where  she  was  so  kind  to  her  that  but  for  the  loss  of 
Delicia  the  Queen  would  have  been  perfectly  happy.  But  though 
the  good  h'ttle  mouse  did  her  very  utmost,  they  could  not  find  out 
where  Cancaline  had  hidden  the  little  Princess. 

Thus  fifteen  years  went  by,  and  the  Queen  had  somewhat  re- 
covered from  her  grief,  when  the  news  reached  her  that  the  son  of 
the  wicked  King  wished  to  marry  the  little  maiden  who  kept  the 
turkeys,  and  that  she  had  refused  him  ;  the  wedding-dresses  had  been 
made,  nevertheless,  and  the  festivities  were  to  be  so  splendid  that 
all  the  people  for  leagues  round  were  flocking  in  to  be  present  at 


152 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 


them.  The  Queen  felt  quite  curious  about  a  little  turkey-maiden 
who  did  not  wish  to  be  a  Queen,  so  the  little  mouse  conveyed  her- 
self to  the  poultry-yard  to  find  out  what  she  was  like. 

She  found  the  turkey-maiden  sitting  upon  a  big  stone,  barefooted, 
and  miserably  dressed  in  an  old,  coarse  linen  gown  and  cap  ;  the 


ground  at  her  feet  was  all  strewn  with  robes  of  gold  and  silver, 
ribbons  and  laces,  diamonds  and  pearls,  over  which  the  turkeys  were 
stalking  to  and  fro,  while  the  King's  ugly,  disagreeable  son  stood 
opposite  her,  declaring  angrily  that  if  she  would  not  marry  him  she 
should  be  killed. 


THE   LITTLE   GOOD   MOUSE  153 

The  Turkey-maiden  answered  proudly : 

'  I  never  will  marry  you !  you  are  too  ugly  and  too  much  like 
your  cruel  father.  Leave  me  in  peace  with  my  turkeys,  which  I  like 
far  better  than  all  your  fine  gifts.' 

The  little  mouse  watched  her  with  the  greatest  admiration,  for 
she  was  as  beautiful  as  the  spring ;  and  as  soon  as  the  wicked  Prince 
was  gone,  she  took  the  form  of  an  old  peasant  woman  and  said  to 
her : 

'  Good-day,  my  pretty  one !  you  have  a  fine  flock  of  turkeys 
there.' 

The  young  Turkey -maiden  turned  her  gentle  eyes  Tipon  the  old 
woman,  and  answered : 

'  Yet  they  wish  me  to  leave  them  to  become  a  miserable  Queen  ! 
what  is  your  advice  upon  the  matter  ?  ' 

'  My  child,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  a  crown  is  a  very  pretty  thing,  but 
you  know  neither  the  price  nor  the  weight  of  it.' 

'  I  know  so  well  that  I  have  refused  to  wear  one,'  said  the  little 
maiden,  '  though  I  don't  know  who  was  my  father,  or  who  was  my 
mother,  and  I  have  not  a  friend  in  the  world.' 

'  You  have  goodness  and  beauty,  which  are  of  more  value  than 
ten  kingdoms,'  said  the  wise  Fairy.  '  But  tell  me,  child,  how  came 
you  here,  and  how  is  it  you  have  neither  father,  nor  mother,  nor 
friend  ?  ' 

'  A  Fairy  called  Cancaline  is  the  cause  of  my  being  here,'  answered 
she,  '  for  while  I  lived  with  her  I  got  nothing  but  blows  and  harsh 
wyords,  until  at  last  I  could  bear  it  no  longer,  and  ran  away  from 
her  without  knowing  where  I  was  going,  and  as  I  came  through  a 
wood  the  wicked  Prince  met  me,  and  offered  to  give  me  charge  of 
the  poultry-yard.  I  accepted  gladly,  not  knowing  that  I  should 
have  to  see  him  day  by  day.  And  now  he  wants  to  marry  me,  but 
that  I  will  never  consent  to.' 

Upon  hearing  this  the  Fairy  became  convinced  that  the  little 
Turkey-maiden  was  none  other  than  the  Princess  Delicia. 

'  What  is  your  name,  my  little  one  ?  '  said  she. 

'  I  am  called  Delicia,  if  it  please  you,'  she  answered. 
Then  the  Fairy  threw  her  arms  round  the  Princess's  neck,  and 
nearly  smothered  her  with  kisses,  saying  : 

'  Ah,  Delicia  !  I  am  a  very  old  friend  of  yours,  and  I  am  truly 
glad  to  find  you  at  last ;  but  you  might  look  nicer  than  you  do  in 
that  old  gown,  which  is  only  fit  for  a  kitchen-maid.  Take  this  pretty 
dress  and  let  us  see  the  difference  it  will  make.' 


154  THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 

So  Delicia  took  off  the  ugly  cap,  and  shook  out  all  her  fair  shining 
hair,  and  bathed  her  hands  and  face  in  clear  water  from  the  nearest 
spring  till  her  cheeks  were  like  roses,  and  when  she  was  adorned 
with  the  diamonds  and  the  splendid  robe  the  Fairy  had  given  her, 
she  looked  the  most  beautiful  Princess  in  the  world,  and  the  Fairy 
with  great  delight  cried  : 

'  Now  you  look  as  you  ought  to  look,  Delicia :  what  do  you 
think  about  it  yourself?  ' 

And  Delicia  answered  : 

'  I  feel  as  if  I  were  the  daughter  of  some  great  king.' 

'  And  would  you  be  glad  if  you  were  ?  '  said  the  Fairy. 

'  Indeed  I  should,'  answered  she. 

'  Ah,  well,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  to-morrow  I  may  have  some  pleasant 
news  for  you.' 

So  she  hurried  back  to  her  castle,  where  the  Queen  sat  busy  with 
her  embroidery,  and  cried  : 

'  Well,  madam  !  will  you  wager  your  thimble  and  your  golden 
needle  that  I  am  bringing  you  the  best  news  you  could  possibly  hear  ? ' 

'  Alas  !  '  sighed  the  Queen,  '  since  the  death  of  the  Jolly  King 
and  the  loss  of  my  Delicia,  all  the  news  in  the  world  is  not  worth  a 
pin  to  me. 

'  There,  there,  don't  be  melancholy,'  said  the  Fairy.  '  I  assure 
you  the  Princess  is  quite  well,  and  I  have  never  seen  her  equal  for 
beauty.  She  might  be  a  Queen  to-morrow  if  she  chose  ; '  and  then 
she  told  all  that  had  happened,  and  the  Queen  first  rejoiced  over  the 
thought  of  Delicia's  beauty,  and  then  wept  at  the  idea  of  her  being 
a  Turkey-maiden. 

1 1  will  not  hear  of  her  being  made  to  marry  the  wicked  King's 
son,'  she  said.  '  Let  us  go  at  once  and  bring  her  here.' 

In  the  meantime  the  wicked  Prince,  who  was  very  angry  with 
Delicia,  had  sat  himself  down  under  a  tree,  and  cried  and  howled 
with  rage  and  spite  until  the  King  heard  him,  and  cried  out  from 
the  window : 

'  What  is  the  matter  with  you,  that  you  are  making  all  this  dis- 
turbance ?  ' 

The  Prince  replied : 

'  It  is  all  because  our  Turkey-maiden  will  not  love  me  ! ' 

'Won't  love  you?  eh!'  said  the  King.  'We'll  very  soon  see 
about  that ! '  So  he  called  his  guards  and  told  them  to  go  and 
fetch  Delicia.  '  See  if  I  don't  make  her  change  her  mind  pretty 
soon  ! '  said  the  wicked  King  with  a  chuckle. 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 


155 


Then  the  guards  began  to  search  the  poultry-yard,  and  coivld 
find  nobody  there  but  Delicia,  who,  with  her  splendid  dress  and 
her  crown  of  diamonds,  looked  such  a  lovely  Princess  that  they 
hardly  dared  to  speak  to  her.  But  she  said  to  them  very  politely  : 

'  Pray  tell  rne  what  you  are  looking  for  here  ?  ' 

•  Madam,'  they  answered.  '  we  are  sent  for  an  insignificant  little 
person  called  Delicia.' 

'  Alas  !  '  said  she,  '  that  is  my  name.  "What  can  you  want  with 
me  ?  ' 

So  the  guards:]tied  her  hands  and  feet  with  thick  ropes,  for  fear 


she  might  run  away,  and  brought  her  to  the  King,  who  was  waiting 
with  his  son. 

When  lie  saw  her  he  was  very  much  astonished  at  her  beauty, 
which  would  have  made  anyone  less  hard-hearted  sorry  for  her. 
But  the  wicked  King  only  laughed  and  mocked  at  her,  and 
cried :  '  Well,  little  fright,  little  toad  !  why  don't  you  love  my 
son,  who  is  far  too  handsome  and  too  good  for  you?  Make  haste 
and  begin  to  love  him  this  instant,  or  you  shall  be  tarred  and 
feathered." 


156  THE   LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE 

Then  the  poor  little  Princess,  shaking  with  terror,  went  down 
on  her  knees,  crying : 

'  Oh,  don't  tar  and  feather  me,  please  !  It  would  be  so  uncom- 
fortable. Let  me  have  two  or  three  days  to  make  up  my  mind, 
and  then  you  shall  do  as  you  like  with  me.' 

The  wicked  Prince  would  have  liked  very  much  to  see  her 
tarred  and  feathered,  but  the  King  ordered  that  she  should  be  slnit 
up  in  a  dark  dungeon.  It  was  just  at  this  moment  that  the  Queen 
and  the  Fairy  arrived  in  the  flying  chariot,  and  the  Queen  was 
dreadfully  distressed  at  the  turn  affairs  had  taken,  and  said 
miserably  that  she  was  destined  to  bo  unfortunate  all  her  days. 
But  the  Fairy  bade  her  take  courage. 

'  I'll  pay  them  out  yet,'  said  she,  nodding  her  head  with  an  air 
of  great  determination. 

That  very  same  night,  as  soon  as  the  wicked  King  had  gone  to 
bed,  the  Fairy  changed  herself  into  the  little  mouse,  and  creeping 
up  on  to  his  pillow  nibbled  his  ear,  so  that  he  squealed  out  quite 
loudly  and  turned  over  on  his  other  side  ;  but  that  was  no  good,  for 
the  little  mouse  only  set  to  work  and  gnawed  away  at  the  second 
ear  until  it  hurt  more  than  the  first  one. 

Then  the  King  cried  '  Murder ! '  and  '  Thieves  !  '  and  all  his 
guards  ran  to  see  what  was  the  matter,  but  they  could  find  nothing 
and  nobody,  for  the  little  mouse  had  run  off  to  the  Prince's  room 
and  was  serving  him  in  exactly  the  same  way.  All  night  long  she 
ran  from  one  to  the  other,  until  at  last,  driven  quite  frantic  by 
terror  and  want  of  sleep,  the  King  rushed  out  of  the  palace  crying  : 

'  Help  !  help  !  I  am  pursued  by  rats.' 

The  Prince  when  he  heard  this  got  up  also,  and  ran  after  the 
King,  and  they  had  not  gone  far  when  they  both  fell  into  the  river 
and  were  never  heard  of  again. 

Then  the  good  Fairy  ran  to  tell  the  Queen,  and  they  went 
together  to  the  black  dungeon  where  Delicia  was  imprisoned.  The 
Fairy  touched  each  door  with  her  wand,  and  it  sprang  open  in- 
stantly, but  they  had  to  go  through  forty  before  they  came  to  the 
Princess,  who  was  sitting  on  the  floor  looking  very  dejected.  But 
when  the  Queen  rushed  in,  and  kissed  her  twenty  times  in  a 
minute,  and  laughed,  and  cried,  and  told  Delicia  all  her  history, 
the  Princess  was  wild  with  delight.  Then  the  Fairy  showed  her  all 
the  wonderful  dresses  and  jewels  she  had  brought  for  her,  and  said  : 

'  Don't  let  us  waste  time ;  we  must  go  and  harangue  the  people.' 
So  she  walked  first,  looking   very   serious  and  dignified,  and 


THE  LITTLE   GOOD  MOUSE  is? 

wearing  a  dress  the  train  of  which  was  at  least  ten  ells  long. 
Behind  her  came  the  Queen  wearing  a  blue  velvet  robe  embroidered 
with  gold,  and  a  diamond  crown  that  was  brighter  than  the  sun 
itself.  Last  of  all  walked  Delicia,  who  was  so  beautiful  that  it  was 
nothing  short  of  marvellous. 

They  proceeded  through  the  streets,  returning  the  salutations  of 
all  they  met,  great  or  small,  and  all  the  people  turned  and  followed 
them,  wondering  who  these  noble  ladies  could  be. 

When  the  audience  hall  was  quite  full,  the  Fairy  said  to  the 
subjects  of  the  Wicked  King  that  if  they  would  accept  Delicia,  who 
was  the  daughter  of  the  Jolly  King,  as  their  Queen,  she  would 
undertake  to  find  a  suitable  husband  for  her,  and  would  promise 
that  during  their  reign  there  should  be  nothing  but  rejoicing  and 
merry-making,  and  all  dismal  things  should  be  entirely  banished. 
Upon  this  the  people  cried  with  one  accord,  '  We  will,  we  will !  we 
have  been  gloomy  and  miserable  too  long  already.'  And  they  all 
took  hands  and  danced  round  the  Queen,  and  Delicia,  and  the  good 
Fairy,  singing :  '  Yes,  yes ;  we  will,  we  will !  ' 

Then  there  were  feasts  and  fireworks  in  every  street  in  the 
town,  and  early  the  next  morning  the  Fairy,  who  had  been  all  over 
the  world  in  the  night,  brought  back  with  her,  in  her  flying  chariot, 
the  most  handsome  and  good-tempered  Prince  she  could  find  any- 
where. He  was  so  charming  that  Delicia  loved  him  from  the 
moment  their  eyes  met,  and  as  for  him,  of  course  he  could  not  help 
thinking  himself  the  luckiest  Prince  in  the  world.  The  Queen  felt 
that  she  had  really  come  to  the  end  of  her  misfortunes  at  last,  and 
they  all  lived  happily  ever  after.1 

La  bonne  vetile  Souris,  par  Madame  d'Auluoy. 


158 


GB  AGIOS  A   AND  PEBCINET 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  King  and  Queen  who  had  one 
charming  daughter.  She  was  so  graceful  and  pretty  and 
clever  that  she  was  called  Graciosa,  and  the  Queen  was  so  fond  of 
her  that  she  could  think  of  nothing  else. 

Everyday  she  gave  the  Princess  a  lovely  new  frock  of  gold  brocade, 
or  satin,  or  velvet,  and  when  she  was  hungry  she  had  bowls  full  of 
sugar-plums,  and  at  least  twenty  pots  of  jam.  Everybody  said  she 
was  the  happiest  Princess  in  the  world.  Now  there  lived  at  this 
same  court  a  very  rich  old  duchess  whose  name  was  G nimbly. 
She  was  more  frightful  than  tongue  can  tell ;  her  hair  was  red  as 
fire,  and  she  had  but  one  eye,  and  that  not  a  pretty  one !  Her  face 
was  as  broad  as  a  full  moon,  and  her  mouth  was  so  large  that  every- 
body who  met  her  would  have  been  afraid  they  were  going  to  be 
eaten  up,  only  she  had  no  teeth.  As  she  was  as  cross  as  she  was 
ugly,  she  could  not  bear  to  hear  everyone  saying  how  pretty  and 
how  charming  Graciosa  was ;  so  she  presently  went  away  from  the 
court  to  her  own  castle,  which  was  not  far  off.  But  if  anybody  who 
went  to  see  her  happened  to  mention  the  charming  Princess,  she 
would  cry  angrily : 

'  It's  not  true  that  she  is  lovely.  I  have  more  beauty  in  my  little 
finger  than  she  has  in  her  whole  body.' 

Soon  after  this,  to  the  great  grief  of  the  Princess,  the  Queen  was 
taken  ill  and  died,  and  the  King  became  so  melancholy  that  for  a 
whole  year  he  shut  himself  up  in  his  palace.  At  last  his  physicians, 
fearing  that  he  would  fall  ill,  ordered  that  he  should  go  out  and 
amuse  himself;  so  a  hunting  party  was  arranged,  but  as  it  was  very 
hot  weather  the  King  soon  got  tired,  and  said  he  would  dismount 
and  rest  at  a  castle  which  they  were  passing. 

This  happened  to  be  the  Duchess  Grumbly's  castle,  and  when 
she  heard  that  the  King  was  coming  she  went  out  to  meet  him,  and 
said  that  the  cellar  was  the  coolest  place  in  the  whole  castle  if  he 


GE  AGIOS  A  AND  PERCINET  159 

would  condescend  to  come  down  into  it.  So  down  they  went  to- 
gether, and  the  King  seeing  about  two  hundred  great  casks  ranged 
side  by  side,  asked  if  it  was  only  for  herself  that  she  had  this  im- 
mense store  of  wine. 

'  Yes,  sire,'  answered  she,  '  it  is  for  myself  alone,  but  I  shall  be 
most  happy  to  let  you  taste  some  of  it.  Which  do  you  like,  canary, 
St.  Julien,  champagne,  hermitage  sack,  raisin,  or  cider  ?  ' 

'  Well,'  said  the  King,  '  since  you  are  so  kind  as  to  ask  me,  I 
prefer  champagne  to  anything  else.' 

Then  Duchess  Griunbly  took  up  a  little  hammer  and  tapped 
upon  the  cask  twice,  and  out  came  at  least  a  thousand  crowns. 


'  What's  the  meaning  of  this  ?  '  said  she  smiling. 

Then  she  tapped  the  next  cask,  and  out  came  a  bushel  of  gold, 
pieces. 

'  I  don't  understand  this  at  all,'  said  the  Duchess,  smiling  more 
than  before. 

Then  she  went  on  to  the  third  cask,  tap,  tap,  and  out  came  such 
a  stream  of  diamonds  and  pearls  that  the  ground  was  covered  with 
them. 

'  Ah  ! '  she  cried,  '  this  is  altogether  beyond  my  comprehension, 
sire.  Someone  must  have  stolen  my  good  wine  and  put  all  this 
:rubbish  in  its  place.' 


160  GEACIOSA   AND  PERCINET 

'  Rubbish,  do  you  call  it,  Madam  Grumbly?  '  cried  the  King. 
'  Rubbish  !  why  there  is  enough  there  to  buy  ten  kingdoms.' 

'  Well,'  said  she,  '  you  must  know  that  all  those  casks  are  full 
of  gold  and  jewels,  and  if  you  like  to  marry  me  it  shall  all  be 
yours.' 

Now  the  King  loved  money  more  than  anything  else  in  the  world, 
so  he  cried  joyfully  : 

'  Marry  you  ?  why  with  all  my  heart !  to-morrow  if  you  like.' 

'  But  I  make  one  condition,'  said  the  Duchess  ;  '  I  must  have 
entire  control  of  your  daughter  to  do  as  I  please  with  her.' 

'  Oh  certainly,  you  shall  have  your  own  way  ;  let  us  shake  hands 
upon  the  bargain,'  said  the  King. 

So  they  shook  hands  and  went  up  out  of  the  cellar  of  treasure 
together,  and  the  Duchess  locked  the  door  and  gave  the  key  to  the 
King. 

When  he  got  back  to  bis  own  palace  Graciosa  ran  out  to  meet 
him,  and  asked  if  he  had  had  good  sport. 

'  I  have  caught  a  dove,'  answered  he. 

'  Oh  !  do  give  it  to  me,'  said  the  Princess,  '  and  I  will  keep  it  and 
take  care  of  it.' 

'  I  can  hardly  do  that,'  said  he,  '  for,  to  speak  more  plainly,  I 
mean  that  I  met  the  Duchess  Grumbly,  and  have  promised  to 
marry  her.' 

'  And  you  call  her  a  dove  ?  '  cried  the  Princess.  '  I  should  have 
called  her  a  screech  owl.' 

'  Hold  your  tongue,'  said  the  King,  very  crossly.  '  I  intend  you 
to  behave  prettily  to  her.  So  now  go  and  make  yourself  fit  to  be 
seen,  as  I  am  going  to  take  you  to  visit  her.' 

So  the  Princess  went  very  sorrowfully  to  her  own  room,  and  her 
nurse,  seeing  her  tears,  asked  what  was  vexing  her. 

'  Alas !  who  would  not  be  vexed  ?  '  answered  she,  '  for  the  King 
intends  to  marry  again,  and  has  chosen  for  his  new  bride  my 
enemy,  the  hideous  Duchess  Grumbly.' 

'  Oh,  well !  '  answered  the  nurse,  '  you  must  remember  that  you 
are  a  Princess,  and  are  expected  to  set  a  good  example  in  making 
the  best  of  whatever  happens.  You  must  promise  me  not  to  let  the 
Duchess  see  how  much  you  dislike  her.' 

At  first  the  Princess  would  not  promise,  but  the  nurse  showed 
her  so  many  good  reasons  for  it  that  in  the  end  she  agreed  to  be 
amiable  to  her  step-mother. 

Then  the  nurse  dressed  her  in  a  robe  of  pale  green  and  gold 


GE AGIOS A   AND  PERCINET  161 

brocade,  and  combed  out  her  long  fair  hair  till  it  floated  round  her 
like  a  golden  mantle,  and  put  on  her  head  a  crown  of  roses  and 
jasmine  with  emerald  leaves. 

When  she  was  ready  nobody  could  have  been  prettier,  but  she 
still  could  not  help  looking  sad. 

Meanwhile  the  Duchess  Grumbly  was  also  occupied  in  attiring 
herself.  She  had  one  of  he?  shoe  heels  made  an  inch  or  so  higher 
than  the  other,  that  she  might  not  limp  so  much,  and  put  in  a  cun- 
ningly made  glass  eye  in  the  place  of  the  one  she  had  lost.  She 
dyed  her  red  hair  black,  and  painted  her  face.  Then  she  put  on  a 
gorgeous  robe  of  lilac  satin  lined  with  blue,  and  a  yellow  petticoat 
trimmed  with  violet  ribbons,  and  because  she  had  heard  that  queens 
always  rode  into  their  new  dominions,  she  ordered  a  horse  to  be 
made  ready  for  her  to  ride. 

"While  Graciosa  was  waiting  until  the  King  should  be  ready  to 
set  out,  she  went  down  all  alone  through  the  garden  into  a  little 
wood,  where  she  sat  down  upon  a  mossy  bank  and  began  to  think. 
And  her  thoughts  were  so  doleful  that  very  Soon  she  began  to  cry, 
and  she  cried,  and  cried,  and  forgot  all  about  going  back  to  the 
palace,  until  she  suddenly  saw  a  handsome  page  standing  before 
her.  He  was  dressed  in  green,  and  the  cap  which  he  held  in  his 
hand  was  adorned  with  white  plumes.  When  Graciosa  looked  at 
him  he  went  down  on  one  knee,  and  said  to  her : 

'  Princess,  the  King  awaits  you.' 

The  Princess  was  surprised,  and,  if  the  truth  must  be  told,  very 
much  delighted  at  the  appearance  of  this  charming  page,  whom  she 
could  not  remember  to  have  seen  before.  Thinking  he  might  belong 
to  the  household  of  the  Duchess,  she  said  : 

'  How  long  have  you  been  one  of  the  King's  pages  ? ' 

'  I  am  not  in  the  service  of  the  King,  madam,'  answered  he,  '  but 
in  yours.' 

'  In  mine  ?  '  said  the  Princess  with  great  surprise.  '  Then  how 
is  it  that  I  have  never  seen  you  before  ?  ' 

'  Ah,  Princess  ! '  said  he,  '  I  have  never  before  dared  to  present 
myself  to  you,  but  now  the  King's  marriage  threatens  you  with  so 
many  dangers  that  I  have  resolved  to  tell  you  at  once  how  much  I 
love  you  already,  and  I  trust  that  in  time  I  may  win  your  regard.  I 
am  Prince  Percinet,  of  whose  riches  you  may  have  heard,  and  whose 
fairy  gift  will,  I  hope,  be  of  use  to  you  in  all  your  difficulties,  if  you 
will  permit  me  to  accompany  you  under  tins  disguise.' 

1  Ah,  Percinet !  '  cried  the  Princess,  '  is  it  really  you  ?    1  have 

R.  M 


162  GR  AGIOS  A   AND  PERCINET 

so  often  heard  of  you  and  wished  to  see  you.  If  you  will  indeed  be 
my  friend,  I  shall  not  be  afraid  of  that  wicked  old  Duchess  any 
more.' 

So  they  went  back  to  the  palace  together,  and  there  Graciosa 
found  a  beautiful  horse  which  Percinet  had  brought  for  her  to  ride. 
As  it  was  very  spirited  he  led  it  by  the  bridle,  and  this  arrangement 
enabled  him  to  turn  and  look  at  the  Princess  often,  which  he  did  not 
fail  to  do.  Indeed,  she  was  so  pretty  that  it  was  a  real  pleasure  to 
look  at  her.  When  the  horse  which  the  Duchess  was  to  ride  appeared 
beside  Graciosa's,  it  looked  no  better  than  an  old  cart  horse,  and  as 
to  their  trappings,  there  was  simply  no  comparison  between  them, 
as  the  Princess's  saddle  and  bridle  were  one  glittering  mass  of 
diamonds.  The  King  had  so  many  other  things  to  think  of  that 
he  did  not  notice  this,  but  all  his  courtiers  were  entirely  taken  up 
with  admiring  the  Princess  and  her  charming  Page  in  green,  who 
was  more  handsome  and  distinguished-looking  than  all  the  rest  of 
the  court  put  together. 

When  they  met  the  Duchess  Grumbly  she  was  seated  in  an 
open  carriage  trying  in  vain  to  look  dignified.  The  King  and  the 
Princess  saluted  her,  and  her  horse  was  brought  forward  for  her  to 
mount.  But  when  she  saw  Graciosa's  she  cried  angrily  : 

'  If  that  child  is  to  have  a  better  horse  than  mine,  I  will  go  back 
to  my  own  castle  this  very  minute.  What  is  the  good  of  being  a 
Queen  if  one  is  to  be  slighted  like  this  ?  ' 

Upon  this  the  King  commanded  Graciosa  to  dismount  and  to  beg 
the  Duchess  to  honour  her  by  mounting  her  horse.  The  Princess 
obeyed  in  silence,  and  the  Duchess,  without  looking  at  her  or  thank- 
ing her,  scrambled  up  upon  the  beaiitiful  horse,  where  she  sat  looking 
like  a  bundle  of  clothes,  and  eight  officers  had  to  hold  her  up  for  fear 
she  should  fall  off. 

Even  then  she  was  not  satisfied,  and  was  still  grumbling  and 
muttering,  so  they  asked  her  what  was  the  matter. 

'  I  wish  that  Page  in  green  to  come  and  lead  the  horse,  as  he  did 
when  Graciosa  rode  it,'  said  she  very  sharply. 

And  the  King  ordered  the  Page  to  come  and  lead  the  Queen's 
horse.  Percinet  and  the  Princess  looked  at  one  another,  but  said 
never  a  word,  and  then  he  did  as  the  King  commanded,  and  the 
procession  started  in  great  pomp.  The  Duchess  was  greatly  elated, 
and  as  she  sat  there  in  state  would  not  have  wished  to  change  places 
even  with  Graciosa.  But  at  the  moment  when  it  was  least  ex- 
pected the  beautiful  horse  began  to  plunge  and  rear  and  kick,  and 


GEACIOSA   AND  PEECINET  163 

finally  to  run  away  at  such  a  pace  that  it  was  impossible  to  stop 
him. 

At  first  the  Duchess  clung  to  the  saddle,  but  she  was  very  soon 
thrown  off  and  fell  in  a  heap  among  the  stones  and  thorns,  and  there 
they  found  her,  shaken  to  a  jelly,  and  collected  what  was  left  of  her 
as  if  she  had  been  a  broken  glass.  Her  bonnet  was  here  and  her 
shoes  there,  her  face  was  scratched,  and  her  fine  clothes  werec  overed 
with  mud.  Never  was  a  bride  seen  in  such  a  dismal  plight.  They 
carried  her  back  to  the  palace  and  put  her  to  bed,  but  as  soon  as 
she  recovered  enough  to  be  able  to  speak,  she  began  to  scold  and 
rage,  and  declared  that  the  whole  affair  was  Graciosa's  fault,  that 
she  had  contrived  it  on  purpose  to  try  and  get  rid  of  her,  and  that 
if  the  King  would  not  have  her  punished,  she  would  go  back  to  her 
castle  and  enjoy  her  riches  by  herself. 

At  this  the  King  was  terribly  frightened,  for  he  did  not  at  all 
want  to  lose  all  those  barrels  of  gold  and  jewels.  So  he  hastened 
to  appease  the  Duchess,  and  told  her  she  might  punish  Graciosa  in 
any  way  she  pleased. 

Thereupon  she  sent  for  Graciosa,  who  turned  pale  and  trembled 
at  the  summons,  for  she  guessed  that  it  promised  nothing  agreeable 
for  her.  She  looked  all  about  for  Percinet,  but  he  was  nowhere  to 
be  seen  ;  so  she  had  no  choice  but  to  go  to  the  Duchess  Grumbly's 
room.  She  had  hardly  got  inside  the  door  when  she  was  seized  by 
four  waiting  women,  who  looked  so  tall  and  strong  and  cruel  that 
the  Princess  shuddered  at  the  sight  of  them,  and  still  more  when  she 
saw  them  arming  themselves  with  great  bundles  of  rods,  and  heard 
the  Duchess  call  out  to  them  from  her  bed  to  beat  the  Princess 
without  mercy.  Poor  Graciosa  wished  miserably  that  Percinet 
could  only  know  what  was  happening  and  come  to  rescue  her.  But 
no  sooner  did  they  begin  to  beat  her  than  she  found,  to  her  great 
relief,  that  the  rods  had  changed  to  bundles  of  peacock's  feathers, 
and  though  the  Duchess's  women  went  on  till  they  were  so  tired 
that  they  could  no  longer  raise  their  arms  from  their  sides,  yet  she 
was  not  hurt  in  the  least.  However,  the  Duchess  thought  she  must 
be  black  and  blue  after  such  a  beating ;  so  Graciosa,  when  she  was 
released,  pretended  to  feel  very  bad,  and  went  away  into  her  own 
room,  where  she  told  her  nurse  all  that  had  happened,  and  then  the 
nurse  left  her,  and  when  the  Princess  turned  round  there  stood 
Percinet  beside  her.  She  thanked  him  gratefully  for  helping  her  so 
cleverly,  and  they  laughed  and  were  very  merry  over  the  way  they 
had  taken  in  the  Duchess  and  her  waiting-maids ;  but  Percinet 

M2 


164  GE  AGIOS  A  AND  PERCINET 

advised  her  still  to  pretend  to  be  ill  for  a  few  days,  and  after  promis- 
ing to  come  to  her  aid  whenever  she  needed  him,  he  disappeared 
as  suddenly  as  he  had  come. 

The  Duchess  was  so  delighted  at  the  idea  that  Graciosa  was 
really  ill,  that  she  herself  recovered  twice  as  fast  as  she  would  have 
done  otherwise,  and  the  wedding  was  held  with  great  magnificence. 
Now  as  the  King  knew  that,  above  all  other  things,  the  Queen  loved 
to  be  told  that  she  was  beautiful,  he  ordered  that  her  portrait  should 
be  painted,  and  that  a  tournament  should  be  held,  at  which  all  the 
bravest  knights  of  his  court  should  maintain  against  all  comers  that 
Grumbly  was  the  most  beautiful  princess  in  the  world. 

Numbers  of  knights  came  from  far  and  wide  to  accept  the 
challenge,  and  the  hideous  Queen  sat  in  great  state  in  a  balcony 
hung  with  cloth  of  gold  to  watch  the  contests,  and  Graciosa  had  to 
stand  up  behind  her,  where  her  loveliness  was  so  conspicuous  that 
the  combatants  could  not  keep  their  eyes  off  her.  But  the  Queen 
was  so  vain  that  she  thought  all  their  admiring  glances  were  for  her- 
self, especially  as,  in  spite  of  the  badness  of  their  cause,  the  King's 
knights  were  so  brave  that  they  were  the  victors  in  every  combat. 

However,  when  nearly  all  the  strangers  had  been  defeated,  a 
young  unknown  knight  presented  himself.  He  carried  a  portrait, 
enclosed  in  a  box  encrusted  with  diamonds,  and  he  declared  him- 
self willing  to  maintain  against  them  all  that  the  Queen  was  the 
ugliest  creature  in  the  world,  and  that  the  Princess  whose  portrait 
he  carried  was  the  most  beautiful. 

So  one  by  one  the  knights  came  out  against  him,  and  one  by 
one  he  vanquished  them  all,  and  then  he  opened  the  box,  and  said 
that,  to  console  them,  he  would  show  them  the  portrait  of  his  Queen 
of  Beauty,  and  when  he  did  so  everyone  recognised  the  Princess 
Graciosa.  The  unknown  knight  then  saluted  her  gracefully  and  re- 
tired, without  telling  his  name  to  anybody.  But  Graciosa  had  no 
difficulty  in  guessing  that  it  was  Percinet. 

As  to  the  Queen,  she  was  so  furiously  angry  that  she  could 
hardly  speak  ;  but  she  soon  recovered  her  voice,  and  overwhelmed 
Graciosa  with  a  torrent  of  reproaches. 

'  What  1 '  she  said,  '  do  you  dare  to  dispute  with  me  for  the  prize 
of  beauty,  and  expect  me  to  endure  this  insult  to  my  knights  ?  But 
I  will  not  bear  it,  proud  Princess.  I  will  have  my  revenge.' 

'  I  assure  you,  Madam,'  said  the  Princess, '  that  I  had  nothing  to 
do  with  it  and  am  quite  willing  that  you  shall  be  declared  Queen 
of  Beauty 


GE AGIOS A   AND  PERCINET  165 

'  Ah  !  you  are  pleased  to  jest,  popinjay  ! '  said  the  Queen,  '  but 
it  will  be  my  turn  soon  ! ' 

The  King  was  speedily  told  what  had  happened,  and  how  the 
Princess  was  in  terror  of  the  angry  Queen,  but  he  only  said : 

'  The  Queen  must  do  as  she  pleases.     Graciosa  belongs  to  her  ! ' 

The  wicked  Queen  waited  impatiently  until  night  fell,  and  then 
she  ordered  her  carriage  to  be  brought.  Graciosa,  much  against 
her  will,  was  forced  into  it,  and  away  they  drove,  and  never  stopped 
until  they  reached  a  great  forest,  a  hundred  leagues  from  the 
palace.  This  forest  was  so  gloomy,  and  so  full  of  lions,  tigers,  bears 
and  wolves,  that  nobody  dared  pass  through  it  even  by  daylight, 
and  here  they  set  down  the  unhappy  Princess  in  the  middle  of  the 
black  night,  and  left  her  in  spite  of  all  her  tears  and  entreaties.  The 
Princess  stood  quite  still  at  first  from  sheer  bewilderment,  biit  when 
the  last  sound  of  the  retreating  carriages  died  away  in  the  distance 
she  began  to  run  aimlessly  hither  and  thither,  sometimes  knock- 
ing herself  against  a  tree,  sometimes  tripping  over  a  stone,  fearing 
every  minute  that  she  would  be  eaten  up  by  the  lions.  Presently 
she  was  too  tired  to  advance  another  step,  so  she  threw  herself 
down  upon  the  ground  and  cried  miserably  : 

'  Oh,  Percinet !  where  are  you  ?  Have  you  forgotten  me  al- 
together ?  ' 

She  had  hardly  spoken  when  all  the  forest  was  lighted  up  with 
a  sudden  glow.  Every  tree  seemed  to  be  sending  out  a  soft 
radiance,  which  was  clearer  than  moonlight  and  softer  than  day- 
light, and  at  the  end  of  a  long  avenue  of  trees  opposite  to  her  the 
Princess  saw  a  palace  of  clear  crystal  which  blazed  like  the  sun. 
At  that  moment  a  slight  sound  behind  her  made  her  start  round, 
and  there  stood  Percinet  himself. 

'  Did  I  frighten  you,  my  Princess  ?  '  said  he.  '  I  come  to  bid  you 
welcome  to  our  fairy  palace,  in  the  name  of  the  Queen,  my  mother, 
who  is  prepared  to  love  you  as  much  as  I  do.'  The  Princess  joy- 
fully mounted  with  him  into  a  little  sledge,  drawn  by  two  stags, 
which  bounded  off  and  drew  them  swiftly  to  the  wonderful  palace, 
where  the  Queen  received  her  with  the  greatest  kindness,  and  a 
splendid  banquet  was  served  at  once.  Graciosa  was  so  happy  to 
have  found  Percinet,  and  to  have  escaped  from  the  gloomy  forest 
and  all  its  terrors,  that  she  was  very  hungry  and  very  merry,  and 
they  were  a  gay  party.  After  supper  they  went  into  another  lovely 
room,  where  the  crystal  walls  were  covered  with  pictures,  and  the 
Princess  saw  with  great  surprise  that  her  own  history  was  repre- 


166 


GE AC TO 8 A  AND  PERCINET 


sented,  even  down  to  the  moment  when  Percinet  found  her  in  the 
forest. 

'  Your  painters  must  indeed  be  diligent,'  she  said,  pointing  out 
the  last  picture  to  the  Prince. 

'  They  are  obliged  to  be,  for  I  will  not  have  anything  forgotten 
that  happens  to  you,'  he  answered. 

When  the  Princess  grew  sleepy,  twenty-four  charming  maidens 
put  her  to  bed  in  the  prettiest  room  she  had  ever  seen,  and  then 
sang  to  her  so  sweetly  that  Graciosa's  dreams  were  all  of  mermaids, 


and  cool  sea  waves,  and  caverns,  in  which  she  wandered  with 
Percinet ;  but  when  she  woke  up  again  her  first  thought  was  that, 
delightful  as  this  fairy  palace  seemed  to  her,  yet  she  could  not  stay 
in  it,  but  must  go  back  to  her  father.  When  she  had  been  dressed 
by  the  four-and-twenty  maidens  in  a  charming  robe  which  the 
Queen  had  sent  for  her,  and  in  which  she  looked  prettier  than  ever, 
Prince  Percinet  came  to  see  her,  and  was  bitterly  disappointed  when 
she  told  him  what  she  had  been  thinking.  He  begged  her  to  con- 
sider again  how  unhappy  the  wicked  Queen  would  make  her,  and 


GRACIOSA  AND  PERCINET  167 

how,  if  she  would  but  marry  him,  all  the  fairy  palace  would  be 
hers,  and  his  one  thought  would  be  to  please  her.  But,  in  spite  of 
everything  he  could  say,  the  Princess  was  quite  determined  to  go 
back,  though  he  at  last  persuaded  her  to  stay  eight  days,  which  were 
so  full  of  pleasure  and  amusement  that  they  passed  like  a  few 
hours.  On  the  last  day,  Graciosa,  who  had  often  felt  anxious  to 
know  what  was  going  on  in  her  father's  palace,  said  to  Percinet 
that  she  was  sure  that  he  could  find  out  for  her,  if  he  would,  what 
reason  the  Queen  had  given  her  father  for  her  sudden  disappear- 
ance. Percinet  at  first  offered  to  send  his  courier  to  find  out,  but 
the  Princess  said : 

'  Oh  !  isn't  there  a  quicker  way  of  knowing  than  that  ?  ' 

'  Very  well,'  said  Percinet,  '  you  shall  see  for  yourself.' 

So  up  they  went  together  to  the  top  of  a  very  high  tower,  which, 
like  the  rest  of  the  castle,  was  built  entirely  of  rock-crystal. 

There  the  Prince  held  Graciosa's  hand  in  his,  and  made  her  put 
the  tip  of  her  little  finger  into  her  mouth,  and  look  towards  the  town, 
and  immediately  she  saw  the  wicked  Queen  go  to  the  King,  and 
heard  her  say  to  him,  '  That  miserable  Princess  is  dead,  and  no 
great  loss  either.  I  have  ordered  that  she  shall  be  buried  at  once.' 

And  then  the  Princess  saw  how  she  dressed  up  a  log  of  wood 
and  had  it  buried,  and  how  the  old  King  cried,  and  all  the  people 
murmured  that  the  Queen  had  killed  Graciosa  with  her  cruelties, 
and  that  she  ought  to  have  her  head  cut  off.  When  the  Princess 
saw  that  the  King  was  so  sorry  for  her  pretended  death  that  he 
could  neither  eat  nor  drink,  she  cried  : 

'  Ah,  Percinet !  take  me  back  quickly  if  you  love  me.' 

And  so,  though  he  did  not  want  to  at  all,  he  was  obliged  to 
promise  that  he  would  let  her  go. 

'  You  may  not  regret  me,  Princess,'  he  said  sadly,  '  for  I  fear 
that  you  do  not  love  me  well  enough  ;  but  I  foresee  that  you  will 
more  than  once  regret  that  you  left  this  fairy  palace  where  we 
have  been  so  happy.' 

But,  in  spite  of  all  he  could  say,  she  bade  farewell  to  the  Queen, 
his  mother,  and  prepared  to  set  out ;  so  Percinet,  very  unwillingly, 
brought  the  little  sledge  with  the  stags  and  she  mounted  beside  him. 
Bi;t  they  had  hardly  gone  twenty  yards  when  a  tremendous  noise 
behind  her  made  Graciosa  look  back,  and  she  saw  the  palace  of  crystal 
fly  into  a  million  splinters,  like  the  spray  of  a  fountain,  and  vanish. 

'  Oh,  Percinet !  '  she  cried,  '  what  has  happened  ?  The  palace  is 
gone.' 


168  GB  AGIOS  A   AND  PEECINET 

'  Yes,'  he  answered, '  my  palace  is  a  thing  of  the  past ;  yon  will 
see  it  again,  but  not  until  after  you  have  been  buried.' 

'  Now  you  are  angry  with  me,'  said  Graciosa  in  her  most  coax- 
ing voice,  '  though  after  all  I  am  more  to  be  pitied  than  you  are.' 

When  they  got  near  the  palace  the  Prince  made  the  sledge  and 
themselves  invisible,  so  the  Princess  got  in  unobserved,  and  ran  up 
to  the  great  hall  where  the  King  was  sitting  all  by  himself.  At 
first  he  was  very  much  startled  by  Graciosa's  sudden  appearance, 
but  she  told  him  how  the  Queen  had  left  her  out  in  the  forest,  and 
how  she  had  caused  a  log  of  wood  to  be  buried.  The  King,  who 
did  not  know  what  to  think,  sent  quickly  and  had  it  dug  up,  and 
sure  enough  it  was  as  the  Princess  had  said.  Then  he  caressed 
Graciosa,  and  made  her  sit  down  to  supper  with  him,  and  they  were 
as  happy  as  possible.  But  someone  had  by  this  time  told  the  wicked 
Queen  that  Graciosa  had  come  back,  and  was  at  supper  with  the 
King,  and  in  she  flew  in  a  terrible  fury.  The  poor  old  King  quite 
trembled  before  her,  and  when  she  declared  that  Graciosa  was  not 
the  Princess  at  all,  but  a  wicked  impostor,  and  that  if  the  King  did 
not  give  her  up  at  once  she  would  go  back  to  her  own  castle  and 
never  see  him  again,  he  had  not  a  word  to  say,  and  really  seemed 
to  believe  that  it  was  not  Graciosa  after  all.  So  the  Qi;een  in  great 
triumph  sent  for  her  waiting  women,  who  dragged  the  unhappy 
Princess  away  and  shut  her  up  in  a  garret ;  they  took  away  all  her 
jewels  and  her  pretty  dress,  and  gave  her  a  rough  cotton  frock,  wooden 
shoes,  and  a  little  cloth  cap.  There  was  some  straw  in  a  corner, 
which  was  all  she  had  for  a  bed,  and  they  gave  her  a  very  little  bit 
of  black  bread  to  eat.  In  this  miserable  plight  Graciosa  did  indeed 
regret  the  fairy  palace,  and  she  would  have  called  Percinet  to  her 
aid,  only  she  felt  sure  he  was  still  vexed  with  her  for  leaving  him, 
and  thought  that  she  could  not  expect  him  to  come. 

Meanwhile  the  Queen  had  sent  for  an  old  Fairy,  as  malicious  as 
herself,  and  said  to  her  : 

'  You  must  find  me  some  task  for  this  fine  Princess  which  she 
cannot  possibly  do,  for  I  mean  to  punish  her,  and  if  she  does  not  do 
what  I  order,  she  will  not  be  able  to  say  that  I  am  unjust.'  So  the 
old  Fairy  said  she  would  think  it  over,  and  come  again  the  next 
day.  When  she  returned  she  brought  with  her  a  skein  of  thread, 
three  times  as  big  as  herself;  it  was  BO  fine  that  a  breath  of  air  would 
break  it,  and  so  tangled  that  it  was  impossible  to  see  the  beginning 
or  the  end  of  it. 

The  Queen  sent  for  Graciosa,  and  said  to  her  : 


GB  AGIOS  A  AND  PEECINET 


169 


1  Do  yon  see  this  skein  ?  Set  your  clumsy  fingers  to  work  upon 
it,  for  I  must  have  it  disentangled  by  sunset,  and  if  you  break  a 
single  thread  it  will  be  the  worse  for  you.'  So  saying  she  left  her, 
locking  the  door  behind  her  with  three  keys. 

The  Princess  stood  dismayed  at  the  sight  of  the  terrible  skein. 
If  she  did  but  turn  it  over  to  see  where  to  begin,  she  broke  a 
thousand  threads,  and  not  one  could  she  disentangle.  At  last  she 
threw  it  into  the  middle  of  the  floor,  crying  : 


'  Oh,  Percinet !  this  fatal  skein  will  be  the  death  of  me  if  you 
will  not  forgive  me  and  help  me  once  more.' 

And  immediately  in  came  Percinet  as  easily  as  if  he  had  all  the 
keys  in  his  own  possession. 

'  Here  I  am,  Princess,  as  much  as  ever  at  your  service,'  said  he, 
'  though  really  you  are  not  very  kind  to  me.' 

Then  he  just  stroked  the  skein  with  his  wand,  and  all  the  broken 
threads  joined  themselves  together,  and  the  whole  skein  wound 


170  GEACIO8A   AND  PERCINET 

itself  smoothly  off  in  the  most  surprising  manner,  and  the  Prince, 
turning  to  Graciosa,  asked  if  there  was  nothing  else  that  she  wished 
him  to  do  for  her,  and  if  the  time  would  never  come  when  she  would 
wish  for  him  for  his  own  sake. 

'J)on't  be  vexed  with  me,  Percinet,'  she  said.  '  I  am  unhappy 
enough  without  that.' 

'  But  why  should  you  be  unhappy,  my  Princess  ?  '  cried  he.  '  Only 
come  with  me  and  we  shall  be  as  happy  as  the  dayislong  together.' 

'  But  suppose  you  get  tired  of  me  ?  '  said  Graciosa. 

The  Prince  was  so  grieved  at  this  want  of  confidence  that  he  left 
her  without  another  word. 

The  wicked  Queen  was  in  such  a  hurry  to  punish  Graciosa  that 
she  thought  the  sun  would  never  set ;  and  indeed  it  was  before  the 
appointed  time  that  she  came  with  her  four  Fairies,  and  as  she  fitted 
the  three  keys  into  the  locks  she  said : 

'  I'll  venture  to  say  that  the  idle  minx  has  not  done  anything  at 
all— she  prefers  to  sit  with  her  hands  before  her  to  keep  them 
white.' 

But,  as  soon  as  she  entered,  Graciosa  presented  her  with  the 
ball  of  thread  in  perfect  order,  so  that  she  had  no  fault  to  find,  and 
could  only  pretend  to  discover  that  it  was  soiled,  for  which 
imaginary  fault  she  gave  Graciosa  a  blow  on  each  cheek,  that  made 
her  white  and  pink  skin  turn  green  and  yellow.  And  then  she 
sent  her  back  to  be  locked  into  the  garret  once  more. 

Then  the  Queen  sent  for  the  Fairy  again  and  scolded  her 
furiously.  '  Don't  make  such  a  mistake  again  ;  find  me  something 
that  it  will  be  quite  impossible  for  her  to  do,  she  said. 

So  the  next  day  the  Fairy  appeared  with  a  huge  barrel  full  of  the 
feathers  of  all  sorts  of  birds.  There  were  nightingales,  canaries, 
goldfinches,  linnets,  tomtits,  parrots,  owls,  sparrows,  doves, 
ostriches,  bustards,  peacocks,  larks,  partridges,  and  everything  else 
that  yon  can  think  of.  These  feathers  were  all  mixed  up  in  such 
confusion  that  the  birds  themselves  could  not  have  chosen  out  their 
own.  '  Here,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  is  a  little  task  which  it  will  take  all 
your  prisoner's  skill  and  patience  to  accomplish.  Tell  her  to  pick 
out  and  lay  in  a  separate  heap  the  feathers  of  each  bird.  She 
would  need  to  be  a  fairy  to  do  it.' 

The  Queen  was  more  than  delighted  at  the  thought  of  the 
despair  this  task  would  cause  the  Princess.  She  sent  for  her,  and 
with  the  same  threats  as  before  locked  her  up  with  the  three  keys, 
ordering  that  all  the  feathers  should  be  sorted  by  sunset.  Graciosa 


GRACIOSA  AND  PERCINET  171 

set  to  work  at  once,  but  before  she  had  taken  oiit  a  dozen  feathers 
she  found  that  it  was  perfectly  impossible  to  know  one  from  another. 

'  Ah  !  well,'  she  sighed,  '  the  Queen  wishes  to  kill  me,  and  if  I 
must  die  I  must.  I  cannot  ask  Percinet  to  help  me  again,  for  if 
he  really  loved  me  he  would  not  wait  till  I  called  him,  he  would 
come  without  that.' 

'  I  am  here,  my  Graciosa,'  cried  Percinet,  springing  out  of  the 
barrel  where  he  had  been  hiding.  '  How  can  you  still  doubt  that  I 
ove  you  with  all  my  heart  ?  ' 

Then  he  gave  three  strokes  of  his  wand  upon  the  barrel,  and  all 
the  feathers  flew  out  in  a  cloud  and  settled  down  in  neat  little 
separate  heaps  all  round  the  room. 

'  What  should  I  do  without  you,  Percinet  ? '  said  Graciosa 
gratefully.  But  still  she  could  not  quite  make  up  her  mind  to  go 
with  him  and  leave  her  father's  kingdom  for  ever  ;  so  she  begged 
him  to  give  her  more  time  to  think  of  it,  and  he  had  to  go  away 
disappointed  once  more. 

When  the  wicked  Queen  came  at  sunset  she  was  amazed  and 
infuriated  to  find  the  task  done.  However,  she  complained  that 
the  heaps  of  feathers  were  badly  arranged,  and  for  that  the 
Princess  was  beaten  and  sent  back  to  her  garret.  Then  the 
Queen  sent  for  the  Fairy  once  more,  and  scolded  her  until  she  was 
fairly  terrified,  and  promised  to  go  home  and  think  of  another  task 
for  Graciosa,  worse  than  either  of  the  others. 

At  the  end  of  three  days  she  came  again,  bringing  with  her  a 
box. 

'  Tell  your  slave,'  said  he,  '  to  carry  this  wherever  you  please, 
but  on  no  account  to  open  it.  She  will  not  be  able  to  help  doing 
so,  and  then  you  will  be  quite  satisfied  with  the  result."  So  the 
Queen  came  to  Graciosa,  and  said  : 

'  Carry  this  box  to  my  castle,  and  place  it  upon  the  table  in  my 
own  room.  But  I  forbid  you  on  pain  of  death  to  look  at  what  it 
contains.' 

Graciosa  set  out,  wearing  her  little  cap  and  wooden  shoes  and 
the  old  cotton  frock,  but  even  in  this  disguise  she  was  so  beautiful 
that  all  the  passers-by  wondered  who  she  could  be.  She  had  not 
gone  far  before  the  heat  of  the  sun  and  the  weight  of  the  box 
tired  her  so  much  that  she  sat  down  to  rest  in  the  shade  of  a  little 
wood  which  lay  on  one  side  of  a  green  meadow.  She  was  carefully 
holding  the  box  upon  her  lap  when  she  suddenly  felt  the  greatest 
desire  to  open  it. 


172 


GE AGIOS  A   AND  PEECINET 


1  "What  could  possibly  happen  if  I  did  ? '  she  said  to  herself. 
1 1  should  not  take  anything  out.  I  should  only  just  see  what  was 
there.' 

And  without  farther  hesitation  she  lifted  the  cover. 

Instantly  ont  came  swarms  of  little  men  and  women,  no  taller 
than  her  finger,  and  scattered  themselves  all  over  the  meadow, 
singing  and  dancing,  and  playing  the  merriest  games,  so  that  at 


first  Graciosa  was  delighted  and  watched  them  with  much  amuse- 
ment. But  presently,  when  she  was  rested  and  wished  to  go  on 
her  way,  she  found  that,  do  what  she  would,  she  could  not  get  them 
back  into  their  box.  If  she  chased  them  in  the  meadow  they  fled 
into  the  wood,  and  if  she  pursued  them  into  the  wood  they  dodged 
round  trees  and  behind  sprigs  of  moss,  and  with  peals  of  elfin 
laughter  scampered  back  again  into  the  meadow. 


GEACIOSA  AND  PERCINET  173 

At  last,  weary  and  terrified,  she  sat  down  and  cried. 

'  It  is  my  own  fault,'  she  said  sadly.  '  Percinet,  if  you  can  still 
care  for  such  an  imprudent  Princess,  do  come  and  help  rne  once 
more.' 

Immediately  Percinet  stood  before  her. 

'  Ah,  Princess  !  '  he  said,  '  but  for  the  wicked  Queen  I  fear  you 
would  never  think  of  me  at  all.' 

'  Indeed  I  should,'  said  Graciosa ;  '  I  am  not  so  ungrateful  as 
you  think.  Only  wait  a  little  and  I  believe  I  shall  love  you  quite 
dearly.' 

Percinet  was  pleased  at  this,  and  with  one  stroke  of  his  wand 
compelled  all  the  wilful  little  people  to  come  back  to  their  places 
in  the  box,  and  then  rendering  the  Princess  invisible  he  took  her 
with  him  in  his  chariot  to  the  castle. 

"When  the  Princess  presented  herself  at  the  door,  and  said  that 
the  Queen  had  ordered  her  to  place  the  box  in  her  own  room,  the 
governor  laughed  heartily  at  the  idea. 

'  No,  no,  my  little  shepherdess,'  said  he,  '  that  is  not  the  place 
for  you.  No  wooden  shoes  have  ever  been  over  that  floor  yet.' 

Then  Graciosa  begged  him  to  give  her  a  written  message  telling 
the  Queen  that  he  had  refused  to  admit  her.  This  he  did,  and  she 
went  back  to  Percinet,  who  was  waiting  for  her,  and  they  set  out 
together  for  the  palace.  You  may  imagine  that  they  did  not  go 
the  shortest  way,  but  the  Princess  did  not  find  it  too  long,  and 
before  they  parted  she  had  promised  that  if  the  Queen  was  still 
cruel  to  her,  and  tried  again  to  play  her  any  spiteful  trick,  she 
would  leave  her  and  come  to  Percinet  for  ever. 

"NVhen  the  Queen  saw  her  returning  she  fell  upon  the  Fairy, 
whom  she  had  kept  with  her,  and  pulled  her  hair,  and  scratched 
her  face,  and  would  really  have  killed  her  if  a  Fairy  could  be 
killed.  And  when  the  Princess  presented  the  letter  and  the  box 
she  threw  them  both  upon  the  fire  without  opening  them,  and 
looked  very  much  as  if  she  would  like  to  throw  the  Princess  after 
them.  However,  what  she  really  did  do  was  to  have  a  great  hole 
as  deep  as  a  well  dug  in  her  garden,  and  the  top  of  it  covered  with 
a  flat  stone.  Then  she  went  and  walked  near  it,  and  said  to 
Graciosa  and  all  her  ladies  who  were  with  her : 

'  I  am  told  that  a  great  treasure  lies  under  that  stone ;  let  us  see 
if  we  can  lift  it.' 

So  they  all  began  to  push  and  pull  at  it,  and  Graciosa  among 
the  others,  which  was  just  what  the  Queen  wanted ;  for  as  soon  as 


174  GR AGIOS A  AND  PERCINET 

the  stone  was  lifted  high  enough,  she  gave  the  Princess  a  push 
which  sent  her  down  to  the  bottom  of  the  well,  and  then  the  stone 
was  let  fall  again,  and  there  she  was  a  prisoner.  Graciosa  felt 
that  now  indeed  she  was  hopelessly  lost,  surely  not  even  Percinet 
could  find  her  in  the  heart  of  the  earth. 

'  This  is  like  being  buried  alive,'  she  said  with  a  shudder.  '  Oh, 
Percinet !  if  you  only  knew  how  I  am  suffering  for  my  want  of 
trust  in  you  !  But  how  could  I  be  sure  that  you  would  not  be  like 
other  men  and  tire  of  me  from  the  moment  you  were  sure  I  loved 
you  ?  ' 

As  she  spoke  she  suddenly  saw  a  little  door  open,  and  the  sun- 
shine blazed  into  the  dismal  well.  Graciosa  did  not  hesitate  an 
instant,  but  passed  through  into  a  charming  garden.  Flowers  and 
fruit  grew  on  every  side,  fountains  plashed,  and  birds  sang  in  the 
branches  overhead,  and  when  she  reached  a  great  avenue  of  trees 
and  looked  up  to  see  where  it  would  lead  her,  she  found  herself 
close  to  the  palace  of  crystal.  Yes  !  there  was  no  mistaking  it, 
and  the  Queen  and  Percinet  were  coming  to  meet  her. 

'  Ah,  Princess  !  '  said  the  Queen,  '  don't  keep  this  poor  Percinet 
in  suspense  any  longer.  You  little  guess  the  anxiety  he  has 
suffered  while  you  were  in  the  power  of  that  miserable  Queen.' 

The  Princess  kissed  her  gratefully,  and  promised  to  do  as  she 
wished  in  everything,  and  holding  out  her  hand  to  Percinet,  with  a 
smile,  she  said : 

'  Do  you  remember  telling  me  that  I  should  not  see  your  palace 
again  until  I  had  been  buried  ?  I  wonder  if  you  guessed  then 
that,  when  that  happened,  I  should  tell  you  that  I  love  you  with  all 
my  heart,  and  will  marry  you  whenever  you  like  ?  ' 

Prince  Percinet  joyfully  took  the  hand  that  was  given  him,  and, 
for  fear  the  Princess  should  change  her  mind,  the  wedding  was 
held  at  once  with  the  greatest  splendour,  and  Graciosa  and  Percinet 
lived  happily  ever  after.1 

1  Gracieute  el  Percinel.    Mdiuo.  d'Auluoy. 


175 


rpHERE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  fisherman,  who  lived  hard  by  a 
J-  palace  and  fished  for  the  King's  table.  One  day  he  was  out 
fishing,  but  caught  nothing  at  all.  Let  him  do  what  he  might  with 
rod  and  line,  there  was  never  even  so  much  as  a  sprat  on  his  hook  ; 
but  when  the  day -was  well  nigh  over,  a  head  rose  up  out  of  the 
water,  and  said :  '  If  you  will  give  me  what  your  wife  shows  you 
when  you  go  home,  you  shall  catch  fish  enough.' 

So  the  man  said  'Yes '  in  a  moment,  and  then  he  caught  fish  in 
plenty  ;  but  when  he  got  home  at  night,  and  his  wife  showed  him  a 
baby  which  had  just  been  born,  and  fell  a-weeping  and  wailing 
when  he  told  her  of  the  promise  which  he  had  given,  he  was  very 
unhappy. 

All  this  was  soon  told  to  the  King  up  at  the  palace,  and  when  he 
heard  what  sorrow  the  woman  was  in,  and  the  reason  of  it,  he  said 
that  he  himself  would  take  the  child  and  see  if  he  could  not  save  it. 
The  baby  was  a  boy,  and  the  King  took  him  at  once  and  brough 
him  up  as  his  own  son  until  the  lad  grew  up.  Then  one  day  he 
begged  to  have  leave  to  go  out  with  his  father  to  fish ;  he  had  a 
strong  desire  to  do  this,  he  said.  The  King  was  very  unwilling  to 
permit  it,  but  at  last  the  lad  got  leave.  He  stayed  with  his  father, 
and  all  went  prosperously  and  well  with  them  the  whole  day,  until 
they  came  back  to  land  in  the  evening.  Then  the  lad  found  that 
he  had  lost  his  pocket-handkerchief,  and  would  go  out  in  the  boat 
after  it ;  but  no  sooner  had  he  got  into  the  boat  than  it  began  to 
move  off  with  him  so  quickly  that  the  water  foamed  all  round  about, 
and  all  that  the  lad  did  to  keep  the  boat  back  with  the  oars  was  done 
to  no  purpose,  for  it  went  on  and  on  the  whole  night  through,  and 
at  last  he  came  to  a  white  strand  that  lay  far,  far  away.  There  he 
landed,  and  when  he  had  walked  on  for  some  distance  he  met  an 
old  man  with  a  long  white  beard. 

'  ^Yhat  is  the  name  of  this  country  ?    gaid  the  youth. 


176     THE    THREE  PRINCESSES   OF   WHITELAND 

1  Whiteland,'  answered  the  man,  and  then  he  begged  the  youth 
to  tell  him  whence  he  came  and  what  he  was  going  to  do,  and  the 
youth  did  so. 

1  Well,  then,'  said  the  man,  '  if  you  walk  on  farther  along  the  sea- 
shore here,  you  will  come  to  three  princesses  who  are  standing  in 
the  earth  so  that  their  heads  alone  are  out  of  it.  Then  the  first  of 
them  will  call  you — she  is  the  eldest — and  will  beg  you  very  prettily 
to  come  to  her  and  help  her,  and  the  second  will  do  the  same,  but  you 
must  not  go  near  either  of  them.  Hurry  past,  as  if  you  neither 
saw  nor  heard  them  ;  but  you  shall  go  to  the  third  and  do  what 
she  bids  you ;  it  will  bring  you  good  fortune.' 

When  the  youth  came  to  the  first  princess,  she  called  to  him 
and  begged  him  to  come  to  her  very  prettily,  but  he  walked  on  as 
if  he  did  not  even  see  her,  and  he  passed  by  the  second  in  the  same 
way,  but  he  went  up  to  the  third. 

'  If  thou  wilt  do  what  I  tell  thee,  thou  shalt  choose  among  us 
three,'  said  the  Princess. 

So  the  lad  said  that  he  was  most  willing,  and  she  told  him  that 
three  Trolls  had  planted  them  all  three  there  in  the  earth,  but  that 
formerly  they  had  dwelt  in  the  castle  which  he  could  see  at  some 
distance  in  the  wood. 

'  Now,'  she  said, '  thou  shalt  go  into  the  castle,  and  let  the  Trolls 
beat  thee  one  night  for  each  of  us,  and  if  thou  canst  but  endiire 
that,  thou  wilt  set  us  free.' 

'  Yes,'  answered  the  lad,  '  I  will  certainly  try  to  do  so.' 

'  When  thou  goest  in,'  continued  the  Princess,  '  two  lions  will 
stand  by  the  doorway,  but  if  thou  only  goest  straight  between  them 
they  will  do  thee  no  harm ;  go  straight  forward  into  a  small  dark 
chamber ;  there  thou  shalt  lie  down.  Then  the  Troll  will  come  and 
beat  thee,  but  thou  shalt  take  the  flask  which  is  hanging  on  the 
wall,  and  anoint  thyself  wheresoever  he  has  wounded  thee,  after 
which  thou  shalt  be  as  well  as  before.  Then  lay  hold  of  the  sword 
which  is  hanging  by  the  side  of  the  flask,  and  smite  the  Troll  dead.' 

So  he  did  what  the  Princess  had  told  him.  He  walked  straight 
in  between  the  lions  just  as  if  he  did  not  see  them,  and  then  into  the 
small  chamber,  and  lay  down  on  the  bed. 

The  first  night  a  Troll  came  with  three  heads  and  three  rods, 
and  beat  the  lad  most  unmercifully  ;  but  he  held  out  until  the  Troll 
was  done  with  him,  and  then  he  took  the  flask  and  rubbed  him- 
self. Having  done  this,  he  grasped  the  sword  and  smote  the  Troll 
dead. 


In  the  morning  when  he  went  to  the  sea-shore  the  Princesses 
were  out  of  the  earth  as  far  as  their  waists. 

The  next  night  everything  happened  in  the  same  way,  but  the 
Troll  who  came  then  had  six  heads  and  six  rods,  and  he  beat  him 


much  more  severely  than  the  first  had  done  but  when  the  lad 
went  out  of  doors  next  morning,  the  Princesses  were  out  of  the 
earth  as  far  as  their  knees. 

On  the  third  night  a  Troll  came  who  had  nine  heads  and  nine 
rods,  and  he  struck  the  lad  and  flogged  him  so  long,  that  at  last  he 
E.  N 


178     THE   THREE  PRINCESSES   OF  WHITELAND 

swooned  away  ;  so  the  Troll  took  him  up  and  flung  him  against  the 
wall,  and  this  made  the  flask  of  ointment  fall  down,  and  it  splashed 
all  over  him,  and  he  became  as  strong  as  ever  again. 

Then,  without  loss  of  time,  he  grasped  the  sword  and  struck  the 
Troll  dead,  and  in  the  morning  when  he  went  out  of  the  castle  the 
Princesses  were  standing  there  entirely  out  of  the  earth.  So  he 
took  the  youngest  for  his  Queen,  and  lived  with  her  very  happily 
for  a  long  time. 

At  last,  however,  he  took  a  fancy  to  go  home  for  a  short  time  to 
see  his  parents.  His  Que^n  did  not  like  this,  but  when  his  longing 
grew  so  great  that  he  told  her  he  must  and  would  go,  she  said  to 
him  : 

'  One  thing  shalt  thou  promise  me,  and  that  is,  to  do  what  thy 
father  bids  thee,  but  not  what  thy  mother  bids  thee,'  and  this  he 
promised. 

So  she  gave  him  a  ring,  which  enabled  him  who  wore  it  to  obtain 
two  wishes. 

He  wished  himself  at  home,  and  instantly  found  himself  there  ; 
but  his  parents  were  so  amazed  at  the  splendour  of  his  apparel 
that  their  wonder  never  ceased. 

When  he  had  been  at  home  for  some  days  his  mother  wanted 
him  to  go  up  to  the  palace,  to  show  the  King  what  a  great  man  he 
had  become. 

The  father  said, '  No ;  he  must  not  do  that,  for  if  he  does  we  shall 
have  no  more  delight  in  him  this  time  ;  '  but  he  spoke  in  vain,  for 
the  mother  begged  and  prayed  until  at  last  he  went. 

When  he  arrived  there  he  was  more  splendid,  both  in  raiment 
and  in  all  else,  than  the  other  King,  who  did  not  like  it,  and  said : 
'  Well,  you  can  see  what  kind  of  Queen  mine  is,  but  I  can't  see 
yours.     I  do  not  believe  you  have  such  a  pretty  Queen  as  I  have.' 

'  Would  to  heaven  she  were  standing  here,  and  then  you  would 
be  able  to  see ! '  said  the  young  King,  and  in  an  instant  she  was 
standing  there. 

But  she  was  very  sorrowful,  and  said  to  him,  '  Why  didst  thou 
not  remember  my  words,  and  listen  only  to  what  thy  father  said  ? 
Now  must  I  go  home  again  at  once,  and  thou  hast  wasted  both  thy 
wishes.' 

Then  she  tied  a  ring  in  his  hair,  which  had  her  name  upon  it,  and 
wished  herself  at  home  again. 

And  now  the  young  King  was  deeply  afflicted,  and  day  out  and 
day  in  went  about  thinking  of  naught  else  but  how  to  get  back 


THE    THREE  PRINCESSES   OF   WHITELAND     179 

again  to  his  Queen.  '  I  will  try  to  see  if  there  is  any  place  where 
I  can  learn  howtofindWhiteland,"  he  thought,  and  journeyed  forth 
out  into  the  world. 

When  he  had  gone  some  distance  he  came  to  a  mountain, 
where  he  met  a  man  who  was  Lord  over  all  the  beasts  in  the  forest 
— for  they  all  came  to  him  when  he  blew  a  horn  which  he  had. 
So  the  King  asked  where  "Whiteland  was. 

'  I  do  not  know  that,'  he  answered,  '  but  I  will  ask  my  beasts. 


Then  he  blew  his  horn  and  inquired  whether  any  of  them  knew 
where  Whitelaiid  lajr,  but  there  was  not  one  who  knew  that. 

So  the  man  gave  him  a  pair  of  snow  shoes.  '  When  you  have 
these  on,'  he  said,  '  you  will  come  to  my  brother,  who  lives  hundreds 
of  miles  from  here ;  he  is  Lord  over  all  the  birds  in  the  air — ask  him. 
When  you  have  got  there,  just  turn  the  shoes  so  that  the  toes 
point  this  way,  and  then  they  will  come  home  again  of  their  own 
accord.' 

N2 


180     THE   THEEE  PEINCESSES   OF   WHITELAND 

"When  the  King  arrived  there  he  turned  the  shoes  as  the  Lord 
of  the  beasts  had  bidden  him,  and  they  went  back. 

And  now  he  once  more  asked  after  Whiteland,  and  the  man  sum- 
moned, all  the  birds  together,  and  inquired  if  any  of  them  knew 
where  Whiteland  lay.  No,  none  knew  this.  Long  after  the  others 
there  came  an  old  eagle.  He  had  been  absent  ten  whole  years,  but 
he  too  knew  no  more  than  the  rest. 

'  Well,  well,'  said  the  man,  '  then  you  shall  have  the  loan  of  a 
pair  of  snow  shoes  of  mine.  If  you  wear  them  you  will  get  to  my 
brother,  who  lives  hundreds  of  miles  from  here.  He  is  Lord  of 
all  the  fish  in  the  sea — you  can  ask  him.  But  do  not  forget  to  turn 
the  shoes  round.' 

The  King  thanked  him,  put  on  the  shoes,  and  when  he  had  got 
to  him  who  was  Lord  of  all  the  fish  in  the  sea,  he  turned  the  snow 
shoes  round,  and  back  they  went  just  as  the  others  had  gone,  and 
he  asked  once  more  where  Whiteland  was. 

The  man  called  the  fish  together  with  his  horn,  but  none  of 
them  knew  anything  about  it.  At  last  came  an  old,  old  pike,  which 
he  had  great  difficulty  in  bringing  home  to  him. 

When  he  asked  the  pike,  it  said,  '  Yes,  Whiteland  is  well  known 
to  me,  for  I  have  been  cook  there  these  ten  years.  To-morrow 
morning  I  have  to  go  back  there,  for  now  the  Queen,  whose  King  is 
staying  away,  is  to  marry  some  one  else.' 

'  If  that  be  the  case  I  will  give  you  a  piece  of  advice,'  said  the 
man.  '  Not  far  from  here  on  a  moor  stand  three  brothers,  who  have 
stood  there  a  hundred  years  fighting  for  a  hat,  a  cloak,  and  a  pair 
of  boots ;  if  any  one  has  these  three  things  he  can  make  himself 
invisible,  and  if  he  desires  to  go  to  any  place,  he  has  but  to  wish  and 
he  is  there.  You  may  tell  them  that  you  have  a  desire  to  try  these 
things,  and  then  you  will  be  able  to  decide  which  of  the  men  is  to 
have  them.' 

So  the  King  thanked  him  and  went,  and  did  what  he  had  said. 

'  What  is  this  that  you  are  standing  fighting  about  for  ever 
and  ever  ?  '  said  he  to  the  brothers  ;  '  let  me  make  a  trial  of  these 
things,  and  then  I  will  jiidge  between  you.' 

They  willingly  consented  to  this,  but  when  he  had  got  the  hat, 
the  cloak,  and  the  boots,  he  said,  '  Next  time  we  meet  you  shall  have 
my  decision,'  and  hereupon  he  wished  himself  away. 

While  he  was  going  quickly  through  the  air  he  fell  in  with  the 
North  Wind. 

'  And  where  may  you  be  going  ? '  said  the  North  Wind. 


THE   THREE  PRINCESSES   OF  WHITELAND     181 

'To  Whiteland,'  said  the  King,  and  then  he  related  what  had 
happened  to  him. 

'  Well,'  said  the  North  Wind,  '  you  can  easily  go  a  little  quicker 
than  I  can,  for  I  have  to  puff  and  blow  into  every  corner ;  but  when 
you  get  there,  place  yourself  on  the  stairs  by  the  side  of  the  door, 
and  then  I  will  come  blustering  in  as  if  I  wanted  to  blow  down  the 
whole  castle,  and  when  the  Prince  who  is  to  have  your  Queen 
comes  out  to  see  what  is  astir,  just  take  him  by  the  throat  and  fling 
him  out,  and  then  I  will  try  to  carry  him  away  from  court.' 

As  the  North  Wind  had  said,  so  did  the  King.  He  stood  on  the 
stairs,  and  when  the  North  Wind  came  howling  and  roaring,  and 
caught  the  roof  and  walls  of  the  castle  till  they  shook  again,  the 
Prince  went  out  to  see  what  was  the  matter  ;  but  as  soon  as  he  came 
the  King  took  him  by  the  neck  and  flung  him  out,  and  then  the 
North  Wind  laid  hold  of  him  and  carried  him  off.  And  when  he 
was  rid  of  him  the  King  went  into  the  castle.  At  first  the  Queen 
did  not  know  him,  because  he  had  grown  so  thin  and  pale  from 
having  travelled  so  long  and  so  sorrowfully ;  but  when  she  saw  her 
ring  she  was  heartily  glad,  and  then  the  rightful  wedding  was  held, 
and  held  in  such  a  way  that  it  was  talked  about  far  and  wide.1 

1  From  J.  Moe. 


182 


THE   VOICE   OF  DEATH 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  man  whose  one  wish  and  prayer 
was  to  get  rich.  Day  and  night  he  thought  of  nothing  else, 
and  at  last  his  prayers  were  granted,  and  he  became  very  wealthy. 
Now  being  so  rich,  and  having  so  much  to  lose,  he  felt  that  it  would 
be  a  terrible  thing  to  die  and  leave  all  his  possessions  behind ;  so  he 
made  up  his  mind  to  set  out  in  search  of  a  land  where  there  was  no 
death.  He  got  ready  for  his  journey,  took  leave  of  his  wife,  and 
started.  Whenever  he  came  to  a  new  country  the  first  question 
chat  he  asked  was  whether  people  died  in  that  land,  and  when  he 
heard  that  they  did,  he  set  out  again  on  his  quest.  At  last  he 
reached  a  country  where  he  was  told  that  the  people  did  not  even 
know  the  meaning  of  the  word  death.  Our  traveller  was  delighted 
when  he  heard  this,  and  said : 

'  But  surely  there  are  great  numbers  of  people  in  your  land,  if 
no  one  ever  dies  ?  ' 

'  No,'  they  replied,  '  there  are  not  great  numbers,  for  you  see 
from  time  to  time  a  voice  is  heard  calling  first  one  and  then  another, 
and  whoever  hears  that  voice  gets  up  and  goes  away,  and  never 
comes  back.' 

'  And  do  they  see  the  person  who  calls  them,'  he  asked,  '  or  do 
they  only  hear  his  voice  ?  ' 

'  They  both  see  and  hear  him,'  was  the  answer. 

Well,  the  man  was  amazed  when  he  heard  that  the  people  were 
stupid  enough  to  follow  the  voice,  though  they  knew  that  if  they 
went  when  it  called  them  they  would  never  return.  And  he  went 
back  to  his  own  home  and  got  all  his  possessions  together,  and, 
taking  his  wife  and  family,  he  set  out  resolved  to  go  and  live  in  that 
country  where  the  people  did  not  die,  but  where  instead  they  heard 
a  voice  calling  them,  which  they  followed  into  a  land  from  which 
they  never  returned.  For  he  had  made  up  his  own  uiiud  that  when 


THE    VOICE    OF  DEATH 


183 


he  or  any  of  his  famity  heard  that  voice  they  would  pay  no  heed  to 
it,  however  loudly  it  called. 

After  he  had  settled  down  in  his  new  home,  and  had  got  every- 
thing in  order  about  him,  he  warned  his  wife  and  family  that,  unless 
they  wanted  to  die,  they  must  on  no  account  listen  to  a  voice  which 
they  might  some  day  hear  calling  them. 

For  some  years  everj'thing  went  well  with  them,  and  they  lived 
happily  in  their  new  home.  But  one  day,  while  they  were  all  sit- 


ting together  round  the  table,  his  wife  suddenly  started  up,  ex- 
claiming in  a  loud  voice  : 

'  I  am  coming !    I  am  coming  ! ' 

And  she  began  to  look  round  the  room  for  her  fur  coat,  but  her 
husband  jumped  up,  and  taking  firm  hold  of  her  by  the  hand,  held 
her  fast,  and  reproached  her,  saying  : 

'  Don't  you  remember  what  I  told  you  ?  Stay  where  you  are 
unless  you  wish  to  die.' 

'  But  don't  you  hear  that  voice  calling  me  ?  '  she  answered.      I 


184  THE    VOICE   OF  DEATH 

am  merely  going  to  see  why  I  am  wanted.  I  shall  come  back 
directly.' 

So  she  fought  and  struggled  to  get  away  from  her  husband,  and 
to  go  where  the  voice  summoned.  But  he  would  not  let  her  go, 
and  had  all  the  doors  of  the  house  shut  and  bolted.  When  she  saw 
that  he  had  done  this,  she  said  : 

'  Very  well,  dear  husband,  I  shall  do  what  you  wish,  and  remain 
where  I  am.' 

So  her  husband  believed  that  it  was  all  right,  and  that  she  had 
thought  better  of  it,  and  had  got  over  her  mad  impulse  to  obey  the 
voice.  But  a  few  minutes  later  she  made  a  sudden  dash  for  one  of 
the  doors,  opened  it  and  darted  out,  followed  by  her  husband.  He 
caught  her  by  the  fur  coat,  and  begged  and  implored  her  not  to  go, 
for  if  she  did  she  would  certainly  never  return.  She  said  nothing, 
but  let  her  arms  fall  backwards,  and  suddenly  bending  herself  for- 
ward, she  slipped  out  of  the  coat,  leaving  it  in  her  husband's  hands. 
He,  poor  man,  seemed  turned  to  stone  as  he  gazed  after  her  hurry- 
ing away  from  him,  and  calling  at  the  top  of  her  voice,  as  she 
ran : 

'  I  am  coming  !   I  am  coming !  ' 

When  she  was  quite  out  of  sight  her  husband  recovered  his  wits 
and  went  back  into  his  house,  murmuring  : 

'  If  she  is  so  foolish  as  to  wish  to  die,  I  can't  help  it.  I  warned 
and  implored  her  to  pay  no  heed  to  that  voice,  however  loudly  it 
might  call.' 

Well,  days  and  weeks  and  months  and  years  passed,  and 
nothing  happened  to  disturb  the  peace  of  the  household.  But  one 
day  the  man  was  at  the  barber's  as  usual,  being  shaved.  The  shop 
was  full  of  people,  and  his  chin  had  just  been  covered  with  a  lather 
of  soap,  when,  suddenly  starting  up  from  the  chair,  he  called  out  in 
a  loud  voice  : 

'  I  won't  come,  do  you  hear  ?     I  won't  come  1  ' 

The  barber  and  the  other  people  in  the  shop  listened  to  him 
with  amazement.  But  again  looking  towards  the  door,  he  ex- 
claimed : 

'  I  tell  you,  once  and  for  all,  I  do  not  mean  to  come,  so  go 
away.' 

And  a  few  minutes  later  he  called  out  again : 

'  Go  away,  I  tell  you,  or  it  will  be  the  worse  for  you.  You  may 
call  as  much  as  you  like  but  you  will  never  get  me  to  come.' 

And  he  got  so  angry  that  you  might  have  thought  that  some 


THE    VOICE   OF  DEATH  185 

one  was  actually  standing  at  the  door,  tormenting  him.  At  last 
he  jumped  up,  and  caught  the  razor  out  of  the  barber's  hand,  ex- 
claiming : 

'  Give  me  that  razor,  and  I'll  teach  him  to  let  people  alone  for 
the  future.' 

And  he  rushed  out  of  the  house  as  if  he  were  running  after  some 
one,  whom  no  one  else  saw.  The  barber,  determined  not  to  lose 
his  razor,  pursued  the  man,  and  they  both  continued  running  at  full 
speed  till  they  had  got  well  out  of  the  town,  when  all  of  a  sudden 
the  man  fell  head  foremost  down  a  precipice,  and  never  was  seen 
again.  So  he  too,  like  the  others,  had  been  forced  against  his  will 
to  follow  the  voice  that  called  him. 

The  barber,  who  went  home  whistling  and  congratulating  him- 
self on  the  escape  he  had  made,  described  what  had  happened,  and 
it  was  noised  abroad  in  the  country  that  the  people  who  had  gone 
away,  and  had  never  returned,  had  all  fallen  into  that  pit ;  for  till 
then  they  had  never  known  what  had  happened  to  those  who  had 
heard  the  voice  and  obeyed  its  call. 

But  when  crowds  of  people  went  out  from  the  town  to  examine 
the  ill-fated  pit  that  had  swallowed  up  such  numbers,  and  yet  never 
seemed  to  be  full,  they  could  discover  nothing.  All  that  they  could 
see  was  a  vast  plain,  that  looked  as  if  it  had  been  there  since  the 
beginning  of  the  world.  And  from  that  time  the  people  of  the 
country  began  to  die  like  ordinary  mortals  all  the  world  over.1 

1  Koumauiau  Tales  from  the  Geniiau  of  Mite  Tkreiniiitz. 


186 


THE  SIX  SILLIES 

ONCE  upon  a  time  there  was  a  young  girl  who  reached  the  age  of 
thirty-seven  without  ever  having  had  a  lover,  for  she  was  so 
foolish  that  no  one  wanted  to  marry  her. 

One  day,  however,  a  young  man  arrived  to  pay  his  addresses  to 
her,  and  her  mother,  beaming  with  joy,  sent  her  daughter  down  to 
the  cellar  to  draw  a  jug  of  beer. 

As  the  girl  never  came  back  the  mother  went  down  to  see  what 
had  become  of  her,  and  found  her  sitting  on  the  stairs,  her  head  in 
her  hands,  while  by  her  side  the  beer  was  running  all  over  the  floor, 
as  she  had  forgotten  to  close  the  tap.  '  What  are  you  doing  there  ?  ' 
asked  the  mother. 

'  I  was  thinking  what  I  shall  call  my  first  child  after  I  am 
married  to  that  young  man.  All  the  names  in  the  calendar  are 
taken  already.' 

The  mother  sat  down  on  the  staircase  beside  her  daughter  and 
said,  '  I  will  think  about  it  with  you,  my  dear.' 

The  father  who  had  stayed  upstairs  with  the  young  man  was 
surprised  that  neither  his  wife  nor  his  daughter  came  back,  and  in 
his  turn  went  down  to  look  for  them.  He  found  them  both  sitting 
on  the  stairs,  while  beside  them  the  beer  was  running  all  over  the 
ground  from  the  tap,  which  was  wide  open. 

'  What  are  you  doing  there  ?  The  beer  is  running  all  over  the 
cellar.' 

'  We  were  thinking  what  we  should  call  the  children  that  our 
daughter  will  have  when  she  marries  that  young  man.  All  the 
names  in  the  calendar  are  taken  already.' 

'  Well,'  said  the  father, '  I  will  think  about  it  with  you.' 

As  neither  mother  nor  daughter  nor  father  came  upstairs  again, 
the  lover  grew  impatient,  and  went  down  into  the  cellar  to  see 
what  they  could  all  be  doing.  He  found  them  all  three  sitting  on 


THE   SIX   SILLIES 


187 


the  stairs,  while  beside  them  the  beer  was  running  all  over  the 
ground  from  the  tap,  which  was  wide  open. 

'  What  in  the  world  are  you  all  doing  that  you  don't  come 
upstairs,  and  that  you  let  the  beer  run  all  over  the  cellar  ?  ' 

'  Yes,  I  know,  my  boy,'  said  the  father,  '  but  if  you  rnarry  our 
daughter  what  shall  you  call  your  children '?  All  the  names  in  the 
calendar  are  taken.' 


When  the  young  man  heard  this  answer  he  replied : 

'  Well !  good-bye,  I  am  going  away.     When  I  shall  have  found 

three  people  sillier  than  you  I  will  come  back  and  marry  your 

daughter.' 

So  he  continued  his  journey,  and  after  walking  a  long  way  he 

reached  an  orchard.    Then  he  saw  some  people  knocking  down 

walnuts,  and  trying  to  throw  them  into  a  cart  with  a  fork. 


188  THE   SIX  SILLIES 

'  What  are  you  doing  there  ?  '  he  asked. 

'  We  want  to  load  the  cart  with  our  walnuts,  but  we  can't 
manage  to  do  it.' 

The  lover  advised  them  to  get  a  basket  and  to  put  the  walnuts 
in  it,  so  as  to  turn  them  into  the  cart. 

'  Well,'  he  said  to  himself,  '  I  have  already  found  someone  more 
foolish  than  those  three.' 

So  he  went  on  his  way,  and  by-and-by  he  came  to  a  wood. 
There  he  saw  a  man  who  wanted  to  give  his  pig  some  acorns  to 
eat,  and  was  trying  with  all  his  might  to  make  him  climb  up  the 
oak-tree. 

1  What  are  you  doing,  my  good  man  ?  '  asked  he. 

'  I  want  to  make  my  pig  eat  some  acorns,  and  I  can't  get  him 
to  go  up  the  tree.' 

'  If  you  were  to  climb  up  and  shake  down  the  acorns  the  pig 
would  pick  them  up.' 

'  Oh,  I  never  thought  of  that.' 

'  Here  is  the  second  idiot,'  said  the  lover  to  himself. 

Some  way  farther  along  the  road  he  came  upon  a  man  who 
had  never  worn  any  trousers,  and  who  was  trying  to  put  on  a  pair. 
So  he  had  fastened  them  to  a  tree  and  was  jumping  with  all  his 
might  up  in  the  air  so  that  he  should  hit  the  two  legs  of  the  trousers 
as  he  came  down. 

'  It  would  be  much  better  if  you  held  them  in  your  hands,'  said 
the  young  man, '  and  then  put  your  legs  one  after  the  other  in  each 
hole.' 

'  Dear  me.  to  be  sure !  You  are  sharper  than  I  am,  for  that 
never  occurred  to  me.' 

And  having  found  three  people  more  foolish  than  his  bride,  or 
her  father  or  her  mother,  the  lover  went  back  to  marry  the  young 
lady. 

And  in  course  of  time  they  had  a  great  many  children. 

Story  from  Hainaut. 
(M.  Leruoiue.    La  Tradition.    No.  34.1 


189 


KAEI  WOODENGOWN 


was  once  upon  a  time  a  King  who  had  become  a  widower. 
-1-  His  Queen  had  left  one  daughter  behind  her,  and  she  was  so 
wise  and  so  pretty  that  it  was  impossible  for  any  one  to  be  wiser  or 
prettier.  For  a  long  time  the  King  went  sorrowing  for  his  wife,  for 
he  had  loved  her  exceedingly  ;  but  at  last  he  grew  tired  of  living 
alone,  and  married  a  Queen  who  was  a  widow,  and  she  also  had 
a  daughter,  who  was  just  as  ill-favoured  and  wicked  as  the  other 
was  good  and  beautiful.  The  stepmother  and  her  daughter  were 
envious  of  the  King's  daughter  because  she  was  so  pretty,  but  so 
long  as  the  King  was  at  home  they  dared  do  her  no  harm,  because 
his  love  for  her  was  so  great. 

Then  there  came  a  time  when  he  made  war  on  another  King  and 
went  away  to  fight,  and  then  the  new  Queen  thought  that  she  could 
do  what  she  liked ;  so  she  both  hungered  and  beat  the  King's  daughter 
and  chased  her  about  into  every  corner.  At  last  she  thought  that 
everything  was  too  good  for  her,  and  set  her  to  work  to  look  after 
the  cattle.  So  she  went  about  with  the  cattle,  and  herded  them  in 
the  woods  and  in  the  fields.  Of  food  she  got  little  or  none,  and 
grew  pale  and  thin,  and  was  nearly  always  weeping  and  sad.  Among 
the  herd  there  was  a  great  blue  bull,  which  always  kept  itself  very 
smart  and  sleek,  and  often  came  to  the  King's  daughter  and  let  her 
stroke  him.  So  one  day,  when  she  was  again  sitting  crying  and 
sorrowing,  the  Bull  came  up  to  her  and  asked  why  she  was  always 
so  full  of  care  ?  She  made  no  answer,  but  continued  to  weep. 

'  Well,'  said  the  Bull,  '  I  know  what  it  is,  though  you  will  not  tell 
me ;  you  are  weeping  because  the  Queen  is  unkind  to  you,  and  because 
she  wants  to  starve  you  to  death.  But  you  need  be  under  no  concern 
about  food,  for  in  my  left  ear  there  lies  a  cloth,  and  if  you  will  but 
take  it  and  spread  it  out,  you  can  have  as  many  dishes  as  you  like.' 

So  she  did  this,  and  took  the  cloth  and  spread  it  out  upon  the 
grass,  and  then  it  was  covered  with  the  daintiest  dishes  that  any  one 


190 


KAEI   WOODEN  GOWN 


could  desire,  and  there  was  wine,  and  mead,  and  cake.  And  now 
she  became  brisk  and  well  again,  and  grew  so  rosy,  and  plump,  and 
fair  that  the  Queen  and  her  scraggy  daughter  turned  blue  and  white 
with  vexation  at  it.  The  Queen  could  not  imagine  how  her  step- 
daughter could  look  so  well  on  such  bad  food,  so  she  ordered  one  of 
her  handmaidens  to  follow  her  into  the  wood  and  watch  her,  and 
see  how  it  was,  for  she  thought  that  some  of  the  servants  must  be 
giving  her  food.  So  the  maid  followed  her  into  the  wood  and 
watched,  and  saw  how  the  step-daughter  took  the  cloth  out  of  the 


Blue  Bull's  ear,  and  spread  it  out,  and  how  the  cloth  was  then  covered 
with  the  most  delicate  dishes,  which  the  step-daughter  ate  and  re- 
galed herself  with.  So  the  waiting-maid  went  home  and  told  the 
Queen. 

And  now  the  King  came  home,  and  he  had  conquered  the  other 
King  with  whom  he  had  been  at  war.  So  there  was  great  gladness 
in  the  palace,  but  no  one  was  more  glad  than  the  King's  daughter. 
The  Queen,  however,  pretended  to  be  ill,  and  gave  the  doctor  much 
money  to  say  that  she  would  never  be  well  again  unless  she  had 


KAEI   WOODENGOWN  191 

some  of  the  flesh  of  the  Blue  Bull  to  eat.  Both  the  King's  daughter 
and  the  people  in  the  palace  asked  the  doctor  if  there  were  no  other 
means  of  saving  her,  and  begged  for  the  Bull's  life,  for  they  were  all 
fond  of  him,  and  they  all  declared  that  there  was  no  such  Bull  in  the 
whole  country  ;  but  it  was  all  in  vain,  he  was  to  be  killed,  and  should 
be  killed,  and  nothing  else  would  serve.  When  the  King's  daughter 
heard  it  she  was  full  of  sorrow,  and  went  down  to  the  byre  to  the 
Bull.  He  too  was  standing  there  hanging  his  head,  and  looking  so 
downcast  that  she  fell  a-weeping  over  him. 

'  What  are  you  weeping  for  ?  '  said  the  Bull. 

So  she  told  him  that  the  King  had  come  home  again,  and  that 
the  Queen  had  pretended  to  be  ill,  and  that  she  had  made  the  doctor 
say  that  she  could  never  be  well  again  unless  some  of  the  flesh  of 
the  Blue  Bull  was  given  her  to  eat,  and  that  now  he  was  to  be 
killed. 

'  When  once  they  have  taken  my  life  they  will  soon  kill  you 
also,'  said  the  Bull.  '  If  you  are  of  the  same  mind  with  me,  we  will 
take  our  departure  this  very  night.' 

The  King's  daughter  thought  that  it  was  bad  to  go  and  leave 
her  father,  but  that  it  was  worse  still  to  be  in  the  same  house  with 
the  Queen,  so  she  promised  the  Bull  that  she  would  come. 

At  night,  when  all  the  others  had  gone  to  bed,  the  King's  daughter 
stole  softly  down  to  the  byre  to  the  Bull,  and  he  took  her  on  his 
back  and  got  out  of  the  coiirtyard  as  quickly  as  he  could.  So  at 
cock-crow  next  morning,  when  the  people  came  to  kill  the  Bull,  he 
was  gone,  and  when  the  King  got  up  and  asked  for  his  daughter  she 
was  gone  too.  He  sent  forth  messengers  to  all  parts  of  the  kingdom 
to  search  for  them,  and  published  his  loss  in  all  the  parish  churches, 
but  there  was  no  one  who  had  seen  anything  of  them. 

In  the  meantime  the  Bull  travelled  through  many  lands  with  the 
King's  daughter  on  his  back,  and  one  day  they  came  to  a  great 
copper- wood,  where  the  trees,  and  the  branches,  and  the  leaves,  and 
the  flowers,  and  everything  else  was  of  copper. 

But  before  they  entered  the  wood  the  Bull  said  to  the  King's 
daughter : 

•  When  we  enter  into  this  wood,  you  must  take  the  greatest  care 
not  to  touch  a  leaf  of  it,  or  all  will  be  over  both  with  me  and  with 
you,  for  a  Troll  with  three  heads,  who  is  the  owner  of  the  wood, 
lives  here.' 

So  she  said  she  would  be  on  her  guard,  and  not  touch  anything. 
And  she  was  very  careful,  and  bent  herself  out  of  the  way  of  the 


192  KAEI  WOODENGOWN 

branches,  and  put  them  aside  with  her  hands ;  but  it  was  so  thickly 
wooded  that  it  was  all  but  impossible  to  get  forward,  and  do  what 
she  might,  she  somehow  or  other  tore  off  a  leaf  which  got  into  her 
hand. 

'  Oh  !  oh  !  What  have  you  done  now  ?  '  said  the  Bull.  '  It  will 
now  cost  us  a  battle  for  life  or  death ;  but  do  be  careful  to  keep  the 
leaf!' 

Very  soon  afterwards  they  came  to  the  end  of  the  wood,  and  the 
Troll  with  three  heads  came  rushing  up  to  them. 

'  Who  is  that  who  is  touching  my  wood  ?  '  said  the  Troll. 

'  The  wood  is  just  as  much  mine  as  yours ! '  said  the  Bull. 

'  We  shall  have  a  tussle  for  that  !  '  shrieked  the  Troll. 

'  That  may  be,'  said  the  Bull. 

So  they  rushed  on  each  other  and  fought,  and  as  for  the  Bull 
he  butted  and  kicked  with  all  the  strength  of  his  body,  but  the 
Troll  fought  quite  as  well  as  he  did,  and  the  whole  day  went  by 
before  the  Bull  put  an  end  to  him,  and  then  he  himself  was  so  full 
of  wounds  and  so  worn  out  that  he  was  scarcely  able  to  move.  So 
they  had  to  wait  a  day,  and  the  Bull  told  the  King's  daughter  to 
take  the  horn  of  ointment  which  hung  at  the  Troll's  belt,  and  rub 
him  with  it ;  then  he  was  himself  again,  and  the  next  day  they  set 
off  once  more.  And  now  they  journeyed  on  for  many,  many  days, 
and  then  after  a  long,  long  time  they  came  to  a  silver  wood.  The 
trees,  and  the  boughs,  and  the  leaves,  and  the  flowers,  and  every- 
thing else  was  of  silver. 

Before  the  Bull  went  into  the  wood,  he  said  to  the  King's 
daughter :  '  When  we  enter  into  this  wood  you  must,  for  Heaven's 
sake,  be  very  careful  not  to  touch  anything  at  all.  and  not  to  pluck 
off  even  so  much  as  one  leaf,  or  else  all  will  be  over  both  with  you 
and  with  me.  A  Troll  with  six  heads  lives  here,  who  is  the  owner 
of  the  wood,  and  I  do  not  think  I  should  be  able  to  overcome  him.' 

'  Yes,'  said  the  King's  daughter,  '  I  will  take  good  care  not  to 
touch  what  you  do  not  wish  me  to  touch.' 

But  when  they  got  into  the  wood  it  was  so  crowded,  and  the 
trees  so  close  together,  that  they  could  scarcely  get  forward.  She 
was  as  careful  as  she  could  be,  and  bent  aside  to  get  out  of  the  way  ol 
the  branches,  and  thrust  them  away  from  before  her  with  her  hands  ; 
but  every  instant  a  branch  struck  against  her  eyes,  and  in  spite  of 
all  her  care,  she  happened  to  pull  off  one  leaf. 

'  Oh  !  oh  1  What  have  you  done  now  ?  '  said  the  Bull.  '  It  will 
now  cost  us  a  battle  for  life  or  death,  for  this  Troll  has  six  heads 


KAEI  WOODENGOWN  .    193 

and  is  twice  as  strong  as  the  other,  but  do  be  careful  to  keep  the 
leaf.' 

Just  as  he  said  this   came  the  Troll.     '  Who  is  that  who  is 
touching  my  wood  ?  '  he  said. 

'  It  is  just  as  much  mine  as  yours  !  ' 
'  \A  e  shall  have  a  tussle  for  that !  '  screamed  the  Troll. 
'  That  may  be,'  said  the  Bull,  and  rushed  at  the  Troll,  and  gored 
out  his  eyes,  and  drove  his  horns  right  through  him  so  that  his 
entrails  gushed  out,  but  the  Troll  fought  just  as  well  as  he  did,  and 
it  was  three  whole  days  before  the  Bull  got  the  life  out  of  him.  But 
the  Bull  was  then  so  weak  and  worn  out  that  it  was  only  with  pain 
and  effort  that  he  could  move,  and  so  covered  with  wounds  that 
the  blood  streamed  from  him.  So  he  told  the  King's  daughter  to 
take  the  horn  of  ointment  that  was  hanging  at  the  Troll's  belt,  and 
anoint  him  with  it.  She  did  this,  and  then  he  came  to  himself 
again,  but  they  had  to  stay  there  and  rest  for  a  week  before  the 
Bull  was  able  to  go  any  farther. 

At  last  they  set  forth  on  their  way  again,  but  the  Bull  was  still 
weak,  and  at  first  could  not  go  quickly.  The  King's  daughter 
wished  to  spare  him,  and  said  that  she  was  so  young  and  light  of 
foot  that  she  would  willingly  walk,  but  he  would  not  give  her  leave 
to  do  that,  and  she  was  forced  to  seat  herself  on  his  back  again. 
So  they  travelled  for  a  long  time,  and  through  many  lands,  and 
the  King's  daughter  did  not  at  all  know  where  he  was  taking  her, 
but  after  a  long,  long  time  they  came  to  a  gold  wood.  It  was  so 
golden  that  the  gold  dripped  off  it,  and  the  trees,  and  the  branches, 
and  the  flowers,  and  the  leaves  were  all  of  pure  gold.  Here  all 
happened  just  as  it  had  happened  in  the  copper  wood  and  silver 
wood.  The  Bull  told  the  King's  daughter  that  on  no  account  was 
she  to  touch  it,  for  there  was  a  Troll  with  nine  heads  who  was  the 
owner,  and  that  he  was  much  larger  and  stronger  than  both  the 
others  put  together,  and  that  he  did  not  believe  that  he  could  over- 
come him.  So  she  said  that  she  would  take  great  care  not  to 
touch  anything,  and  he  should  see  that  she  did.  But  when  they  got 
into  the  wood  it  was  still  thicker  than  the  silver  wood,  and  the  farther 
they  got  into  it  the  worse  it  grew.  The  wood  became  thicker  and 
thicker,  and  closer  and  closer,  and  at  last  she  thought  there  was 
no  way  whatsoever  by  which  they  could  get  forward ;  she  was  so 
terrified  lest  she  should  break  anything  off,  that  she  sat  and  twisted, 
and  turned  herself  on  this  side  and  on  that,  to  get  out  of  the  way  of 
the  branches,  and  pushed  them  away  from  her  with  her  hands,  but 
K.  0 


194  KAEI  WOODENGOWN 

every  moment  they  struck  against  her  eyes,  so  that  she  could  not 
see  what  she  was  clutching  at,  and  before  she  knew  what  she  was 
doing  she  had  a  golden  apple  in  her  hands.  She  was  now  in  such 
terror  that  she  began  to  cry,  and  wanted  to  throw  it  away,  but  the 
Bull  said  that  she  was  to  keep  it,  and  take  the  greatest  care  of  it, 
and  comforted  her  as  well  as  he  could,  but  he  believed  that  it  would 


be  a  hard  struggle,  and  he  doubted  whether  it  would  go  well  with 
him. 

Just  then  the  Troll  with  nine  heads  came,  and  he  was  so  fright- 
ful that  the  King's  daughter  scarcely  dared  to  look  at  him, 

'  Who  is  this  who  is  breaking  my  wood  ?  '  he  screamed. 

'  It  is  as  much  nime  as  yours  I '  said  the  Bull, 


KABI   WOODENQOWN  195 

'  We  shall  have  a  tussle  for  that  1  '  screamed  the  Troll. 

'  That  may  be,'  said  the  Bull ;  so  they  rushed  at  each  other,  and 
fought,  and  it  was  such  a  dreadful  sight  that  the  King's  daughter  very 
nearly  swooned.  The  Bull  gored  the  Troll's  eyes  out  and  ran  his 
horns  right  through  him,  but  the  Troll  fought  as  well  as  he  did,  and 
when  the  Bull  had  gored  one  head  to  death  the  other  heads  breathed 
life  into  it  again,  so  it  was  a  whole  week  before  the  Bull  was  able 
to  kill  him.  But  then  he  himself  was  so  worn  out  and  weak  that  he 
could  not  move  at  all.  His  body  was  all  one  wound,  and  he  could 
not  even  so  much  as  tell  the  King's  daughter  to  take  the  horn  of 
ointment  out  of  the  Troll's  belt  and  rub  him  with  it.  She  did  this 
without  being  told ;  so  he  came  to  himself  again,  but  he  had  to  lie 
there  for  three  weeks  and  rest  before  he  was  in  a  state  to  move. 

Then  they  journeyed  onwards  by  degrees,  for  the  Bull  said  that 
they  had  still  a  little  farther  to  go,  and  in  this  way  they  crossed 
many  high  hills  and  thick  woods.  This  lasted  for  a  while,  and 
then  they  came  upon  the  fells. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  ?  '  asked  the  Bull. 

'No,  I  see  nothing  but  the  sky  above  and  the  wild  fell  side,' 
said  the  King's  daughter. 

Then  they  climbed  up  higher,  and  the  fell  grew  more  level,  so 
that  they  could  see  farther  around  them. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  now  ?  '  said  the  Bull. 

'  Yes,  I  see  a  small  castle,  far,  far  away,'  said  the  Princess. 

'  It  is  not  so  very  little  after  all,'  said  the  Bull. 

After  a  long,  long  time  they  came  to  a  high  hill,  where  there 
was  a  precipitous  wall  of  rock. 

'Do  you  see  nothing  now  ?  '  said  the  Bull. 

'  Yes,  now  I  see  the  castle  quite  near,  and  now  it  is  much,  much 
larger,'  said  the  King's  daughter. 

'  Thither  shall  you  go,'  said  the  Bull ;  '  immediately  below  the 
castle  jhere  is  a  pig-sty,  where  you  shall  dwell.  When  you  get 
there,  you  will  find  a  wooden  gown  which  you  are  to  put  on,  and 
then  go  to  the  castle  and  say  that  you  are  called  Kari  Woodengown, 
and  that  you  are  seeking  a  place.  But  now  you  must  take  out  your 
little  knife  and  cut  off  my  head  with  it,  and  then  you  must  flay  me 
and  roll  up  my  hide  and  put  it  there  under  the  rock,  and  beneath 
the  hide  you  must  lay  the  copper  leaf,  and  the  silver  leaf,  and  the 
golden  apple.  Close  beside  the  rock  a  stick  is  standing,  and  when 
you  want  me  for  anything  you  have  only  to  knock  at  the  wall  of 
rock  with  that.' 

o2 


196 


KARI  WOODENGOWN 


At  first  she  would  not  do  it,  but  when  the  Bull  said  that  this 
was  the  only  reward  that  he  would  have  for  what  he  had  done  for 
her,  she  could  do  no  otherwise.  So  though  she  thought  it  very 
cruel,  she  slaved  on  and  cut  at  the  great  animal  with  the  knife  till 
she  had  cut  off  his  head  and  hide,  and  then  she  folded  up  the  hide 
and  laid  it  beneath  the  mountain  wall,  and  put  the  copper  leaf,  and 
the  silver  leaf,  and  the  golden  apple  inside  it. 

AY hen  she  had  done 
that  she  went  away  to  the 
pig-sty,  but  all  the  way 
as  she  went  she  wept,  and 
was  very  sorrowful.  Then 
she  put  on  the  wooden 
gown,  and  walked  to  the 
King's  palace.  When  she 
got  there  she  went  into 
the  kitchen  and  begged 
for  a  place,  saying  that 
her  name  was  Kari 
Woodengown. 

The  cook  told  her  that 
she  might  have  a  pl.-ico 
and  leave  to  stay  there  at 
once  and  wash  up,  for  the 
girl  who  had  done  that 
before  had  just  gone 
away.  'And  as  soon  as 
you  get  tired  of  being 
here  you  will  take  your- 
self off  too,'  said  he. 

'  No,'  said  she,  '  that 
I  shall  certainly  not.' 

And  then  she  washed 
up,  and  did  it  very  tidily. 

On  Sunday  some  strangers  were  coming  to  the  King's  palace, 
so  Kari  begged  to  have  leave  to  carry  up  the  water  for  the  Prince's 
bath,  but  the  others  laughed  at  her  and  said,  '  What  do  you  want 
there  ?  Do  you  think  the  Prince  will  ever  look  at  such  a  fright  as 
you  ?  ' 

She  would  not  give  it  up,  however,  but  went  on  begging  until  at 
last  she  got  leave.  When  she  was  going  upstairs  her  wooden  gown 


KARI    WOODENGOWN  197 

made  such  a  clatter  that  the  Prince  carue  out  and  said,  '  What  sort 
of  a  creature  may  you  be  ?  ' 

1 1  was  to  take  this  water  to  you,'  said  Kari. 

'  Do  you  suppose  that  I  will  have  any  water  that  you  bring  ?  ' 
said  the  Prince,  and  emptied  it  over  her. 

She  had  to  bear  that,  but  then  she  asked  permission  to  go  to 
church.  She  got  that,  for  the  church  was  very  near.  But  first  she 
went  to  the  rock  and  knocked  at  it  with  the  stick  which  was  stand- 
ing there,  as  the  Bull  had  told  her  to  do.  Instantly  a  man  came 
forth  and  asked  what  she  wanted.  The  King's  daughter  said  that 
she  had  got  leave  to  go  to  church  and  listen  to  the  priest,  but  that 
she  had  no  clothes  to  go  in.  So  he  brought  her  a  gown  that  was  as 
bright  as  the  copper  wood,  and  she  got  a  horse  and  saddle  too  from 
him.  When  she  reached  the  church  she  was  so  pretty  and  so 
splendidly  dressed  that  every  one  wondered  who  she  could  be,  and 
hardly  anyone  listened  to  what  the  priest  was  saying,  for  they 
were  all  looking  far  too  much  at  her,  and  the  Prince  himself  liked 
her  so  well  that  he  could  not  take  his  eyes  off  her  for  an  instant. 
As  she  was  walking  out  of  church  the  Prince  followed  her  and 
shut  the  church  door  after  her,  and  thus  he  kept  one  of  her 
gloves  in  his  hand.  Then  she  went  away  and  mounted  her  horse 
again  ;  the  Prince  again  followed  her,  and  asked  her  whence  she 
came. 

'  Oh  !  I  am  from  Bathland,'  said  Kari.  And  when  the  Prince 
took  out  the  glove  and  wanted  to  give  it  back  to  her,  she  said  : 

'  Darkness  behind  me,  but  light  on  my  way, 
That  the  Prince  may  not  see  where  I'm  going  to-day  !  ' 

The  Prince  had  never  seen  the  eqiial  of  that  glove,  and  he  went 
far  and  wide,  asking  after  the  country  which  the  proud  lady,  who 
rode  away  without  her  glove,  had  said  that  she  came  from,  but 
there  was  no  one  who  could  tell  him  where  it  lay. 

Next  Sunday  some  one  had  to  take  up  a  towel  to  the  Prince. 

'  Ah  !  may  I  have  leave  to  go  up  with  that  ?  '  said  Kari. 

'  What  would  be  the  use  of  that  ?  '  said  the  others  who  were  in 
the  kitchen  ;  '  you  saw  what  happened  last  time.' 

Kari  would  not  give  in,  but  went  on  begging  for  leave  till  she 
got  it,  and  then  she  ran  up  the  stairs  so  that  her  wooden  gown 
clattered  again.  Out  came  the  Prince,  and  when  he  saw  that  it 
was  Kari,  he  snatched  the  towel  from  her  and  flung  it  right  in  her 
eyes. 


198  KAB1  WOODENGOWN 

'  Be  off  at  once,  you  ugly  Troll,'  said  he  ;  '  do  you  think  that  I 
will  have  a  towel  that  has  been  touched  by  your  dirty  fingers  ?  ' 

After  that  the  Prince  went  to  church,  and  Kari  also  asked  leave 
to  go.  They  all  asked  how  she  could  want  to  go  to  church  when 
she  had  nothing  to  wear  but  that  wooden  gown,  which  was  so 
black  and  hideous.  But  Kari  said  she  thought  the  priest  was  such 
a  good  man  at  preaching  that  she  got  so  much  benefit  from  what 
he  said,  and  at  last  she  got  leave. 

She  went  to  the  rock  and  knocked,  whereupon  out  came  the 
man  and  gave  her  a  gown  which  was  much  more  magnificent  than 
the  first.  It  was  embroidered  with  silver  all  over  it,  and  it  shone 
like  the  silver  wood,  and  he  gave  her  also  a  most  beautiful  horse, 
with  housings  embroidered  with  silver,  and  a  bridle  of  silver  too. 

When  the  King's  daughter  got  to  church  all  the  people  were 
standing  outside  upon  the  hillside,  and  all  of  them  wondered  who 
on  earth  she  could  be,  and  the  Prince  was  on  the  alert  in  a  moment, 
and  came  and  wanted  to  hold  her  horse  while  she  alighted.  But 
she  jumped  off  and  said  that  there  was  no  need  for  that,  for  the 
horse  was  so  well  broken  in  that  it  stood  still  when  she  bade  it 
and  came  when  she  called  it.  So  they  all  went  into  the  church  to- 
gether, but  there  was  scarcely  any  one  who  listened  to  what  the 
priest  was  saying,  for  they  were  all  looking  far  too  much  at  her, 
and  the  Prince  fell  much  more  deeply  in  love  with  her  than  he  had 
been  before. 

When  the  sermon  was  over  and  she  went  out  of  the  church,  and 
was  just  going  to  mount  her  horse,  the  Prince  again  came  and 
asked  her  where  she  came  from. 

'  I  am  from  Towelland,'  said  the  King's  daughter,  and  as  she 
spoke  she  dropped  her  riding-whip,  and  while  the  Prince  was 
stooping  to  pick  it  up  she  said  : 

'  Darkness  behind  me,  but  light  on  my  way, 
That  the  Prince  may  not  see  where  I'm  going  to-day  !  ' 

And  she  was  gone  again,  neither  could  the  Prince  see  what  had 
become  of  her.  He  went  far  and  wide  to  inquire  for  that  country 
from  whence  she  had  said  that  she  came,  but  there  was  no  one  who 
could  tell  him  where  it  lay,  so  he  was  forced  to  have  patience  once 
more. 

Next  Sunday  some  one  had  to  go  to  the  Prince  with  a  comb. 
Kari  begged  for  leave  to  go  with  it,  but  the  others  reminded  her  of 
what  had  happened  last  time,  and  scolded  her  for  wanting  to  let  the 


KARI  WOODENGOWN  lg<) 

Prince  see  her  when  she  was  so  black  and  so  ugly  in  her  wooden 
gown,  but  she  would  not  give  up  asking  until  they  gave  her  leave 
to  go  up  to  the  Prince  with  the  comb.  When  she  went  clattering 
up  the  stairs  again,  out  came  the  Prince  and  took  the  comb  and 
flung  it  at  her,  and  ordered  her  to  be  off  as  fast  as  she  could.  After 
that  the  Prince  went  to  church,  and  Kari  also  begged  for  leave  to 
go.  Again  they  all  asked  what  she  would  do  there,  she  who  was  so 
black  and  ugly,  and  had  no  clothes  that  she  coiild  be  seen  in  by 
other  people.  The  Prince  or  some  one  else  might  very  easily  catch 
sight  of  her,  they  said,  and  then  both  she  and  they  would  suffer  for 
it ;  bi;t  Kari  said  that  they  had  something  else  to  do  than  to  look 
at  her,  and  she  never  ceased  begging  until  she  got  leave  to  go. 

And  now  all  happened  just  as  it  had  happened  twice  already. 
She  went  away  to  the  rock  and  knocked  at  it  with  the  stick,  and 
then  the  man  came  out  and  gave  her  a  gown  which  was  very  much 
more  magnificent  than  either  of  the  others.  It  was  almost  entirely 
made  of  pure  gold  and  diamonds,  and  she  also  got  a  noble  horse 
with  housings  embroidered  with  gold,  and  a  golden  bridle. 

When  the  King's  daughter  came  to  the  church  the  priest  and  people 
were  all  standing  on  the  hillside  waiting  for  her,  and  the  Prince  ran 
up  and  wanted  to  hold  the  horse,  but  she  jumped  off,  saying  : 

'  No,  thank  you,  there  is  no  need ;  my  horse  is  so  well  broken  in 
that  it  will  stand  still  when  I  bid  it.' 

So  they  all  hastened  into  the  church  together  and  the  priest  got 
into  the  pulpit,  but  no  one  listened  to  what  he  said,  for  they  were 
looking  far  too  much  at  her  and  wondering  whence  she  came ;  and 
the  Prince  was  far  more  in  love  than  he  had  been  on  either  of  the 
former  occasions,  and  he  was  mindful  of  nothing  but  of  looking  at  her. 

When  the  sermon  was  over  and  the  King's  daughter  was  about 
to  leave  the  church,  the  Prince  had  caused  a  firkin  of  tar  to  be 
emptied  out  in  the  porch  in  order  that  he  might  go  to  help  her  over 
it ;  she,  however,  did  not  trouble  herself  in  the  least  about  the  tar, 
but  set  her  foot  down  in  the  middle  of  it  and  jumped  over  it,  and 
thus  one  of  her  gold  shoes  was  left  sticking  in  it.  When  she  had 
seated  herself  on  the  horse  the  Prince  came  running  out  of  the 
church  and  asked  her  whence  she  came. 

'  From  Combland,'  said  Kari.  But  when  the  Prince  wanted  to 
reach  her  her  gold  shoe,  she  said  : 

'  Darkness  behind  me,  but  light  on  my  wajr, 
That  the  Prince  may  not  see  where  I'm  going  to-day  I ' 


WOODEN  GOWN 

The  Prince  did  not  know  what  had  become  of  her,  so  he  travelled 
for  a  long  and  wearisome  time  all  over  the  world,  asking  where 
Combland  was;  but  when  no  one  could  tell  him  where  that  country 
was,  he  caused  it  to  be  made  known  everywhere  that  he  would 
marry  any  woman  who  could  put  on  the  gold  shoe.  So  fair  maidens 
and  ugly  maidens  came  thither  from  all  regions,  but  there  was  none 
who  had  a  foot  so  small  that  she  could  put  on  the  gold  shoe.  After 
a  long,  long  while  came  Kari  Woodengown's  wicked  stepmother, 
with  her  daughter  too,  and  the  shoe  fitted  her.  But  she  was  so 


ugly  and  looked  so  loathsome  that  the  Prince  was  very  unwilling 
to  do  what  he  had  promised.  Nevertheless  all  was  got  ready  for 
the  wedding,  and  she  was  decked  out  as  a  bride,  but  as  they  were 
riding  to  church  a  little  bird  sat  upon  a  tree  and  sang  : 

'  A  slice  off  her  heel 
And  a  slice  off  her  toes, 
Kari  Woodengown's  shoe 
Fills  with  blood  as  she  goes  I ' 


KARI   WOODEN  GOWN  201 

And  when  they  looked  to  it  the  bird  had  spoken  the  truth,  for  blood 
was  trickling  out  of  the  shoe.  So  all  the  waiting-maids,  and  all  the 
womeiikind  in  the  castle  had  to  come  and  try  on  the  shoe,  but 
there  was  not  one  whom  it  would  fit. 

'  But  where  is  Kari  Woodengown,  then  ?  '  asked  the  Prince, 
when  all  the  others  had  tried  on  the  shoe,  for  he  understood  the 
song  of  birds  and  it  came  to  his  mind  what  the  bird  had  said. 

'  Oh  !  that  creature  ! '  said  the  others  ;  'it's  not  the  least  use  for 
her  to  come  here,  for  she  has  feet  like  a  horse  !  ' 

'  That  may  be.'  said  the  Prince,  '  but  as  all  the  others  have  tried 
it,  Kari  may  try  it  too.' 

'  Kari ! '  he  called  out  through  the  door,  and  Kari  carne  upstairs, 
and  her  wooden  gown  clattered  as  if  a  whole  regiment  of  dragoons 
were  coming  up. 

'  Now,  you  are  to  try  on  the  gold  shoe  and  be  a  Princess,'  said 
the  other  servants,  and  they  laughed  at  her  and  mocked  her.  Kari 
took  up  the  shoe,  put  her  foot  into  it  as  easily  as  possible,  and  then 
threw  off  her  wooden  gown,  and  there  she  stood  in  the  golden  gown 
which  flashed  like  rays  of  sunshine,  and  on  her  other  foot  she  had 
the  fellow  to  the  gold  shoe.  The  Prince  knew  her  in  a  moment, 
and  was  so  glad  that  he  ran  and  took  her  in  his  arms  and  kissed 
her,  and  when  he  heard  that  she  was  a  King's  daughter  he  was 
gladder  still,  and  then  they  had  the  wedding.1 

'  From  P.  C.  Asbj^rnsen. 


202 


DRAKESTAIL 

"TiEAKESTAIL  was  very  little,  that  is  why  he  was  called  Drakes- 
-L'  tail ;  but  tiny  as  he  was  he  had  brains,  and  he  knew  what  he 
was  about,  for  having  begun  with  nothing  he  ended  by  amassing  a 
hundred  crowns.  Now  the  King  of  the  country,  who  was  very  ex- 
travagant and  never  kept  any  money,  having  heard  that  Drakestail 
had  some,  went  one  day  in  his  own  person  to  borrow  his  hoard,  and, 
my  word,  in  those  days  Drakestail  was  not  a  little  proud  of  having 
lent  money  to  the  King.  But  after  the  first  and  second  year,  seeing 
that  they  never  even  dreamed  of  paying  the  interest,  he  became  un- 
easy, so  much  so  that  at  last  he  resolved  to  go  and  see  His  Majesty 
himself,  and  get  repaid.  So  one  fine  morning  Drakestail,  very  spruce 
and  fresh,  takes  the  road,  singing :  '  Quack,  quack,  quack,  when  shall 
I  get  my  money  back  ?  ' 

He  had  not  gone  far  when  he  met  friend  Fox,  on  his  rounds 
that  way. 

'  Good-morning,  neighbour,'  says  the  friend,  '  where  are  you  off 
to  so  early  ?  ' 

4 1  am  going  to  the  King  for  what  he  owes  me.' 

4  Oh  !  take  me  with  thee  !  ' 

Drakestail  said  to  himself:  '  One  can't  have  too  many  friends.' 
.  .  .  4 1  will,'  says  he,  '  but  going  on  all-fours  you  will  soon  be  tired. 
Make  yourself  quite  small,  get  into  my  throat — go  into  my  gizzard 
and  I  will  carry  you.' 

'  Happy  thought !  '  says  friend  Fox. 

He  takes  bag  and  baggage,  and,  presto  !  is  gone  like  a  letter  into 
the  post. 

And  Drakestail  is  off  again,  all  spruce  and  fresh,  still  singing  : 
'  Quack,  quack,  quack,  when  shall  I  have  my  money  back  ?  ' 

He  had  not  gone  far  when  he  met  his  lady-friend  Ladder, 
leaning  on  her  wall. 


DRAKES  TAIL  203 

1  Good-inorning,  my  duckling,'  says  the  lady  friend,  '  whither 
away  so  bold  ?  ' 

'  I  am  going  to  the  King  for  what  he  owes  me.' 

'  Oh  !  take  me  with  thee  ! ' 

Drakestail  said  to  himself:  'One  can't  have  too  many  friends.' 
.  .  .  '  I  will,'  says  he,  '  but  with  your  wooden  legs  you  will  soon  be 
tired.  Make  yourself  quite  small,  get  into  my  throat — go  into  my 
gizzard  and  I  will  carry  you.' 

'  Happy  thought ! '  says  my  friend  Ladder,  and  nimble,  bag  and 
baggage,  goes  to  keep  company  with  friend  Fox. 

And  '  Quack,  quack,  quack.'  Drakestail  is  off  again,  singing  and 
spruce  as  before.  A  little  farther  he  meets  his  sweetheart,  my  friend 
River,  wandering  quietly  in  the  sunshine. 

'  Thou,  my  cherub,'  says  she,  '  whither  so  lonesome,  with  arch- 
ing tail,  on  this  muddy  road  ?  ' 

'  I  am  going  to  the  King,  you  know,  for  what  he  owes  me.' 

1  Oh  1  take  me  with  thee  !  ' 

Drakestail  said  to  himself :  '  We  can't  be  too  many  friends.'  .  .  .  '  I 
will,'  says  he,  '  but  you  who  sleep  while  you  walk  will  soon  be  tired. 
Make  yourself  quite  small,  get  into  my  throat — go  into  my  gizzard 
and  I  will  carry  you.' 

'  Ah  !  happy  thought !  '  says  my  friend  River. 

She  takes  bag  and  baggage,  and  glou,  glou,  glou,  she  takes  her 
place  between  friend  Fox  and  my  friend  Ladder. 

And  '  Quack,  quack,  quack.'     Drakestail  is  off  again  singing. 

A  little  farther  on  he  meets  comrade  "Wasp's-nest,  manoeuvring 
his  wasps. 

'  Well,  good-morning,  friend  Drakestail,'  said  comrade  Wasp's- 
nest,  '  where  are  we  bound  for  so  spruce  and  fresh  ?  ' 

'  I  am  going  to  the  King  for  what  he  owes  me.' 

'  Oh  !  take  me  with  thee  ! ' 

Drakestail  said  to  himself,  '  One  can't  have  too  many  friends.'  .  .  . 
'  I  will,'  says  he, '  but  with  your  battalion  to  drag  along,  you  will  soon 
be  tired.  Make  yourself  quite  small,  go  into  my  throat — get  into  my 
gizzard  and  I  will  carry  you.' 

'  By  Jove  !  that's  a  good  idea  !  '  says  comrade  Wasp's-nest. 

And  left  file  !  he  takes  the  same  road  to  join  the  others  with  all 
his  party.  There  was  not  much  more  room,  but  by  closing  up  a  bit 
they  managed.  .  .  .  And  Drakestail  is  off  again  singing. 

He  arrived  thus  at  the  capital,  and  threaded  his  way  straight  up 
the  High  Street,  still  running  and  singing  '  Quack,  quack,  quack, 


204  DEAKESTAIL 

when  shall  I  get  my  money  back  ?  '  to  the  great  astonishment  of  the 
good  folks,  till  he  came  to  the  King's  palace. 

He  strikes  with  the  knocker :  '  Toe  !  toe  ! ' 

'  Who  is  there  ? '  asks  the  porter,  putting  his  head  out  of  the 
wicket. 

'  'Tis  I,  Drakestail.     I  wish  to  speak  to  the  King.' 

'  Speak  to  the  King !  .  .  .  That's  easily  said.  The  King  is 
dining,  and  will  not  be  disturbed.' 

'  Tell  him  that  it  is  1,  and  I  have  come  he  well  knows  why.' 

The  porter  shuts  his  wicket  and  goes  up  to  say  it  to  the  King, 
who  was  just  sitting  down  to  dinner  with  a  napkin  round  his  neck, 
and  all  his  ministers. 

'  Good,  good  !  '  said  Ihe  King  laughing.  '  I  know  what  it  is  ! 
Make  him  come  in,  and  put  him  with  the  turkeys  and  chickens.' 

The  porter  descends. 

'  Have  the  goodness  to  enter.' 

'  Good !  '  says  Drakestail  to  himself,  '  I  shall  now  see  how  they 
eat  at  court.' 

'  This  way,  this  way,'  says  the  porter.  '  One  step  further.  .  .  . 
There,  there  you  are.' 

'  How  ?  what  ?  in  the  poultry  yard  ?  ' 

Fancy  how  vexed  Drakestail  was  ! 

'  Ah  !  so  that's  it,'  says  he.  '  Wait !  I  will  compel  you  to  receive 
me.  Quack,  quack,  quack,  when  shall  I  get  my  money  back  ? ' 
But  turkeys  and  chickens  are  creatures  who  don't  like  people  that 
are  not  as  themselves.  When  they  saw  the  new-comer  and  how  he 
was  made,  and  when  they  heard  him  crying  too,  they  began  to  look 
black  at  him. 

'  What  is  it  ?  what  does  he  want  ?  ' 

Finally  they  rushed  at  him  all  together,  to  overwhelm  him  with 
pecks. 

'  I  am  lost !  '  said  Drakestail  to  himself,  when  by  good  luck  he 
remembers  his  comrade  friend  Fox,  and  he  cries  : 

'  Reynard,  Reynard,  come  out  of  your  earth, 
Or  Drakestail's  life  is  of  little  worth.' 

Then  friend  Fox,  who  was  only  waiting  for  these  words,  hastens 
out,  throws  himself  on  the  wicked  fowls,  and  quick !  quack !  he  tears 
them  to  pieces ;  so  much  so  that  at  the  end  of  five  minutes  there 
was  not  one  left  alive.  And  Drakestail,  quite  content,  began  to  sing 
again,  '  Quack,  quack,  quack,  when  shall  I  get  my  money  back  ?  ' 


DKAKESTAIL,   WITH   HIS   FRIENDS   STOWED   AWAY   IN   HIS   GIZZARD, 
DEMANDS    SPEECH    OF    THE    KING. 


DPAKESTAIL  205 

"When  the  King  who  was  still  at  table  heard  this  refrain,  and  the 
poultry  woman  came  to  tell  him  what  had  been  going  on  in  the  yard, 
lie  was  terribly  annoyed. 

He  ordered  them  to  throw  this  tail  of  a  drake  into  the  well,  to 
make  an  end  of  him. 

And  it  was  done  as  he  commanded.  Drakestail  was  in  despair 
of  getting  himself  out  of  such  a  deep  hole,  when  he  remembered  his 
lady  friend,  the  Ladder. 

•  Ladder,  Ladder,  come  out  of  thy  hold, 
Or  Drakestail's  days  will  soon  be  told.' 

My  friend  Ladder,  who  was  only  waiting  for  these  words,  hastens 
out,  leans  her  two  arms  on  the  edge  of  the  well,  then  Drakestail 
climbs  nimbly  on  her  back,  and  hop  !  he  is  in  the  yard,  where  he 
begins  to  sing  louder  than  ever. 

"When  the  King,  who  was  still  at  table  and  laughing  at  the  good 
trick  he  had  played  his  creditor,  heard  him  again  reclaiming  his 
money,  he  became  livid  with  rage. 

He  commanded  that  the  furnace  should  be  heated,  and  this 
tail  of  a  drake  thrown  into  it,  because  he  must  be  a  sorcerer. 

The  furnace  was  soon  hot,  but  this  time  Drakestail  was  not  so 
afraid ;  he  counted  on  his  sweetheart,  my  friend  River. 

'  River,  River,  outward  flow, 
Or  to  death  Drakestail  must  go.' 

My  friend  River  hastens  out,  and  errouf !  throws  herself  into  the 
furnace,  which  she  floods,  with  all  the  people  who  had  lighted  it ; 
after  which  she  flowed  growling  into  the  hall  of  the  palace  to  the 
height  of  more  than  four  feet. 

And  Drakestail,  quite  content,  begins  to  swim,  singing  deafen- 
ingly,  '  Quack,  quack,  quack,  when  shall  I  get  my  money  back  ?  ' 

The  King  was  still  at  table,  and  thought  himself  quite  sure  of  his 
game  ;  but  when  he  heard  Drakestail  singing  again,  and  when  they 
told  him  all  that  had  passed,  he  became  furious  and  got, up  from 
table  brandishing  his  fists. 

'  Bring  him  here,  and  I'll  cut  his  throat !  bring  him  here  quick  !  ' 
cried  he. 

And  quickly  two  footmen  ran  to  fetch  Drakestail. 

'  At  last,'  said  the  poor  chap,  going  up  the  great  stairs,  '  they 
have  decided  to  receive  me.' 

Imagine  his  terror  when  on  entering  he  sees  the  King  as  red  as 


206 


DRAKESTAIL 


a  turkey  cock,  and  all  his  ministers  attending  him  standing  sword 
in  hand.  He  thought  this  time  it  was  all  up  with  him.  Happily, 
he  remembered  that  there  was  still  one  remaining  friend,  and  he 
cried  with  dying  accents  : 

'  "Wasp's-nest,  "Wasp's-nest,  make  a  sally, 
Or  Drakestail  nevermore  may  rally.' 

Hereupon  the  scene  changes. 

1  Bs,  bs,  bayonet  them ! '      The  brave  Wasp's-nest  rushes  out 


with  all  his  wasps.  They  threw  themselves  on  the  infuriated  King 
and  his  ministers,  and  stung  them  so  fiercely  in  the  face  that  they 
lost  their  heads,  and  not  knowing  where  to  hide  themselves  they  all 
jumped  pell-mell  from  the  window  and  broke  their  necks  on  the 
pavement. 

Behold  Drakestail  much  astonished,  all  alone  in  the  big  saloon 
and  master  of  the  field.  He  could  not  get  over  it. 

Nevertheless,  he  remembered  shortly  what  he  had  come  for  to 
the  palace,  and  improving  the  occasion,  he  set  to  work  to  hunt  for 


DRAKESTAIL  207 

his  dear  money.     But  in  vain  he  rummaged  in  all  the  drawers  ;  he 
found  nothing ;  all  had  been  spent. 

And  ferreting  thus  from  room  to  room  he  came  at  last  to  the  one 
with  the  throne  in  it,  and  feeling  fatigued,  he  sat  himself  down  on  it 
to  think  over  his  adventure.  In  the  meanwhile  the  people  had  found 
their  King  and  his  ministers  with  their  feet  in  the  air  on  the  pave- 
ment, and  they  had  gone  into  the  palace  to  know  how  it  had  occurred. 
On  entering  the  throne-room,  when  the  crowd  saw  that  there  was 
already  someone  on  the  royal  seat,  they  broke  out  in  cries  of  surprise 
and  joy: 

'  The  King  is  dead,  long  live  the  King ! 
Heaven  has  sent  us  down  this  thing.' 

Drakestail,  who  was  no  longer  surprised  at  anything,  received  the 
acclamations  of  the  people  as  if  he  had  never  done  anything  else  all 
his  life. 

A  few  of  them  certainly  murmured  that  a  Drakestail  would  make 
a  fine  King ;  those  who  knew  him  replied  that  a  knowing  Drakestail 
was  a  more  worthy  King  than  a  spendthrift  like  him  who  was  lying 
on  the  pavement.  In  short,  they  ran  and  took  the  crown  off  the 
head  of  the  deceased,  and  placed  it  on  that  of  Drakestail,  whom  it 
ritted  like  wax. 

Thus  he  became  King. 

'  And  now,'  said  he  after  the  ceremony, '  ladies  and  gentlemen, 
let's  go  to  supper.  I  am  so  hungry  ! ' l 

1  Contet  of  Ch.  Marelles. 


208 


THE  EATCATCHEE 

A  VERY  long  time  ago  the  town  of  Hamel  in  Germany  was  in- 
•£*-  vadecl  by  bands  of  rats,  the  like  of  which  had  never  been  seen 
before  nor  will  ever  be  again. 

They  were  great  black  creatures  that  ran  boldly  in  broad  day- 
light through  the  streets,  and  swarmed  so,  all  over  the  houses,  that 
people  at  last  could  not  put  their  hand  or  foot  down  anywhere  with- 
out touching  one.  When  dressing  in  the  morning  they  found  them 
in  their  breeches  and  petticoats,  in  their  pockets  and  in  their  boots  ; 
and  when  they  wanted  a  morsel  to  eat,  the  voracious  horde  had 
swept  away  everything  from  cellar  to  garret.  The  night  was  even 
worse.  As  soon  as  the  lights  were  out,  these  untiring  nibblers  set 
to  work.  And  everywhere,  in  the  ceilings,  in  the  floors,  in  the  cup- 
boards, at  the  doors,  there  was  a  chase  and  a  rummage,  and  so  furious 
a  noise  of  gimlets,  pincers,  and  saws,  that  a  deaf  man  could  not  have 
rested  for  one  hour  together. 

Neither  cats  nor  dogs,  nor  poison  nor  traps,  nor  prayers  nor 
candles  burnt  to  all  the  saints — nothing  would  do  anything.  The 
more  they  killed  the  more  came.  And  the  inhabitants  of  Hamel 
began  to  go  to  the  dogs  (not  that  they  were  of  much  use),  when  one 
Friday  there  arrived  in  the  town  a  man  with  a  queer  face,  who 
played  the  bagpipes  and  sang  this  refrain  : 

'  Qui  vivra  verra : 

Le  voila, 
Le  preneur  des  rats.' 

He  was  a  great  gawky  fellow,  dry  and  bronzed,  with  a  crooked 
nose,  a  long  rat-tail  moustache,  two  great  yellow  piercing  and 
mocking  eyes,  under  a  large  felt  hat  set  off  by  a  scarlet  cock's  feather. 
He  was  dressed  in  a  green  jacket  with  a  leather  belt  and  red  breeches, 
and  on  his  feet  were  sandals  fastened  by  thongs  passed  round  his 
legs  in  the  gipsy  fashion. 


209 

That  is  how  he  may  be  seen  to  this  day,  painted  on  a  window  of 
the  cathedral  of  Hamel. 

He  stopped  on  the  great  market-place  before  the  town  hall, 
turned  his  back  on  the  church  and  went  on  with  his  music,  singing  : 

'  Who  lives  shall  see  : 
This  is  he, 
The  ratcatcher.' 

The  town  council  had  just  assembled  to  consider  once  more  this 
plague  of  Egypt,  from  which  no  one  could  save  the  town. 

The  stranger  sent  word  to  the  counsellors  that,  if  they  would 
make  it  worth  his  while,  he  would  rid  them  of  all  their  rats  before 
night,  down  to  the  very  last. 

'  Then  he  is  a  sorcerer  !  '  cried  the  citizens  with  one  voice  ;  '  we 
must  beware  of  him.' 

The  Town  Counsellor,  who  was  considered  clever,  reassured 
them. 

He  said  :  '  Sorcerer  or  no,  if  this  bagpiper  speaks  the  truth,  it 
was  he  who  sent  us  this  horrible  vermin  that  he  wants  to  rid  us  of 
to-day  for  money.  Well,  we  must  learn  to  catch  the  devil  in  his 
own  snares.  You  leave  it  to  me.' 

1  Leave  it  to  the  Town  Counsellor,'  said  the  citizens  one  to  another. 

And  the  stranger  was  brought  before  them. 

'  Before  night,'  said  he,  '  I  shall  have  despatched  all  the  rats  in 
Hamel  if  you  will  but  pay  me  a  gros  a  head.' 

'  A  gros  a  head ! '  cried  the  citizens, '  but  that  will  come  to  millions 
of  florins ! ' 

The  Town  Counsellor  simply  shrugged  his  shoulders  and  said  to 
the  stranger  : 

'  A  bargain  !  To  work ;  the  rats  will  be  paid  one  gros  a  head  as 
you  ask.' 

The  bagpiper  announced  that  he  would  operate  that  very  evening 
when  the  moon  rose.  He  added  that  the  inhabitants  should  at  that 
hour  leave  the  streets  free,  and  content  themselves  with  looking  out 
of  their  windows  at  what  was  passing,  and  that  it  would  be  a  pleasant 
spectacle.  When  the  people  of  Hamel  heard  of  the  bargain,  they 
too  exclaimed ;  '  A  gros  a  head !  but  this  will  cost  us  a  deal  of 
money  !  ' 

'  Leave  it  to  the  Town  Counsellor,'  said  the  town  council  with  a 
malicious  air.  And  the  good  people  of  Hamel  repeated  with  their 
counsellors, '  Leave  it  to  the  Town  Counsellor.' 


210 


THE  RATCATCHER 


Towards  nine  at  night  the  bagpiper  re-appeared  on  the  market- 
place. He  turned,  as  at  first,  his  back  to  the  church,  and  the  moment 
the  moon  rose  on  the  horizon,  '  Trarira,  trari ! '  the  bagpipes  re- 
sounded. 

It  was  first  a  slow,  caressing  sound,  then'more  and  more  lively 


and  urgent,  and  so  sonorous  and  piercing  that  it  penetrated  as  far 
as  the  farthest  alleys  and  retreats  of  the  town. 

Soon  from  the  bottom  of  the  cellars,  the  top  of  the  garrets,  from 
under  all  the  furniture,  from  all  the  nooks  and  corners  of  the  houses, 
out  come  the  rats,  search  for  the  door,  fling  themselves  into  the 


THE  EAT  CATCHER  211 

street,  and  trip,  trip,  trip,  begin  to  run  in  file  towards  the  front  of 
the  town  hall,  so  squeezed  together  that  they  covered  the  pavement 
like  the  waves  of  flooded  torrent. 

When  the  square  was  quite  full  the  bagpiper  faced  about,  and, 
still  playing  briskly,  turned  towards  the  river  that  runs  at  the  foot 
of  the  walls  of  Hamel. 

Arrived  there  he  turned  round ;  the  rats  were  following. 

'  Hop  !  hop  ! '  he  cried,  pointing  with  his  finger  to  the  middle  of 
the  stream,  where  the  water  whirled  and  was  drawn  down  as  if 
through  a  funnel.  And  hop !  hop  !  without  hesitating,  the  rats 
took  the  leap,  swam  straight  to  the  funnel,  plunged  in  head  foremost 
and  disappeared. 

The  plunging  continued  thus  without  ceasing  till  midnight. 

At  last,  dragging  himself  with  difficulty,  came  a  big  rat,  white 
with  age,  and  stopped  on  the  bank. 

It  was  the  king  of  the  band. 
'Are  they  all  there,  friend  Blanchet  ?  '  asked  the  bagpiper. 

'  They  are  all  there,'  replied  friend  Blanchet. 

'  And  how  many  were  they  ?  ' 

'  Nine  hundred  and  ninety  thousand,  nine  hundred  and  ninety- 
nine.' 

'  Well  reckoned  ?  ' 

'  Well  reckoned.' 

'  Then  go  and  join  them,  old  sire,  and  au  revoir.' 

Then  the  old  white  rat  sprang  in  his  turn  into  the  river,  swam 
to  the  whirlpool  and  disappeared. 

When  the  bagpiper  had  thus  concluded  his  business  he  went  to 
bed  at  his  inn.  And  for  the  first  time  during  three  months  the 
people  of  Hamel  slept  quietly  through  the  night. 

The  next  morning,  at  nine  o'clock,  the  bagpiper  repaired  to  the 
town  hall,  where  the  town  council  awaited  him. 

'  All  your  rats  took  a  jump  into  the  river  yesterday,'  said  he  to 
the  counsellors,  '  and  I  guarantee  that  not  one  of  them  comes  back. 
They  were  nine  hundred  and  ninety  thousand,  nine  hundred  and 
ninety-nine,  at  one  gros  a  head.  Beckon  ! ' 

'  Let  us  reckon  the  heads  first.  One  yros  a  head  is  one  head  the 
gros.  Where  are  the  heads  ?  ' 

The  ratcatcher  did  not  expect  this  treacherous  stroke.  He 
paled  with  anger  and  his  eyes  flashed  fire. 

'  The  heads  ! '  cried  he,  '  if  you  care  about  them,  go  and  find 
them  in  the  river.' 

P3 


THE  RATCATCHER 

'  So,'  replied  the  Town  Counsellor, '  you  refuse  to  hold  to  the  terms 
of  your  agreement  ?  We  ourselves  could  refuse  you  all  payment. 
But  you  have  been  of  use  to  us,  and  we  will  not  let  you  go  without 
a  recompense,'  and  he  offered  him  fifty  crowns. 

'  Keep  your  recompense  for  yourself,'  replied  the  ratcatcher 
proudly.  '  If  you  do  not  pay  me  I  will  be  paid  by  your  heirs.' 

Thereupon  he  pulled  his  hat  down  over  his  eyes,  went  hastily 
out  of  the  hall,  and  left  the  town  without  speaking  to  a  soul. 

When  the  Hamel  people  heard  how  the  affair  had  ended  they 
rubbed  their  hands,  and  with  no  more  scruple  than  their  Town 
Counsellor,  they  laughed  over  the  ratcatcher,  who,  they  said,  was 
caught  in  his  own  trap.  But  what  made  them  laugh  above  all 
was  his  threat  of  getting  himself  paid  by  their  heirs.  Ha  !  they 
wished  that  they  only  had  such  creditors  for  the  rest  of  their  lives. 

Next  day,  which  was  a  Sunday,  they  all  went  gaily  to  church, 
thinking  that  after  Mass  they  would  at  last  be  able  to  eat  some  good 
thing  that  the  rats  had  not  tasted  before  them. 

They  never  suspected  the  terrible  surprise  that  awaited  them  on 
their  return  home.  No  children  anywhere,  they  had  all  disappeared  ! 

'  Our  children  !  where  are  our  poor  children  ?  '  was  the  cry  that 
was  soon  heard  in  all  the  streets. 

Then  through  the  east  door  of  the  town  came  three  little  boys, 
who  cried  and  wept,  and  this  is  what  they  told  : 

While  the  parents  were  at  church  a  wonderful  music  had  re- 
sounded. Soon  all  the  little  boys  and  all  the  little  girls  that  had 
been  left  at  home  had  gone  out,  attracted  by  the  magic  sounds,  and 
had  rushed  to  the  great  market-place.  There  they  found  the  rat- 
catcher playing  his  bagpipes  at  the  same  spot  as  the  evening  before. 
Then  the  stranger  had  begun  to  walk  quickly,  and  they  had  followed, 
running,  singing  and  dancing  to  the  sound  of  the  music,  as  far  as 
the  foot  of  the  mountain  which  one  sees  on  entering  Hamel.  At 
their  approach  the  mountain  had  opened  a  little,  and  the  bagpiper 
had  gone  in  with  them,  after  which  it  had  closed  again.  Only  the 
three  little  ones  who  told  the  adventure  had  remained  outside,  as 
if  by  a  miracle.  One  was  bandy-legged  and  could  not  run  fast 
enough  ;  the  other,  who  had  left  the  house  in  haste,  one  foot  shod 
the  other  bare,  had  hurt  himself  against  a  big  stone  and  could  not 
walk  without  difficulty ;  the  third  had  arrived  in  time,  but  in 
hurrying  to  go  in  with  the  others  had  struck  so  violently  against  the 
wall  of  the  mountain  that  he  fell  backwards  at  the  moment  it 
closed  upon  his  comrades. 


THE  RATCATCHER 


231 


At  this  story  the  parents  redoubled  their  lamentations.  They 
ran  with  pikes  and  mattocks  to  the  mountain,  and  searched  till 
evening  to  find  the  opening  by  which  their  children  had  disappeared, 
without  being  able  to  find  it.  At  last,  the  night  falling,  they  re- 
turned desolate  to  Hamel. 

But  the  most  unhappy  of  all  was  the  Town  Counsellor,  for  he 
lost  three  little  boys  and  two  pretty  little  girls,  and  to  crown  all,  the 
people  of  Hamel  overwhelmed  him  with  reproaches,  forgetting  that 
the  evening  before  they  had  all  agreed  with  him. 

What  had  become  of  all  these  unfortunate  children  ? 

The  parents  always  hoped  they  were  not  dead,  and  that  the  rat- 


catcher, who  certainly  must  have  come  out  of  the  mountain,  would 
have  taken  them  with  him  to  his  country.  That  is  why  for  several 
years  they  sent  in  search  of  them  to  different  countries,  but  no  one 
ever  came  on  the  trace  of  the  poor  little  ones. 

It  was  not  till  much  later  that  anything  was  to  be  heard  of  them. 

About  one  hundred  and  fifty  years  after  the  event,  when  there 
was  no  longer  one  left  of  the  fathers,  mothers,  brothers  or  sisters 
of  that  day,  there  arrived  one  evening  in  Hamel  some  merchants 
of  Bremen  returning  from  the  East,  who  asked  to  speak  with  the 
citizens.  They  told  that  they,  in  crossing  Hungary,  had  sojourned 


214  THE  RATCATCHER 

in  a  mountainous  country  called  Transylvania,  where  the  inhabitants 
only  spoke  German,  while  all  around  them  nothing  was  spoken  but 
Hungarian.  These  people  also  declared  that  they  came  from 
Germany,  but  they  did  not  know  how  they  chanced  to  be  in  this 
strange  country.  '  Now,'  said  the  merchants  of  Bremen,  '  these 
Germans  cannot  be  other  than  the  descendants  of  the  lost  children 
of  Hamel.' 

The  people  of  Hamel  did  not  doubt  it ;  and  since  that  day  they 
regard  it  as  certain  that  the  Transylvanians  of  Hungary  are  their 
country  folk,  whose  ancestors,  as  children,  were  brought  there  by  the 
ratcatcher.     There  are  more  difficult  things  to  believe  than  that.1 
1  Ch.  Marelles. 


215 


THE   TRUE  HISTORY  OF  LITTLE  GOLDEN- 
HOOD 

YOU  know  the  tale  of  poor  Little  Red  Riding- hood,  that  the  Wolf 
deceived  and  devoured,  with  her  cake,  her  little  butter  can, 
and  her  Grandmother ;  well,  the  true  story  happened  quite  differ- 
ently,  as  we  know  now.  And  first  of  all  the  little  girl  was  called  and 
is  still  called  Little  Golden-hood  ;  secondly,  it  was  not  she,  nor  the 
good  grand-darne,  but  the  wicked  Wolf  who  was,  in  the  end,  caught 
and  devoured. 

Only  listen. 

The  story  begins  something  like  the  tale. 

There  was  once  a  little  peasant  girl,  pretty  and  nice  as  a  star  in 
its  season.  Her  real  name  was  Blanchette,  but  she  was  more  often 
called  Little  Golden-hood,  on  account  of  a  wonderful  little  cloak  with 
a  hood,  gold-  and  fire-coloured,  which  she  always  had  on.  This 
little  hood  was  given  her  by  her  Grandmother,  who  was  so  old  that 
she  did  not  know  her  age  ;  it  ought  to  bring  her  good  luck,  for  it  was 
made  of  a  ray  of  simshine,  she  said.  And  as  the  good  old  woman 
was  considered  something  of  a  witch,  everyone  thought  the  little 
hood  rather  bewitched  too. 

And  so  it  was,  as  you  will  see. 

One  day  the  mother  said  to  the  child  :  '  Let  us  see,  my  little 
Golden-hood,  if  you  know  now  how  to  find  your  way  by  yourself. 
You  shall  take  this  good  piece  of  cake  to  your  Grandmother 
for  a  Sunday  treat  to-morrow.  You  will  ask  her  how  she  is,  and 
come  back  at  once,  without  stopping  to  chatter  on  the  way  with 
people  you  don't  know.  Do  you  quite  understand  '?  ' 

1 1  quite  understand,'  replied  Blanchette  gaily.  And  off  she 
went  with  the  cake,  quite  proud  of  her  errand. 

But  the  Grandmother  lived  in  another  village,  and  there  was  a 
big  wood  to  cross  before  getting  there.  At  a  turn  of  the  road  under 
the  trees,  suddenly  '  Who  goes  there  ?  ' 


216    THE  TRUE  HISTORY  OF  LITTLE  GOLDEN-HOOD 

'  Friend  Wolf.' 

He  had  seen  the  child  start  alone,  and  the  villain  was  waiting 
to  devour  her ;  when  at  the  same  moment  he  perceived  some  wood- 
cutters who  might  observe  him,  and  he  changed  his  mind.  Instead 
of  falling  upon  Blanchette  he  came  frisking  up  to  her  like  a  good  dog. 

'  Tis  you  !  my  nice  Little  Golden-hood,'  said  he.  So  the  little 
girl  stops  to  talk  with  the  Wolf,  who,  for  all  that,  she  did  not  know 
in  the  least. 

'  You  know  me,  then  ! '  said  she  ;  '  what  is  your  name  ? ' 

'  My  name  is  friend  Wolf.  And  where  are  you  going  thus,  my 
pretty  one,  with  your  little  basket  on  your  arm  ?  ' 

'  I  am  going  to  my  Grandmother,  to  take  her  a  good  piece  of 
cake  for  her  Sunday  treat  to-morrow.' 

'  And  where  does  she  live,  your  Grandmother  ?  ' 

'  She  lives  at  the  other  side  of  the  wood,  in  the  first  house  in  the 
village,  near  the  windmill,  you  know.' 

'  Ah  !  yes !  I  know  now,'  said  the  Wolf.  '  Well,  that's  just  where 
I'm  going ;  I  shall  get  there  before  you,  no  doubt,  with  your  little 
bits  of  legs,  and  I'll  tell  her  you're  coming  to  see  her  ;  then  she'll 
wait  for  you.' 

Thereupon  the  Wolf  cuts  across  the  wood,  and  in  five  minutes 
arrives  at  the  Grandmother's  house. 

He  knocks  at  the  door :  toe,  toe. 

No  answer. 

He  knocks  louder. 

Nobody. 

Then  he  stands  up  on  end,  puts  his  two  fore-paws  on  the  latch 
and  the  door  opens. 

Not  a  soul  in  the  house. 

The  old  woman  had  risen  early  to  sell  herbs  in  the  town,  and 
she  had  gone  off  in  such  haste  that  she  had  left  her  bed  unmade, 
with  her  great  night-cap  on  the  pillow. 

'  Good  !  '  said  the  Wolf  to  himself,  '  I  know  what  I'll  do.' 

He  shuts  the  door,  pulls  on  the  Grandmother's  night-cap  down 
to  his  eyes,  then  he  lies  down  all  his  length  in  the  bed  and  draws 
the  curtains. 

In  the  meantime  the  good  Blanchette  went  quietly  on  her  way, 
as  little  girls  do,  amusing  herself  here  and  there  by  picking  Easter 
daisies,  watching  the  little  birds  making  their  nests,  and  running 
after  the  butterflies  which  fluttered  in  the  sunshine. 

At  last  she  arrives  at  the  door. 


THE  TRUE  HISTORY  OF  LITTLE  GOLDEN-HOOD   217 

Knock,  knock. 

'  Who  is  there  ? '  says  the  Wolf,  softening  his  rough  voice  as 
best  he  can. 

'  It's  me,  Granny,  your  little  Golden-hood.  I'm  bringing  yoTi  a 
big  piece  of  cake  for  your  Sunday  treat  to-morrow.' 

'  Press  your  finger  on  the  latch,  then  push  and  the  door  opens.' 

'  Why,  you've  got  a  cold,  Granny,'  said  she,  coming  in. 

'  Ahem  !  a  little,  a  little  .  .  .'  replies  the  Wolf,  pretending  to 
cough.  '  Shut  the  door  well,  my  little  lamb.  Put  your  basket  on 
the  table,  and  then  take  off  your  frock  and  come  and  lie  down  by 
me  :  you  shall  rest  a  little.' 

The  good  child  undresses,  but  observe  this  !  She  kept  her  little 
hood  upon  her  head.  When  she  saw  what  a  figure  her  Granny 
cut  in  bed,  the  poor  little  thing  was  much  surprised. 

'  Oh  ! '  cries  she, '  how  like  you  are  to  friend  Wolf,  Grandmother  ! ' 

'  That's  on  account  of  my  night-cap,  child,'  replies  the  Wolf. 

'  Oh  !  what  hairy  arms  you've  got,  Grandmother ! ' 

'  All  the  better  to  hug  you,  my  child.' 

'  Oh  !  what  a  big  tongue  you've  got,  Grandmother  ! ' 

'  All  the  better  for  answering,  child.' 

'  Oh !  what  a  mouthful  of  great  white  teeth  you  have,  Grand- 
mother ! ' 

'  That's  for  crunching  little  children  with  ! '  And  the  Wolf  opened 
his  jaws  wide  to  swallow  Blanchette. 

But  she  put  down  her  head  crying : 

'  Mamma  !  Mamma  ! '  and  the  Wolf  only  caught  her  little  hood. 

Thereupon,  oh  dear !  oh  dear !  he  draws  back,  crying  and 
shaking  his  jaw  as  if  he  had  swallowed  red-hot  coals. 

It  was  the  little  fire-coloured  hood  that  had  burnt  his  tongue 
right  down  his  throat. 

The  little  hood,  you  see,  was  one  of  those  magic  caps  that  they 
used  to  have  in  former  times,  in  the  stories,  for  making  oneself 
invisible  or  invulnerable. 

So  there  was  the  Wolf  with  his  throat  burnt,  jumping  off  the 
bed  and  trying  to  find  the  door,  howling  and  howling  as  if  all  the 
dogs  in  the  country  were  at  his  heels. 

Just  at  this  moment  the  Grandmother  arrives,  returning  from 
the  town  with  her  long  sack  empty  on  her  shoulder. 

'  Ah,  brigand  !  '  she  cries,  '  wait  a  bit ! '  Quickly  she  opens  her 
sack  wide  across  the  door,  and  the  maddened  Wolf  springs  in  head 
downwards. 


218    THE  TBUE  HISTORY  OF  LITTLE  GOLDEN-HOOD 

It  is  he  now  that  is  caught,  swallowed  like  a  letter  in  the  post. 

For  the  brave  old  dame  shuts  her  sack,  so  ;  and  she  runs  and 
empties  it  in  the  well,  where  the  vagabond,  still  howling,  tumbles 
in  and  is  drowned. 

'  Ah,  scoundrel !  you  thought  you  would  crunch  my  little  grand- 
child !  Well,  to-morrow  we  will  make  her  a  muff  of  your  skin,  and 


you  yourself  shall  be  crunched,  for  we  will  give  your  carcass  to 
the  dogs.' 

Thereupon  the  Grandmother  hastened  to  dress  poor  Blanchette, 
who  was  still  trembling  with  fear  in  the  bed. 

'  Well,'  she  said  to  her,  '  without  my  little  hood  where  would 
you  be  now,  darling  ?  '  And,  to  restore  heart  and  legs  to  the  child, 


THE  TBUE  HTSTOBY  OF  LITTLE  GOLDEN-HOOD    219 

she  made  her  eat  a  good  piece  of  her  cake,  and  drink  a  good  draught 
of  wine,  after  which  she  took  her  by  the  hand  and  led  her  back  to 
the  house. 

And  then,  who  was  it  who  scolded  her  when  she  knew  all  that 
had  happened  ? 

It  was  the  mother. 

But  Blanchette  promised  over  and  over  again  that  she  would 
never  more  stop  to  listen  to  a  Wolf,  so  that  at  last  the  mother  for- 
gave her. 

And  Blanchette,  the  Little  Golden-hood,  kept  her  word.  And  in 
fine  weather  she  may  still  be  seen  in  the  fields  with  her  pretty 
little  hood,  the  colour  of  the  sun. 

But  to  see  her  you  must  rise  early.1 
1  Ch.  Marellea 


220 


THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 


ANCE  upon  a  time  there  was  a  King  who  was  so  morose  and 
^  disagreeable  that  he  was  feared  by  all  his  subjects,  and  with 
good  reason,  as  for  the  most  trifling  offences  he  would  have  their 
heads  cut  off.  This  King  Grumpy,  as  he  was  called,  had  one 
son,  who  was  as  different  from  his  father  as  he  could  possibly  be. 
No  prince  equalled  him  in  cleverness  and  kindness  of  heart,  but  un- 
fortunately he  was  most  terribly  ugly.  He  had  crooked  legs  and 
squinting  eyes,  a  large  mouth  all  on  one  side,  and  a  hunchback. 
Never  was  there  a  beautiful  soul  in  such  a  frightful  little  body,  but 
in  spite  of  his  appearance  everybody  loved  him.  The  Queen,  his 
mother,  called  him  Curlicue,  because  it  was  a  name  she  rather 
liked,  and  it  seemed  to  suit  him. 

King  Grumpy,  who  cared  a  great  deal  more  for  his  own  grandeur 
than  for  his  son's  happiness,  wished  to  betroth  the  Prince  to  the 
daughter  of  a  neighbouring  King,  whose  great  estates  joined  his 
own,  for  he  thought  that  this  alliance  would  make  him  more  power- 
ful than  ever,  and  as  for  the  Princess  she  would  do  very  well  for 
Prince  Curlicue,  for  she  was  as  ugly  as  himself.  Indeed,  though  she 
was  the  most  amiable  creature  in  the  world,  there  was  no  concealing 
the  fact  that  she  was  frightful,  and  so  lame  that  she  always  went 
about  with  a  crutch,  and  people  called  her  Princess  Cabbage- Stalk. 

The  King,  having  asked  for  and  received  a  portrait  of  this 
Princess,  had  it  placed  in  his  great  hall  under  a  canopy,  and  sent 
for  Prince  Curlicue,  to  whom  he  said  that  as  this  was  the  portrait 
of  his  future  bride,  he  hoped  the  Prince  found  it  charming. 

The  Prince  after  one  glance  at  it  turned  away  with  a  disdainful 
air,  which  greatly  offended  his  father. 

1  Am  I  to  understand  that  you  are  not  pleased  ?  '  he  said  very 
sharply. 

'  No,  sire,'  replied  the  Prince.  '  How  could  I  be  pleased  to 
marry  an  ugly,  lame  Princess  ?  ' 


THE   GOLDEN  SEANCH  221 

'  Certainly  it  is  becoming  in  you  to  object  to  that,'  said  King 
Grumpy,  '  since  you  are  ugly  enough  to  frighten  anyone  yourself.' 

'  That  is  the  very  reason,'  said  the  Prince,  '  that  I  wish  to 
marry  someone  who  is  not  ugly.  I  am  quite  tired  enough  of 
seeing  myself.' 

'  I  tell  you  that  you  shall  marry  her,'  cried  King  Grumpy 
angrily. 

And  the  Prince,  seeing  that  it  was  of  no  use  to  remonstrate, 
bowed  and  retired. 

As  King  Grumpy  was  not  used  to  being  contradicted  in  anything, 
he  was  very  much  displeased  with  his  son,  and  ordered  that  he 
should  be  imprisoned  in  the  tower  that  was  kept  on  purpose  for 
rebellious  Princes,  but  had  not  been  used  for  about  two  hundred 
years,  because  there  had  not  been  any.  The  Prince  thought  all  the 
rooms  looked  strangely  old-fashioned,  with  their  antique  furniture, 
but  as  there  was  a  good  library  he  was  pleased,  for  he  was  very  fond 
of  reading,  and  he  soon  got  permission  to  have  as  many  books  as 
he  liked.  But  when  he  looked  at  them  he  found  that  they  were 
written  in  a  forgotten  language,  and  he  could  not  understand  a  single 
word,  though  he  amused  himself  with  trying. 

King  Grampy  was  so  convinced  that  Prince  Curlicue  would  soon 
get  tired  of  being  in  prison,  and  so  consent  to  marry  the  Princess 
Cabbage- Stalk,  that  he  sent  ambassadors  to  her  father  proposing 
that  she  should  come  and  be  married  to  his  son,  who  would  make 
her  perfectly  happy. 

The  King  was  delighted  to  receive  so  good  an  offer  for  his  un- 
lucky daughter,  though,  to  tell  the  truth,  he  found  it  impossible  to 
admire  the  Prince's  portrait  which  had  been  sent  to  him.  How- 
ever, he  had  it  placed  in  as  favourable  a  light  as  possible,  and  sent 
for  the  Princess,  but  the  moment  she  caught  sight  of  it  she  looked 
the  other  way  and  began  to  cry.  The  King,  who  was  very  much 
annoyed  to  see  how  greatly  she  disliked  it,  took  a  mirror,  and  hold- 
ing it  up  before  the  unhappy  Princess,  said  : 

'  I  see  you  do  not  think  the  Prince  handsome,  but  look  at  your- 
self, and  see  if  you  have  any  right  to  complain  about  that.' 

'  Sire,'  she  answered,  '  I  do  not  wish  to  complain,  only  I  beg  of  you 
do  not  make  me  marry  at  all.  I  had  rather  be  the  unhappy  Princess 
Cabbage-Stalk  all  my  life  than  inflict  the  sight  of  my  ugliness  on 
anyone  else.' 

But  the  King  would  not  listen  to  her,  and  sent  her  away  with 
the  ambassadors. 


222  THE   GOLDEN  BltANCH 

In  the  meantime  the  Prince  was  kept  safely  locked  up  in  his 
tower,  and,  that  he  might  be  as  dull  as  possible,  King  Grumpy 
ordered  that  no  one  should  speak  to  him,  and  that  they  should  give 
him  next  to  nothing  to  eat.  But  all  the  Prince's  guards  were  so 
fond  of  him  that  they  did  everything  they  dared,  in  spite  of  the 
King,  to  make  the  time  pass  pleasantly. 

One  day,  as  the  Prince  was  walking  up  and  down  the  great 
gallery,  thinking  how  miserable  it  was  to  be  so  ugly,  and  to  be 
forced  to  marry  an  equally  frightful  Princess,  he  looked  up  suddenly 
and  noticed  that  the  painted  windows  were  particularly  bright  and 
beautiful,  and  for  the  sake  of  doing  something  that  would  change 
his  sad  thoughts  he  began  to  examine  them  attentively.  He  found 
that  the  pictures  seemed  to  be  scenes  from  the  life  of  a  man  who 
appeared  in  every  window,  and  the  Prince,  fancying  that  he  saw  in 
this  man  some  resemblance  to  himself,  began  to  be  deeply  interested. 
In  the  first  window  there  was  a  picture  of  him  in  one  of  the  turrets 
of  the  tower,  farther  on  he  was  seeking  something  in  a  chink  in  the 
wall,  in  the  next  picture  he  was  opening  an  old  cabinet  with  a 
golden  key,  and  so  it  went  on  through  numbers  of  scenes,  and 
presently  the  Prince  noticed  that  another  figure  occupied  the  most 
important  place  in  each  scene,  and  this  time  it  was  a  tall  handsome 
young  man  :  poor  Prince  Curlicue  found  it  a  pleasure  to  look  at  him, 
he  was  so  straight  and  strong.  By  this  time  it  had  grown  dark, 
and  the  Prince  had  to  go  back  to  his  own  room,  and  to  amuse  him- 
self he  took  up  a  quaint  old  book  and  began  to  look  at  the  pictures. 
But  his  surprise  was  great  to  find  that  they  represented  the  same 
scenes  as  the  windows  of  the  gallery,  and  what  was  more,  that  they 
seemed  to  be  alive.  In  looking  at  pictures  of  musicians  he  saw  their 
hands  move  and  heard  sweet  sounds  ;  there  was  a  picture  of  a  ball, 
and  the  Prince  could  watch  the  little  dancing  people  come  and  go. 
He  turned  a  page,  and  there  was  an  excellent  smell  of  a  savoury 
dinner,  and  one  of  the  figures  who  sat  at  the  feast  looked  at  him 
and  said : 

'  We  drink  your  health,  Curlicue.  Try  to  give  us  our  Queen 
again,  for  if  you  do  you  will  be  rewarded ;  if  not,  it  will  be  the  worse 
for  you.' 

At  these  words  the  Prince,  who  had  been  growing  more  and  more 
astonished,  was  fairly  terrified,  and  dropping  the  book  with  a  crash 
he  sank  back  insensible.  The  noise  he  made  brought  his  guards  to 
his  aid,  and  as  soon  as  he  revived  they  asked  him  what  was  the 
matter.  He  answered  that  he  was  so  faint  and  giddy  with  hunger 


THE   GOLDEN  BltANCH  223 

that  he  had  imagined  he  saw  and  heard  all  sorts  of  strange  things. 
Thereupon,  in  spite  of  the  King's  orders,  the  guards  gave  him  an 
excellent  supper,  and  when  he  had  eaten  it  he  again  opened  his 
book,  but  could  see  none  of  the  wonderful  pictures,  which  convinced 
him  that  he  must  have  been  dreaming  before. 

However,  when  he  went  into  he  gallery  next  day  and  looked  at 
the  painted  windows  again,  he  found  that  they  moved,  and  the  figures 
came  and  went  as  if  they  had  been  alive,  and  after  watching  the  one 
who  was  like  himself  find  the  key  in  the  crack  of  the  turret  wall 
and  open  the  old  cabinet,  he  determined  to  go  and  examine  the 
place  himself,  and  try  to  find  out  what  the  mystery  was.  So  he 
went  up  into  the  turret  and  began  to  search  about  and  tap  upon 
the  walls,  and  all  at  once  he  came  upon  a  place  that  sounded  hollow. 
Taking  a  hammer  he  broke  away  a  bit  of  the  stone,  and  found  behind 
it  a  little  golden  key.  The  next  thing  to  do  was  to  find  the  cabinet, 
and  the  Prince  soon  came  to  it,  hidden  away  in  a  dark  corner, 
though  indeed  it  was  so  old  and  battered-looking  that  he  would 
never  have  noticed  it  of  his  own  accord.  At  first  he  could  not  see 
any  keyhole,  but  after  a  careful  search  he  found  one  hidden  in  the 
carving,  and  the  golden  key  just  fitted  it ;  so  the  Prince  gave  it  a 
vigorous  turn  and  the  doors  flew  open. 

Ugly  and  old  as  the  cabinet  was  outside,  nothing  could  have  been 
more  rich  and  beautiful  than  what  met  the  Prince's  astonished  eyes. 
Every  drawer  was  made  of  crystal,  of  amber,  or  of  some  precious 
stone,  and  was  quite  full  of  every  kind  of  treasure.  Prince  Curlicue 
was  delighted  ;  he  opened  one  after  another,  until  at  last  he  came  to 
one  tiny  drawer  which  contained  only  an  emerald  key. 

'  I  believe  that  this  must  open  that  little  golden  door  in  the 
middle,'  said  the  Prince  to  himself.  And  he  fitted  in  the  little  key 
and  turned  it.  The  tiny  door  swung  back,  and  a  soft  crimson  light 
gleamed  over  the  whole  cabinet.  The  Prince  found  that  it  proceeded 
from  an  immense  glowing  carbuncle,  made  into  a  box,  which  lay 
before  him.  He  lost  no  time  in  opening  it,  but  what  was  his  horror 
when  he  found  that  it  contained  a  man's  hand,  which  was  holding 
a  portrait.  His  first  thought  was  to  put  back  the  terrible  box  and 
fly  from  the  turret ;  but  a  voice  in  his  ear  said,  '  This  hand  belonged 
to  one  whom  you  can  help  and  restore.  Look  at  this  beautiful 
portrait,  the  original  of  which  was  the  cause  of  all  my  misfortunes, 
and  if  you  wish  to  help  me,  go  without  a  moment's  delay  to  the 
great  gallery,  notice  where  the  sun's  rays  fall  most  brightly,  and  if 
you  seek  there  you  will  find  my  treasure.' 


224  THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 

The  voice  ceased,  and  though  the  Prince  in  his  bewilderment 
asked  various  questions,  he  received  no  answer.  So  he  put  back  the 
box  and  locked  the  cabinet  up  again,  and,  having  replaced  the  key 
in  the  crack  in  the  wall,  hastened  down  to  the  gallery. 

When  he  entered  it  all  the  windows  shook  and  clattered  in  the 
strangest  way,  but  the  Prince  did  not  heed  them ;  he  was  looking 
so  carefully  for  the  place  where  the  sun  shone  most  brightly,  and  it 
seemed  to  him  that  it  was  upon  the  portrait  of  a  most  splendidly 
handsome  young  man. 

He  went  up  and  examined  it,  and  found  that  it  rested  against  the 
ebony  and  gold  panelling,  just  like  any  of  the  other  pictures  in  the 
gallery.  He  was  puzzled,  not  knowing  what  to  do  next,  until  it 
occurred  to  him  to  see  if  the  windows  would  help  him,  and,  looking 
at  the  nearest,  he  saw  a  picture  of  himself  lifting  the  picture  from 
the  wall. 

The  Prince  took  the  hint,  and  lifting  aside  the  picture  without 
difficulty,  found  himself  in  a  marble  hall  adorned  with  statues  ;  from 
this  he  passed  on  through  numbers  of  splendid  rooms,  until  at  last 
he  reached  one  all  hung  with  blue  gauze.  The  walls  were  of  tur- 
quoises, arid  upon  a  low  couch  lay  a  lovely  lady,  who  seemed  to  be 
asleep.  Her  hair,  black  as  ebony,  was  spread  across  the  pillows, 
making  her  face  look  ivory  white,  and  the  Prince  noticed  that  she 
was  unquiet ;  and  when  he  softly  advanced,  fearing  to  wake  her,  he 
could  hear  her  sigh,  and  murmur  to  herself : 

'  Ah !  how  dared  you  think  to  win  my  love  by  separating  me 
from  my  beloved  Florimond,  and  in  my  presence  cutting  off  that 
dear  hand  that  even  you  should  have  feared  and  honoured '?  ' 

And  then  the  tears  rolled  slowly  down  the  lovely  lady's  cheeks, 
and  Prince  Curlicue  began  to  comprehend  that  she  was  under  an 
enchantment,  and  that  it  was  the  hand  of  her  lover  that  he  had 
found 

At  this  moment  a  huge  Eagle  flew  into  the  room,  holding  in  its 
talons  a  Golden  Branch,  upon  which  were  growing  what  looked  like 
clusters  of  cherries,  only  every  cherry  was  a  single  glowing  ruby. 

This  he  presented  to  the  Prince,  who  guessed  by  this  time  that 
he  was  in  some  way  to  break  the  enchantment  that  surrounded  the 
sleeping  lady.  Taking  the  branch  he  touched  her  lightly  with  it, 
saying : 

'  Fair  one,  I  know  not  by  what  enchantment  thou  art  bound,  but 
in  the  name  of  thy  beloved  Florirnond  I  conjure  thee  to  come  back 
to  the  life  which  thou  hast  lost,  but  not  forgotten,' 


225 


Instantly  the  lady  opened  her  lustrous  eyes,  and  saw  the  Eagle 
hovering  near. 

'  Ah  !  stay,  dear  love,  stay.'  she  cried.  But  the  Eagle,  uttering  a 
dolorous  cry,  fluttered  his  broad  wings  and  disappeared.  Then  the 
lady  turned  to  Prince  Curlicue,  and  said  : 

'  I  know  that  it  is  to  3*011  I  owe  my  deliverance  from  an  enchant- 
ment which  has  held  me  for  two  hundred  years.  If  there  is  any- 
thing that  I  can  do  for  you  in  return,  you  have  only  to  tell  me,  and 
all  my  fairy  power  shall  be  used  to  make  you  happy.' 


'  Madam,'  said  Prince  Curlicue,  '  I  wish  to  be  allowed  to  restore 
your  beloved  Floriniond  to  his  natural  foim,  since  I  cannot  forget 
the  tears  you  shed  for  him.' 

'  That  is  very  amiable  of  you,  dear  Prince,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  but 
it  is  reserved  for  another  person  to  do  that.  I  cannot  explain  more 
at  present.  But  is  there  nothing  you  wish  for  yourself?  ' 

'  Madam,'  cried  the  Prince,  flinging  himself  down  at  her  feet, 
'  only  look  at    my  ugliness.    I  am    called    Curlicue,  and  am  an 
object  of  derision  ;  I  entreat  you  to  make  me  less  ridiculous.' 
R.  Q 


226  THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 

'  Eise,  Prince,'  said  the  Fairy,  touching  him  with  the  Golden 
Branch.  '  Be  as  accomplished  as  you  are  handsome,  and  take  the 
name  of  Prince  Peerless,  since  that  is  the  only  title  which  will 
suit  you  now.' 

Silent  from  joy,  the  Prince  kissed  her  hand  to  express  his  thanks, 
and  when  he  rose  and  saw  his  new  reflection  in  the  mirrors  which 
surrounded  him,  he  understood  that  Curlicue  was  indeed  gone  for 
ever. 

'  How  I  wish,'  said  the  Fairy,  '  that  I  dared  to  tell  you  what  is 
in  store  for  you,  and  warn  you  of  the  traps  which  lie  in  your  path, 
out  I  must  not.  Fly  from  the  tower,  Prince,  and  remember  that 
the  Fairy  Douceline  will  be  your  friend  always.' 

When  she  had  finished  speaking,  the  Prince,  to  his  great  aston- 
ishment, found  himself  no  longer  in  the  tower,  but  set  down  in  a 
thick  forest  at  least  a  hundred  leagues  away  from  it.  And  there 
we  must  leave  him  for  the  present,  and  see  what  was  happening 
elsewhere. 

When  the  guards  found  that  the  Prince  did  not  ask  for  his  supper 
as  usual,  they  went  into  his  room,  and  not  finding  him  there,  were 
very  much  alarmed,  and  searched  the  tower  from  tiirret  to  dungeon, 
but  without  success.  Knowing  that  the  King  would  certainly  have 
their  heads  cut  off  for  allowing  the  Prince  to  escape,  they  then 
agreed  to  say  that  he  was  ill,  and  after  making  the  smallest  among 
them  look  as  much  like  Prince  Curlicue  as  possible,  they  put  him 
into  his  bed  and  sent  to  inform  the  King. 

King  Grumpy  was  quite  delighted  to  hear  that  his  son  was  ill, 
for  he  thought  that  he  would  all  the  sooner  be  brought  to  do  as  he 
wished,  and  marry  the  Princess.  So  he  sent  back  to  the  guards  to 
say  that  the  Prince  was  to  be  treated  as  severely  as  before,  which 
was  just  what  they  had  hoped  he  would  say.  In  the  meantime  the 
Princess  Cabbage-Stalk  had  reached  the  palace,  travelling  in  a  litter. 

King  Grumpy  went  out  to  meet  her,  but  when  he  saw  her,  with 
a  skin  like  a  tortoise's,  her  thick  eyebrows  meeting  above  her  large 
nose,  and  her  mouth  from  ear  to  ear,  he  could  not  help  crying  out : 

'  Well,  I  must  say  Curlicue  is  ugh'  enough,  but  I  don't  think 
you  need  have  thought  twice  before  consenting  to  marry  him.' 

'  Sire,'  she  replied,  '  I  know  too  well  what  I  am  like  to  be  hurt 
by  what  you  say,  but  I  assure  you  that  I  have  no  wish  to  marry 
your  son  I  had  rather  be  called  Princess  Cabbage-Stalk  than  Queen 
Curlicue.' 

Tlr's  made  King  Grumpy  very  angry. 


THE    GOLDEN  BRANCH 


227 


'  Yonr  father  has  sent  yon  here  to  marry  my  son,'  he  said,  '  and 
you  may  be  sure  that  I  am  not  going  to  offend  him  by  altering  his 
arrangements.'  So  the  poor  Princess  was  sent  away  in  disgrace  to 
her  own  apartments,  and  the  ladies  who  attended  upon  her  were 
charged  to  bring  her  to  a  better  mind. 


At  this  juncture  the  guards,  who  were  in  great  fear  that  they 
•would  be  found  out,  sent  to  tell  the  King  that  his  son  was  dead, 
which  annoyed  him  very  much.  He  at  once  made  up  his  min.l 
that  it  was  entirely  the  Princess's  fault,  and  gave  orders  that  she 
should  be  rnprisoned  in  the  tower  in  Prince  Curlicue's  place.  The 

Q  2 


228  THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 

Princess  Cabbage-Stalk  was  immensely  astonished  at  this  unjust 
proceeding,  and  sent  many  messages  of  remonstrance  to  King 
Grumpy,  but  he  was  in  such  a  temper  that  no  one  dared  to  deliver 
them,  or  to  send  the  letters  which  the  Princess  wrote  to  her  father. 
However,  as  she  did  not  know  this,  she  lived  in  hope  of  soon  going 
back  to  her  own  country,  and  tried  to  amuse  herself  as  well  as 
she  could  until  the  time  should  come.  Every  day  she  walked  up 
and  down  the  long  gallery,  until  she  too  was  attracted  and  fascinated 
by  the  ever- changing  pictures  in  the  windows,  and  recognised  herself 
in  one  of  the  figures.  '  They  seem  to  have  taken  a  great  delight  in 
painting  me  since  I  came  to  this  country,'  she  said  to  herself.  '  One 
would  think  that  I  and  my  crutch  were  put  in  on  purpose  to  make 
that  slim,  charming  young  shepherdess  in  the  next  picture  look 
prettier  by  contrast.  Ah  !  how  nice  it  would  be  to  be  as  pretty  as 
that.'  And  then  she  looked  at  herself  in  a  mirror,  and  turned  away 
quickly  with  tears  in  her  eyes  from  the  doleful  sight.  All  at  once 
she  became  aware  that  she  was  not  alone,  for  behind  her  stood  a 
tiny  old  woman  in  a  cap,  who  was  as  ugly  again  as  herself  and 
quite  as  lame. 

'  Princess,'  she  said,  '  your  regrets  are  so  piteous  that  I  have 
come  to  offer  you  the  choice  of  goodness  or  beauty.  If  you  wish  to 
be  pretty  you  shall  have  your  way,  but  you  will  also  be  vain, 
capricious,  and  frivolous.  If  you  remain  as  you  are  now,  you  shall 
be  wise  and  amiable  and  modest.' 

'  Alas  !  madam,'  cried  the  Princess,  '  is  it  impossible  to  be  at  once 
wise  and  beautiful  ?  ' 

'  No,  child,'  answered  the  old  woman,  '  only  to  you  it  is  decreed 
that  you  must  choose  between  the  two.  See,  I  have  brought  with 
me  my  white  and  yellow  muff.  Breathe  upon  the  yellow  side  and 
you  will  become  like  the  pretty  shepherdess  you  so  much  admire,  and 
you  will  have  won  the  love  of  the  handsome  shepherd  whose  picture 
I  have  already  seen  you  studying  with  interest.  Breathe  upon  the 
white  side  and  your  looks  will  not  alter,  but  you  will  grow  better 
and  happier  day  by  day.  Now  you  may  choose.' 

'  Ah  well,'  said  the  Princess,  '  I  suppose  one  can't  have  every- 
thing, and  it's  certainly  better  to  be  good  than  pretty.' 

And  so  she  breathed  upon  the  white  side  of  the  muff  and  thanked 
the  old  fairy,  who  immediately  disappeared.  The  Princess  Cabbage- 
Stalk  felt  very  forlorn  when  she  was  gone,  and  began  to  think  that 
it  was  quite  time  her  father  sent  an  army  to  rescue  her. 

'  If  I  could  but  get  up  into  the  turret,'  she  thought,  '  to  see  if  any- 


THE  GOLDEN  BRANCH  229 

one  is  coming.'  But  to  climb  up  there  seemed  impossible.  Never- 
theless she  presently  hit  upon  a  plan.  The  great  clock  was  in  the 
turret,  as  she  knew,  though  the  weights  hung  down  into  the  gallery. 
Taking  one  of  them  off  the  rope,  she  tied  herself  on  in  its  place,  and 
when  the  clock  was  wound,  up  she  went  triumphantly  into  the 
turret.  She  looked  out  over  the  country  the  first  thing,  but  seeing 
nothing  she  sat  down  to  rest  a  little,  and  accidentally  leant  back 
against  the  wall  which  Curlicue,  or  rather  Prince  Peerless,  had  so 
hastily  mended.  Out  fell  the  broken  stone,  and  with  it  the  golden 
key.  The  clatter  it  made  upon  the  floor  attracted  the  Princess 
Cabbage-Stalk's  attention. 

She  picked  it  up,  and  after  a  moment's  consideration  decided 
that  it  must  belong  to  the  curious  old  cabinet  in  the  corner,  which 
had  no  visible  keyhole.  And  then  it  was  not  long  before  she  had  it 
open,  and  was  admiring  the  treasures  it  contained  as  much  as  Prince 
Peerless  had  done  before  her,  and  at  last  she  came  to  the  carbuncle 
box.  No  sooner  had  she  opened  it  than  with  a  shudder  of  horror 
she  tried  to  throw  it  down,  but  found  that  some  mysterious  power 
compelled  her  to  hold  it  against  her  will.  And  at  this  moment  a 
voice  in  her  ear  said  softly  : 

'  Take  courage,  Princess ;  upon  this  adventure  your  future  happi- 
ness depends.' 

'  What  am  I  to  do  ?  '  said  the  Princess  trembling. 

'  Take  the  box,'  replied  the  voice,  '  and  hide  it  under  your  pillow, 
and  when  you  see  an  Eagle,  give  it  to  him  without  losing  a  moment.' 

Terrified  as  the  Princess  was,  she  did  not  hesitate  to  obey,  and 
hastened  to  put  back  all  the  other  precious  things  precisely  as  she 
had  found  them.  By  this  time  her  guards  were  seeking  her  every- 
where, and  they  were  amazed  to  find  her  up  in  the  turret,  for  they 
said  she  could  only  have  got  there  by  magic.  For  three  days  nothing 
happened,  but  at  last  in  the  night  the  Princess  heard  something 
flutter  against  her  window,  and  drawing  back  her  curtains  she  saw 
in  the  moonlight  that  it  was  an  Eagle. 

Limping  across  at  her  utmost  speed  she  threw  the  window  open, 
and  the  great  Eagle  sailed  in  beating  with  his  wings  for  joy.  The 
Princess  lost  no  time  in  offering  it  the  carbuncle  box,  which  it 
grasped  in  its  talons,  and  instantly  disappeared,  leaving  in  its  place 
the  most  beautiful  Prince  she  had  ever  seen,  who  was  splendidly 
dressed,  and  wore  a  diamond  crown. 

'  Princess,'  said  he,  '  for  two  hundred  years  has  a  wicked  en- 
chanter kept  rue  here.  We  both  loved  the  same  Fairy,  b.ut  shepre- 


230  THE   GULDEN  BRANCH 

ferred  rue.  However,  he  was  more  powerful  than  I,  and  succeeded, 
when  for  a  moment  I  was  off  my  guard,  in  changing  me  into  an 
Eagle,  while  my  Queen  was  left  in  an  enchanted  sleep.  I  knew 
that  after  two  hundred  years  a  Prince  would  recall  her  to  the  light 
of  day,  and  a  Princess,  in  restoring  to  me  the  hand  which  my  enemy 
had  cut  off,  would  give  me  back  my  natural  form.  The  Fairy  who 
watches  over  your  destiny  told  me  this,  and  it  was  she  who  guided 
you  to  the  cabinet  in  the  turret,  where  she  had  placed  my  hand.  It 
is  she  also  who  permits  me  to  show  my  gratitude  to  you  by  granting 
whatever  favour  you  may  ask  of  me.  Tell  me,  Princess,  what  is  it 
that  you  wish  for  most  '?  Shall  1  make  you  as  beautiful  as  you  de- 
serve to  be  ?  ' 

'  Ah,  if  you  only  would !  '  cried  the  Princess,  and  at  the  same 
moment  she  heard  a  crick-cracking  in  all  her  bones.  She  grew  tall 
and  straight  and  pretty,  with  eyes  like  shining  stars,  and  a  skin  as 
white  as  milk. 

'  Oh,  wonderful  !  can  this  really  be  my  poor  little  self?  '  she  ex- 
claimed, looking  down  in  amazement  at  her  tiny  worn-out  crutch 
as  it  lay  upon  the  lloor. 

'  Indeed,  Princess,'  replied  Florimond,  '  it  is  yoiirself,  but  you 
nmst  have  a  new  name,  since  the  old  one  does  not  suit  you  now. 
Be  called  Princess  Sunbeam,  for  you  are  bright  and  charming 
enough  to  deserve  the  name.' 

And  so  saying  he  disappeared,  and  the  Princess,  without  know- 
ing how  she  got  there,  found  herself  walking  under  shady  trees  by 
a  clear  river.  Of  course,  the  first  thing  she  did  was  to  look  at  her 
own  reflection  in  the  water,  and  she  was  extremely  surprised  to  find 
that  she  was  exactly  like  the  shepherdess  she  had  so  much  admired, 
and  wore  the  same  white  dress  and  flowery  wreath  that  she  had  seen 
in  the  painted  windows.  To  complete  the  resemblance,  her  Hock 
of  sheep  appeared,  grazing  round  her,  and  she  found  a  gay  crook 
adorned  with  flowers  upon  the  bank  of  the  river.  Quite  tired  out  by  so 
many  new  and  wonderful  experiences,  the  Princess  sat  down  to  rest 
at  the  foot  of  a  tree,  and  there  she  fell  fast  asleep.  Now  it  happened 
that  it  was  in  this  very  country  that  Prince  Peerless  had  been  set 
down,  and  while  the  Princess  Sunbeam  was  still  sleeping  peacefully, 
he  came  strolling  along  in  search  of  a  shady  pasture  for  his  sheep. 

The  moment  he  caught  sight  of  the  Princess  he  recognised  her 
as  the  charming  shepherdess  whose  picture  he  had  seen  so  often 
in  the  tower,  and  as  she  was  far  prettier  than  he  had  remembered 
her,  he  was  delighted  that  chance  had  led  him  that  way. 


THE  <?OLD£,V  BRANCH  231 

He  was  still  watching  her  admiringly  when  the  Princess  opened 
her  eyes,  and  as  she  also  recognised  him  they  were  soon  great 
rriends.  The  Princess  asked  Prince  Peerless,  as  he  knew  the 
country  better  than  she  did,  to  tell  her  of  some  peasant  who  would 
give  her  a  lodging,  and  he  said  he  knew  of  an  old  woman  whose  cottage 
would  be  the  very  place  for  her,  it  was  so  nice  and  so  pretty.  So 
they  went  there  together,  and  the  Princess  was  charmed  with  the 
old  woman  and  everything  belonging  to  her.  Supper  was  soon 
spread  for  her  under  a  shady  tree,  and  she  invited  the  Prince  to 
share  the  cream  and  brown  bread  which  the  old  woman  provided. 
This  he  was  delighted  to  do,  and  having  first  fetched  from  his  own 
garden  all  the  strawberries,  cherries,  nuts  and  flowers  he  could  find, 
they  sat  down  together  and  were  very  merry.  After  this  they  met 
every  day  as  they  guarded  their  flocks,  and  were  so  happy  that  Prince 
Peerless  begged  the  Princess  to  marry  him,  so  that  they  might  never 
be  parted  again.  Now  though  the  Princess  Sunbeam  appeared  to 
be  only  a  poor  shepherdess,  she  never  forgot  that  she  was  a  real 
Princess,  and  she  was  not  at  all  sure  that  she  ought  to  marry  a 
humble  shepherd,  though  she  knew  she  would  like  to  do  so  very 
much. 

So  she  resolved  to  consult  an  Enchanter  of  whom  she  had  heard 
a  great  deal  since  she  had  been  a  shepherdess,  and  without  saying 
a  word  to  anybody  she  set  out  to  find  the  castle  in  which  he  lived 
with  his  sister,  who  was  a  powerful  Fairy.  The  way  was  long, 
and  lay  through  a  thick  wood,  where  the  Princess  heard  strange 
voices  calling  to  her  from  every  side,  but  she  was  in  such  a  hurry 
that  she  stopped  for  nothing,  and  at  last  she  came  to  the  courtyard 
of  the  Enchanter's  castle. 

The  grass  and  briers  were  growing  as  high  as  if  it  were  a 
hundred  years  since  anyone  had  set  foot  there,  but  the  Princess  got 
through  at  last,  though  she  gave  herself  a  good  many  scratches  by 
the  way,  and  then  she  went  into  a  dark,  gloomy  hall,  where  there 
was  but  one  tiny  hole  in  the  wall  through  which  the  daylight  could 
enter.  The  hangings  were  all  of  bats'  wings,  and  from  the  ceiling 
hung  twelve  cats,  who  filled  the  hall  with  their  ear- piercing  yells. 
Upon  the  long  table  twelve  mice  were  fastened  by  the  tail,  and  just 
in  front  of  each  one's  nose,  but  quite  beyond  its  reach,  lay  a  tempt- 
ing morsel  of  fat  bacon.  So  the  cats  could  always  see  the  mice, 
but  could  not  touch  them,  and  the  hungry  mice  were  tormented  by 
the  sight  and  smell  of  the  delicious  morsels  which  they  could  never 
seize. 


232 


THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 


The  Princess  was  looking  at  the  poor  creatures  in  dismay,  when 
the  Enchanter  suddenly'  entered,  wearing  a  long  black  robe  and 
with  a  crocodile  upon  his  head.  In  his  hand  he  carried  a  whip 
made  of  twenty  long  snakes,  all  alive  and  writhing,  and  the  Princess 


was  so  terrified  at  the  sight  that  she  heartily  wished  she  had  never 
come.  Without  saying  a  word  she  ran  to  the  door,  but  it  was 
covered  with  a  thick  spider's  web,  and  when  she  broke  it  she  found 
another,  and  another,  and  another.  In  fact,  there  was  no  end  to 


THE   GOLDEN  B&AKCH  -233 

them  ;  the  Princess's  arms  ached  with  tearing  them  down,  and  yet 
she  was  no  nearer  to  getting  out,  and  the  wicked  Enchanter  behind 
her  laughed  maliciously.  At  last  he  said  : 

'  You  might  spend  the  rest  of  your  life  over  that  without  doing 
any  good,  but  as  you  are  young,  and  quite  the  prettiest  creature  I 
have  seen  for  a  long  time,  I  will  marry  you  if  you  like,  and  I  will 
give  you  those  cats  and  mice  that  you  see  there  for  your  own. 
They  are  princes  and  princesses  who  have  happened  to  offend 
me.  They  used  to  love  one  another  as  much  as  they  now  hate  one 
another.  Aha  !  It's  a  pretty  little  revenge  to  keep  them  like  that.' 

'  Oh  !  If  you  would  only  change  me  into  a  mouse  too,'  cried  the 
Princess. 

'  Oh  !  so  you  won't  marry  me  ?  '  said  he.  '  Little  simpleton,  you 
should  have  everything  heart  can  desire.' 

'  No,  indeed ;  nothing  should  make  me  marry  you ;  in  fact,  I 
don't  think  I  shall  ever  love  anyone,'  cried  the  Princess. 

'  In  that  case,'  said  the  Enchanter,  touching  her,  '  you  had 
better  become  a. particular  kind  of  creature  that  is  neither  fish  nor 
fowl ;  you  shall  be  light  and  airy,  and  as  green  as  the  grass  you  live 
in.  Off  with  you,  Madam  Grasshopper.'  And  the  Princess,  rejoicing 
to  find  herself  free  once  more,  skipped  out  into  the  garden,  the 
prettiest  little  green  Grasshopper  in  the  world.  But  as  soon  as  she 
was  safely  out  she  began  to  be  rather  sorry  for  herself. 

'Ah!  Florimond,'  she  sighed,  'is  this  the  end  of  your  gift? 
Certainly  beauty  is  short-lived,  and  this  funny  little  face  and  a  green 
crape  dress  are  a  comical  end  to  it.  I  had  better  have  married  niy 
amiable  shepherd.  It  must  be  for  my  pride  that  I  am  condemned 
to  be  a  Grasshopper,  and  sing  day  and  night  in  the  grass  by  this 
brook,  when  I  feel  far  more  inclined  to  cry.' 

In  the  meantime  Prince  Peerless  had  discovered  the  Princess's 
absence,  and  was  lamenting  over  it  by  the  river's  brim,  when  he 
suddenly  became  aware  of  the  presence  of  a  little  old  woman.  She 
was  quaintly  dressed  in  a  ruff  and  farthingale,  and  a  velvet  hood 
covered  her  snow-white  hair. 

'  You  seem  sorrowful,  my  son,'  she  said.     '  What  is  the  matter  ?  ' 

'  Alas !  mother,'  answered  the  Prince,  '  I  have  lost  my  sweet 
shepherdess,  but  I  am  determined  to  find  her  again,  though  I  should 
have  to  traverse  the  whole  world  in  search  of  her.' 

'  Go  that  way,  my  son,'  said  the  old  woman,  pointing  towards  the 
path  that  led  to  the  castle.  '  I  have  an  idea  that  you  will  soon 
overtake  her." 


2^4  THIS  GOLDEN  3&ANC3 

The  Prince  thanked  her  heartily  and  set  out.  As  he  met  with 
no  hindrance,  he  soon  reached  the  enchanted  wood  which  sur- 
rounded the  castle,  and  there  he  thought  he  saw  the  Princess  Sun- 
beam gliding  before  him  among  the  trees.  Prince  Peerless  hastened 
after  her  at  the  top  of  his  speed,  but  could  not  get  any  nearer ; 
then  he  called  to  her : 

'  Sunbeam,  my  darling — only  wait  for  me  a  moment.' 

But  the  phantom  did  but  fly  the  faster,  and  the  Prince  spent 
the  whole  day  in  this  vain  pursuit.  When  night  came  he  saw 
the  castle  before  him  all  lighted  up,  and  as  he  imagined  that  the 
Princess  must  be  in  it,  he  made  haste  to  get  there  too.  He  entered 
without  difficulty!  and  in  the  hall  the  terrible  old  Fairy  met  him. 
She  was  so  thin  that  the  light  shone  through  her,  and  her  eyes 
glowed  like  lamps ;  her  skin  was  like  a  shark's,  her  arms  were  thin 
as  laths,  and  her  fingers  like  spindles.  Nevertheless  she  wore 
rouge  and  patches,  a  mantle  of  silver  brocade  and  a  crown  of 
diamonds,  and  her  dress  was  covered  with  jewels,  and  green  and 
pink  ribbons. 

'  At  last  you  have  come  to  see  me,  Prince,'  said  she.  'Don't 
waste  another  thought  upon  that  little  shepherdess,  who  is  un- 
worthy of  your  notice.  I  am  the  Queen  of  the  Comets,  and  can 
bring  you  to  great  honour  if  you  will  marry  me.' 

1  Marry  you,  Madam,'  cried  the  Prince,  in  horror.  '  No,  I  will 
never  consent  to  that.' 

Thereupon  the  Fairy,  in  a  rage,  gave  two  strokes  of  her  wand 
and  filled  the  gallery  with  horrible  goblins,  against  whom  the 
Prince  had  to  fight  for  his  life.  Though  he  had  only  his  dagger,  he 
defended  himself  so  well  that  he  escaped  without  any  harm,  and 
presently  the  old  Fairy  stopped  the  fray  and  asked  the  Prince  if 
he  was  still  of  the  same  mind.  When  he  answered  firmly  that  he 
was,  she  called  up  the  appearance  of  the  Princess  Sunbeam  to  the 
other  end  of  the  gallery,  and  said  : 

'  You  see  your  beloved  there  ?  Take  care  what  you  are  about, 
for  if  you  again  refuse  to  marry  me  she  shall  be  torn  in  pieces  by 
two  tigers.' 

The  Prince  was  distracted,  for  he  fancied  he  heard  his  dear 
shepherdess  weeping  and  begging  him  to  save  her.  In  despair  he 
cried : 

'  Oh,  Fairy  Douceline,  have  you  abandoned  me  after  so  many 
promises  of  friendship  ?  Help,  help  us  now  1  ' 

Immediately  a  soft  voice  said  in  his  ear  ; 


THE  GOLDEN  BRANCH 


235 


'  Be  firm,  happen  what  may,  and  seek  the  Golden  Branch.' 
Thus  encouraged,  the  Prince  persevered  in  his  refusal,  and  at 
length  the  old  Fairy  in  a  fury  cried  : 

'  Get  out  of  my  sight,  obstinate  Prince.     Become  a  Cricket ! ' 
And  instantly  the  handsome  Prince  Peerless  became  a  poor  little 


black  Cricket,  whose  only  idea  would  have  been  to  find  himself  a 
cosy  cranny  behind  some  blazing  hearth,  if  he  had  not  luckily  re- 
membered the  Fairy  Douceline's  injunction  to  seek  the  Golden 
Branch. 

So  he  hastened  to  depart  from  the  fatal  castle,  and  sought  shelter 


•286  THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH 

in  a  hollow  tree,  where  he  found  a  forlorn  looking  little  Grasshopper 
crouching  in  a  corner,  too  miserable  to  sing. 

Without  in  the  least  expecting  an  answer,  the  Prince  asked  it ; 

'  And  where  may  you  be  going,  Gammer  Grasshopper  ?  ' 

'  Where  are  you  going  yourself,  Gaffer  Cricket  ?  '  replied  the 
Grasshopper. 

'  What !  can  you  speak  ?  '  said  he. 

'  Why  should  I  not  speak  as  well  as  you  ?  Isn't  a  Grasshopper 
as  good  as  a  Cricket  ?  '  said  she. 

'  I  can  talk  because  I  was  a  Prince,'  said  the  Cricket. 

'  And  for  that  very  same  reason  I  ought  to  be  able  to  talk  more 
than  you,  for  I  was  a  Princess,'  replied  the  Grasshopper. 

*  Then  you  have  met  with  the  same  fate  as  I  have,'  said  he.    '  But 
where  are  you  going  now  ?    Cannot  we  journey  together  ?  ' 

'  I  seemed  to  hear  a  voice  in  the  air  which  said :  "  Be  firm, 
happen  what  may,  and  seek  the  Golden  Branch,"  '  answered  the 
Grasshopper,  '  and  I  thought  the  command  must  be  for  me,  so  I 
started  at  once,  though  I  don't  know  the  way.' 

At  this  moment  their  conversation  was  interrupted  by  two  mice, 
who,  breathless  from  running,  flung  themselves  headlong  through 
the  hole  into  the  tree,  nearly  crushing  the  Grasshopper  and  the 
Cricket,  though  they  got  out  of  the  way  as  fast  as  they  could  and 
stood  up  in  a  dark  corner. 

'  Ah,  Madam,'  said  the  fatter  of  the  two,  '  I  have  such  a  pain  in 
my  side  from  running  so  fast.  How  does  your  Highness  find  your- 
self?' 

'  I  have  pulled  my  tail  off,'  replied  the  younger  Mouse,  '  but  as  I 
should  still  be  on  the  sorcerer's  table  unless  I  had,  I  do  not  regret 
it.  Are  we  pursued,  think  you  ?  How  lucky  we  were  to  escape  !  ' 

*  I  only  trust  that  we  may  escape  cats  and  traps,  and  reach  the 
Golden  Branch  soon,'  said  the  fat  Mouse. 

'  You  know  the  way  then  ?  '  said  the  other. 

'Oh  dear,  yes !  as  well  as  the  way  to  my  own  house,  Madam. 
This  Golden  Branch  is  indeed  a  marvel,  a  single  leaf  from  it  makes 
one  rich  for  ever.  It  breaks  enchantments,  and  makes  all  who 
approach  it  young  and  beautiful.  We  must  set  out  for  it  at  the 
break  of  day.' 

'  May  we  have  the  honour  of  travelling  with  you — this  respect- 
able Cricket  and  myself  ?  '  said  the  Grasshopper,  stepping  forward. 
'  We  also  are  on  a  pilgrimage  to  the  Golden  Branch.' 

The  Mice  courteously  assented,  and  after  many  polite  speeches 


THE   GOLDEN  BRANCH  237 

the  whole  party  fell  asleep.  "With  the  earliest  dawn  they  were  on 
their  way,  and  though  the  Mice  were  in  constant  fear  of  being  over- 
taken or  trapped,  they  reached  the  Golden  Branch  in  safety. 

It  grew  in  the  midst  of  a  wonderful  garden,  all  the  paths  of  which 
were  strewn  with  pearls  as  big  as  peas.  The  roses  were  crimson 
diamonds,  with  emerald  leaves.  The  pomegranates  were  garnets, 
the  marigolds  topazes,  the  daffodils  yellow  diamonds,  the  violets 
sapphires,  the  corn-flowers  turquoises,  the  tulips  amethysts,  opals 
and  diamonds,  so  that  the  garden  borders  blazed  like  the  sun.  The 
Golden  Branch  itself  had  become  as  tall  as  a  forest  tree,  and  sparkled 
with  ruby  cherries  to  its  topmost  twig.  No  sooner  had  the  Grass- 
hopper and  the  Cricket  touched  it  than  they  were  restored  to  their 
natural  forms,  and  their  surprise  and  joy  were  great  when  they  re- 
cognised each  other.  At  this  moment  Florimond  and  the  Fairy 
Douceline  appeared  in  great  splendour,  and  the  Fairy,  as  she  de- 
scended from  her  chariot,  said  with  a  smile  : 

'  So  you  two  have  found  one  another  again,  I  see,  but  I  have  still 
a  surprise  left  for  you.  Don't  hesitate,  Princess,  to  tell  your  devoted 
shepherd  how  dearly  you  love  him,  as  he  is  the  very  Prince  your 
father  sent  you  to  marry.  So  come  here  both  of  you  and  let  me 
crown  you,  and  we  will  have  the  wedding  at  once.' 

The  Prince  and  Princess  thanked  her  with  all  their  hearts,  and 
declared  that  to  her  they  owed  all  their  happiness,  and  then  the  two 
Princesses,  who  had  so  lately  been  Mice,  came  and  begged  that  the 
Fairy  would  use  her  power  to  release  their  unhappy  friends  who 
were  still  under  the  Enchanter's  spell. 

'  Really,'  said  the  Fairy  Douceline,  '  on  this  happy  occasion  I 
cannot  find  it  in  my  heart  to  refuse  you  anything.'  And  she  gave 
three  strokes  of  her  wand  upon  the  Golden  Branch,  and  immediately 
all  the  prisoners  in  the  Enchanter's  castle  found  themselves  free, 
and  came  with  all  speed  to  the  wonderful  garden,  where  one  touch 
of  the  Golden  Branch  restored  each  one  to  his  natural  form,  and 
they  greeted  one  another  with  many  rejoicings.  To  complete  her 
generous  work  the  Fairy  presented  them  with  the  wonderful  cabinet 
and  all  the  treasures  it  contained,  which  were  worth  at  least  ten 
kingdoms.  But  to  Prince  Peerless  and  the  Princess  Sunbeam  she 
gave  the  palace  and  garden  of  the  Golden  Branch,  where,  immensely 
rich  and  greatly  beloved  by  all  their  subjects,  they  lived  happily 
ever  after.1 

'   C?  Ramtau  (f  Or.    Par  Mailame  d'Aulnoy. 


238 


was  once  upon  a  time  a  man  who  lost  his  wife,  and  a 
-L  woman  who  lost  her  husband  ;  and  the  man  had  a  daughter 
and  so  had  the  woman.  The  two  girls  were  great  friends  and  used 
often  to  play  together.  One  day  the  woman  turned  to  the  man's 
daughter  and  said : 

'  Go  and  tell  your  father  that  I  will  marry  him,  and  then  you 
shall  wash  in  milk  and  drink  wine,  but  my  own  daughter  shall  wash 
in  water  and  drink  it  too.' 

The  girl  went  straight  home  and  told  her  father  what  the  woman 
had  said. 

'  "What  am  I  to  do  ?  '  he  answered.  '  Marriage  is  either  a  success 
or  it  is  a  failure.' 

At  last,  being  of  an  undecided  character  and  not  being  able  to 
make  up  his  mind,  he  took  off  his  boot,  and  handing  it  to  his 
daughter,  said : 

'  Take  this  boot  which  has  a  hole  in  the  sole,  hang  it  up  on  a  nail 
in  the  hayloft,  and  pour  water  into  it.  If  it  holds  water  I  will 
marry  again,  but  if  it  doesn't  I  won't.'  The  girl  did  as  she  was  bid, 
but  the  water  drew  the  hole  together  and  the  boot  filled  up  to  the 
very  top.  So  she  went  and  told  her  father  the  result.  He  got  up 
and  went  to  see  for  himself,  and  when  he  saw  that  it  was  true  and 
no  mistake,  he  accepted  his  fate,  proposed  to  the  widow,  and  they 
were  married  at  once. 

On  the  morning  after  the  wedding,  when  the  two  girls  awoke, 
milk  was  standing  for  the  man's  daughter  to  wash  in  and  wine  for 
her  to  drink ;  but  for  the  woman's  daughter,  only  water  to  wash  in 
and  only  water  to  drink.  On  the  second  morning,  water  to  wash  in 
and  water  to  drink  was  standing  for  the  man's  daughter  as  well. 
And  on  the  third  morning,  water  to  wash  in  and  water  to  drink  was 
standing  for  the  man's  daughter,  and  milk  to  wash  in  and  wine  to 
drink  for  the  woman's  daughter ;  and  so  it  continued  ever  after.  The 
woman  hated  her  stepdaughter  from  the  bottom  of  her  heart,  and 


THE    THREE  DWARFS 


239 


did  all  she  could  to  make  her  life  miserable.  She  was  as  jealous  as 
she  could  possibly  be,  because  the  girl  was  so  beautiful  and  charming, 
while  her  own  daughter  was  both  ugly  and  repulsive. 

One  winter's  day  when  there  was  a  hard  frost,  and  mountain 


and  valley  were  covered  with  snow,  the  woman  made  a  dress  of 
paper,  and  calling  the  girl  to  her  said  : 

'  There,  put  on  this  dress  and  go  out  into  the  wood  and  fetch-rue 
a  basket  of  strawberries  !  ' 


240  THE    THREE  DWARFS 

'  Now  Heaven  help  us,'  replied  her  stepdaughter  ;  '  strawberries 
don't  grow  in  winter ;  the  earth  is  all  frozen  and  the  snow  has 
covered  up  everything  ;  and  why  send  me  in  a  paper  dress  ?  it  is  so 
cold  outside  that  one's  very  breath  freezes ;  the  wind  will  whistle 
through  my  dress,  and  the  brambles  tear  it  from  my  body.' 

'  How  dare  you  contradict  me  ! '  said  her  stepmother ;  '  be  off  with 
you  at  once,  and  don't  show  your  face  again  till  you  have  filled  the 
basket  with  strawberries.' 

Then  she  gave  her  a  hard  crust  of  bread,  saying : 

'  That  will  be  enough  for  you  to-day,'  and  she  thought  to  herself : 
'  The  girl  will  certainly  perish  of  hunger  and  cold  outside,  and  I 
shan't  be  bothered  with  her  any  more.' 

The  girl  was  so  obedient  that  she  put  on  the  paper  dress  and  set 
out  with  her  little  basket.  There  was  nothing  but  snow  far  and 
near,  and  not  a  green  blade  of  grass  to  be  seen  anywhere.  "When 
she  came  to  the  wood  she  saw  a  little  house,  and  out  of  it  peeped 
three  little  dwarfs.  She  wished  them  good-day,  and  knocked 
modestly  at  the  door.  They  called  out  to  her  to  enter,  so  she  stepped 
in  and  sat  down  on  a  seat  by  the  fire,  wishing  to  warm  herself  and 
eat  her  breakfast.  The  Dwarfs  said  at  once  :  '  Give  us  some  of  your 
food ! ' 

'  Gladly,'  she  said,  and  breaking  her  crust  in  two,  she  gave  them 
the  half. 

Then  they  asked  her  what  she  was  doing  in  the  depths  of  winter 
in  her  thin  dress. 

'  Oh,'  she  answered,  '  I  have  been  sent  to  get  a  basketful  of 
strawberries,  and  I  daren't"  show  my  face  again  at  home  till  I  bring 
them  with  me.' 

When  she  had  finished  her  bread  they  gave  her  a  broom  and 
told  her  to  sweep  away  the  snow  from  the  back  door.  As  soon  as 
she  left  the  room  to  do  so,  the  three  little  men  consulted  what  they 
should  give  her  as  a  reward  for  being  so  sweet  and  good,  and  for 
sharing  her  last  crust  with  them. 

The  first  said:  'Every  day  she  shall  grow  prettier.' 

The  second  :  '  Every  time  she  opens  her  mouth  a  piece  of  gold 
shall  fall  out.' 

And  the  third  :  'A  King  shall  come  and  marry  her.' 

The  girl  in  the  meantime  was  doing  as  the  Dwarfs  had  bidden 
her,  and  was  sweeping  the  snow  away  from  the  back  door,  and  what, 
do  you  think  she  found  there  ? — heaps  of  fine  ripe  strawberries  that 
showed  out  dark  red  against  the  white  snow.  She  joyfully  pickml 


THE    THREE  DWARFS  241 

enough  to  fill  her  basket,  thanked  the  little  men  for  their  kindness, 
shook  hands  with  them,  and  ran  home  to  bring  her  stepmother  what 
she  had  asked  for.  When  she  walked  in  and  said  '  Good-evening,'  a 
piece  of  gold  fell  out  of  her  mouth.  Then  she  told  what  had  hap- 


pened  to  her  in  the  wood,  and  at  every  word  pieces  of  gold  dropped 
from  her  mouth,  so  that  the  room  was  soon  covered  with  them. 

'  She's  surely  more  money  than  wit  to  throw  gold  about  like 
that,'  said  her  stepsister,  but  in  her  secret  heart  she  was  very  jealous, 


K. 


242  THE   THREE  DWARFS 

and  determined  that  she  too  would  go  to  the  wood  and  look  for 
stravv-berries.  But  her  mother  refused  to  let  her  go,  saying : 

'  My  dear  child,  it  is  far  too  eold ;  you  might  freeze  to  death.' 

The  girl  however  left  her  no  peace,  so  she  was  forced  at  last  to 
give  in,  but  she  insisted  on  her  putting  on  a  beautiful  fur  cloak,  and 
she  gave  her  bread  and  biitter  and  cakes  to  eat  on  the  way. 

The  girl  went  straight  to  the  little  house  in  the  wood,  and  as 
before  the  three  little  men  were  looking  out  of  the  window.  She 
took  no  notice  of  them,  and  without  as  much  as  '  By  your  leave,'  or 
'  With  your  leave,'  she  flounced  into  the  room,  sat  herself  down  at 
the  fire,  and  began  to  eat  her  bread  and  butter  and  cakes. 

'  Give  us  some,'  cried  the  Dwarfs. 

But  she  answered  :  '  No,  I  won't,  it's  hardly  enough  for  myself; 
so  catch  me  giving  you  any.' 

When  she  had  finished  eating  they  said  : 

'  There's  a  broom  for  you,  go  and  clear  up  our  back  door.' 

'I'll  see  myself  further,'  she  answered  rudely.  '  Do  it  yourselves ; 
I'm  not  your  servant.' 

AYheii  she  saw  that  they  did  not  mean  to  give  her  anything,  she 
left  the  house  in  no  amiable  frame  of  mind.  Then  the  three  little 
men  consulted  what  they  should  do  to  her,  because  she  was  so  bad 
and  had  such  an  evil,  covetous  heart,  that  she  grudged  everybody 
their  good  fortune. 

The  first  said  :  '  She  shah1  grow  uglier  every  day.' 

The  second  :  '  Every  time  she  speaks  a  toad  shall  jump  out  of 
her  mouth.' 

And  the  third  :  '  She  shall  die  a  most  miserable  death.' 

The  girl  searched  for  strawberries,  but  she  found  none,  and  re- 
turned home  in  a  very  bad  temper.  When  she  opened  her  mouth 
to  tell  her  mother  what  had  befallen  her  in  the  wood,  a  toad  jumped 
out,  so  that  everyone  was  quite  disgusted  with  her. 

Then  the  stepmother  was  more  furious  than  ever,  and  did 
nothing  but  plot  mischief  against  the  man's  daughter,  who  wa  daily 
growing  more  and  more  beautiful.  At  last,  one  day  the  wicked 
woman  took  a  large  pot,  put  it  on  the  fire  and  boiled  some  yarn  in 
it.  When  it  was  well  scalded  she  hung  it  round  the  poor  girl's 
shoulder,  and  giving  her  an  axe,  she  bade  her  break  a  hole  in  the 
frozen  river,  and  rinse  the  yarn  in  it.  Her  stepdaughter  obeyed 
as  usual,  and  went  and  broke  a  hole  in  the  ice.  When  she  was  in 
the  act  of  wringing  out  the  yarn  a  magnificent  carriage  passed,  and 
tne  King  sat  inside.  The  carriage  stood  still,  and  the  King  asked  her : 


THE    TEEEE  DWAEFS 


243 


4  My  child,  who  are  you,  and  what  in  the  wide  world  are  you 
doing  here '?  ' 

'  I  am  only  a  poor  girl,'  she  answered,  '  and  am  rinsing  out  my 
yarn  in  the  river.'  Then  the  King  was  sorry  for  her,  and  when  he 
saw  how  beautiful  she  was  he  said  : 

4  Will  you  come  away  with  me  ? ' 

4  Most  gladly,'  she  replied,  for  she  knew  how  willingly  she  would 
leave  her  stepmother  and  sister,  and  how  glad  they  would  be  to 
be  rid  of  her. 

So  she  stepped  into  the  carriage  and  drove  away  with  the  King, 


and  when  they  reached  his  palace  the  wedding  was  celebrated  with 
much  splendour.  So  all  turned  out  just  as  the  three  little  Dwarfs 
had  said.  After  a  year  the  Queen  gave  birth  to  a  little  son.  When 
her  stepmother  heard  of  her  good  fortune  she  came  to  the  palace  with 
her  daughter  by  way  of  paying  a  call,  and  took  up  her  abode  there. 
Now  one  day,  when  the  King  was  out  and  nobody  else  near,  the 
bad  woman  took  the  Queen  by  her  head,  and  the  daughter  took  her 
by  her  heels,  and  they  dragged  her  from  her  bed,  and  flung  her  out 
of  the  window  into  the  stream  which  flowed  beneath  it.  Then  the 
stepmother  laid  her  ugly  daughter  in  the  Queen's  place,  and  covered 

88 


244  THE    THREE  DWARFS 

her  up  with  the  clothes,  so  that  nothing  of  her  was  seen.  When  the 
King  came  home  and  wished  to  speak  to  his  wife  the  woman  called 
out : 

'  Quietly,  quietly  !  this  will  never  do ;  your  wife  is  very  ill,  you 
must  let  her  rest  all  to-day.'  The  King  suspected  no  evil,  and  didn't 
come  again  till  next  morning.  When  he  spoke  to  his  wife  and  she 
answered  him,  instead  of  the  usual  piece  of  gold  a  toad  jumped  out 
of  her  mouth.  Then  he  asked  what  it  meant,  and  the  old  woman 
told  him  it  was  nothing  but  weakness,  and  that  she  would  soon  be 
all  right  again. 

But  that  same  evening  the  scullion  noticed  a  duck  swimming 
up  the  gutter,  saying  as  it  passed  : 

1  What  does  the  King,  I  pray  you  tell, 
Is  he  awake  or  sleeps  he  well  ?  ' 

and  receiving  no  reply,  it  continued  : 

'  And  all  my  guests,  are  they  asleep  ?  ' 
and  the  Scullion  answered  : 

'  Yes,  one  and  all  they  slumber  deep.' 
Then  the  Duck  went  on  : 

'  And  what  about  my  baby  dear  ?  ' 
and  he  answered : 

'Oh,  it  sleeps  soundly,  never  fear.' 

Then  the  Duck  assumed  the  Queen's  shape,  went  up  to  the  child's 
room,  tucked  him  up  comfortably  in  his  cradle,  and  then  swam  back 
down  the  gutter  again,  in  the  likeness  of  a  Duck.  This  was  repeated 
for  two  nights,  and  on  the  third  the  Duck  said  to  the  Scullion  : 

'  Go  and  tell  the  King  to  swing  his  sword  three  times  over  me 
on  the  threshold.' 

The  Scullion  did  as  the  creature  bade  him,  and  the  King  came 
with  his  sword  and  swung  it  three  times  over  the  bird,  and  lo  and 
behold !  his  wife  stood  before  him  once  more,  alive,  and  as  blooming 
as  ever. 

The  King  rejoiced  greatly,  but  he  kept  the  Queen  in  hiding  till 
the  Sunday  on  which  the  child  was  to  be  christened.  After  the 
christening  he  said : 

'  What  punishment  does  that  person  deserve  who  drags  another 
out  of  bed,  and  throws  him  or  her,  as  the  case  may  be,  into  the 
water  ?  ' 

Then  the  wicked  old  stepmother  answered : 


THE    THREE   DWARFS  245 

'  Xo  better  fate  than  to  be  put  into  a  barrel  lined  with  sharp 
nails,  and  to  be  rolled  in  it  down  the  hill  into  the  water.' 

'  You  have  pronounced  your  own  doom,'  said  the  King ;  and  he 
ordered  a  ban-el  to  be  made  lined  with  sharp  nails,  and  in  it  he  put 
the  bad  old  woman  and  her  daughter.  Then  it  was  fastened  down 
securely,  and  the  barrel  was  rolled  down  the  hill  till  it  fell  into  the 
river.1 

1  Grimm. 


24o 


DAPPLEGRIM 

rilHEEE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  couple  of  rich  folks  who  had  twelve 
J-  sons,  and  when  the  youngest  was  grown  up  he  would  not  stay 
at  home  any  longer,  but  would  go  out  into  the  world  and  seek  his 
fortune.  His  father  and  mother  said  that  they  thought  he  was  very 
well  off  at  home,  and  that  he  was  welcome  to  stay  with  them ;  but 
he  could  not  rest,  and  said  that  he  must  and  would  go,  so  at  last 
they  had  to  give  him  leave.  When  he  had  walked  a  long  way,  he 
came  to  a  King's  palace.  There  he  asked  for  a  place  and  got  it. 

Now  the  daughter  of  the  King  of  that  country  had  been  carried 
off  into  the  mountains  by  a  Troll,  and  the  King  had  no  other  children, 
and  for  this  cause  both  he  and  all  his  people  were  full  of  sorrow  and 
affliction,  and  the  King  had  promised  the  Princess  and  half  his 
kingdom  to  anyone  who  could  set  her  free  ;  but  there  was  no-  one 
who  could  do  it,  though  a  great  number  had  tried.  So  when  the 
youth  had  been  there  for  the  space  of  a  year  or  so,  he  wanted  to  go 
home  again  to  pay  his  parents  a  visit ;  but  when  he  got  there  his  father 
and  mother  were  dead,  and  his  brothers  had  divided  everything 
that  their  parents  possessed  between  themselves,  so  that  there  was 
nothing  at  all  left  for  him. 

'  Shall  I,  then,  receive  nothing  at  all  of  my  inheritance  ?  '  asked 
the  youth. 

'  Who  could  know  that  you  were  still  alive — you  who  have  been 
a  wanderer  so  long  ?  '  answered  the  brothers.  '  However,  there  are 
twelve  mares  upon  the  hills  which  we  have  not  yet  divided  among 
us,  and  if  you  would  like  to  have  them  for  your  share,  you  may  take 
them.' 

So  the  youth,  well  pleased  with  this,  thanked  them,  and  at  once 
set  off  to  the  hill  where  tb.3  twelve  mares  were  at  pasture.  When 
he  got  up  there  and  found  them,  each  mare  had  her  foal,  and  by  the 
side  of  one  of  them  was  a  big  dapple-grey  foal  as  well,  which  was  so 
eleek  that  it  shone  again. 


DAPPLEGBIM 


247 


1  Well,  my  little  foal,  you  are  a  fine  fellow  ! '  said  the  youth. 

'  Yes,  but  if  you  will  kill  all  the  other  little  foals  so  that  I  can 
suck  all  the  mares  for  a  year,  you  shall  see  how  big  and  handsome 
I  shall  be  then  ! '  said  the  Foal. 

So  the  youth  did  this— he  killed  all  the  twelve  foals,  and  then 
went  back  again. 

Next  year,  when  he  came  home  again  to  look  after  his  mares  and 
the  foal,  it  was  as  fat  as  it  could  be,  and  its  coat  shone  with  bright- 
ness, and  it  was  so  big  that  the  lad  had  the  greatest  difficulty  in 
getting  on  its  back,  and  each  of  the  mares  had  another  foal. 

'  Well,  it's  very  evident  that  I  have  lost  nothing  by  letting  you 


suck  all  my  mares,'  said  the  lad  to  the  yearling;  '  but  now  you  are 
quite  big  enough,  and  must  come  away  with  me.' 

'  No,'  said  the  Colt,  'I  must  stay  here  another  year;  kill  the 
twelve  little  foals,  and  then  I  can  suck  all  the  mares  this  year  also, 
and  you  shall  see  how  big  and  handsome  I  shall  be  by  summer.' 

So  the  youth  did  it  again,  and  when  he  went  up  on  the  hill  next 
year  to  look  after  his  colt  and  the  mares,  each  of  the  mares  had  her 
foal  again  ;  but  the  dappled  colt  was  so  big  that  when  the  lad  wanted 
to  feel  its  neck  to  see  how  fat  it  was,  he  could  not  reach  up  to  it,  it 
was  so  high,  and  it  was  so  bright  that  the  light  glanced  off  its  coat. 


248  DAPPLEGEIM 

'  Big  and  handsome  you  were  last  year,  my  colt,  but  this  year 
you  are  ever  so  much  handsomer,'  said  the  youth  ;  '  in  all  the  King's 
court  no  such  horse  is  to  be  found.  But  now  you  shall  come  away 
with  me.' 

'  No,'  said  the  dappled  Colt  once  more  ;  '  here  I  must  stay  for 
another  year.  Just  kill  the  twelve  little  foals  again,  so  that  I  can 
suck  the  mares  this  year  also,  and  then  come  and  look  at  me  in  the 
summer.' 

So  the  youth  did  it — he  killed  all  the  little  foals,  and  then  went 
home  again. 

But  next  year,  when  he  returned  to  look  after  the  dappled  colt 
and  the  mares,  he  was  quite  appalled.  He  had  never  imagined 
that  any  horse  could  become  so  big  and  overgrown,  for  the  dappled 
horse  had  to  lie  down  on  all  fours  before  the  youth  could  get  on  his 
back,  and  it  was  very  hard  to  do  that  even  when  it  was  lying  down, 
and  it  was  so  plump  that  its  coat  shone  and  glistened  just  as  if  it 
had  been  a  looking-glass.  This  time  the  dappled  horse  was  not  un- 
willing to  go  away  with  the  youth,  so  he  mounted  it,  and  when  he 
came  riding  home  to  his  brothers  they  all  smote  their  hands  to- 
gether and  crossed  themselves,  for  never  in  their  lives  had  they 
either  seen  or  heard  tell  of  such  a  horse  as  that. 

'  If  you  will  procure  me  the  best  shoes  for  my  horse,  and  the 
most  magnificent  saddle  and  bridle  that  can  be  found,'  said  the 
youth,  '  you  may  have  all  my  twelve  mares  just  as  they  are  stand- 
ing out  on  the  hill,  and  their  twelve  foals  into  the  bargain.'  For 
this  year  also  each  mare  had  her  foal.  The  brothers  were  quite 
willing  to  do  this  ;  so  the  lad  got  such  shoes  for  his  horse  that  the 
sticks  and  stones  flew  high  up  into  the  air  as  he  rode  away  over  the 
hills,  and  such  a  gold  saddle  and  such  a  gold  bridle  that  they  could 
be  seen  glittering  and  glancing  from  afar. 

'  And  now  we  will  go  to  the  King's  palace,'  said  Dapplegrim — 
that  was  the  horse's  name,  '  but  bear  in  mind  that  you  must  ask  the 
King  for  a  good  stable  and  excellent  fodder  for  me.' 

So  the  lad  promised  not  to  forget  to  do  that.  He  rode  to  the 
palace,  and  it  will  be  easily  understood  that  with  such  a  horse  as  he 
had  he  was  not  long  on  the  way. 

When  he  arrived  there,  the  King  was  standing  out  on  the  steps, 
and  how  he  did  stare  at  the  man  who  came  riding  up  ! 

'  Nay,'  said  he, '  never  in  my  whole  life  have  I  seen  such  a  man 
and  such  a  horse.' 

And  when  the  youth  inquired  if  he  could  have  a  place  in  the 


DAPPLEGRIM  249 

King's  palace,  the  King  was  so  delighted  that  he  could  have  danced 
on  the  steps  where  he  was  standing,  and  there  and  then  the  lad  was 
told  that  he  should  have  a  place. 

'  Yes  ;  but  I  must  have  a  good  stable  and  most  excellent  fodder 
for  my  horse,'  said  he. 

So  they  told  him  that  he  should  have  sweet  hay  and  oats,  and  as 
much  of  them  as  the  dappled  horse  chose  to  have,  and  all  the  other 
riders  had  to  take  their  horses  out  of  the  stable  that  Dapplegrim 
might  stand  alone  and  realty  have  plenty  of  room. 

But  this  did  not  last  long,  for  the  other  people  in  the  King's 
Court  became  envious  of  the  lad,  and  there  was  no  bad  thing  that 
they  would  not  have  done  to  him  if  they  had  but  dared.  At  last 
they  bethought  themselves  of  telling  the  King  that  the  youth  had 
said  that,  if  he  chose,  he  was  quite  able  to  rescue  the  Princess  who 
had  been  carried  off  into  the  mountain  a  long  time  ago  by  the 
Troll. 

The  King  immediately  summoned  the  lad  into  his  presence,  and 
said  that  he  had  been  informed  that  he  had  said  that  it  was  in  his 
power  to  rescue  the  Princess,  so  he  was  now  to  do  it.  If  he  suc- 
ceeded in  this,  he  no  doubt  knew  that  the  King  had  promised  his 
daughter  and  half  the  kingdom  to  anyone  who  set  her  free,  which 
promise  should  be  faithfully  and  honourably  kept,  but  if  he  failed 
he  should  be  put  to  death.  The  youth  denied  that  he  had  said  this, 
but  all  to  no  purpose,  for  the  King  was  deaf  to  all  his  words  ;  so  there 
was  nothing  to  be  done  but  say  that  he  would  make  the  attempt. 

He  went  down  into  the  stable,  and  very  sad  and  full  of  care 
he  was.  Then  Dapplegrim  inquired  why  he  was  so  troubled,  and 
the  youth  told  him,  and  said  that  he  did  not  know  what  to  do,  '  for 
as  to  setting  the  Princess  free,  that  was  downright  impossible.' 

1  Oh,  but  it  might  be  done,'  said  Dapplegrim.  '  I  will  help  you  ; 
but  you  must  first  have  me  well  shod.  You  must  ask  for  ten  pounds 
of  iron  and  twelve  pounds  of  steel  for  the  shoeing,  and  one  smith  to 
hammer  and  one  to  hold.' 

So  the  youth  did  this,  and  no  one  said  him  nay.  He  got  both 
the  iron  and  the  steel,  and  the  smiths,  and  thus  was  Dapplegrim 
shod  strongly  and  well,  and  when  the  youth  went  out  of  the  King's 
palace  a  cloud  of  dust  rose  up  behind  him.  But  when  he  came  to 
the  mountain  into  which  the  Princess  had  been  carried,  the  difficulty 
was  to  ascend  the  precipitous  wall  of  rock  by  which  he  was  to  get 
on  to  the  mountain  beyond,  for  the  rock  stood  right  up  on  end,  as 
steep  as  a  house  side  and  as  smooth  as  a  sheet  of  glass.  The  first 


250 


DAPPLEGRIM 


time  the  youth  -rode  at  it  he  got  a  little  way  up  the  precipice,  but 
then  both  Dapplegrim's  fore  legs  slipped,  and  down  carne  horse  and 
rider  with  a  sound  like  thunder  among  the  mountains.  The  next 
time  that  he  rode  at  it  he  got  a  little  farther  up,  but  then  one  of 
Dapplegrim's  fore  legs  slipped,  and  down  they  went  with  the  sound 
of  a  landslip.  But  the  third  time  Dapplegrim  said  :  '  Now  we  must 
show  what  we  can  do,'  and  went  at  it  once  more  till  the  stones 
sprang  up  sky  high,  and  thus  they  got  up.  Then  the  lad  rode  into 
the  mountain  cleft  at  full  gallop  and  caught  up  the  Princess  on  his 


saddle-bow,  and  then  out  again  before  the  Troll  even  had  time  to 
stand  up,  and  thus  the  Princess  was  set  free. 

When  the  youth  returned  to  the  palace  the  King  was  both 
happy  and  delighted  to  get  his  daughter  back  again,  as  may  easily 
be  believed,  but  somehow  or  other  the  people  about  the  Court  had 
so  worked  on  him  that  he  was  angry  with  the  lad  too.  '  Thou 
shalt  have  my  thanks  for  setting  my  Princess  free,'  he  said,  when 
the  youth  came  into  the  palace  with  her,  and  was  then  about  to  go 
away. 


DAPPLEGHIM  251 

She  ought  to  be  just  as  much  my  Princess  as  she  is  yours  now, 
for  you  are  a  man  of  your  word,'  said  the  youth. 

Yes,  yes,'  said  the  King.  '  Have  her  thou  shalt,  as  I  have  said 
it ;  but  first  of  all  thou  must  make  the  sun  shine  into  my  palace 
here.' 

For  there  was  a  large  and  high  hill  outside  the  windows  which 
overshadowed  the  palace  so  much  that  the  sun  could  not  shine  in. 

'  That  was  no  part  of  onr  bargain,'  answered  the  youth.  '  But 
as  nothing  that  I  can  say  will  move  you,  I  suppose  I  shall  have  to 
try  to  do  my  best,  for  the  Princess  I  will  have.' 

So  he  went  down  to  Dapplegriin  again  and  told  him  what  the 
King  desired,  and  Dapplegrim  thought  that  it  might  easily  be 
done  ;  but  first  of  all  he  must  have  new  shoes,  and  ten  pounds  of 
iron  and  twelve  poimds  of  steel  must  go  to  the  making  of  them, 
and  two  smiths  were  also  necessary,  one  to  hammer  and  one  to 
hold,  and  then  it  would  be  very  easy  to  make  the  sun  shine  into 
the  King's  palace. 

The  lad  asked  for  these  things  and  obtained  them  instantly, 
for  the  King  thought  that  for  very  shame  he  could  not  refuse  to 
give  them,  and  so  Dapplegrhn  got  new  shoes,  and  they  were  good 
ones.  The  youth  seated  himself  on  him,  and  once  more  they  went 
their  way,  and  for  each  hop  that  Dapplegrim  made,  down  went  the 
hill  fifteen  ells  into  the  earth,  and  so  they  went  on  until  there  was 
no  hill  left  for  the  King  to  see. 

When  the  youth  came  down  again  to  the  King's  palace  he 
asked  the  King  if  the  Princess  should  not  at  last  be  his,  for  now  no 
one  could  say  that  the  sun  was  not  shining  into  the  palace.  But 
the  other  people  in  the  palace  had  again  stirred  up  the  King,  and 
he  answered  that  the  youth  should  have  her,  and  that  he  had  never 
intended  that  he  should  not ;  but  first  of  all  he  must  get  her  quite 
as  good  a  horse  to  ride  to  the  wedding  on  as  that  which  he  had  him- 
self. The  youth  said  that  the  King  had  never  told  him  he  was  to 
do  that,  and  it  seemed  to  him  that  he  had  now  really  earned  the 
Princess ;  but  the  King  stuck  to  what  he  had  said,  and  if  the  youth 
were  unable  to  do  it  he  was  to  lose  his  life,  the  King  said.  The 
youth  went  down  to  the  stable  again,  and  very  sad  and  sorrowful 
he  was,  as  anyone  may  well  imagine.  Then  he  told  Dapplegrim 
that  the  King  had  now  required  that  he  should  get  the  Princess  as 
good  a  bridal  horse  as  that  which  the  bridegroom  had,  or  he  should 
lose  his  life.  '  But  that  will  be  no  easy  thing  to  do,'  said  he,  '  for 
your  equal  is  not  to  be  found  in  all  the  world..' 


252  DAPPLEGEIM 

'  Oh  yes,  there  is  one  to  match  me,'  said  Dapplegrim.  '  But  it 
will  not  be  easy  to  get  him,  for  he  is  undergroiind.  However,  we 
will  try.  Now  you  must  go  up  to  the  King  and  ask  for  new  shoes 
for  me,  and  for  them  we  must  again  have  ten  pounds  of  iron, 
twelve  pounds  of  steel,  and  two  smiths,  one  to  hammer  and  one 
to  hold,  but  be  very  particular  to  see  that  the  hooks  are  very  sharp. 
And  you  must  also  ask  for  twelve  barrels  of  rye,  and  twelve 
slaughtered  oxen  must  we  have  with  us,  and  all  the  twelve  ox-hides 
with  twelve  hundred  spikes  set  in  each  of  them ;  all  these  things 
must  we  have,  likewise  a  barrel  of  tar  with  twelve  tons  of  tar  in  it. 
The  youth  went  to  the  King  and  asked  for  all  the  things  that 
Dapplegrim  had  named,  and  once  more,  as  the  King  thought  that 
it  would  be  disgraceful  to  refuse  them  to  him,  he  obtained  them  all. 
So  he  mounted  Dapplegrim  and  rode  away  from  the  Court,  and 
when  he  had  ridden  for  a  long,  long  time  over  hills  and  moors, 
Dapplegrim  asked  :  '  Do  you  hear  anything  ?  ' 

'  Yes ;  there  is  such  a  dreadful  whistling  up  above  in  the  air 
that  I  think  I  am  growing  alarmed,'  said  the  youth. 

'  That  is  all  the  wild  birds  in  the  forest  flying  about ;  they  are 
sent  to  stop  us,'  said  Dapplegrim.  'But  just  cut  a  hole  in  the  corn 
sacks,  and  then  they  will  be  so  busy  with  the  corn  that  they  will 
forget  us.' 

The  youth  did  it.  He  cut  holes  in  the  corn  sacks  so  that  barley 
and  rye  ran  out  on  every  side,  and  all  the  wild  birds  that  were  in 
the  forest  came  in  such  numbers  that  they  darkened  the  sun.  But 
when  they  caught  sight  of  the  corn  they  could  not  refrain  from  it, 
but  flew  down  and  began  to  scratch  and  pick  at  the  corn  and  rye, 
and  at  last  they  began  to  fight  among  themselves,  and  forgot  all 
about  the  youth  and  Dapplegrim,  and  did  them  no  harm. 

And  now  the  youth  rode  onwards  for  a  long,  long  time,  over 
hill  and  dale,  over  rocky  places  and  morasses,  and  then  Dapple- 
grim  began  to  listen  again,  and  asked  the  youth  if  he  heard  any- 
thing now. 

'  Yes ;  now  I  hear  such  a  dreadful  crackling  and  crashing  in  the 
forest  on  every  side  that  I  think  I  shall  be  really  afraid,'  said  the 
youth. 

'  That  is  all  the  wild  beasts  in  the  forest,'  said  Dapplegrim  ; 
'  they  are  sent  out  to  stop  us.  But  just  throw  out  the  twelve  car- 
casses of  the  oxen,  and  they  will  be  so  much  occupied  with  them  that 
they  will  quite  forget  us.'  So  the  youth  threw  out  the  carcasses  of 
the  oxen,  and  then  all  the  wild  beasts  in  the  forest,  both  bears  and 


DAPPLEGRIM. 


253 


wolves,  and  lions,  and  grirn  beasts  of  all  kinds,  came.  But  when 
they  caught  sight  of  the  carcasses  of  the  oxen  they  began  to  fight 
for  them  till  the  blood  flowed,  and  they  entirely  forgot  Dapplegrim 
and  the  youth. 

So  the  youth  rode  onwards  again,  and  many  and  many  were 
the  new  scenes  they  saw,  for  travelling  on  Dapplegrim's  back  was 
not  travelling  slowly,  as  may  be  imagined,  and  then  Dapplegrim 
neighed. 

'  Do  you  hear  anything  ?    he  said. 


'  Yes  ;  I  heard  something  like  a  foal  neighing  quiteFplainly 
a  long,  long  way  off,'  answered  the  youth. 

'  That's  a  full-grown  colt,'  said  Dapplegrim,  '  if  you  hear  it  so 
plainly  when  it  is  so  far  away  from  us.' 

So  they  travelled  onwards  a  long  time,  and  saw  one  new  scene 
after  another  once  more.  Then  Dapplegrim  neighed  again. 

'  Do  you  hear  anything  now  ?  '  said  he. 

'  Yes  ;  now  I  heard  it  quite  distinctly,  and  it  neighed  like  a  full- 
grown  horse,'  answered  the  youth. 

1  Yes,  and  you  will  hear  it  again  very  soon,'  said  Dapplegrim ; 


254  LAPPLEGEIM 

'  and  then  you  will  hear  what  a  voice  it  has.'  So  ney  travelled  on 
through  many  more  different  kinds  of  country,  and  then  Dapple- 
grim  neighed  for  the  third  time ;  but  before  he  could  ask  the  youth 
if  he  heard  anything,  there  was  such  a  neighing  on  the  other  side 
of  the  heath  that  the  youth  thought  that  hills  and  rocks  would  be 
rent  in  pieces. 

'  Now  he  is  here  ! '  said  Dapplegrim.  '  Be  quick,  and  fling  over 
me  the  ox-hides  that  have  the  spikes  in  them,  throw  the  twelve 
tons  of  tar  over  the  field,  and  climb  up  into  that  great  spruce  fir 
tree.  When  he  comes,  fire  will  spurt  out  of  both  his  nostrils,  and 
then  the  tar  will  catch  fire.  Now  mark  what  I  say — if  the  flame 
ascends  I  conquer,  and  if  it  sinks  I  fail ;  but  if  you  see  that  I  am 
winning,  fling  the  bridle,  which  you  must  take  off  me,  over  his 
head,  and  then  he  will  become  quite  gentle.' 

Just  as  the  youth  had  flung  all  the  hides  with  the  spikes  over 
Dapplegrim,  and  the  tar  over  the  field,  and  had  got  safely  up  into 
the  spruce  fir,  a  horse  came  with  flame  spouting  from  his  nostrils, 
and  the  tar  caught  fire  in  a  moment ;  and  Dapplegrim  and  the 
horse  began  to  fight  until  the  stones  leapt  up  to  the  sky.  They 
bit,  and  they  fought  with  their  fore  legs  and  their  hind  legs,  and 
sometimes  the  youth  looked  at  them,  and  sometimes  he  looked 
at  the  tar,  but  at  last  the  flames  began  to  rise,  for  wheresoever 
the  strange  horse  bit  or  wheresoever  he  kicked  he  hit  upon 
the  spikes  in  the  hides,  and  at  length  he  had  to  yield.  "When 
the  youth  saw  that,  he  was  not  long  in  getting  down  from  the  tree 
and  flinging  the  bridle  over  the  horse's  head,  and  then  he  became 
so  tame  that  he  might  have  been  led  by  a  thin  string. 

This  horse  was  dappled  too,  and  so  like  Dapplegrim  that  no 
one  could  distinguish  the  one  from  the  other.  The  youth  seated 
himself  on  the  dappled  horse  which  he  had  captured,  and  rode 
home  again  to  the  King's  palace,  and  Dapplegrim  ran  loose  by  his 
side.  When  he  got  there,  the  King  was  standing  outside  in  the 
courtyard. 

'  Can  you  tell  me  which  is  the  horse  I  have  caught,  and  which 
is  the  one  I  had  before?  '  said  the  yoith.  '  If  you  can't,  I  think 
your  daughter  is  mine.' 

The  King  went  and  looked  at  both  the  dappled  horses ;  he 
looked  high  and  he  looked  low,  he  looked  before  and  he  looked 
behind,  but  there  was  not  a  hair's  difference  between  the  two. 

'  No,'  said  the  King ;  '  that  I  cannot  tell  thee,  and  as  thou  hast 
procured  such  a  splendid  bridal  horse  for  my  daughter  thou  shalt 


DAPPLEGRIM  255 

have  her  ;  but  first  we  must  have  one  more  trial,  just  to  see  if  thou 
art  fated  to  have  her.  She  shall  hide  herself  twice,  and  then  thoii 
shalt  hide  thyself  twice.  If  thoti  canst  find  her  each  time  that 
she  hides  herself,  and  if  she  cannot  find  thee  in  thy  hiding-places, 
then  it  is  fated,  and  thou  shalt  have  the  Princess.' 

'  That,  too,  was  not  in  our  bargain,'  said  the  youth.  '  But  we  will 
make  this  trial  since  it  must  be  so.' 

So  the  King's  daughter  was  to  hide  herself  first. 

Then  she  changed  herself  into  a  duck,  and  lay  swimming  in  a 
lake  that  was  just  outside  the  palace.  But  the  youth  went  down 
into  the  stable  and  asked  Dapplegrim  what  she  had  done  with  her- 
self. 

'  Oh,  all  that  you  have  to  do  is  to  take  your  gun,  and  go  down  to 
the  water  and  aim  at  the  duck  which  is  swimming  about  there, 
and  she  will  soon  discover  herself,'  said  Dapplegrim. 

The  youth  snatched  up  his  gun  and  ran  to  the  lake.  '  I  will 
iust  have  a  shot  at  that  duck,'  said  he,  and  began  to  aim  at  it. 

'  Oh,  no,  dear  friend,  don't  shoot !  It  is  I,'  said  the  Princess. 
So  he  had  found  her  once. 

The  second  time  the  Princess  changed  herself  into  a  loaf,  and 
laid  herself  on  the  table  among  four  other  loaves ;  and  she  was  so 
like  the  other  loaves  that  no  one  could  see  any  difference  between 
them. 

But  the  youth  again  went  down  to  the  stable  to  Dapplegrim, 
and  told  him  that  the  Princess  had  hidden  herself  again,  and  that 
he  had  not  the  least  idea  what  had  become  of  her. 

'  Oh,  just  take  a  very  large  bread-knife,  sharpen  it,  and  pretend 
that  you  are  going  to  cut  straight  through  the  third  of  the  four 
loaves  which  are  lying  on  the  kitchen  table  in  the  King's  palace 
— count  them  from  right  to  left— and  you  will  soon  find  her,'  said 
Dapplegrim. 

So  the  youth  went  up  to  the  kitchen,  and  began  to  sharpen  the 
largest  bread-knife  that  he  could  find  ;  then  he  caught  hold  of  the 
third  loaf  on  the  left-hand  side,  and  put  the  knife  to  it  as  if  he 
meant  to  cut  it  straight  in  two.  '  I  will  have  a  bit  of  this  bread 
for  myself,'  said  he. 

'  No,  dear  friend,  don't  cut,  it  is  I !  '  said  the  Princess  again ; 
so  he  had  found  her  the  second  time. 

And  now  it  was  his  turn  to  go  and  hide  himself ;  but  Dapplegrirn 
had  given  him  such  good  instructions  that  it  was  not  easy  to  find 
him.  First  he  turned  himself  into  a  horse-fly,  and  hid  himself  in 


2ob  DAPPLEGRIM 

Dapplegrirn's  left  nostril.  The  Princess  went  poking  about  and 
searching  everywhere,  high  and  low,  and  wanted  to  go  into 
Dapplegrim's  stall  too,  but  he  began  to  bite  and  kick  about  so 
that  she  was  afraid  to  go  there,  and  could  not  find  the  youth. 
'  Well,'  said  she,  '  as  I  am  unable  to  find  you,  you  must  show  your- 
self; '  whereupon  the  youth  immediately  appeared  standing  there 
on  the  stable  floor. 

Dapplegrim  told  him  what  he  was  to  do  the  second  time,  and 
he  turned  himself  into  a  lump  of  earth,  and  stuck  himself  between 
the  hoof  and  the  shoe  on  Dapplegrim's  left  fore  foot.  Once  more 
the  King's  daughter  went  and  sought  everywhere,  inside  and  out- 
side, iintil  at  last  she  came  into  the  stable,  and  wanted  to  go  into 
the  stall  beside  Dapplegrim.  So  this  time  he  allowed  her  to  go 
into  it,  and  she  peered  about  high  and  low,  but  she  could  not  look 
under  his  hoofs,  for  he  stood  much  too  firmly  on  his  legs  for  that, 
and  she  could  not  find  the  youth. 

'  Well,  you  will  just  have  to  show  where  you  are  yourself,  for  I 
can't  find  you,'  said  the  Princess,  and  in  an  instant  the  youth  was 
standing  by  her  side  on  the  floor  of  the  stable. 

'  Now  you  are  mine  ! '  said  he  to  the  Princess. 

'  Now  you  can  see  that  it  is  fated  that  she  should  be  mine,'  he 
said  to  the  King. 

'  Yes,  fated  it  is,'  said  the  King.     '  So  what  must  be,  must.' 

Then  everything  was  made  ready  for  the  wedding  with  great 
splendour  and  promptitude,  and  the  youth  rode  to  church  on 
Dapplegrim,  and  the  King's  daughter  on  the  other  horse.  So  every- 
one must  see  that  they  could  not  be  long  on  their  way  thither.1 

1  Prom  J.  Moe. 


257 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 


ONCE  upon  a  time,  in  the  reign  of  King  Cambrinus,  there  lived  at 
Avesnes  one  of  his  lords,  who  was  the  finest  man — by  which  I 
mean  the  fattest — in  the  whole  country  of  Flanders.  He  ate  four 
meals  a  day,  slept  twelve  hours  out  of  the  twenty-four,  and  the  only 
thing  he  ever  did  was  to  shoot  at  small  birds  with  his  bow  and 
arrow. 

Still,  with  all  his  practice  he  shot  very  badly,  he  was  so  fat  and 
heavy,  and  as  he  grew  daily  fatter,  he  was  at  last  obliged  to  give  up 
walking,  and  be  dragged  about  in  a  wheel-chair,  and  the  people 
made  fun  of  hirn,  and  gave  him  the  name  of  my  Lord  Tubby. 

Now,  the  only  trouble  that  Lord  Tubby  had  was  about  his  son, 
whom  he  loved  very  much,  although  they  were  not  in  the  least 
alike,  for  the  young  Prince  was  as  thin  as  a  cuckoo.  And  what 
vexed  him  more  than  all  was,  that  though  the  young  ladies  through- 
out all  his  lands  did  their  best  to  make  the  Prince  fall  in  love  with 
them,  he  would  have  nothing  to  say  to  any  of  them,  and  told  his 
father  he  did  not  wish  to  marry. 

Instead  of  chatting  with  them  in  the  dusk,  he  wandered  about 
the  woods,  whispering  to  the  moon.  No  wonder  the  young  ladies 
thought  him  very  odd,  but  they  liked  him  all  the  better  for  that ; 
and  as  he  had  received  at  his  birth  the  name  of  Desire,  they  all 
called  him  d'Amour  Desire. 

'  What  is  the  matter  with  you  ?  '  his  father  often  said  to  him. 
'  You  have  everything  you  can  possibly  wish  for  :  a  good  bed,  good 
food,  and  tuns  full  of  beer.  The  only  thing  you  want,  in  order  to 
become  as  fat  as  a  pig,  is  a  wife  that  can  bring  yoiT  broad,  rich 
lands.  So  marry,  and  you  will  be  perfectly  happy.' 

'  I  ask  nothing  better  than  to  marry,'  replied  Desire,  'but  I  have 
never  seen  a  woman  that  pleases  me.     All  the  girls  here  are  pinl 
and  white,  and  I  am  tired  to  death  of  their  eternal  lilie    and  roses. 
R.  s 


258  THE  ENCHANTED   CANABY 

'  My  faith !  '  cried  Tubby ;  '  do  you  want  to  marry  a  negress, 
and  give  me  grandchildren  as  ugly  as  monkeys  and  as  stupid  as 
owls  ? ' 

'  No,  father,  nothing  of  the  sort.  But  there  must  be  women 
somewhere  in  the  world  who  are  neither  pink  nor  white,  and  I  tell 
you,  once  for  all,  that  I  will  never  marry  until  I  have  found  one 
exactly  to  my  taste.' 

II 

Some  time  afterwards,  it  happened  that  the  Prior  of  the  Abbey 
of  Saint  Amand  sent  to  the  Lord  of  Avesnes  a  basket  of  oranges,  with 
a  beautifully-written  letter  saying  that  these  golden  fruit,  then  un- 
known in  Flanders,  came  straight  from  a  land  where  the  sun  always 
shone. 

That  evening  Tubby  and  his  son  ate  the  golden  apples  at  supper, 
and  thought  them  delicious. 

Next  morning  as  the  day  dawned,  Desire  went  down  to  the 
stable  and  saddled  his  pretty  white  horse.  Then  he  went,  all  dressed 
for  a  journey,  to  the  bedside  of  Tubby,  and  found  him  smoking  his 
first  pipe. 

'  Father,'  he  said  gravely,  '  I  have  come  to  bid  you  farewell. 
Last  night  I  dreamed  that  I  was  walking  in  a  wood,  where  the 
trees  were  covered  with  golden  apples.  I  gathered  one  of  them, 
and  when  I  opened  it  there  came  out  a  lovely  princess  with  a 
golden  skin.  That  is  the  wife  I  want,  and  I  am  going  to  look  for 
her.' 

The  Lord  of  Avesnes  was  so  much  astonished  that  he  let  his  pipe 
fall  to  the  ground  ;  then  he  became  so  diverted  at  the  notion  of  his 
son  marrying  a  yellow  woman,  and  a  woman  shut  up  inside  an 
orange,  that  he  burst  into  fits  of  laughter. 

Desir4  waited  to  bid  him  good-bye  until  he  was  quiet  again  ; 
but  as  his  father  went  on  laughing  and  showed  no  signs  of  stopping, 
the  young  man  took  his  hand,  kissed  it  tenderly,  opened  the  door, 
and  in  the  twinkling  of  an  eye  was  at  the  bottom  of  the  staircase. 
He  jumped  lightly  on  his  horse,  and  was  a  mile  from  home  before 
Tubby  had  ceased  laughing. 

'  A  yellow  wife  !  He  must  be  mad !  fit  for  a  strait  waistcoat !  ' 
cried  the  good  man,  when  he  was  able  to  speak.  '  Here  !  quick  ! 
bring  him  back  to  me.' 

The  servants  mounted  their  horses  and  rode  after  the  Prince ; 
but  as  they  did  not  know  which  road  he  had  taken,  they  went  all 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY  259 

ways  except  the  right  one,  and  instead  of  bringing  him  back  they 
returned  themselves  when  it  grew  dark,  with  their  horses  worn  out 
and  covered  with  dust. 

Ill 

When  Desire  thought  they  could  no  longer  catch  him,  he  pulled 
his  horse  into  a  walk,  like  a  prudent  man  who  knows  he  has  far  to 


go.  He  travelled  in  this  way  for  many  weeks,  passing  by  villages, 
towns,  mountains,  valleys,  and  plains,  but  always  pushing  south, 
where  every  day  the  sun  seemed  hotter  and  more  brilliant. 

At  last  one  day  at  sunset  Desire  felt  the  sun  so  warm,  that  he 
thought  he  must  now  be  near  the  place  of  his  dream.  He  was  at 
that  moment  close  to  the  corner  of  a  wood  where  stood  a  little  hut, 
before  the  door  of  which  his  horse  stopped  of  his  own  accord.  An 

82 


260  THE  ENCHANTED   CANAET 

old  man  with  a  white  beard  was  sitting  on  the  doorstep  enjoying 
the  fresh  air.  The  Prince  got  down  from  his  horse  and  asked  leave 
to  rest. 

'  Come  in,  my  young  friend,'  said  the  old  man  ;  '  my  house  is  not 
large,  but  it  is  big  enough  to  hold  a  stranger.' 

The  traveller  entered,  and  his  host  put  before  him  a  simple  meal. 
When  his  hunger  was  satisfied  the  old  man  said  to  him  : 

'  If  I  do  not  mistake,  you  come  from  far.  May  I  ask  where  you 
are  going  ? ' 

'  I  will  tell  you,'  answered  Desire,  '  though  most  likely  you  will 
laugh  at  me.  I  dreamed  that  in  the  land  of  the  sun  there  was  a 
wood  full  of  orange  trees,  and  that  in  one  of  the  oranges  I  should 
find  a  beautiful  princess  who  is  to  be  my  wife.  It  is  she  I  am 
seeking." 

'  Why  should  I  laiigh  ?  '  asked  the  old  man.  '  Madness  in  youth 
is  true  wisdom.  Go,  young  man,  follow  your  dream,  and  if  you  do 
not  find  the  happiness  that  you  seek,  at  any  rate  you  will  have  had 
the  happiness  of  seeking  it.' 

IV 

The  next  day  the  Prince  arose  early  and  took  leave  of  his  host. 

'  The  wood  that  you  saw  in  your  dream  is  not  far  from  here,' 
said  the  old  man.  '  It  is  in  the  depth  of  the  forest,  and  this  road 
will  lead  you  there.  You  will  come  to  a  vast  park  surrounded  by 
high  walls.  In  the  middle  of  the  park  is  a  castle,  where  dwells  a 
horrible  witch  who  allows  no  living  being  to  enter  the  doors.  Be- 
hind the  castle  is  the  orange  grove.  Follow  the  wall  till  you  come 
to  a  heavy  iron  gate.  Don't  try  to  press  it  open,  but  oil  the  hinges 
with  this,'  and  the  old  man  gave  him  a  small  bottle. 

'  The  gate  will  open  of  itself,'  he  continued,  '  and  a  huge  dog 
which  guards  the  castle  will  come  to  you  with  his  mouth  wide  open, 
but  just  throw  him  this  oat  cake.  Next,  you  will  see  a  baking 
woman  leaning  over  her  heated  oven.  Give  her  this  brush. 
Lastly,  you  will  find  a  well  on  your  left ;  do  not  forget  to  take  the 
cord  of  the  bucket  and  spread  it  in  the  sun.  When  you  have  done 
this,  do  not  enter  the  castle,  but  go  round  it  and  enter  the  orange 
grove.  Then  gather  three  oranges,  and  get  back  to  the  gate  as  fast 
as  you  can.  Once  out  of  the  gate,  leave  the  forest  by  the  opposite 
ide. 

'  Now,  attend  to  this  :  whatever  happens,  do  not  open  your  oranges 
till  you  reach  the  bank  of  a  river,  or  a  fountain.  Out  of  each  orange 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY  261 

will  come  a  princess,  and  you  can  choose  which  you  like  for  your 
wife.  Your  choice  once  made,  be  very  careful  never  to  leave  your 
bride  for  an  instant,  and  remember  that  the  danger  which  is  most 
to  be  feared  is  never  the  danger  we  are  most  afraid  of.' 


Desire  thanked  his  host  warmly,  and  took  the  road  he  pointed 
out.  In  less  than  an  horn-  he  arrived  at  the  wall,  which  was  very 
high  indeed.  He  sprang  to  the  ground,  fastened  his  horse  to  a  tree, 
and  soon  found  the  iron  gate.  Then  he  took  out  his  bottle  and  oiled 
the  hinges,  when  the  gate  opened  of  itself,  and  he  saw  an  old  castle 
standing  inside.  The  Prince  entered  boldly  into  the  courtyard. 

Suddenly  he  heard  fierce  howls,  and  a  dog  as  tall  as  a  donkey, 
with  eyes  like  billiard  balls,  came  towards  him,  showing  his  teeth, 
which  were  like  the  prongs  of  a  fork.  Desire  flung  him  the  oat 
cake,  which  the  great  dog  instantly  snapped  up,  and  the  young 
Prince  passed  quietly  on. 

A  few  yards  further  he  saw  a  huge  oven,  with  a  wide, 
red-hot  gaping  mouth.  A  woman  as  tall  as  a  giant  was  leaning 
over  the  oven.  Desire  gave  her  the  brush,  which  she  took  in 
silence. 

Then  he  went  on  to  the  well,  drew  up  the  cord,  which  was  half- 
rotten,  and  stretched  it  out  in  the  sun. 

Lastly  he  went  round  the  castle,  and  plunged  into  the  orange 
grove.  There  he  gathered  the  three  most  beautiful  oranges  he  could 
find,  and  turned  to  go  back  to  the  gate. 

But  just  at  this  moment  the  sun  was  darkened,  the  earth  trembled, 
and  Desire  heard  a  voice  crying  : 

'  Baker,  baker,  take  him  by  his  feet,  and  throw  him  into  the  oven  ! ' 

'  No,'  replied  the  baker ;  '  a  long  time  has  passed  since  I  first 
began  to  scour  this  oven  with  my  own  flesh.  You  never  cared  to 
give  me  a  brush  ;  but  he  has  given  me  one,  and  he  shall  go  in  peace.' 

'  Rope,  O  rope  ! '  cried  the  voice  again,  '  twine  yourself  round 
his  neck  and  strangle  him.' 

'  Xo,'  replied  the  rope;  'you  have  left  me  for  many  years  past 
to  fall  to  pieces  with  the  damp.  He  has  stretched  me  out  in  the 
sun.  Let  him  go  in  peace.' 

'  Dog,  my  good  dog,'  cried  the  voice,  more  and  more  angry, 
'jump  at  his  throat  and  eat  him  up.' 

'  No,'  replied  the  dog  ;  '  though  I  have  served  you  long,  you  never 


262 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 


gave  me  any  bread.     He  has  given  me  as  much  as  I  want.     Let 
him  go  in  peace.' 

'  Iron  gate,  iron  gate,'  cried  the  voice,  growling  like  thunder, 
'  fall  on  him  and  grind  him  to  powder.' 


1  No,'  replied  the  gate  ;  '  it  is  a  hundred  years  since  you  left  me 
to  rust,  and  he  has  oiled  me.     Let  him  go  in  peace.' 


VI 

Once  outside,  the  young  adventurer  put  his  oranges  into  a  bag 
that  hung  from  his  saddle,  mounted  his  horse,  and  rode  quickly  out 
of  the  forest. 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANAEY  263 

Now,  as  he  was  longing  to  see  the  princesses,  he  was  very  anxious 
to  come  to  a  river  or  a  fountain,  but,  though  he  rode  for  hours,  a 
river  or  fountain  was  nowhere  to  be  seen.  Still  his  heart  was  light, 
for  he  felt  that  he  had  got  through  the  most  difficult  part  of  his  task 
and  the  rest  was  easy. 

About  mid-day  he  reached  a  sandy  plain,  scorching  in  the  sun. 
Here  he  was  seized  with  dreadful  thirst ;  he  took  his  gourd  and 
raised  it  to  his  lips. 

But  the  gourd  was  empty ;  in  the  excitement  of  his  joy  he  had 
forgotten  to  fill  it.  He  rode  on,  struggling  with  his  sufferings,  but 
at  last  he  could  bear  it  no  longer. 

He  let  himself  slide  to  the  earth,  and  lay  down  beside  his  horse, 
his  throat  burning,  his  chest  heaving,  and  his  head  going  round. 
Already  he  felt  that  death  was  near  him,  when  his  eyes  fell  on  the 
bag  where  the  oranges  peeped  out. 

Poor  Desire,  who  had  braved  so  many  dangers  to  win  the  lady 
of  his  dreams,  would  have  given  at  this  moment  all  the  princesses 
in  the  world,  were  they  pink  or  golden,  for  a  single  drop  of  water. 

'  Ah  ! '  he  said  to  himself.  '  If  only  these  oranges  were  real  fruit — 
fruit  as  refreshing  as  what  I  ate  in  Flanders  !  And,  after  all,  who 
knows  ?  ' 

This  idea  put  some  life  into  him.  He  had  the  strength  to  lift 
himself  up  and  put  his  hand  into  his  bag.  He  drew  out  an  orange 
and  opened  it  with  his  knife. 

Out  of  it  flew  the  prettiest  little  female  canary  that  ever  was 
seen. 

1  Give  me  something  to  drink,  I  am  dying  of  thirst,'  said  the 
golden  bird. 

'Wait  a  minute,'  replied  Desire,  so  much  astonished  that  he 
forgot  his  own  siifferings ;  and  to  satisfy  the  bird  he  took  a  second 
orange,  and  opened  it  without  thinking  what  he  was  doing.  Out 
of  it  flew  another  canary,  and  she  too  began  to  cry : 

'  I  am  dying  of  thirst ;  give  me  something  to  drink.' 

Then  Tubby's  son  saw  his  folly,  and  while  the  two  canaries 
flew  away  he  sank  on  the  ground,  where,  exhausted  by  his  last 
effort,  he  lay  unconscious. 

VII 

When  he  came  to  himself,  he  had  a  pleasant  feeling  of  freshness 
all  about  him.  It  was  night,  the  sky  was  sparkling  with  stars,  and 
the  earth  was  covered  with  a  heavy  dew. 


264  THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 

The  traveller  having  recovered,  mounted  his  horse,  and  at  the 
first  streak  of  dawn  he  saw  a  stream  dancing  in  front  of  him,  and 
stooped  down  and  drank  his  fill. 

He  hardly  had  courage  to  open  his  last  orange.  Then  he  re- 
membered that  the  night  before  he  had  disobeyed  the  orders  of  the 
old  man.  Perhaps  his  terrible  thirst  was  a  trick  of  the  cunning 
witch,  and  suppose,  even  though  he  opened  the  orange  on  the 
banks  of  the  stream,  that  he  did  not  find  in  it  the  princess  that  he 
sought  ? 

He  took  his  knife  and  cut  it  open.  Alas !  out  of  it  flew  a  little 
canary,  just  like  the  others,  who  cried : 

'  I  am  thirsty ;  give  me  something  to  drink.' 

Great  was  the  disappointment  of  Desire.  However,  he  was 
determined  not  to  let  this  bird  fly  away  ;  so  he  took  up  some  water 
in  the  palm  of  his  hand  and  held  it  to  its  beak. 

Scarcely  had  the  canary  drunk  when  she  became  a  beautiful 
girl,  tall  and  straight  as  a  poplar  tree,  with  black  eyes  and  a  golden 
skin.  Desire  had  never  seen  anyone  half  so  lovely,  and  he  stood 
gazing  at  her  in  delight. 

On  her  side  she  seemed  quite  bewildered,  but  she  looked  about 
her  with  happy  eyes,  and  was  not  at  all  afraid  of  her  deliverer. 

He  asked  her  name.  She  answered  that  she  was  called  the 
Princess  Zizi ;  she  was  about  sixteen  years  old,  and  for  ten  years  of 
that  time  the  witch  had  kept  her  shut  up  in  an  orange,  in  the 
shape  of  a  canary. 

'  Well,  then,  my  charming  Zizi,'  said  the  young  Prince,  who 
was  longing  to  marry  her,  'let  us  ride  away  quickly  so  as  to 
escape  from  the  wicked  witch.' 

But  Zizi  wished  to  know  where  he  meant  to  take  her. 

'  To  my  father's  castle,'  he  said. 

He  mounted  his  horse  and  took  her  in  front  of  him,  and,  holding 
her  carefully  in  his  arms,  they  began  their  journey. 

VIII 

Everything  the  Princess  saw  was  new  to  her,  and  in  passing 
through  mountains,  valleys,  and  towns,  she  asked  a  thousand 
questions.  Desire  was  charmed  to  answer  them.  It  is  so  delightful 
to  teach  those  one  loves  ! 

Once  she  inquired  what  the  girls  in  his  country  were  like. 

1  They  are  pink  and  white,'  he  replied,  '  and  their  eyes  are  blue.' 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY  265 

'  Do  you  like  blue  eyes  ?  '  said  the  Princess  ;  but  Desire  thought 
it  was  a  good  opportunity  to  find  out  what  was  in  her  heart,  so  he 
did  not  answer. 

'  And  no  doubt,'  went  on  the  Princess,  '  one  of  them  is  your 
intended  bride  ?  ' 

Still  he  was  silent,  and  Zizi  drew  herself  up  proudly. 

'  No,'  he  said  at  last.  '  None  of  the  girls  of  my  own  country 
are  beautiful  in  my  eyes,  and  that  is  why  I  came  to  look  for  a  wife 
in  the  land  of  the  sun.  Was  I  wrong,  my  lovely  Zizi  ?  ' 

This  time  it  was  Zizi's  turn  to  be  silent. 

IX 

Talking  in  this  way  they  drew  near  to  the  castle.  When  they 
were  about  four  stone-throws  from  the  gates  they  dismounted  in 
the  forest,  by  the  edge  of  a  fountain. 

'  My  dear  Zizi,'  said  Tubby 's  son,  '  we  cannot  present  ourselves 
before  ray  father  like  two  common  people  who  have  come  back 
from  a  walk.  We  must  enter  the  castle  with  more  ceremony. 
Wait  for  me  here,  and  in  an  hour  I  will  return  with  carriages  and 
horses  fit  for  a  princess.' 

'  Don't  be  long,'  replied  Zizi,  and  she  watched  him  go  with 
wistful  eyes. 

When  she  was  left  by  herself  the  poor  girl  began  to  feel  afraid. 
She  was  alone  for  the  first  time  in  her  life,  and  in  the  middle  of  a 
thick  forest. 

Suddenly  she  heard  a  noise  among  the  trees.  Fearing  lest  it 
should  be  a  wolf,  she  hid  herself  in  the  hollow  trunk  of  a  willow 
tree  which  hung  over  the  fountain.  It  was  big  enough  to  hold 
her  altogether,  but  she  peeped  out,  and  her  pretty  head  was  re- 
flected in  the  clear  water. 

Then  there  appeared,  not  a  wolf,  but  a  creature  quite  as  wicked 
and  quite  as  ugly.  Let  us  see  who  this  creature  was. 


Not  far  from  the  fountain  there  lived  a  family  of  bricklayers. 
Now,  fifteen  years  before  this  time,  the  father  in  walking  through 
the  forest  found  a  little  girl,  who  had  been  deserted  by  the  gypsies. 
He  carried  her  home  to  his  wife,  and  the  good  woman  was  sorry 
for  her,  and  brought  her  up  with  her  own  sons.  As  she  grew 


266  THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 

older,  the  little  gypsy  became  much  more  remarkable  for  strength 
and  cunning  than  for  sense  or  beauty.  She  had  a  low  forehead, 
a  flat  nose,  thick  lips,  coarse  hair,  and  a  skin  not  golden  like  that 
of  Zizi,  but  the  colour  of  clay. 

As  she  was  always  being  teased  about  her  complexion,  she  got 
as  noisy  and  cross  as  a  titmoxise.  So  they  used  to  call  her  Titty. 

Titty  was  often  sent  by  the  bricklayer  to  fetch  water  from  the 
fountain,  and  as  she  was  very  proud  and  lazy  the  gypsy  disliked 
this  very  much. 

It  was  she  who  had  frightened  Zizi  by  appearing  with  her 
pitcher  on  her  shoulder.  Just  as  she  was  stooping  to  fill  it,  she 
saw  reflected  in  the  water  the  lovely  image  of  the  Princess. 

'  "What  a  pretty  face  !  '  she  exclaimed,  '  Why,  it  must  be 
mine  !  How  in  the  world  can  they  call  me  ugly  ?  I  am  certainly 
much  too  pretty  to  be  their  water-carrier ! ' 

So  saying,  she  broke  her  pitcher  and  went  home. 

'  Where  is  yoiir  pitcher  ?  '  asked  the  bricklayer. 

'  Well,  what  do  you  expect  ?  The  pitcher  may  go  many  times 
to  the  well.  .  .  .' 

'  But  at  last  it  is  broken.  Well,  here  is  a  bucket  that  will  not 
break.' 

The  gypsy  returned  to  the  fountain,  and  addressing  once  more 
the  image  of  Zizi,  she  said  : 

'  No ;  I  don't  mean  to  be  a  beast  of  burden  any  longer.'  And 
she  flung  the  bucket  so  high  in  the  air  that  it  stuck  in  the  branches 
of  an  oak. 

'  I  met  a  wolf,'  she  told  the  bricklayer,  '  and  I  broke  the  bucket 
across  his  nose.' 

The  bricklayer  asked  her  no  more  questions,  but  took  down  a 
broom  and  gave  her  such  a  beating  that  her  pride  was  humbled 
a  little. 

Then  he  handed  to  her  an  old  copper  milk-can,  and  said  : 

1  If  you  don't  bring  it  back  full,  your  bones  shall  suffer  for  it.' 

XI 

Titty  went  off  rubbing  her  sides ;  but  this  time  she  did  not  dare 
to  disobey,  and  in  a  very  bad  temper  stooped  down  over  the  well. 
It  was  not  at  all  easy  to  fill  the  milk-can,  which  was  large  and 
round.  It  would  not  go  down  into  the  well,  and  the  gypsy  had  to 
try  again  and  again. 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANAEY  267 

At  last  her  arms  grew  so  tired  that  when  she  did  manage  to  get 
the  can  properly  under  the  water  she  had  no  strength  to  pull  it  up, 
and  it  rolled  to  the  bottom. 

On  seeing  the  can  disappear,  she  made  such  a  miserable  face 


that  Zizi,  who  had  been  watching  her  all  this  time,  burst  into  fits  of 
laughter. 

Titty  turned  round  and  perceived  the  mistake  she  had  made  ; 
and  she  felt  so  angry  that  she  made  up  her  mind  to  be  revenged  at 
once. 


268  THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 

'  What  are  you  doing  there,  you  lovely  creature  ? '  she  said  to 
Zizi. 

'  I  am  waiting  for  my  lover,'  Zizi  replied ;  and  then,  with  a 
simplicity  quite  natural  in  a  girl  who  so  lately  had  been  a  canary, 
she  told  all  her  story. 

The  gypsy  had  often  seen  the  young  Prince  pass  by,  with  his 
gun  on  his  shoulder,  when  he  was  going  after  crows.  She  was  too 
ugly  and  ragged  for  him  ever  to  have  noticed  her,  but  Titty  on  her 
side  had  admired  him,  though  she  thought  he  might  well  have  been 
a  little  fatter. 

'  Dear,  dear !  '  she  said  to  herself.  '  So  he  likes  yellow  women  ! 
Why,  I  am  yeUow  too,  and  if  I  could  only  think  of  a  way ' 

It  was  not  long  before  she  did  think  of  it. 

'  What ! '  cried  the  sly  Titty, '  they  are  coming  with  great  pomp 
to  fetch  you,  and  you  are  not  afraid  to  show  yourself  to  so  many 
fine  lords  and  ladies  with  your  hair  down  like  that  ?  Get  down  at 
once,  my  poor  child,  and  let  me  dress  your  hair  for  you  ! ' 

The  innocent  Zizi  came  down  at  once,  and  stood  by  Titty.  The 
gypsy  began  to  comb  her  long  brown  locks,  when  suddenly  she  drew 
a  pin  from  her  stays,  and,  just  as  the  titmouse  digs  its  beak  into 
the  heads  of  linnets  and  larks,  Titty  dug  the  pin  into  the  head  of 
Zizi. 

No  sooner  did  Zizi  feel  the  prick  of  the  pin  than  she  became  a 
bird  again,  and,  spreading  her  wings,  she  flew  away. 

'  That  was  neatly  done,'  said  the  gypsy.  '  The  Prince  will  be 
clever  if  he  finds  his  bride.'  And,  arranging  her  dress,  she  seated 
herself  on  the  grass  to  await  Desire. 

XII 

Meanwhile  the  Prince  was  coming  as  fast  as  his  horse  could 
carry  him.  He  was  so  impatient  that  he  was  always  full  fifty 
yards  in  front  of  the  lords  and  ladies  sent  by  Tubby  to  bring  back 
Zizi. 

At  the  sight  of  the  hideous  gypsy  he  was  struck  dumb  with 
surprise  and  horror. 

'Ah  me ! '  said  Titty,  '  so  you  don't  know  your  poor  Zizi  ? 
While  you  were  away  the  wicked  witch  came,  and  turned  me  into 
this.  But  if  you  only  have  the  courage  to  marry  me  I  shall  get 
back  my  beauty.'  And  she  began  to  cry  bitterly. 

Now  the  good-natured  Desire  was  as  soft-hearted  as  he  was  brave. 


THE   ENCHANTED   CANARY 


269 


'  Poor  girl,'  he  thought  to  himself.  '  It  is  not  her  fault,  after  all, 
that  she  has  grown  so  ugly,  it  is  mine.  Oh  !  why  did  I  not  follow 
the  old  man's  advice  ?  Why  did  I  leave  her  alone  ?  And  besides,  it 
depends  on  me  to  break  the  spell,  and  I  love  her  too  much  to  let 
her  remain  like  this.' 

So  he  presented  the  gypsy  to  the  lords  and  ladies  of  the  Court, 
explaining  to  them  the  terrible  misfortune  which  had  befallen  his 
beautiful  bride. 

They  all  pretended  to  believe  it,  and  the  ladies  at  once  put  on 
the  false  princess  the  rich  dresses  they  had  brought  for  Zizi. 


She  was  then  perched  on  the  top  of  a  magnificent  ambling 
palfrey,  and  they  set  forth  to  the  castle. 

But  unluckily  the  rich  dress  and  jewels  only  made  Titty  look 
uglier  still,  and  Desire  could  not  help  feeling  hot  and  uncomfortable 
when  he  made  his  entry  with  her  into  the  city. 

Bells  were  pealing,  chimes  ringing,  and  the  people  filling  the 
streets  and  standing  at  their  doors  to  watch  the  procession  go  by, 
and  they  could  hardly  believe  then:  eyes  as  they  saw  what  a  strange 
bride  their  Prince  had  chosen. 

In  order  to  do  her  more  honour,  Tubby  came  to  meet  her  at  the 


270  THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 

foot  of  the  great  marble  staircase.  At  the  sight  of  the  hideous 
creature  he  almost  fell  backwards. 

'  What  1 '  he  cried.     '  Is  this  the  wonderful  beauty  ?  ' 

'  Yes,  father,  it  is  she,'  replied  Desire  with  a  sheepish  look.  '  But 
she  has  been  bewitched  by  a  wicked  sorceress,  and  will  not  regain 
her  beauty  until  she  is  my  wife.' 

'  Does  she  say  so  ?  Well,  if  you  believe  that,  you  may  drink  cold 
water  and  think  it  bacon,'  the  unhappy  Tubby  answered  crossly. 

But  all  the  same,  as  he  adored  his  son,  he  gave  the  gypsy  his 
hand  and  led  her  to  the  great  hall,  where  the  bridal  feast  was 
spread. 

XIII 

The  feast  was  excellent,  but  Desir£  hardly  touched  anything. 
However,  to  make  up,  the  other  guests  ate  greedily,  and,  as  for 
Tubby,  nothing  ever  took  away  his  appetite. 

When  the  moment  arrived  to  serve  the  roast  goose,  there  was  a 
pause,  and  Tubby  took  the  opportimity  to  lay  down  his  knife  and 
fork  for  a  little.  But  as  the  goose  gave  no  sign  of  appearing,  he 
sent  his  head  carver  to  find  out  what  was  the  matter  in  the  kitchen. 

Now  this  was  what  had  happened. 

While  the  goose  was  turning  on  the  spit,  a  beautiful  little 
canary  hopped  on  to  the  sill  of  the  open  window. 

'  Good-morning,  my  fine  cook,'  she  said  in  a  silvery  voice  to  the 
man  who  was  watching  the  roast. 

'  Good-morning,  lovely  golden  bird,'  replied  the  chief  of  the 
scullions,  who  had  been  well  brought  up. 

'  I  pray  that  Heaven  may  send  you  to  sleep,'  said  the  golden  bird, 
1  and  that  the  goose  may  burn,  so  that  there  may  be  none  left  for 
Titty.' 

And  instantly  the  chief  of  the  scullions  fell  fast  asleep,  and  the 
goose  was  burnt  to  a  cinder. 

When  he  awoke  he  was  horrified,  and  gave  orders  to  pluck 
another  goose,  to  stiiff  it  with  chestnuts,  and  put  it  on  the  spit. 

While  it  was  browning  at  the  fire,  Tubby  inquired  for  his  goose 
a  second  time.  The  Master  Cook  himself  mounted  to  the  hall  to 
make  his  excuses,  and  to  beg  his  lord  to  have  a  little  patience. 
Tubby  showed  his  patience  by  abusing  his  son. 

'  As  if  it  wasn't  enough,'  he  grumbled  between  his  teeth, '  that  the 
boy  should  pick  up  a  hag  without  a  penny,  but  the  goose  must  go  and 
burn  now.  It  isn't  a  wife  he  has  brought  me,  it  is  Famine  herself.' 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 


271 


XIV 

While  the  Master  Cook  was  xipstairs,  the  golden  bird  came  again 
to  perch  on  the  window-sill,  and  called  in  his  clear  voice  to  the  head 
scullion,  who  was  watching  the  spit : 

'  Good-morning,  my  fine  Scullion  !  ' 

'  Good-morning,  lovely  Golden  Bird,'  replied  the  Scullion,  whom 
the  Master  Cook  had  forgotten  in  his  excitement  to  warn. 


'  I  pray  Heaven,'  went  on  the  Canary,  '  that  it  will  send  you  to 
sleep,  and  that  the  goose  may  burn,  so  that  there  may  be  none  left 
for  Titty.' 

And  the  Scullion  fell  fast  asleep,  and  when  the  Master  Cook  came 
back  he  found  the  goose  as  black  as  the  chimney. 

In  a  fury  he  woke  the  Scullion,  who  in  order  to  save  himself 
from  blame  told  the  whole  story. 


272  THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY 

'  That  accursed  bird,'  said  the  Cook  ;  '  it  will  end  by  getting  me 
sent  away.  Come,  some  of  you,  and  hide  yourselves,  and  if  it  comes 
again,  catch  it  and  wring  its  neck.' 

He  spitted  a  third  goose,  lit  a  huge  fire,  and  seated  himself 
by  it. 

The  bird  appeared  a  third  time,  and  said  :  '  Good-morning,  my 
fine  Cook.' 

'  Good-morning,  lovely  Golden  Bird,'  replied  the  Cook,  as  if  no- 
thing had  happened,  and  at  the  moment  that  the  Canary  was  begin- 
ning, '  I  pray  Heaven  that  it  may  send,'  a  scullion  who  was  hidden 
outside  rushed  out  and  shut  the  shutters.  The  bird  flew  into  the 
kitchen.  Then  all  the  cooks  and  scullions  sprang  after  it,  knocking 
at  it  with  their  aprons.  At  length  one  of  them  caught  it  just  at  the 
very  moment  that  Tubby  entered  the  kitchen,  waving  his  sceptre. 
He  had  come  to  see  for  himself  why  the  goose  had  never  made  its 
appearance. 

The  Scullion  stopped  at  once,  just  as  he  was  about  to  wring  the 
Canary's  neck. 

XV 

'  Will  some  one  be  kind  enough  to  tell  me  the  meaning  of  all  this  ?  ' 
cried  the  Lord  of  Avesnes. 

'  Your  Excellency,  it  is  the  bird,'  replied  the  Scullion,  and  he 
placed  it  in  his  hand. 

'  Nonsense  !  What  a  lovely  bird ! '  said  Tubby,  and  in  stroking  its 
head  he  touched  a  pin  that  was  sticking  between  its  feathers.  He 
pulled  it  out,  and  lo !  the  Canary  at  once  became  a  beautiful  girl 
with  a  golden  skin  who  jumped  lightly  to  the  ground. 

'  Gracious  !  what  a  pretty  girl !  '  said  Tubby. 

'  Father  !  it  is  she  !  it  is  Zizi !  '  exclaimed  Desire,  who  entered 
at  this  moment. 

And  he  took  her  in  his  arms,  crying :  '  My  darling  Zi/i,  how  happy 
I  am  to  see  you  once  more  ! ' 

'  Well,  and  the  other  one  ?  '  asked  Tubby. 

The  other  one  was  stealing  quietly  to  the  door. 

'  Stop  her !    called  Tubby.     '  We  will  judge  her  cause  at  once.' 

And  he  seated  himself  solemnly  on  the  oven,  and  condemned 
Titty  to  be  burned  alive.  After  which  the  lords  and  cooks  formed 
themselves  in  lines,  and  Tubby  betrothed  Desire  to  Zizi. 


THE  ENCHANTED   CANARY  273 


XVI 

The  marriage  took  place  a  few  days  later.  All  the  boys  in  the 
country  side  were  there,  armed  with  wooden  swords,  and  decorated 
with  epaulets  made  of  gilt  paper. 

Zizi  obtained  Titty's  pardon,  and  she  was  sent  back  to  the  brick- 
fields, followed  and  hooted  at  by  all  the  boys.  And  this  is  why  to- 
day the  country  boys  always  throw  stones  at  a  titmouse. 

On  the  evening  of  the  wedding-day  all  the  larders,  cellars,  clip- 
boards and  tables  of  the  people,  whether  rich  or  poor,  were  loaded 
as  if  by  enchantment  with  bread,  wine,  beer,  cakes  and  tarts,  roast 
larks,  and  even  geese,  so  that  Tubby  could  not  complain  any  more 
that  his  son  had  married  Famine. 

Since  that  time  there  has  always  been  plenty  to  eat  in  that 
country,  and  since  that  time,  too,  you  see  in  the  midst  of  the  fair- 
haired  blue-eyed  women  of  Flanders  a  few  beautiful  girls,  whose 
pycs  are  black  and  whose  skins  are  the  colour  of  gold.  They  are 
the  descendants  of  Zizi.1 

1  Charles  Deulin,  Contes  tin  Roi  Gamlrinns. 


T. 


274 


THE   TWELVE  BEOTHERS 


rilHEEE  were  once  upon  a  time  a  King  and  a  Queen  who  lived 
J-  happily  together,  and  they  had  twelve  children,  all  of  whom 
were  boys.  One  day  the  King  said  to  his  wife  : 

'  If  our  thirteenth  child  is  a  girl,  all  her  twelve  brothers  must 
die,  so  that  she  may  be  very  rich  and  the  kingdom  hers  alone.' 

Then  he  ordered  twelve  coffins  to  be  made,  and  filled  them  with 
shavings,  and  placed  a  little  pillow  in  each.  These  he  put  away  in 
an  empty  room,  and,  giving  the  key  to  his  wife,  he  bade  her  tell  no 
one  of  it. 

The  Queen  grieved  over  the  sad  fate  of  her  sons  and  refused  to 
be  comforted,  so  much  so  that  the  youngest  boy,  who  was  always 
with  her,  and  whom  she  had  christened  Benjamin,  said  to  her  one 
day: 

'  Dear  mother,  why  are  you  so  sad  ?  ' 

'  My  child,'  she  answered,  '  I  may  not  tell  you  the  reason.' 

But  he  left  her  no  peace,  till  she  went  and  unlocked  the  room 
and  showed  him  the  twelve  coffins  filled  with  shavings,  and  with 
the  little  pillow  laid  in  each. 

Then  she  said :  '  My  dearest  Benjamin,  your  father  has  had 
these  coffins  made  for  you  and  your  eleven  brothers,  because  if  I 
bring  a  girl  into  the  world  you  are  all  to  be  killed  and  buried  in 
them." 

She  wept  bitterly  as  she  spoke,  but  her  son  comforted  her  and 
said : 

1  Don't  cry,  dear  mother  ;  we'll  manage  to  escape  somehow,  and 
will  fly  for  our  lives.' 

'  Yes,'  replied  his  mother,  '  that  is  what  you  must  do — go  with 
your  eleven  brothers  out  into  the  wood,  and  let  one  of  you  always 
sit  on  the  highest  tree  you  can  find,  keeping  watch  on  the  tower  of 
the  castle.  If  I  give  birth  to  a  little  son  I  will  wave  a  white 
flag,  and  then  you  may  safely  return  ;  but  if  I  give  birth  to  a  little 


THE    TWELVE  BROTHERS 


275 


daughter  I  will  wave  a  red  flag,  which  will  warn  you  to  fly  away  as 
quickly  as  you  can,  and  may  the  kind  Heaven  have  pity  on  you. 
Every  night  I  will  get  up  and  pray  for  you,  in  winter  that  you  may 
always  have  a  fire  to  warm  yourselves  by,  and  in  summer  that  you 
may  not  languish  in  the  heat.' 

Then  she  blessed  her  sons  and   they  set  out  into  the  wood. 


They  found  a  very  high  oak  tree,  and  fthere  they  sat,  turn  about, 
keeping  their  eyes  always  fixed  on  the  castle  tower.  On  the 
twelfth  day,  when  the  turn  came  to  Benjamin,  he  noticed  a  flag 
waving  in  the  air,  but  alas !  it  was  not  white,  but  blood  red,  the 
sign  which  told  them  they  must  all  die.  When  the  brothers  heard 
this  they  were  \ery  angry,  and  said  : 

'  Shall  we  forsooth  suffer  death  for  the  sake  of  a  wretched  girl  ? 

1-2 


276  THE   TWELVE  BROTHERS 

Let  us  swear  vengeance,  and  vow  that  wherever  and  whenever  we 
shall  meet  one  of  her  sex,  she  shall  die  at  our  hands.' 

Then  they  went  their  way  deeper  into  the  wood,  and  in  the 
middle  of  it,  where  it  was  thickest  and  darkest,  they  came  upon  a 
little  enchanted  house  which  stood  empty. 

'  Here,'  they  said, '  let  us  take  up  our  abode,  and  you,  Benjamin, 
you  are  the  youngest  and  weakest,  you  shall  stay  at  home  and  keep 
house  for  us  ;  we  others  will  go  out  and  fetch  food.'  So  they  went 
forth  into  the  wood,  and  shot  hares  and  roe-deer,  birds  and  wood- 
pigeons,  and  any  other  game  they  came  across.  They  always 
brought  their  spoils  home  to  Benjamin,  who  soon  learnt  to  make 
them  into  dainty  dishes.  So  they  lived  for  ten  years  in  this  little 
house,  and  the  time  slipped  merrily  away. 

In  the  meantime  their  little  sister  at  home  was  growing  up  quickly. 
She  was  kind-hearted  and  of  a  fair  countenance,  and  she  had  a  gold 
star  right  in  the  middle  of  her  forehead.  One  day  a  big  washing  was 
going  on  at  the  palace,  and  the  girl  looking  down  from  her  window 
saw  twelve  men's  shirts  hanging  up  to  dry,  and  asked  her  mother  : 

'  Who  in  the  world  do  these  shirts  belong  to  ?  Surely  they  are 
far  too  small  for  my  father  ?  ' 

And  the  Queen  answered  sadly  :  '  Dear  child,  they  belong  to  your 
twelve  brothers.' 

'  But  where  are  my  twelve  brothers  ?  '  said  the  girl.  '  I  have 
never  even  heard  of  them.' 

'  Heaven  alone  knows  in  what  part  of  the  wide  world  they  are 
wandering,'  replied  her  mother. 

Then  she  took  the  girl  and  opened  the  locked-up  room ;  she 
showed  her  the  twelve  coffins  filled  with  shavings,  and  with  the 
little  pillow  laid  in  each. 

'  These  coffins,'  she  said, '  were  intended  for  your  brothers,  but 
they  stole  secretly  away  before  you  were  born.' 

Then  she  proceeded  to  tell  her  all  that  had  happened,  and  when 
she  had  finished  her  daughter  said : 

'  Do  not  cry,  dearest  mother  ;  I  will  go  and  seek  my  brothers  till 
I  find  them.' 

So  she  took  the  twelve  shirts  and  went  on  straight  into  the 
middle  of  the  big  wood.  She  walked  all  day  long,  and  came  in  the 
evening  to  the  little  enchanted  house.  She  stepped  in  and  found  a 
youth  who,  marvelling  at  her  beauty,  at  the  royal  robes  she  wore, 
and  at  the  golden  star  on  her  forehead,  asked  her  where  she  came 
from  and  whither  she  was  going. 


TEE   TWELVE  BROTHERS  277 

'  I  am  a  Princess,'  she  answered, '  and  am  seeking  for  my  twelve 
brothers.  I  mean  to  wander  as  far  as  the  blue  sky  stretches  over 
the  earth  till  I  find  them.' 

Then  she  showed  him  the  twelve  shirts  which  she  had  taken 
with  her,  and  Benjamin  saw  that  it  must  be  his  sister,  and 
said : 

'  I  am  Benjamin,  your  youngest  brother.' 

So  they  wept  for  joy,  and  kissed  and  hugged  each  other  again 
and  again.  After  a  time  Benjamin  said : 

'  Dear  sister,  there  is  still  a  little  difficTilty,  for  we  had  all  agreed 
that  any  girl  we  met  should  die  at  our  hands,  because  it  was  for  the 
sake  of  a  girl  that  we  had  to  leave  our  kingdom.' 

'  But,'  she  replied, '  I  will  gladly  die  if  by  that  means  I  can  restore 
my  twelve  brothers  to  their  own.' 

'  No,'  he  answered,  '  there  is  no  need  for  that ;  only  go  and  hide 
under  that  tub  till  our  eleven  brothers  come  in,  and  I'll  soon  make 
matters  right  with  them.' 

She  did  as  she  was  bid,  and  soon  the  others  came  home  from 
the  chase  and  sat  down  to  supper. 

'  Well,  Benjamin,  what's  the  news  ?  '  they  asked. 

But  he  replied,  '  I  like  that ;  have  you  nothing  to  tell  me  ?  ' 

'  No,'  they  answered. 

Then  he  said  :  '  Well,  now,  you've  been  out  in  the  wood  all  the 
day  and  I've  stayed  quietly  at  home,  and  all  the  same  I  know  more 
than  you  do.' 

'  Then  tell  us,'  they  cried. 

But  he  answered :  '  Only  on  condition  that  you  promise  faith- 
fully that  the  first  girl  we  meet  shall  not  be  killed.' 

'  She  shall  be  spared,'  they  promised,  '  only  tell  us  the  news.' 

Then  Benjamin  said :  '  Our  sister  is  here  !  '  and  he  lifted  up  the 
tub  and  the  Princess  stepped  forward,  with  her  royal  robes  and  with 
the  golden  star  on  her  forehead,  looking  so  lovely  and  sweet  and 
charming  that  they  all  fell  in  love  with  her  on  the  spot. 

They  arranged  that  she  should  stay  at  home  with  Benjamin  and 
help  him  in  the  house  work,  while  the  rest  of  the  brothers  went  out 
into  the  wood  and  shot  hares  and  roe-deer,  birds  and  wood-pigeons. 
And  Benjamin  and  his  sister  cooked  their  meals  for  them.  She 
gathered  herbs  to  cook  the  vegetables  in,  fetched  the  wood,  and 
watched  the  pots  on  the  fire,  and  always  when  her  eleven  brothers 
returned  she  had  their  supper  ready  for  them.  Besides  this,  she 
kept  the  house  in  order,  tidied  all  the  rooms,  and  made  herself  so 


278 


THE   TWELVE  BROTHERS 


generally  useful  that  her  brothers  were  delighted,  and  they  all  lived 
happily  together. 

One  day  the  two  at  home  prepared  a  fine  feast,  and  when  they 
were  all  assembled  they  sat  down  and  ate  and  drank  and  made 
merry. 

Now  there  was  a  little  garden  round  the  enchanted  house,  in 


which  grew  twelve  tall  lilies.  The  girl,  wishing  to  please  her 
brothers,  plucked  the  twelve  flowers,  meaning  to  present  one  to 
each  of  them  as  they  sat  at  supper.  But  hardly  had  she  plucked 
the  flowers  when  her  brothers  were  turned  into  twelve  ravens,  who 
flew  croaking  over  the  wood,  and  the  house  and  garden  vanished 
also. 


THE   TWELVE  BROTHERS  279 

So  the  poor  girl  found  herself  left  all  alone  in  the  wood,  and  as 
she  looked  round  her  she  noticed  an  old  woman  standing  close 
beside  her,  who  said : 

'  My  child,  what  have  you  done  ?  Why  didn't  you  leave  the 
flowers  alone  ?  They  were  your  twelve  brothers.  Now  they  are 
changed  for  ever  into  ravens.' 

The  girl  asked,  sobbing  :  '  Is  there  no  means  of  setting  them 
free  ?  ' 

'  No,'  said  the  old  woman,  '  there  is  only  one  way  in  the  whole 
world,  and  that  is  so  difficult  that  you  won't  free  them  by  it,  for 
you  would  have  to  be  dumb  and  not  laugh  for  seven  years,  and  if 
you  spoke  a  single  word,  though  but  an  hour  were  wanting  to  the 
time,  your  silence  would  all  have  been  in  vain,  and  that  one  word 
would  slay  your  brothers.' 

Then  the  girl  said  to  herself :  '  If  that  is  all  I  am  quite  sure  I 
can  free  my  brothers.'  So  she  searched  for  a  high  tree,  and  when 
she  had  found  one  she  climbed  up  it  and  spun  all  day  long,  never 
laughing  or  speaking  one  word. 

Now  it  happened  one  day  that  a  King  who  was  hunting  in  the 
wood  had  a  large  greyhound,  who  ran  sniffing  to  the  tree  on  which 
the  girl  sat,  and  jumped  round  it,  yelping  and  barking  furiously. 
The  King's  attention  was  attracted,  and  when  he  looked  up  and  be- 
held the  beautiful  Princess  with  the  golden  star  on  her  forehead,  he 
was  so  enchanted  by  her  beauty  that  he  asked  her  on  the  spot  to 
be  his  wife.  She  gave  no  answer,  but  nodded  slightly  with  her 
head.  Then  he  climbed  up  the  tree  himself,  lifted  her  down,  put 
her  on  his  horse  and  bore  her  home  to  his  palace. 

The  marriage  was  celebrated  with  much  pomp  and  ceremony, 
but  the  bride  neither  spoke  nor  laughed. 

When  they  had  lived  a  few  years  happily  together,  the  King's 
mother,  who  was  a  wicked  old  woman,  began  to  slander  the  young 
Queen,  and  said  to  the  King : 

'  She  is  only  a  low-born  beggar  maid  that  you  have  married  ; 
who  knows  what  mischief  she  is  up  to  ?  If  she  is  deaf  and  can't 
speak,  she  might  at  least  laugh ;  depend  upon  it,  those  who  don't 
laugh  have  a  bad  conscience.'  At  first  the  King  paid  no  heed  to 
her  words,  but  the  old  woman  harped  so  long  on  the  subject,  and 
acciTsed  the  young  Queen  of  so  many  bad  things,  that  at  last  he  let 
himself  be  talked  over,  and  condemned  his  beautiful  wife  to  death. 

So  a  great  fire  was  lit  in  the  courtyard  of  the  palace,  where  she 
was  to  be  burnt,  and  the  King  watched  the  proceedings  from  an 


280 


THE   TWELVE  BROTHERS 


upper  window,  crying  bitterly  the  while,  for  he  still  loved  his  wife 
dearly.     But  just  as  she  had  been  bound  to  the  stake,  and  the 


flames  were  licking  her  garments  with  their  red  tongues,  the  very 
last  moment  of  the  seven  years  had  come.  Then  a  sudden  rushing 
sound .  was  heard  in  the  air,  and  twelve  ravens  were  seen  flying 


THE   TWELVE  BBOTHEES  281 

overhead.  They  swooped  downwards,  and  as  soon  as  they  touched 
the  ground  they  turned  into  her  twelve  brothers,  and  she  knew  that 
she  had  freed  them. 

They  quenched  the  flames  and  put  out  the  fire,  and,  unbinding 
their  dear  sister  from  the  stake,  they  kissed  and  hugged  her  again 
and  again.  And  now  that  she  was  able  to  open  her  mouth  and 
speak,  she  told  the  King  why  she  had  been  dumb  and  not  able  to 
laiigh. 

The  King  rejoiced  greatly  when  he  heard  she  was  innocent,  and 
they  all  lived  happily  ever  afterwards.1 

1  Grimm. 


282 


EAPUNZEL 

ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  a  man  and  his  wife  who  were  very 
unhappy  because  they  had  no  children.  These  good  people 
had  a  little  window  at  the  back  of  their  house,  which  looked  into 
the  most  lovely  garden,  full  of  all  manner  of  beautiful  flowers  and 
vegetables  ;  but  the  garden  was  surrounded  by  a  high  wall,  and  no 
one  dared  to  enter  it,  for  it  belonged  to  a  witch  of  great  power,  who 
was  feared  by  the  whole  world.  One  day  the  woman  stood  at  the 
window  overlooking  the  garden,  and  saw  there  a  bed  full  of  the 
finest  rampion :  the  leaves  looked  so  fresh  and  green  that  she  longed 
to  eat  them.  The  desire  grew  day  by  day,  and  just  because  she 
knew  she  couldn't  possibly  get  any,  she  pined  away  and  became 
quite  pale  and  wretched.  Then  her  husband  grew  alarmed  and 
said : 

'  What  ails  you,  dear  wife  ?  ' 

'  Oh,'  she  answered,  '  if  I  don't  get  some  rampion  to  eat  out  of 
the  garden  behind  the  house,  I  know  I  shall  die.' 

The  man,  who  loved  her  dearly,  thought  to  himself, '  Come  !  rather 
than  let  your  wife  die  you  shall  fetch  her  some  rampion,  no  matter 
the  cost.'  So  at  dusk  he  climbed  over  the  wall  into  the  witch's 
garden,  and,  hastily  gathering  a  handful  of  rampion  leaves,  he  re- 
turned with  them  to  his  wife.  She  made  them  into  a  salad,  which 
tasted  so  good  that  her  longing  for  the  forbidden  food  was  greater 
than  ever.  If  she  were  to  know  any  peace  of  mind,  there  was 
nothing  for  it  but  that  her  husband  should  climb  over  the  garden 
wall  again,  and  fetch  her  some  more.  So  at  dusk  over  he  got, 
but  when  he  reached  the  other  side  he  drew  back  in  terror,  for 
there,  standing  before  him,  was  the  old  witch. 

'  How  dare  you,'  she  said,  with  a  wrathful  glance,  '  climb  into 
my  garden  and  steal  my  rampion  like  a  common  thief  ?  You  shall 
suffer  for  your  foolhardiness.' 

'  Oh  !  '  he  implored,  '  pardon  my  presumption ;  necessity  alone 


RAPUNZEL  283 

drove  me  to  the  deed.  My  wife  saw  your  rampion  from  her  window  , 
and  conceived  such  a  desire  for  it  that  she  would  certainly  have 
died  if  her  wish  had  not  been  gratified.'  Then  the  Witch's  anger 
was  a  little  appeased,  and  she  said : 

'  If  it's  as  you  say,  you  may  take  as  much  rampion  away  with 
you  as  you  like,  but  on  one  condition  only — that  you  give  me  the 
child  your  wife  will  shortly  bring  into  the  world.  All  shall  go  well 
with  it,  and  I  will  look  after  it  like  a  mother." 

The  man  in  his  terror  agreed  to  everything  she  asked,  and  as  soon 
as  the  child  was  born  the  Witch  appeared,  and  having  given  it  the 
name  of  Rapunzel,  which  is  the  same  as  rampion,  she  carried  it  off 
with  her. 

Eapunzel  was  the  most  beautiful  child  under  the  sun.  When 
she  was  twelve  years  old  the  Witch  shut  her  up  in  a  tower,  in  the 
middle  of  a  great  wood,  and  the  tower  had  neither  stairs  nor  doors, 
only  high  up  at  the  very  top  a  small  window.  When  the  old  Witch 
wanted  to  get  in  she  stood  underneath  and  called  out : 

'  Rapunzel,  Rapunzel, 
Let  down  your  golden  hair,' 

for  Rapunzel  had  wonderful  long  hair,  and  it  was  as  fine  as  spun 
gold.  Whenever  she  heard  the  Witch's  voice  she  unloosed  her 
plaits,  and  let  her  hair  fall  down  out  of  the  window  about  twenty 
yards  below,  and  the  old  Witch  climbed  up  by  it. 

After  they  had  lived  like  this  for  a  few  years,  it  happened  one 
day  that  a  Prince  was  riding  through  the  wood  and  passed  by  the 
tower.  As  he  drew  near  it  he  heard  someone  singing  so  sweetly 
that  he  stood  still  spell-bound,  and  listened.  It  was  Rapunzel  in 
her  loneliness  trying  to  while  away  the  time  by  letting  her  sweet  voice 
ring  out  into  the  wood.  The  Prince  longed  to  see  the  owner  of  the 
voice,  but  he  sought  in  vain  for  a  door  in  the  tower.  He  rode  home, 
but  he  was  so  haunted  by  the  song  he  had  heard  that  he  returned 
every  day  to  the  wood  and  listened.  One  day,  when  he  was  stand- 
ing thus  behind  a  tree,  he  saw  the  old  Witch  approach  and  heard 
her  call  out : 

'  Rapunzel,  Rapunzel, 
Let  down  your  golden  hair.' 

Then  Rapunzel  let  down  her  plaits,  and  the  Witch  climbed  up 
by  them. 

'  So  that's  the  staircase,  is  it  ?  '  said  the  Prince.  '  Then  I  too  will 
climb  it  and  try  my  luck.' 


284 


EAPUNZEL 


So  on  the  following  day,  at  dusk,  he  went  to  the  foot  of  the  tower 
and  cried : 

'  Bapunzel,  Eapunzel, 
Let  down  your  golden  hair,' 

and  as  soon  as  she  had  let  it 
down  the  Prince  climbed  up. 
At  first  Eapunzel  was 
terribly  frightened  when  a 
man  came  in,  for  she  had 
never  seen  one  before ;  but 
the  Prince  spoke  to  her  so 
kindly,  and  told  her  at  once 
that  his  heart  had  been  so 
touched  by  her  singing,  that 
he  felt  he  should  know  no 
peace  of  mind  till  he  had  seen 
her.  Very  soon  Eapunzel 
forgot  her  fear,  and  when  he 
asked  her  to  marry  him  she 
consented  at  once.  'For,' 
she  thought,  '  he  is  young  and 
handsome,  and  I'll  certainly 
be  happier  with  him  than 
with  the  old  Witch.'  So  she 
put  her  hand  in  his  and  said  : 
'  Yes,  I  will  gladly  go  with 
you,  only  how  am  I  to  get 
down  out  of  the  tower  ? 
Every  time  you  come  to  see 
me  you  must  bring  a  skein 
of  silk  with  you,  and  I  will 
make  a  ladder  of  them,  and 
when  it  is  finished  I  will 
climb  down  by  it,  and  you 
will  take  me  away  on  your 
horse.' 

They  arranged   that,  till 
the  ladder  was  ready,  he  was 

to  come  to  her  every  evening,  because  the  old  woman  was  with  her 
during  the  day.     The  old  Witch,  of  course,  knew  nothing  of  what 


BAPUNZEL  285 

was  going  on,  till  one  day  Rapunzel,  not  thinking  of  what  she  was 
about,  turned  to  the  Witch  and  said  : 

'  How  is  it,  good  mother,  that  you  are  so  much  harder  to  pull 
up  than  the  young  Prince  '?  He  is  always  with  me  in  a  moment.1 

'  Oh !  you  wicked  child,'  cried  the  Witch.  '  What  is  this  I  hear  ?  I 
thought  I  had  hidden  you  safely  from  the  whole  world,  and  in  spite 
of  it  you  have  managed  to  deceive  me.' 

In  her  wrath  she  seized  Rapunzel's  beautiful  hair,  wound  it 
round  and  round  her  left  hand,  and  then  grasping  a  pair  of  scissors 
in  her  right,  snip  snap,  off  it  came,  and  the  beautiful  plaits  lay  on 
the  ground.  And,  worse  than  this,  she  was  so  hard-hearted  that 
she  took  Eapunzel  to  a  lonely  desert  place,  and  there  left  her  to 
live  in  loneliness  and  misery. 

But  on  the  evening  of  the  day  in  which  she  had  driven  poor 
Rapunzel  away,  the  Witch  fastened  the  plaits  on  to  a  hook  in  the 
window,  and  when  the  Prince  came  and  called  out : 

'  Rapunzel,  Rapunzel, 
Let  down  your  golden  hair,' 

she  let  them  down,  and  the  Prince  climbed  up  as  usual,  but  instead 
of  his  beloved  Rapunzel  he  found  the  old  Witch,  who  fixed  her  evil, 
glittering  eyes  on  him,  and  cried  mockingly  : 

'  Ah,  ah  !  you  thought  to  find  your  lady  love,  but  the  pretty  bird 
has  flown  and  its  song  is  dmnb  ;  the  cat  caught  it,  and  will  scratch 
out  your  eyes  too.  Rapunzel  is  lost  to  you  for  ever — you  will  never 
see  her  more.' 

The  Prince  was  beside  himself  with  grief,  and  in  his  despair  he 
jumped  right  down  from  the  tower,  and,  though  he  escaped  with  his 
life,  the  thorns  among  which  he  fell  pierced  his  eyes  out.  Then  he 
wandered,  blind  and  miserable,  through  the  wood,  eating  nothing 
but  roots  and  berries,  and  weeping  and  lamenting  the  loss  of  his 
lovely  bride.  So  he  wandered  about  for  some  years,  as  wretched 
and  unhappy  as  he  could  well  be,  and  at  last  he  came  to  the  desert 
place  where  Rapunzel  was  living.  Of  a  sudden  he  heard  a  voice 
which  seemed  strangely  familiar  to  him.  He  walked  eagerly  in 
the  direction  of  the  sound,  and  when  he  was  quite  close,  Rapunzel 
recognised  him  and  fell  on  his  neck  and  wept.  But  two  of  her 
tears  touched  his  eyes,  and  in  a  moment  they  became  quite  clear 
again,  and  he  saw  as  well  as  he  had  ever  done.  Then  he  led  her  to 
his  kingdom,  where  they  were  received  and  welcomed  with  great 
joy,  and  they  lived  happily  ever  after.1 

1  G-rimm. 


286 


THE  NETTLE  SPINNEE 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  lived  at  Quesnoy,  in  Flanders,  a  great  lord 
whose  name  was  Burchard,  but  whom  the  country  people  called 
Burchard  the  Wolf.  Now  Burchard  had  such  a  wicked,  cruel  heart, 
that  it  was  whispered  how  he  used  to  harness  his  peasants  to  the 
plough,  and  force  them  by  blows  from  his  whip  to  till  his  land  with 
naked  feet. 

His  wife,  on  the  other  hand,  was  always  tender  and  pitiful  to  the 
poor  and  miserable. 

Every  time  that  she  heard  of  another  misdeed  of  her  husband's 
she  secretly  went  to  repair  the  evil,  which  caused  her  name  to  be 
blessed  throughout  the  whole  country-side.  This  Countess  was 
adored  as  much  as  the  Count  was  hated. 

II 

One  day  when  he  was  out  hunting  the  Count  passed  throtigh  a 
forest,  and  at  the  door  of  a  lonely  cottage  he  saw  a  beautiful  girl 
spinning  hemp. 

1  "What  is  your  name  ?  '  he  asked  her. 

'  Kenelde,  my  lord.' 

'  You  must  get  tired  of  staying  in  such  a  lonely  place  ?  ' 

'  I  am  accustomed  to  it,  my  lord,  and  I  never  get  tired  of  it." 

'  That  may  be  so  ;  but  come  to  the  castle,  and  I  will  make  you 
lady's  maid  to  the  Countess." 

'  I  cannot  do  that,  my  lord.  I  have  to  look  after  my  grandmother, 
who  is  very  helpless.' 

'  Come  to  the  castle,  I  tell  you.  I  shall  expect  you  this  evening,' 
and  he  went  on  his  way. 

But  Eenelde,  who  was  betrothed  to  a  young  wood-cutter  called 
Guilbert,  had  no  intention  of  obeying  the  Count,  and  she  had, 
besides,  to  take  care  of  her  grandmother. 


THE  NETTLE  SPINNER 

Three  days  later  the  Count  again  passed  by. 

'  Why  didn't  you  come  ?  '  he  asked  the  pretty  spinner. 


287 


'  I  told  you,  my  lord,  that  I  have  to  look  after  my  grandmother.' 
'  Come  to-morrow,  and  I  will  make  you  lady-in-waiting  to  the 
Countess,"  and  he  went  on  his  way. 


288  THE  NETTLE  SPIN  NEE 

This  offer  produced  no  more  effect  than  the  other,  and  Renelde 
did  not  go  to  the  castle. 

4  If  you  will  only  come,'  said  the  Count  to  her  when  next  he 
rode  by,  '  I  will  send  away  the  Countess,  and  will  marry  you.' 

But  two  years  before,  when  Renelde's  mother  was  dying  of  a 
long  illness,  the  Countess  had  not  forgotten  them,  but  had  given 
help  when  they  sorely  needed  it.  So  even  if  the  Count  had  really 
wished  to  marry  Kenelde,  she  would  always  have  refused. 

Ill 

Some  weeks  passed  before  Burchard  appeared  again. 

Kenelde  hoped  she  had  got  rid  of  him,  when  one  day  he  stopped 
at  the  door,  his  duck-gun  under  his  arm  and  his  game-bag  on  his 
shoulder.  This  time  Kenelde  was  spinning  not  hemp,  but  flax. 

'  What  are  you  spinning  ?  '  he  asked  in  a  rough  voice. 

'  My  wedding  shift,  my  lord.' 

'  You  are  going  to  be  married,  then  ?  ' 

'  Yes,  my  lord,  by  your  leave.' 

For  at  that  time  no  peasant  could  marry  without  the  leave  of 
his  master. 

'  I  will  give  you  leave  on  one  condition.  Do  you  see  those  tall 
nettles  that  grow  on  the  tombs  in  the  churchyard  ?  Go  and  gather 
them,  and  spin  them  into  two  fine  shifts.  One  shall  be  your  bridal 
shift,  and  the  other  shall  be  my  shroud.  For  you  shall  be  married 
the  day  that  I  am  laid  in  my  grave.'  And  the  Count  turned  away 
with  a  mocking  laugh. 

Renelde  trembled.  Never  in  all  Locquignol  had  such  a  thing 
been  heard  of  as  the  spinning  of  nettles. 

And  besides,  the  Count  seemed  made  of  iron  and  was  very 
proud  of  his  strength,  often  boasting  that  he  should  live  to  be  a 
hundred, 

Every  evening,  when  his  work  was  done,  Guilbert  came  to  visit 
his  future  bride.  This  evening  he  came  as  usual,  and  Renelde  told 
him  what  Burchard  had  said. 

4  Would  you  like  me  to  watch  for  the  Wolf,  and  split  his  skull 
with  a  blow  from  my  axe  ?  ' 

4  No,'  replied  Renelde,  '  there  must  be  no  blood  on  my  bridal 
bouquet.  And  then  we  must  not  hurt  the  Count.  Remember  how 
good  the  Countess  was  to  my  mother.' 

An  old,  old  woman  now  spoke  :  she  was  the  mother  of  Renelde's 


THE  NETTLE   SPINNER  289 

grandmother,  and  was  more  than  ninety  years  old.     All  day  long 
she  sat  in  her  chair  nodding  her  head  and  never  saying  a  word. 

'  My  children,'  she  said,  '  all  the  years  that  I  have  lived  in  the 
world,  I  have  never  heard  of  a  shift  spun  from  nettles.  But  what 
God  commands,  man  can  do.  Why  should  not  Eenelde  try  it  ?  ' 

IV 

Renelde  did  try,  and  to  her  great  surprise  the  nettles  when 
crushed  and  prepared  gave  a  good  thread,  soft  and  light  and  firm. 
Very  soon  she  had  spun  the  first  shift,  which  was  for  her  own 
wedding.  She  wove  and  cut  it  out  at  once,  hoping  that  the  Count 
would  not  force  her  to  begin  the  other.  Just  as  she  had  finished 
sewing  it,  Burchard  the  Wolf  passed  by. 

'  Well,'  said  he,  '  how  are  the  shifts  getting  on'?  ' 

'  Here,  my  lord,  is  my  wedding  garm'ent,'  answered  Eenelde, 
showing  him  the  shift,  which  was  the  finest  and  whitest  ever  seen. 

The  Count  grew  pale,  but  he  replied  roughly,  '  Very  good. 
Now  begin  the  other.' 

The  spinner  set  to  work.  As  the  Count  returned  to  the  castle,  a 
cold  shiver  passed  over  him,  and  he  felt,  as  the  saying  is,  that  some 
one  was  walking  over  his  grave.  He  tried  to  eat  his  supper,  but 
could  not ;  he  went  to  bed  shaking  with  fever.  But  he  did  not  sleep, 
and  in  the  morning  could  not  manage  to  rise. 

This  sudden  illness,  which  every  instant  became  worse,  made 
him  very  uneasy.  No  doubt  Renelde's  spinning-wheel  knew  all 
about  it.  Was  it  not  necessary  that  his  body,  as  well  as  his  shroud, 
should  be  ready  for  the  burial  '? 

The  first  thing  Burchard  did  was  to  send  to  Renelde  and  to  stop 
her  wheel. 

Renelde  obeyed,  and  that  evening  Guilbert  asked  her  : 

'  Has  the  Count  given  his  consent  to  our  marriage '? ' 

'  No,'  said  Renelde. 

'  Continue  your  work,  sweetheart.  It  is  the  only  way  of  gaining 
it.  You  know  he  told  vou  so  himself.' 


The  following  morning,  as  soon  as  she  had  put  the  house  in  order, 
the  girl   sat  down  to  spin.     Two  hours   after  there  arrived  some 
soldiers,  and  when  they  saw  her  spinning  they  seized  her,  tied  her 
R.  U 


290  THE  NETTLE   SPINNER 

arms  and  legs,  and  carried  her  to  the  bank  of  the  river,  which  was 
swollen  by  the  late  rains. 

When  they  reached  the  bank  they  flung  her  in,  and  watched  her 
sink,  after  which  they  left  her.  But  Eenelde  rose  to  the  surface, 
and  though  she  could  not  swim  she  struggled  to  land. 

Directly  she  got  home  she  sat  down  and  began  to  spin. 

Again  came  the  two  soldiers  to  the  cottage  and  seized  the  girl, 


carried  her  to  the  river  bank,  tied  a  stone  to  her  neck  and  flung  her 
into  the  water. 

The  moment  their  backs  were  turned  the  stone  untied  itself. 
Renelde  waded  the  ford,  returned  to  the  hut,  and  sat  down  to  spin. 

This  time  the  Count  resolved  to  go  to  Locquignol  himself;  but, 
as  he  was  very  weak  and  unable  to  walk,  he  had  himself  borne  in 
a  litter.  And  still  the  spinner  spun. 

When  he  saw  her  he  fired  a  shot  at  her,  as  he  would  have  fired 


THE  NETTLE   SPINNER  291 

at  a  wild  beast.  The  bullet  rebounded  without  harming  the  spinner, 
who  still  spun  on. 

Burchard  fell  into  such  a  .violent  rage  that  it  nearly  killed  him. 
He  broke  the  wheel  into  a  thousand  pieces,  and  then  fell  fainting  on 
the  ground.  He  was  carried  back  to  the  castle,  unconscious. 

The  next  day  the  wheel  was  mended,  and  the  spinner  sat  down 
to  spin.  Feeling  that  while  she  was  spinning  he  was  dying,  the 
Count  ordered  that  her  hands  should  be  tied,  and  that  they  should 
not  lose  sight  of  her  for  one  instant. 

But  the  guards  fell  asleep,  the  bonds  toosed  themselves,  and  the 
spinner  spun  on. 

Burchard  had  every  nettle  rooted  up  for  three  leagues  round. 
Scarcely  had  they  been  torn  from  the  soil  when  they  sowed  them- 
selves afresh,  and  grew  as  you  were  looking  at  them. 

They  sprung  up  even  in  the  well-trodden  floor  of  the  cottage,  and 
as  fast  as  they  were  uprooted  the  distaff  gathered  to  itself  a  supply 
of  nettles,  crushed,  prepared,  and  ready  for  spinning. 

And  every  day  Burchard  grew  worse,  and  watched  his  end 
approaching. 

VI 

Moved  by  pity  for  her  husband,  the  Countess  at  last  fcmnd  out 
the  cause  of  his  illness,  and  entreated  him  to  allow  himself  to  be 
cured.  But  the  Count  in  his  pride  refused  more  than  ever  to  give 
his  consent  to  the  marriage. 

So  the  lady  resolved  to  go  without  his  knowledge  to  pray  for 
mercy  from  the  spinner,  and  in  the  name  of  Renelde's  dead  mother 
she  besought  her  to  spin  no  more.  Kenelde  gave  her  promise,  but 
in  the  evening  Guilbert  arrived  at  the  cottage.  Seeing  that  the  cloth 
was  no  farther  advanced  than  it  was  the  evening  before,  he  inquired 
the  reason.  Kenelde  confessed  that  the  Countess  had  prayed  her  not 
to  let  her  husband  die. 

'  Will  he  consent  to  our  marriage  ?  ' 

'No.' 

'  Let  him  die  then.' 

'  But  what  will  the  Countess  say  '?  ' 

1  The  Countess  will  understand  that  it  is  not  your  fault ;  the  Count 
alone  is  guilty  of  his  own  death.' 

'  Let  us  wait  a  little.     Perhaps  his  heart  may  be  softened.' 

So  they  waited  for  one  month,  for  two,  for  six,  for  a  year.  The 
spinner  spun  no  more.  The  Count  had  ceased  to  persecute  her,  but 

u2 


292  THE  NETTLE   SPINNER 

he  still  refused  his  consent  to  the  marriage.  Guilbert  became 
impatient. 

The  poor  girl  loved  him  with  her  whole  soul,  and  she  was  more 
unhappy  than  she  had  been  before,  when  Burchard  was  only  torment- 
ing her  body. 

'  Let  us  have  done  with  it,'  said  Guilbert. 

'  Wait  a  little  still,'  pleaded  Eenelde. 

But  the  young  man  grew  weary.  He  came  more  rarely  to 
Loccmignol,  and  very  soon  he  did  not  come  at  all.  Renelde  felt  as 
if  her  heart  would  break,  but  she  held  firm. 

One  day  she  met  the  Count.  She  clasped  her  hands  as  if  in 
prayer,  and  cried : 

'  My  lord,  have  mercy  ! ' 

Burchard  the  Wolf  turned  away  his  head  and  passed  on. 

She  might  have  humbled  his  pride  had  she  gone  to  her  spinning- 
wheel  again,  but  she  did  nothing  of  the  sort. 

Not  long  after  she  learnt  that  Guilbert  had  left  the  country. 
He  did  not  even  come  to  say  good-bye  to  her,  but,  all  the  same,  she 
knew  the  day  and  hour  of  his  departure,  and  hid  herself  on  the  road 
to  see  him  once  more. 

When  she  came  in  she  put  her  silent  wheel  into  a  corner,  and 
cried  for  three  days  and  three  nights. 

VII 

So  another  year  went  by.  Then  the  Count  fell  ill,  and  tlu- 
Countess  supposed  that  Kenelde,  weary  of  waiting,  had  begun  her 
spinning  anew ;  but  when  she  came  to  the  cottage  to  see,  she  found 
the  wheel  silent. 

However,  the  Count  grew  worse  and  worse  till  he  was  given  up 
by  the  doctors.  The  passing  bell  was  rung,  and  he  lay  expecting 
Death  to  come  for  him.  But  Death  was  not  so  near  as  the  doctors 
thought,  and  still  he  lingered. 

He  seemed  in  a  desperate  condition,  but  he  got  neither  better 
nor  worse.  He  could  neither  live  nor  die ;  he  suffered  horribly, 
and  called  loudly  on  Death  to  put  an  end  to  his  pains. 

In  this  extremity  he  remembered  what  he  had  told  the  little 
spinner  long  ago.  If  Death  was  so  slow  in  coming,  it  was  because 
he  was  not  ready  to  follow  him,  having  no  shroud  for  his  burial. 

He  sent  to  fetch  Eenelde,  placed  her  by  his  bedside,  and  ordered 
her  at  once  to  go  on  spinning  his  shroud. 


THE  NETTLE   SPINNER  293 

Hardly  had  the  spinner  begun  to  work  when  the  Count  began 
to  feel  his  pains  grow  less. 

Then  at  last  his  heart  melted  ;  he  was  sorry  for  all  the  evil  he 
had  done  out  of  pride,  and  implored  Eenelde  to  forgive  him.  So 
Renelde  forgave  him,  and  went  on  spinning  night  and  day. 

When  the  thread  of  the  nettles  was  spun  she  wove  it  with  her 
shuttle,  and  then  cut  the  shroud  and  began  to  sew  it. 

And  as  before,  when  she  sewed  the  Count  felt  his  pains  grow 
less,  and  the  life  sinking  within  him,  and  when  the  needle  made  the 
last  stitch  he  gave  his  last  sigh. 

VIII 

At  the  same  hour  Guilbert  returned  to  the  country,  and,  as  he 
had  never  ceased  to  love  Eenelde,  he  married  her  eight  days  later. 

He  had  lost  two  years  of  happiness,  but  comforted  himself  with 
thinking  that  his  wife  was  a  clever  spinner,  and,  what  was  much 
more  rare,  a  brave  and  good  woman.1 

1  Oh.  Denlin. 


294 


FARMER   WEATHEEBEAED 

fTTHERE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  man  and  a  woman  who  had  an 
-L  only  son,  and  he  was  called  Jack.  The  woman  thought  that 
it  was  his  duty  to  go  out  to  service,  and  told  her  husband  that  he 
was  to  take  him  somewhere. 

'  You  must  get  him  such  a  good  place  that  he  will  become  master 
of  all  masters,'  she  said,  and  then  she  put  some  food  and  a  roll  of 
tobacco  into  a  bag  for  them. 

Well,  they  went  to  a  great  many  masters,  but  all  said  that 
they  could  make  the  lad  as  good  as  they  were  themselves,  but 
better  than  that  they  could  not  make  him.  When  the  man  came 
home  to  the  old  woman  with  this  answer,  she  said,  '  I  shall  be 
equally  well  pleased  whatever  you  do  with  him  ;  but  this  I  do  say, 
that  you  are  to  have  him  made  a  master  over  all  masters.'  Then 
she  once  more  put  some  food  and  a  roll  of  tobacco  into  the  bag, 
and  the  man  and  his  son  had  to  set  out  again. 

When  they  had  walked  some  distance  they  got  upon  the. ice, 
and  there  they  met  a  man  in  a  carriage  who  was  driving  a  black 
horse. 

'  Where  are  you  going  ?  '  he  said. 

'  I  have  to  go  and  get  my  son  apprenticed  to  someone  who  will 
be  able  to  teach  him  a  trade,  for  my  old  woman  comes  of  such 
well-to-do  folk  that  she  insists  on  his  being  taught  to  be  master  of 
all  masters,'  said  the  man. 

'  We  are  not  ill  met,  then,'  said  the  man  who  was  driving,  '  for 
I  am  the  kind  of  man  who  can  do  that,  and  I  am  just  looking  out 
for  such  an  apprentice.  Get  up  behind  with  you,'  he  said  to  the 
boy,  and  off  the  horse  went  with  them  straight  up  into  the  air. 

'  No,  no,  wait  a  little ! '  screamed  the  father  of  the  boy.  '  I 
ought  to  know  what  your  name  is  and  where  you  live.' 

'  Oh,  I  am  at  home  both  in  the  north  and  the  south  and  the 
east  and  the  west,  and  I  am  called  Farmer  Weatherboard, '  said 


FAEMEE    WEATHEEBEAED 


295 


the  master.  '  You  may  come  here  again  in  a  year's  time,  and  then 
I  will  tell  yon  if  the  lad  suits  me.'  And  then  they  set  off  again 
and  were  gone. 

When  the  man  got  home  the  old  woman  inquired  what  had 
become  of  the  son. 

'  Ah !  Heaven  only  knows  what  has  become  of  him ! '  said  the  man. 
'  They  went  up  aloft.'  And  then  he  told  her  what  had  happened. 

But  when  the  woman  heard  that,  and  found  that  the  man  did 
not  at  all  know  either  when  their  son  would  be  out  of  his  apprentice- 


ship, or  where  he  had  gone,  she  packed  him  off  again  to  find  out, 
and  gave  him  a  bag  of  food  and  a  roll  of  tobacco  to  take  away 
with  him. 

When  he  had  walked  for  some  time  he  came  to  a  great  wood, 
and  it  stretched  before  him  all  day  long  as  he  went  on,  and  when 
night  began  to  fall  he  saw  a  great  light,  and  went  towards  it. 
After  a  long,  long  time  he  came  to  a  small  hut  at  the  foot  of  a 
rock,  outside  which  an  old  woman  was  standing  drawing  water  up 
from  a  well  with  her  nose,  it  was  so  long. 


296  FARMER   WEATHERBEARD 

'  Good-evening,  mother,'  said  the  man. 

'  Good-evening  to  yon  too,'  said  the  old  woman.  '  Xo  one 
has  called  me  mother  this  hundred  years.' 

'  Can  I  lodge  here  to-night  ?  '  said  the  man. 

'  No,'  said  the  old  woman.  But  the  man  took  out  his  roll  of 
tobacco,  lighted  a  little  of  it,  and  then  gave  her  a  whiff.  Then 
she  was  so  delighted  that  she  began  to  dance,  and  thus  the  man 
got  leave  to  stay  the  night  there.  It  was  not  long  before  he  asked 
about  Farmer  Weatherbeard. 

She  said  that  she  knew  nothing  about  him,  but  that  she  ruled  over 
all  the  four-footed  beasts,  and  some  of  them  might  know  him.  So 
she  gathered  them  all  together  by  blowing  a  whistle  which  she 
had,  and  questioned  them,  but  there  was  not  one  of  them  which 
knew  anything  about  Farmer  "Weatherbeard. 

'  Well,'  said  the  old  woman,  '  there  are  three  of  us  sisters  ;  it 
may  be  that  one  of  the  other  two  knows  where  he  is  to  be  found. 
You  shall  have  the  loan  of  my  horse  and  carriage,  and  then  you 
will  get  there  by  night ;  but  her  house  is  three  hundred  miles  off, 
go  the  nearest  way  you  will.' 

The  man  set  out  and  got  there  at  night.  When  he  arrived, 
this  old  woman  also  was  standing  drawing  water  out  of  the  well 
with  her  nose. 

'  Good-evening,  mother,'  said  the  man. 

'  Good-evening  to  you,'  said  the  old  woman.  '  No  one  has  ever 
called  me  mother  this  hundred  years.' 

'  Can  I  lodge  here  to-night  ?  '  said  the  man. 

'  No,'  said  the  old  woman. 

Then  he  took  out  the  roll  of  tobacco,  took  a  whiff,  and  gave  the 
old  woman  some  snuff  on  the  back  of  her  hand.  Then  she  was  so 
delighted  that  she  began  to  dance,  and  the  man  got  leave  to  stay 
all  night.  It  was  not  long  before  he  began  to  ask  about  Fan m -r 
Weatherbeard. 

She  knew  nothing  about  him,  but  she  ruled  over  all  the  fishes, 
she  said,  and  perhaps  some  of  them  might  know  something.  So 
she  gathered  them  all  together  by  blowing  a  whistle  which  she 
had,  and  questioned  them,  but  there  was  not  one  of  them  which 
knew  anything  about  Farmer  Weatherbeard. 

'  Well,'  said  the  old  woman,  '  I  have  another  sister ;  perhaps 
she  may  know  something  about  him.  She  lives  six  hundred  miles 
off,  but  you  shall  have  my  horse  and  carriage,  and  then  you  will 
get  there  by  nightfall.' 


FARMER    WEATHERBOARD 


297 


So  the  man  set  off  and  he  got  there  by  nightfall.  The  old 
woman  was  standing  raking  the  fire,  and  she  was  doing  it  with  her 
nose,  so  long  it  was. 

'  Good-evening,  mother,'  said  the  man. 

'  Good-evening  to  you,'  said  the  old  woman.  '  No  one  has 
called  me  mother  this  hundred  years.' 

'  Can  I  lodge  here  to-night  ?  '  said  the  man. 

'  No,'  said  the  old  woman.     But  the  man  pulled  out  his  roll  of 


tobacco  again,  and  filled  his  pipe  with  some  of  it,  and  gave  the  old 
woman  enough  snuff  to  cover  the  back  of  her  hand.  Then  she  was 
so  delighted  that  she  began  to  dance,  and  the  man  got  leave  to  stay 
in  her  house.  It  was  not  long  before  he  asked  about  Farmer 
"NYeatherbeard.  She  knew  nothing  at  all  about  him,  she  said,  but 
she  governed  all  the  birds ;  and  she  gathered  them  together 
with  her  whistle.  When  she  questioned  them  all,  the  eagle  was 


298  FARMER   WEATHERBEARD 

not  there,  but  it  came  soon  afterwards,  and  when  asked,  it  said 
that  it  had  just  come  from  Farmer  Weatherboard's.  Then  the  old 
woman  said  that  it  was  to  guide  the  man  to  him.  But  the  eagle 
would  have  something  to  eat  first,  and  then  it  wanted  to  wait 
until  the  next  day,  for  it  was  so  tired  with  the  long  journey  that  it 
was  scarcely  able  to  rise  from  the  earth. 

When  the  eagle  had  had  plenty  of  food  and  rest,  the  old  woman 
plucked  a  feather  out  of  its  tail,  and  set  the  man  in  the  feather's 
place,  and  then  the  bird  flew  away  with  him,  but  they  did  not  get 
to  Farmer  Weatherbeard's  before  midnight. 

When  they  got  there  the  Eagle  said  :  '  There  are  a  great  many 
dead  bodies  lying  outside  the  door,  but  you  must  not  concern 
yourself  about  them.  The  people  who  are  inside  the  house  are  all 
so  sound  asleep  that  it  will  not  be  easy  to  awake  them ;  but  you 
must  go  straight  to  the  table-drawer,  and  take  out  three  bits  of 
bread,  and  if  you  hear  anyone  snoring,  pluck  three  feathers  from 
his  head ;  he  will  not  waken  for  that.' 

The  man  did  this ;  when  he  had  got  the  bits  of  bread  he  first 
plucked  out  one  feather. 

'  Oof !  '  screamed  Farmer  Weatherbeard. 

So  the  man  plucked  out  another,  and  then  Farmer  Weatherbeard 
shrieked  'Oof! '  again;  but  when  the  man  had  plucked  the  third, 
Farmer  Weatherbeard  screamed  so  loudly  that  the  man  thought 
that  brick  and  mortar  would  be  rent  in  twain,  but  for  all  that  he 
went  on  sleeping.  And  now  the  Eagle  told  the  man  what  he  was 
to  do  next,  and  he  did  it.  He  went  to  the  stable  door,  and  there 
he  stumbled  against  a  hard  stone,  which  he  picked  up,  and  beneath 
it  lay  three  splinters  of  wood,  which  he  also  picked  up.  He  knocked 
at  the  stable  door  and  it  opened  at  once.  He  threw  down  the  three 
little  bits  of  bread  and  a  hare  came  out  and  ate  them.  He  caught 
the  hare.  Then  the  Eagle  told  him  to  pluck  three  feathers  out  of 
its  tail,  and  put  in  the  hare,  the  stone,  the  splinters  of  wood  and 
himself  instead  of  them,  and  then  he  would  be  able  to  carry  them 
all  home. 

When  the  Eagle  had  flown  a  long  way  it  alighted  on  a  stone. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  ?  '  it  asked. 

'  Yes ;  I  see  a  flock  of  crows  coming  flying  after  us,'  said  the 
man. 

'  Then  we  shall  do  well  to  fly  on  a  little  farther,'  said  the  Eagle, 
and  off  it  set. 

In  a  short  time  it  asked  again,  '  Do  you  see  anything  now  ?  ' 


FARMER    WEATHERBEARD  299 

'  Yes  ;  now  the  crows  are  close  behind  us,'  said  the  man. 

'  Then  throw  down  the  three  feathers  which  you  plucked  out  of 
his  head,'  said  the  Eagle. 

So  the  man  did  this,  and  no  sooner  had  he  flung  them  down 
than  the  feathers  became  a  flock  of  ravens,  which  chased  the  crows 
home  again.  Then  the  Eagle  flew  on  much  farther  with  the  man, 
but  at  length  it  alighted  on  a  stone  for  a  while. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  ?  '  it  said. 

'  I  am  not  quite  certain,'  said  the  man, '  but  I  think  I  see  some- 
thing coming  in  the  far  distance.' 

'  Then  we  shall  do  well  to  fly  on  a  little  farther,'  said  the  Eagle, 
and  away  it  went. 

'Do  you  see  anything  now  ?  '  it  said,  after  some  time  had  gone 

by- 

'  Yes  ;  now  they  are  close  behind  us,'  said  the  man. 

'  Then  throw  down  the  splinters  of  wood  which  you  took  from 
beneath  the  gray  stone  by  the  stable  door,'  said  the  Eagle.  The 
man  did  this,  and  no  sooner  had  he  flung  them  down  than  they 
grew  up  into  a  great  thick  wood,  and  Farmer  Weatherboard  had  to 
go  home  for  an  axe  to  cut  his  way  through  it.  So  the  Eagle  flew  on 
a  long,  long  way,  but  then  it  grew  tired  and  sat  down  on  a  fir  tree. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  ?  '  it  asked. 

'Yes  ;  I  am  not  quite  certain,'  said  the  man,  '  but  I  think  I  can 
catch  a  glimpse  of  something  far,  far  away.' 

'  Then  we  shall  do  well  to  fly  on  a  little  farther,'  said  the  Eagle, 
and  it  set  off  again. 

'  Do  you  see  anything  now? '  it  saidafter  some  time  had  gone  by. 

'  Yes  ;  he  is  close  behind  us  now,'  said  the  man. 

'  Then  you  must  fling  down  the  great  stone  which  you  took  away 
from  the  stable  door,'  said  the  Eagle. 

The  man  did  so,  and  it  turned  into  a  great  high  mountain  of 
stone,  which  Farmer  Weatherbeard  had  to  break  his  way  through 
before  he  could  follow  them.  But  when  he  had  got  to  the  middle 
of  the  mountain  he  broke  one  of  his  legs,  so  he  had  to  go  home  to 
get  it  put  right. 

While  he  was  doing  this  the  Eagle  flew  off  to  the  man's  home 
with  him,  and  with  the  hare,  and  when  they  had  got  home  the  man 
went  to  the  churchyard,  and  had  some  Christian  earth  laid  upon  the 
hare,  and  then  it  turned  into  his  son  Jack. 

When  the  time  came  for  the  fair  the  youth  turned  himself  into 
a  light-coloured  horse,  and  bade  his  father  go  to  the  market  with 


300  FARMER    WEATHERBEARD 

him.  '  If  anyone  should  come  who  wants  to  buy  me,'  said  he, 
'  yon  are  to  tell  him  that  yon  want  a  hundred  dollars  for  me  ;  bnt 
you  must  not  forget  to  take  off  the  halter,  for  if  you  do  I  shall 
never  be  able  to  get  away  from  Farmer  Weatherbeard,  for  he  is  the 
man  who  will  come  and  bargain  for  me.' 

And  thus  it  happened.  A  horse-dealer  came  who  had  a  great 
fancy  to  bargain  for  the  horse,  and  the  man  got  a  hundred  dollars 
for  it,  but  when  the  bargain  was  made,  and  Jack's  father  had  got 
the  money,  the  horse-dealer  wanted  to  have  the  halter. 

'  That  was  no  part  of  our  bargain,'  said  the  man,  '  and  the 
halter  you  shall  not  have,  for  I  have  other  horses  which  I  shall 
have  to  sell.' 

So  each  of  them  went  his  way.  But  the  horse-dealer  had  not 
got  very  far  with  Jack  before  he  resumed  his  own  form  again,  and 
when  the  man  got  home  he  was  sitting  on  the  bench  by  the  stove. 

The  next  day  he  changed  himself  into  a  brown  horse  and  told 
his  father  that  he  was  to  set  off  to  market  with  him.  '  If  a  man  should 
come  who  wants  to  buy  me,'  said  Jack, '  you  are  to  tell  him  that  you 
want  two  hundred  dollars,  for  that  he  will  give,  and  treat  you  besides  ; 
but  whatsoever  you  drink,  and  whatsoever  you  do,  don't  forget  to 
take  the  halter  off  me,  or  you  will  never  see  me  more.' 

And  thus  it  happened.  The  man  got  his  two  hundred  dollars  for 
the  horse,  and  was  treated  as  well,  and  when  they  parted  from  each 
other  it  was  just  as  much  as  he  could  do  to  remember  to  take  off 
the  halter.  But  the  buyer  had  not  got  far  on  his  way  before  the 
youth  took  his  own  form  again,  and  when  the  man  reached  home 
Jack  was  already  sitting  on  the  bench  by  the  stove. 

On  the  third  day  all  happened  in  the  same  way.  The  youth 
changed  himself  into  a  great  black  horse,  and  told  his  father  that  if 
a  man  came  and  offered  him  three  hundred  dollars,  and  treated  him 
well  and  handsomely  into  the  bargain,  he  was  to  sell  him,  but 
whatsoever  he  did,  or  how  much  soever  he  drank,  he  must  not  for- 
get to  take  off  the  halter,  or  else  he  himself  would  never  get  away 
from  Farmer  Weatherbeard  as  long  as  he  lived. 

'  No,'  said  the  man,  '  I  will  not  forget.' 

When  he  got  to  the  market,  he  received  the  three  hundred 
dollars,  but  Farmer  Weatherbeard  treated  him  so  handsomely  that 
he  quite  forgot  to  take  off  the  halter ;  so  Farmer  Weatherbeard  went 
away  with  the  horse. 

When  he  had  got  some  distance  he  had  to  go  into  an  inn  to  get 
some  more  brandy ;  so  he  set  a  barrel  full  of  red-hot  nails  under  his 


FARMER   WEATHERBEARD  301 

horse's  nose,  and  a  trough  filled  with  oats  beneath  its  tail,  and  then 
he  tied  the  halter  fast  to  a  hook  and  went  away  into  the  inn. 
So  the  horse  stood  there  stamping,  and  kicking,  and  snorting,  and 
rearing,  and  out  came  a  girl  who  thought  it  a  sin  and  a  shame  to 
treat  a  horse  so  ill. 

'  Ah,  poor  creature,  what  a  master  you  must  have  to  treat  you 
thus  !  '  she  said,  and  pushed  the  halter  off'  the  hook  so  that  the  horse 
might  turn  round  and  eat  the  oats. 

'  I  am  here  !  '  shrieked  Farmer  Weatherbeard,  rushing  out  of 
doors.  But  the  horse  had  already  shaken  off  the  halter  and  flung 
himself  into  a  goose-pond,  where  he  changed  himself  into  a  little 
fish.  Farmer  Weatherbeard  went  after  him,  and  changed  himself 
into  a  great  pike.  So  Jack  turned  himself  into  a  dove,  and  Farmer 
Weatherbeard  turned  himself  into  a  hawk,  and  flew  after  the  dove 
and  struck  it.  But  a  Princess  was  standing  at  a  window  in  the 
King's  palace  watching  the  struggle. 

'  If  thou  didst  but  know  as  much  as  I  know,  thou  wouldst  fly 
in  to  me  through  the  window,'  said  the  Princess  to  the  dove. 

So  the  dove  came  flying  in  through  the  window  and  changed 
itself  into  Jack  again,  and  told  her  all  as  it  had  happened. 

'  Change  thyself  into  a  gold  ring,  and  set  thyself  on  my  finger,' 
said  the  Princess. 

'  No,  that  will  not  do,'  said  Jack, '  for  then  Farmer  Weatherbeard 
will  make  the  King  fall  sick,  and  there  will  be  no  one  who  can  make 
him  well  again  before  Farmer  Weatherbeard  comes  and  cures  him, 
and  for  that  he  will  demand  the  gold  ring.' 

'  I  will  say  that  it  was  my  mother's,  and  that  I  will  not  part  with 
it,'  said  the  Princess. 

So  Jack  changed  himself  into  a  gold  ring,  and  set  himself  on 
the  Princess's  finger,  and  Farmer  Weatherbeard  could  not  get  at 
him  there.  But  then  all  that  the  youth  had  foretold  came  to 
pass. 

The  King  became  ill,  and  there  was  no  doctor  who  could  cure 
him  till  Farmer  Weatherbeard  arrived,  and  he  demanded  the  ring 
which  was  on  the  Princess's  finger  as  a  reward. 

So  the  King  sent  a  messenger  to  the  Princess  for  the  ring. 
She,  however,  refused  to  part  with  it,  because  she  had  inherited  it 
from  her  mother.  When  the  King  was  informed  of  this  he  fell 
into  a  rage,  and  said  that  he  would  have  the  ring,  let  her  have  in- 
herited it  from  whom  she  might. 

'  Well,  it's  of  no  use  to  be  angry  about  it,'  said  the  Princess, '  for 


302 


FARMER    WEATHERBEARD 


I  can't  get  it  off.  If  you  want  the  ring  you  will  have  to  take  the 
finger  too ! ' 

'  I  will  try,  and  then  the  ring  will  very  soon  conie  off,'  said 
Farmer  Weatherboard. 

'  No,  thank  you,  I  will  try  myself,'  said  the  Princess,  and  she 
went  away  to  the  fireplace  and  put  some  ashes  on  the  ring. 


So  the  ring  came  off  and  was  lost  among  the  ashes. 

Farmer  Weatherbeard  changed  himself  into  a  hare,  which 
scratched  and  scraped  about  in  the  fireplace  after  the  ring  until  the 
ashes  were  up  to  its  ears.  But  Jack  changed  himself  into  a  fox, 
and  bit  the  hare's  head  off,  and  if  Farmer  Weatherbeard  was  pos- 
sessed by  the  evil  one  all  was  now  over  with  him.1 

1  From  P.  C.  Asbjorusen. 


303 


MOTHER  HOLLE 


ONCE  upon  a  time  there  was  a  widow  who  had  two  daughters; 
one  of  them  was  pretty  and  clever,  and  the  other  ugly  and 
lazy.  But  as  the  ugly  one  was  her  own  daughter,  she  liked  her  far 
the  best  of  the  two,  and  the  pretty  one  had  to  do  all  the  work  of  the 
house,  and  was  in  fact  the  regular  maid  of  all  work.  Every  day  she 
had  to  sit  by  a  well  on  the  high  road,  and  spin  till  her  fingers  were 
so  sore  that  they  often  bled.  One  day  some  drops  of  blood  fell  on 
her  spindle,  so  she  dipped  it  into  the  well  meaning  to  wash  it,  but,  as 
luck  would  have  it,  it  dropped  from  her  hand  and  fell  right  in.  She 
ran  weeping  to  her  stepmother,  and  told  her  what  had  happened, 
but  she  scolded  her  harshly,  and  was  so  merciless  in  her  anger  that 
she  said  : 

'  Well,  since  you've  dropped  the  spindle  down,  you  must  just  go 
after  it  yourself,  and  don't  let  rue  see  your  face  again  until  you  bring 
it  with  you.' 

Then  the  poor  girl  returned  to  the  well,  and  not  knowing  what 
she  was  about,  in  the  despair  and  misery  of  her  heart  she  sprang 
into  the  well  and  sank  to  the  bottom.  For  a  time  she  lost  all  con- 
sciousness, and  when  she  came  to  herself  again  she  was  lying  in  a 
lovely  meadow,  with  the  sun  shining  brightly  overhead,  and  a 
thousand  flowers  blooming  at  her  feet.  She  rose  up  and  wandered 
through  this  enchanted  place,  till  she  came  to  a  baker's  oven  full  of 
bread,  and  the  bread  called  out  to  her  as  she  passed : 

'  Oh  !  take  me  out,  take  rne  out,  or  I  shall  be  burnt  to  a  cinder.  I 
am  quite  done  enough.' 

So  she  stepped  up  quickly  to  the  oven  and  took  out  all  the  loaves 
one  after  the  other.  Then  she  went  on  a  little  farther  and  came  to 
a  tree  laden  with  beautiful  rosy-cheeked  apples,  and  as  she  passed 
by  it  called  out : 

'  Oh  !  shake  me,  shake  me,  my  apples  are  all  quite  ripe.' 

She  did  as  she  was  asked,  and  shook  the  tree  till  the  apples  fell 


304  MO  THEE  HOLLE 

like  rain  and  none  were  left  hanging.  When  she  had  gathered  them 
all  up  into  a  heap  she  went  on  her  way  again,  and  came  at  length 
to  a  little  house,  at  the  door  of  which  sat  an  old  woman.  The  old 
dame  had  such  large  teeth  that  the  girl  felt  frightened  and  wanted 
to  run  away,  but  the  old  woman  called  after  her  : 

'  What  are  you  afraid  of,  dear  child  '?  Stay  with  me  and  be  my 
little  maid,  and  if  you  do  your  work  well  I  will  reward  you  hand- 
somely ;  but  you  must  be  very  careful  how  you  make  my  bed — you 
must  shake  it  well  till  the  feathers  fly  ;  then  people  in  the  world 
below  say  it  snows,  for  I  am  Mother  Holle.' 

She  spoke  so  kindly  that  the  girl  took  heart  and  agreed  readily 
to  enter  her  service.  She  did  her  best  to  please  the  old  woman, 
and  shook  her  bed  with  such  a  will  that  the  feathers  flew  about  like 
snow-flakes ;  so  she  led  a  very  easy  life,  was  never  scolded,  and 
lived  on  the  fat  of  the  land.  But  after  she  had  been  some  time 
with  Mother  Holle  she  grew  sad  and  depressed,  and  at  first  she 
hardly  knew  herself  what  was  the  matter.  At  last  she  discovered 
that  she  was  homesick,  so  she  went  to  Mother  Holle  and  said : 

'  I  know  I  am  a  thousand  times  better  off  here  than  I  ever  was 
in  my  life  before,  but  notwithstanding,  I  have  a  great  longing  to  go 
home,  in  spite  of  all  your  kindness  to  me.  I  can  remain  with  you  no 
longer,  but  must  return  to  rny  own  people.' 

'  Your  desire  to  go  home  pleases  me,'  said  Mother  Holle,  '  and 
because  you  have  served  me  so  faithfully,  I  will  show  you  the  way 
back  into  the  world  myself.' 

So  she  took  her  by  the  hand  and  led  her  to  an  open  door,  and  as 
the  girl  passed  through  it  there  fell  a  heavy  shower  of  gold  all  over 
her,  till  she  was  covered  with  it  from  top  to  toe. 

'  That's  a  reward  for  being  such  a  good  little  rnaid,'  said  Mother 
Holle,  and  she  gave  her  the  spindle  too  that  had  fallen  into  the 
well.  Then  she  shut  the  door,  and  the  girl  found  herself  back  in 
the  world  again,  not  far  from  her  own  house  ;  and  when  she  came 
to  the  courtyard  the  old  hen,  who  sat  on  the  top  of  the  wall,  called 
out: 

'  Click,  clock,  clack, 
Our  golden  maid's  come  back.' 

Then  she  went  in  to  her  stepmother,  and  as  she  had  returned 
covered  with  gold  she  was  welcomed  home. 

She  proceeded  to  tell  all  that  had  happened  to  her,  and  when 
the  mother  heard  how  she  had  come  by  her  riches,  she  was  most 


MOTHER   HOLLE 


305 


anxious  to  secure  the  same  luck  for  her  own  idle,  ugly  daughter ; 
so  she  told  her  to  sit  at  the  well  and  spin.  In  order  to  make  her 
spindle  bloody,  she  stuck  her  hand  into  a  hedge  of  thorns  and  pricked 
her  finger.  Then  she  threw  the  spindle  into  the  well,  and  jumped 
in  herself  after  it.  Like  her  sister  she  came  to  the  beautiful  meadow, 


and  followed  the  same  path.  When  she  reached  the  baker's  OAren 
the  bread  called  out  as  before  : 

'  Oh  !  take  me  out,  take  me  out,  or  I  shall  be  burnt  to  a  cinder. 
I  am  quite  done  enough.' 

But  the  good-for-nothing  girl  answered  : 

'  A  pretty  joke,  indeed ;  just  as  if  I  should  dirty  my  hands  for  you ! ' 
R.  x 


306  MO  THEE  HOLLE 

And  on  she  went.     Soon  she  came  to  the  apple  tree,  which  cried : 
'  Oh  !  shake  me,  shake  me,  my  apples  are  all  quite  ripe.' 
'  I'll  see  myself  farther,'  she  replied,  '  one  of  them  might  fall  on 
my  head.' 

And  so  she  pursued  her  way.  When  she  came  to  Mother  Holle's 
house  she  wasn't  the  least  afraid,  for  she  had  been  warned  about 
her  big  teeth,  and  she  readily  agreed  to  become  her  maid.  The  first 
day  she  worked  very  hard,  and  did  all  her  mistress  told  her,  for  she 
thought  of  the  gold  she  would  give  her  ;  but  on  the  second  day  she 
began  to  be  lazy,  and  on  the  third  she  wouldn't  even  get  up  in  the 
morning.  She  did»'t  make  Mother  Holle's  bed  as  she  ought  to 
have  done,  and  never  shook  it  enough  to  make  the  feathers  fly.  So 
her  mistress  soon  grew  weary  of  her,  and  dismissed  her,  much  to  the 
lazy  creature's  delight. 

'  For  now,'  she  thought, '  the  shower  of  golden  rain  will  come.' 
Mother  Holle  led  her  to  the  same  door  as  she  had  done  her  sister, 
but  when  she  passed  through  it,  instead  of  the  gold  rain  a  kettle  full 
of  pitch  came  showering  over  her. 

'  That's  a  reward  for  your  service,'  said  Mother  Holle,  and  she 
closed  the  door  behind  her. 

So  the  lazy  girl  came  home  all  covered  with  pitch,  and  when  the 
old  hen  on  the  top  of  the  wall  saw  her,  it  called  out : 

'  Click,  clock,  clack, 
Our  dirty  slut's  come  back.' 

But  the  pitch  remained  sticking  to  her,  and  never  as  long  as  she 
lived  could  it  be  got  off.1 

1  Grimm. 


307 


MINNIKIN 


THEEE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  couple  of  needy  folk  who  lived 
in  a  wretched  hut,  in  which  there  was  nothing  but  black  want ; 
so  they  had  neither  food  to  eat  nor  wood  to  burn.  But  if  they  had 
next  to  nothing  of  all  else  they  had  the  blessing  of  God  so  far  as 
children  were  concerned,  and  every  year  brought  them  one  more. 
The  man  was  not  overpleased  at  this.  He  was  always  going  about 
grumbling  and  growling,  and  saying  that  it  seemed  to  him  that 
there  might  be  such  a  thing  as  having  too  many  of  these  good 
gifts ;  so  shortly  before  another  baby  was  born  he  went  away  into 
the  wood  for  some  firewood,  saying  that  he  did  not  want  to  see  the 
new  child ;  he  would  hear  him  quite  soon  enough  when  he  began  to 
squall  for  some  food. 

As  soon  as  this  baby  was  born  it  began  to  look  about  the  room. 
'  Ah,  my  dear  mother  ! '  said  he,  '  give  me  some  of  my  brothers'  old 
clothes,  and  food  enough  for  a  few  days,  and  I  will  go  out  into  the 
world  and  seek  my  fortune,  for,  so  far  as  I  can  see,  you  have  children 
enough.' 

'  Heaven  help  thee,  my  son  !  '  said  the  mother,  '  that  will  never 
do  ;  thou  art  still  far  too  little.' 

But  the  little  creature  was  determined  to  do  it,  and  begged  and 
prayed  so  long  that  the  mother  was  forced  to  let  him  have  some 
old  rags,  and  tie  up  a  little  food  for  him,  and  then  gaily  and  happily 
he  went  out  into  the  world. 

But  almost  before  he  was  out  of  the  house  another  boy  was 
born,  and  he  too  looked  about  him,  and  said, '  Ah,  my  dear  mother  ! 
give  me  some  of  my  brothers'  old  clothes,  and  food  for  some  days, 
and  then  I  will  go  out  into  the  world  and  rind  my  twin  brother,  for 
you  have  children  enough.' 

'  Heaven  help  thee,  little  creature  !  thou  art  far  too  little  for  that,' 
said  the  woman ;  '  it  would  never  do.' 

But  she  spoke  to  no  purpose,  for  the  boy  begged  and  prayed 

x2 


308  MINNIKIN 

until  he  had  got  some  old  rags  and  a  bundle  of  provisions,  and  then 
he  set  out  manfully  into  the  world  to  find  his  twin  brother. 

When  the  younger  had  walked  for  some  time  he  caught  sight 
of  his  brother  a  short  distance  in  front  of  him,  and  called  to  him 
and  bade  him  to  stop. 

'  Wait  a  minute,'  he  said ;  '  you  are  walking  as  if  for  a  wager, 
but  you  ought  to  have  stayed  to  see  your  younger  brother  before 
you  hurried  off  into  the  world.' 

So  the  elder  stood  still  and  looked  back,  and  when  the  younger 
had  got  up  to  him,  and  had  told  him  that  he  was  his  brother,  he  said  : 
'  But  now,  let  us  sit  down  and  see  what  kind  of  food  our  mother  has 
given  us,'  and  that  they  did. 

When  they  had  walked  on  a  little  farther  they  came  to  a  brook 
which  ran  through  a  green  meadow,  and  there  the  younger  said  that 
they  ought  to  christen  each  other.  'As  we  had  to  make  such  haste, 
and  had  no  time  to  do  it  at  home,  we  may  as  well  do  it  here,'  said  he. 

'  What  will  you  be  called  ?  '  asked  the  elder. 

'  I  will  be  called  Minnikin,'  answered  the  second ;  '  and  you, 
what  will  you  be  called  ?  ' 

'  I  will  be  called  King  Pippin,'  answered  the  elder. 

They  christened  each  other  and  then  went  onwards.  When  they 
had  walked  for  some  time  they  came  to  a  crossway,  and  there  they 
agreed  to  part,  and  each  take  his  own  road.  This  they  did,  but  no 
sooner  had  they  walked  a  short  distance  than  they  met  again.  So 
they  parted  once  more,  and  each  took  his  own  road,  but  in  a  very 
short  time  the  same  thing  happened  again — they  met  each  other 
before  they  were  at  all  aware,  and  so  it  happened  the  third  time  also. 
Then  they  arranged  with  each  other  that  each  should  choose  his 
own  quarter,  and  one  should  go  east  and  the  other  west. 

'  But  if  ever  you  fall  into  any  need  or  trouble,'  said  the  elder, 
'  call  me  thrice,  and  I  will  come  and  help  you;  only  you  must  not 
call  me  until  you  are  in  the  utmost  need.' 

'  In  that  case  we  shall  not  see  each  other  for  some  time,'  said 
Minnikin  ;  so  they  bade  farewell  to  each  other,  and  Minnikin  went 
east  and  King  Pippin  went  west. 

When  Minnikin  had  walked  a  long  way  alone,  he  met  an  old, 
old  crook-backed  hag,  who  had  only  one  eye.  Minnikin  stole  it. 

'  Oh  !  oh  ! '  cried  the  old  hag,  '  what  has  become  of  my  eye  ?  ' 

'  What  will  you  give  me  to  get  your  eye  back  ?  '  said  Minnikin. 

'  I  will  give  thee  a  sword  which  is  such  a  sword  that  it  can  con- 
quer a  whole  army,  let  it  be  ever  so  great,'  replied  the  woman. 


MINNIKIN 


309 


'  Let  roe  have  it,  then,'  said  Minnikin. 

The  old  hag  gave  him  the  sword,  so  she  got  her  eye  back. 
Then  Minnikin  went  onwards,  and  when  he  had  wandered  on  for 
some  time  he  again  met  an  old,  old  crook-backed  hag,  who  had  only 
one  eye.  Minnikin  stole  it  before  she  was  aware. 

'  Oh  !  oh  !  what  has  become  of  my  eye  ?  '  cried  the  old  hag. 

'  What  will  you  give  me  to  get  your  eye  back  ?  '  said  Minnikin. 


'  I  will  give  thee  a  ship  which  can  sail  over  fresh  water  and  salt 
water,  over  high  hills  and  deep  dales,'  answered  the  old  woman. 

'  Let  me  have  it  then,'  said  Minnikin. 

So  the  old  woman  gave  him  a  little  bit  of  a  ship  which  was  no 
bigger  than  he  could  put  in  his  pocket,  and  then  she  got  her  eye 
back,  and  she  went  her  way  and  Minnikin  his.  When  he  had 
walked  on  for  a  long  time,  he  met  for  the  third  time  an  old,  old 


310  MINNIKIN 

crook-backed  hag,  who  had  only  one  eye.  This  eye  also  Minnikin 
stole,  and  when  the  woman  screamed  and  lamented,  and  asked 
what  had  become  of  her  eye,  Minnikin  said,  '  What  will  you  give 
me  to  get  your  eye  back  ?  ' 

'  I  will  give  thee  the  art  to  brew  a  hundred  lasts  of  malt  in  one 
brewing.' 

So,  for  teaching  that  art,  the  old  hag  got  her  eye  back,  and  they 
both  went  away  by  different  roads. 

But  when  Minnikin  had  walked  a  short  distance,  it  seemed  to 
him  that  it  might  be  worth  while  to  see  what  his  ship  could  do  ;  so 
he  took  it  out  of  his  pocket,  and  first  he  put  one  foot  into  it,  and 
then  the  other,  and  no  sooner  had  he  put  one  foot  into  the  ship  than 
it  became  much  larger,  and  when  he  set  the  other  foot  into  it,  it  grew 
as  large  as  ships  that  sail  on  the  sea. 

Then  Minnikin  said  :  '  Now  go  over  fresh  water  and  salt  water, 
over  high  hills  and  deep  dales,  and  do  not  stop  until  thou  comest 
to  the  King's  palace.' 

And  in  an  instant  the  ship  went  away  as  swiftly  as  any  bird  in 
the  air  till  it  got  just  below  the  King's  palace,  and  there  it  stood 
still. 

From  the  windows  of  the  King's  palace  many  persons  had  seen 
Minnikin  come  sailing  thither,  and  had  stood  to  watch  him  ;  and 
Uiey  were  all  so  astounded  that  they  ran  down  to  see  what  manner 
of  man  this  could  be  who  came  sailing  in  a  ship  through  the  air. 
But  while  they  were  running  down  from  the  King's  palace,  Minnikin 
had  got  out  of  the  ship  and  had  put  it  in  his  pocket  again ;  for  the 
moment  he  got  out  of  it,  it  once  more  became  as  small  as  it  had 
been  when  he  got  it  from  the  old  woman,  and  those  who  came  from 
the  King's  palace  could  see  nothing  but  a  ragged  little  boy  who  was 
standing  down  by  the  sea-shore.  The  King  asked  where  he  had 
come  from,  but  the  boy  said  he  did  not  know,  nor  yet  could  he  tell 
them  how  he  had  got  there,  but  he  begged  very  earnestly  and 
prettily  for  a  place  in  the  King's  palace.  If  there  was  nothing  else 
for  him  to  do,  he  said  he  would  fetch  wood  and  water  for  the 
kitchen-maid,  and  that  he  obtained  leave  to  do. 

When  Minnikin  went  up  to  the  King's  palace  he  saw  that 
everything  there  was  hung  with  black  both  outside  and  inside,  from 
the  bottom  to  the  top ;  so  he  asked  the  kitchen-maid  what  that 
meant. 

'  Oh,  I  will  tell  you  that,'  answered  the  kitchen-maid.  '  The 
King's  daughter  was  long  ago  promised  away  to  three  Trolls,  and 


MINNIKIN 


311 


next  Thursday  evening  one  of  them  is  to  come  to  fetch  her.  Ritter 
Bed  has  said  that  he  will  be  able  to  set  her  free,  but  who  knows 
whether  he  will  be  able  to  do  it  ?  so  you  may  easily  imagine  what 
grief  and  distress  we  are  in  here.' 

So  when  Thursday  evening  came,  Bitter  Bed  accompanied  the 
Princess  to  the  sea-shore ;  for  there  she  was  to  meet  the  Troll,  and 
Bitter  Bed  was  to  stay  with  her  and  protect  her.  He,  however,  was 
very  unlikely  to  do  the  Troll  much  injury,  for  no  sooner  had  the 


Princess  seated  herself  by  the  sea-shore  than  Bitter  Bed  climbed 
up  into  a  great  tree  which  was  standing  there,  and  hid  himself  as 
well  as  he  could  among  the  branches. 

The  Princess  wept,  and  begged  him  most  earnestly  not  to  go  and 
leave  her  ;  but  Bitter  Bed  did  not  concern  himself  about  that.  '  It 
is  better  that  one  should  die  than  two,'  said  he. 

In  the  meantime  Minnikin  begged  the  kitchen-maid  very  pret- 
tily to  give  him  leave  to  go  down  to  the  strand  for  a  short  time. 


312 


MINNIKIN 


'  Oh,  what  could  you  do  down  at  the  strand  '? '  said  the  kitchen- 
maid.  '  You  have  nothing  to  do  there.' 

'  Oh  yes,  my  dear,  just  let  me  go,'  said  Minnikin.  '  I  should 
so  like  to  go  and  amuse  myself  with  the  other  children.' 

'  Well,  well,  go  then  !  '  said  the  kitchen-maid,  '  but  don't  let  me 
find  you  staying  there  over  the  time  when  the  pan  has  to  be  set  on 
the  fire  for  supper,  and  the  roast  put  on  the  spit ;  and  mind  you 
bring  back  a  good  big  armful  of  wood  for  the  kitchen.' 


Minnikin  promised  this,  and  ran  down  to  the  sea-shore. 

Just  as  he  got  to  the  place  where  the  King's  daughter  was  sit- 
ting, the  Troll  came  rushing  up  with  a  great  whistling  and  whir- 
ring, and  he  was  so  big  and  stout  that  he  was  terrible  to  see,  and 
he  had  five  heads. 

'  Fire  ! '  screeched  the  Troll. 

'  Fire  yourself ! '  said  Minnikin. 

'  Can  you  fight  ?  '  roared  the  Troll. 

'  If  not,  I  can  learn,'  said  Minnikin. 


MINNIKIN  313 

So  the  Troll  struck  at  him  with  a  great  thick  iron  bar  which  he 
had  in  his  fist,  till  the  sods  flew  five  yards  up  into  the  air. 

'  Fie  ! '  said  Minnikin.  '  That  was  not  much  of  a  blow.  Now 
you  shall  see  one  of  mine.' 

So  he  grasped  the  sword  which  he  had  got  from  the  old  crook- 
backed  woman,  and  slashed  at  the  Troll,  so  that  all  five  heads  went 
flying  away  over  the  sands. 

When  the  Princess  saw  that  she  was  delivered  she  was  so 
delighted  that  she  did  not  know  what  she  was  doing,  and  skipped 
and  danced. 

'  Come  and  sleep  a  bit  with  your  head  in  my  lap,'  she  said  to 
Minnikin,  and  as  he  slept  she  put  a  golden  dress  on  him. 

But  when  Bitter  Bed  saw  that  there  was  no  longer  any  danger 
afoot,  he  lost  no  time  in  creeping  down  from  the  tree.  He  then 
threatened  the  Princess,  until  at  length  she  was  forced  to  promise 
to  say  that  it  was  he  who  had  rescued  her,  for  he  told  her  that  if 
she  did  not  he  would  kill  her.  Then  he  took  the  Troll's  lungs  and 
tongue  and  put  them  in  his  pdcket-handkerchief,  and  led  the 
Princess  back  to  the  King's  palace ;  and  whatsoever  had  been 
lacking  to  him  in  the  way  of  honour  before  was  lacking  no  longer, 
for  the  King  did  not  know  how  to  exalt  him  enough,  and  always 
set  him  on  his  own  right  hand  at  table. 

As  for  Minnikin,  first  he  went  out  on  the  Troll's  ship  and  took 
a  great  quantity  of  gold  and  silver  hoops  away  with  him,  and  then 
he  trotted  back  to  the  King's  palace. 

When  the  kitchen-maid  caught  sight  of  all  this  gold  and  silver 
she  was  quite  amazed,  and  said :  '  My  dear  friend  Minnikin,  where 
have  you  got  all  that  from  ?  '  for  she  was  half  afraid  that  he  had 
not  come  by  it  honestly. 

'  Oh,'  answered  Minnikin, '  I  have  been  home  a  while,  and  these 
hoops  had  fallen  off  some  of  our  buckets,  so  I  brought  them  away 
with  me  for  you.' 

So  when  the  kitchen-maid  heard  that  they  were  for  her,  she 
asked  no  more  questions  about  the  matter.  She  thanked  Minnikin, 
and  everything  was  right  again  at  once. 

Next  Thursday  evening  all  went  just  the  same,  and  everyone 
was  full  of  grief  and  affliction,  but  Bitter  Bed  said  that  he  had  been 
able  to  deliver  the  King's  daughter  from  one  Troll,  so  that  he  could 
very  easily  deliver  her  from  another,  and  he  led  her  down  to  the 
sea- shore.  But  he  did  not  do  much  harm  to  this  Troll  either,  for 
when  the  time  came  when  the  Troll  might  be  expected,  he  said  as 


314  MINNIKIN 

he  had  said  before  :  '  It  is  better  that  one  should  die  than  two,'  and 
then  climbed  up  into  the  tree  again. 

Miiinikin  once  more  begged  the  cook's  leave  to  go  down  to  the 
sea -shore  for  a  short  time. 

'  Oh,  what  can  you  do  there  ?  '  said  the  cook. 

'  My  dear,  do  let  me  go  ! '  said  Minnikin ;  '  I  should  so  like  to  go 
down  there  and  amuse  myself  a  little  with  the  other  children.' 

So  this  time  also  she  said  that  he  should  have  leave  to  go,  but 
he  must  first  promise  that  he  would  be  back  by  the  time  the  joint 
was  turned,  and  that  he  would  bring  a  great  arrnful  of  wood  with 
him. 

No  sooner  had  Minnikin  got  down  to  the  strand  than  the  Troll 
came  rushing  along  with  a  great  whistling  and  whirring,  and  he 
was  twice  as  big  as  the  first  Troll,  and  he  had  ten  heads. 

'  Fire  ! '  shrieked  the  Troll. 

'  Fire  yourself !  '  said  Minnikin. 

'  Can  you  fight  ?  '  roared  the  Troll. 

'  If  not,  I  can  learn,'  said  Minnikin. 

So  the  Troll  struck  at  him  with  his  iron  club — which  was  still 
bigger  than  that  which  the  first  Troll  had  had — so  that  the  earth 
flew  ten  yards  up  in  the  air. 

'  Fie  ! '  said  Minnikin.  '  That  was  not  much  of  a  blow.  Now 
you  shall  see  one  of  my  blows.' 

Then  he  grasped  his  sword  and  struck  at  the  Troll,  so  that  all  his 
ten  heads  danced  away  over  the  sands. 

And  again  the  King's  daughter  said  to  him,  '  Sleep  a  while  on  my 
lap,'  and  while  Minnikin  lay  there  she  drew  some  silver  raiment 
over  him. 

As  soon  as  Bitter  Red  saw  that  there  was  no  longer  any  danger 
afoot,  he  crept  down  from  the  tree  and  threatened  the  Princess, 
until  at  last  she  was  again  forced  to  promise  to  say  that  it  was  he 
who  had  rescued  her ;  after  which  he  took  the  tongue  and  the  lungs 
of  the  Troll  and  put  them  in  his  pocket-handkerchief,  and  then 
he  conducted  the  Princess  back  to  the  palace.  There  was  joy 
and  gladness  in  the  palace,  as  may  be  imagined,  and  the  King 
did  not  know  how  to  show  enough  honour  and  respect  to  Bitter  Bed. 

Minnikin,  however,  took  home  with  him  an  armful  of  gold  and 
silver  hoops  from  the  Troll's  ship.  When  he  came  back  to  the 
King's  palace  the  kitchen-maid  clapped  her  hands  and  wondered 
where  he  could  have  got  all  that  gold  and  silver ;  but  Minnikin 
answered  that  he  had  been  home  for  a  short  time,  and  that  it  was 


MINNIKIN  315 

only  the  hoops  which  had  fallen  off  some  pails,  and  that  he  had 
brought  them  away  for  the  kitchen-maid. 

When  the  third  Thursday  evening  came,  everything  happened 
exactly  as  it  had  happened  on  the  two  former  occasions.  Every- 
thing in  the  King's  palace  was  hung  with  black,  and  everyone  was 
sorrowful  and  distressed ;  but  Eitter  Red  said  that  he  did  not  think 
that  they  had  much  reason  to  be  afraid — he  had  delivered  the 
King's  daughter  from  two  Trolls,  so  he  could  easily  deliver  her 
from  the  third  as  well. 

He  led  her  down  to  the  strand,  but  when  the  time  drew  near  for 
the  Troll  to  come,  he  climbed  up  into  the  tree  again  and  hid  himself. 

The  Princess  wept  and  entreated  him  to  stay,  but  all  to  no 
purpose.  He  stuck  to  his  old  speech,  '  It  is  better  that  one  life  should 
be  lost  than  two.' 

This  evening  also,  Minnikin  begged  for  leave  to  go  down  to  the 
sea-shore. 

'  Qh,  what  can  you  do  there  ?  '  answered  the  kitchen-maid. 

However,  he  begged  until  at  last  he  got  leave  to  go,  but  he  was 
forced  to  promise  that  he  would  be  back  again  in  the  kitchen  when 
the  roast  had  to  be  turned. 

Almost  immediately  after  he  had  got  down  to  the  sea-shore  the 
Troll  came  with  a  great  whizzing  and  whirring,  and  he  was  much, 
much  bigger  than  either  of  the  two  former  ones,  and  he  had  fifteen 
heads. 

'  Fire ! '  roared  the  Troll. 

'  Fire  yourself !  '  said  Minnikin. 

'  Can  you  fight  ?  '  screamed  the  Troll. 

'  If  not,  I  can  learn,'  said  Minnikin. 

'  I  will  teach  you,'  yelled  the  Troll,  and  struck  at  him  with  his 
iron  club  so  that  the  earth  flew  up  fifteen  yards  high  into  the  air. 

'  Fie  ! '  said  Minnikin.  '  That  was  not  much  of  a  blow.  Now  I 
will  let  you  see  one  of  my  blows.' 

So  saying  he  grasped  his  sword,  and  cut  at  the  Troll  in  such  a 
way  that  all  his  fifteen  heads  danced  away  over  the  sands. 

Then  the  Princess  was  delivered,  and  she  thanked  Minnikin 
and  blessed  him  for  saving  her. 

'  Sleep  a  while  now  on  my  lap,'  said  she,  and  while  he  lay  there 
she  put  a  garment  of  brass  upon  him. 

'  But  now,  how  shall  we  have  it  made  known  that  it  was  you 
who  saved  me  ?  '  said  the  King's  daughter. 

'  That  I  will  tell  you,'  answered  Minnikin.     '  When  Hitter  Bed 


316  MINNIKIN 

has  taken  you  home  again,  and  given  out  that  it  was  he  who 
rescued  you,  he  will,  as  you  know,  have  you  to  wife,  and  half  the 
kingdom.  But  when  they  ask  you  on  your  wedding-day  whom 
you  will  have  to  be  your  cup-bearer,  you  must  say,  "  I  will  have  the 
ragged  boy  who  is  in  the  kitchen,  and  carries  wood  and  water  for 
the  kitchen-maid ;  "  and  when  I  am  filling  your  cups  for  you,  I  will 
spill  a  drop  upon  his  plate  but  none  upon  yours,  and  then  he  will 
be  angry  and  strike  me,  and  this  will  take  place  thrice.  But  the 
third  time  you  must  say,  "  Shame  011  you  thus  to  smite  the  beloved 
of  mine  heart.  It  is  he  who  delivered  me  from  the  Troll,  and  he  is 
the  one  whom  I  will  have."  ' 

Then  Minnikin  ran  back  to  the  King's  palace  as  he  had  done 
before,  but  first  he  went  on  board  the  Troll's  ship  and  took  a  great 
quantity  of  gold  and  silver  and  other  precious  things,  and  out  of 
these  he  once  more  gave  to  the  kitchen-maid  a  whole  armful  of  gold 
and  silver  hoops. 

No  sooner  did  Bitter  Red  see  that  all  danger  was  over  than  he 
crept  down  from  the  tree,  and  threatened  the  King's  daughter  till 
he  made  her  promise  to  say  that  he  had  rescued  her.  Then  he 
conducted  her  back  to  the  King's  palace,  and  if  honour  enough  had 
not  been  done  him  before  it  was  certainly  done  now,  for  the  King 
had  no  other  thought  than  how  to  make  much  of  the  man  who  had 
saved  his  daughter  from  the  three  Trolls ;  and  it  was  settled  then 
that  Ritter  Red  should  marry  her,  and  receive  half  the  kingdom. 

On  the  wedding-day,  however,  the  Princess  begged  that  she  might 
have  the  little  boy  who  was  in  the  kitchen,  and  carried  wood  and 
water  for  the  kitchen-maid,  to  fill  the  wine-cups  at  the  wedding  feast. 

'  Oh,  what  can  you  want  with  that  dirty,  ragged  boy,  in  here  ?  ' 
said  Ritter  Red,  but  the  Princess  said  that  she  insisted  on  having 
him  as  cup-bearer  and  would  have  no  one  else ;  and  at  last  she  got 
leave,  and  then  everything  was  done  as  had  been  agreed  on  between 
the  Princess  and  Minnikin.  He  spilt  a  drop  on  Ritter  Red's  plate 
but  none  upon  hers,  and  each  time  that  he  did  it  Ritter  Red  fell 
into  a  rage  and  struck  him.  At  the  first  blow  all  the  ragged 
garments  which  he  had  worn  in  the  kitchen  fell  from  off  Minnikin, 
at  the  second  blow  the  brass  garments  fell  off,  and  at  the  third 
the  silver  raiment,  and  there  he  stood  in  the  golden  raiment,  which 
was  so  bright  and  splendid  that  light  flashed  from  it. 

Then  the  King's  daughter  said :  '  Shame  on  you  thus  to  smite 
the  beloved  of  my  heart.  It  is  he  who  delivered  me  from  the  Troll, 
and  he  is  the  one  whom  I  will  have.' 


MINNIKIN  31.7 

Hitter  Red  swore  that  he  was  the  man  who  had  saved  her,  but 
the  King  said :  '  He  who  delivered  my  daughter  must  have  some 
token  in  proof  of  it.' 

So  Kitter  Red  ran  off  at  once  for  his  handkerchief  with  the  lungs 
and  tongue,  and  Minnikin  went  and  brought  all  the  gold  and  silver 
and  precious  things  which  he  had  taken  out  of  the  Trolls'  ships ; 
and  they  each  of  them  laid  these  tokens  before  the  King. 

'  He  who  has  such  precious  things  in  gold  and  silver  and 
diamonds,'  said  the  King,  '  must  be  the  one  who  killed  the  Troll, 
for  such  things  are  not  to  be  had  anywhere  else.'  So  Bitter  Red 
was  thrown  into  the  snake-pit,  and  Minnikin  was  to  have  the 
Princess,  and  half  the  kingdom. 

One  day  the  King  went  out  walking  with  Minnikin,  and 
Minnikin  asked  him  if  he  had  never  had  any  other  children. 

'  Yes,'  said  the  King,  '  I  had  another  daughter,  but  the  Troll 
carried  her  away  because  there  was  no  one  who  could  deliver  her. 
You  are  going  to  have  one  daughter  of  mine,  but  if  you  can  set  free 
the  other,  who  has  been  taken  by  the  Troll,  you  shall  willingly 
have  her  too,  and  the  other  half  of  the  kingdom  as  well.' 

'  I  may  as  well  make  the  attempt,'  said  Minnikin,  '  but  I  must 
have  an  iron  rope  which  is  five  hundred  ells  long,  and  then  I  must 
have  five  hundred  men  with  me,  and  provisions  for  five  weeks,  for 
I  have  a  long  voyage  before  me.' 

So  the  King  said  he  should  have  these  things,  but  the  King  was 
afraid  that  he  had  no  ship  large  enough  to  carry  them  all. 

'  But  I  have  a  ship  of  my  own,'  said  Minnikin,  and  he  took 
the  one  which  the  old  woman  had  given  him  out  of  his  pocket. 
The  King  laughed  at  him  and  thought  that  it  was  only  one  of  his 
jokes,  but  Minnikin  begged  him  just  to  give  him  what  he  had 
asked  for,  and  then  he  should  see  something.  Then  all  that 
Minnikin  had  asked  for  was  brought ;  and  first  he  ordered  them  to 
lay  the  cable  in  the  ship,  but  there  was  no  one  who  was  able  to 
lift  it,  and  there  was  only  room  for  one  or  two  men  at  a  time  in 
the  little  bit  of  a  ship.  Then  Minnikin  himself  took  hold  of  the 
cable,  and  laid  one  or  two  links  of  it  into  the  ship,  and  as  he  threw 
the  links  into  it  the  ship  grew  bigger  and  bigger,  and  at  last  it  was  so 
large  that  the  cable,  and  the  five  tmndred  men,  and  provisions,  and 
Minnikin  himself,  had  room  enough. 

'  Now  go  over  fresh  water  and  salt  water,  over  hill  and  dale, 
and  do  not  stop  until  thou  comest  to  where  the  King's  daughter 
is,'  said  Minnikin  to  the  ship,  and  off  it  went  in  a  moment 


318  MINNIKIN 

over  land  and  water  till  the  wind  whistled  and  moaned  all  round 
about  it. 

When  they  had  sailed  thus  a  long,  long  way,  the  ship  stopped 
short  in  the  middle  of  the  sea. 

'  Ah,  now  we  have  got  there,'  said  Minnikin,  '  but  how  we 
are  to  get  back  again  is  a  very  different  thing.' 

Then  he  took  the  cable  and  tied  one  end  of  it  round  his  body. 
'  Now  I  must  go  to  the  bottom,'  he  said,  '  but  when  I  give  a  good 
jerk  to  the  cable  and  want  to  come  up  again,  you  must  all  pull 
like  one  man,  or  there  will  be  an  end  of  all  life  both  for  you  and 
for  me.'  So  saying  he  sprang  into  the  water,  and  yellow  bubbles 
rose  up  all  around  him.  He  sank  lower  and  lower,  and  at  last  he 
came  to  the  bottom.  There  he  saw  a  large  hill  with  a  door  in  it, 
and  in  he  went.  When  he  had  got  inside  he  found  the  other 
Princess  sitting  sewing,  but  when  she  saw  Minnikin  she  clapped 
her  hands. 

'  Ah,  heaven  be  praised ! '  she  cried,  '  I  have  not  seen  a 
Christian  man  since  I  came  here.' 

'  I  have  come  for  you,'  said  Minnikin. 

'  Alas !  you  will  not  be  able  to  get  me,'  said  the  King's  daughter. 
'  It  is  no  use  even  to  think  of  that ;  if  the  Troll  catches  sight  of 
you  he  will  take  your  life.' 

'  You  had  better  tell  me  about  him,'  said  Minnikin.  '  Where  is 
he  gone  ?  It  would  be  amusing  to  see  him.' 

So  the  King's  daughter  told  Minnikin  that  the  Troll  was  out 
trying  to  get  hold  of  someone  who  could  brew  a  hundred  lasts  of 
malt  at  one  brewing,  for  there  was  to  be  a  feast  at  the  Troll's,  at 
which  less  than  that  would  not  be  drunk. 

'  I  can  do  that,'  said  Minnikin. 

'  Ah !  if  only  the  Troll  were  not  so  quick-tempered  I  might  have 
told  him  that,'  answered  the  Princess,  'but  he  is  so  ill-natured 
that  he  will  tear  you  to  pieces,  I  fear,  as  soon  as  he  comes  in.  But 
I  will  try  to  find  some  way  of  doing  it.  Can  you  hide  yourself 
here  in  the  cupboard?  and  then  we  will  see  what  happens.' 

Minnikin  did  this,  and  almost  before  he  had  crept  into  the  cup- 
board and  hidden  himself,  came  the  Troll. 

'  Huf !  What  a  smell  of  Christian  man's  blood  ! '  said  the  Troll. 

'  Yes,  a  bird  flew  over  the  roof  with  a  Christian  man's  bone  in 
his  bill,  and  let  it  fall  down  our  chimney,'  answered  the  Princess. 
'  I  made  haste  enough  to  get  it  away  again,  but  it  must  be  that 
which  smells  so,  notwithstanding.' 


319 

'  Yes,  it  must  be  that,'  said  the  Troll. 

Then  the  Princess  asked  if  he  had  got  hold  of  anyone  who  could 
brew  a  hundred  lasts  of  malt  at  one  brewing. 

'  Xo,  there  is  no  one  who  can  do  it,'  said  the  Troll. 

'  A  short  time  since  there  was  a  man  here  who  said  he  could  do 
it,1  said  the  King's  daughter. 


'  How  clever  you  always  are  !  '  said  the  Troll.  '  How  could 
you  let  him  go  away  ?  You  must  have  known  that  I  was  just 
wanting  a  man  of  that  kind.' 

'  Well,  but  I  didn't  let  him  go,  after  all,'  said  the  Princess ; 
'  but  father  is  so  quick-tempered,  so  I  hid  him  in  the  cupboard,  but 
if  father  has  not  found  any  one  then  the  man  is  still  here,' 


320  MINNIKTN 

'  Let  him  come  in,'  said  the  Troll. 

When  Minnikin  came,  the  Troll  asked  if  it  were  true  that  he 
could  brew  a  hundred  lasts  of  malt  at  one  brewing. 

'  Yes,'  said  Minnikin,  '  it  is.' 

'  It  is  well  then  that  I  have  lighted  on  thee,'  said  the  Troll. 
'  Fall  to  work  this  very  minute,  but  Heaven  help  thee  if  thou  dost 
not  brew  the  ale  strong.' 

'  Oh,  it  shall  taste  well,'  said  Minnikin,  and  at  once  set  himself 
to  work  to  brew. 

'  But  I  must  have  more  trolls  to  help  to  carry  what  is  wanted,' 
said  Minnikin;  '  these  that  I  have  are  good  for  nothing.' 

So  he  got  more  and  so  many  that  there  was  a  swarm  of  them, 
and  then  the  brewing  went  on.  When  the  sweet-wort  was  ready 
they  were  all,  as  a  matter  of  course,  anxious  to  taste  it,  first  the 
Troll  himself  and  then  the  others ;  but  Minnikin  had  brewed  the 
wort  so  strong  that  they  all  fell  down  dead  like  so  many  flies  as 
soon  as  they  had  drur.k  any  of  it.  At  last  there  was  no  one  left 
but  one  wretched  old  hag  who  was  lying  behind  the  stove. 

'  Oh,  poor  old  creature  !  '  said  Minnikin,  '  you  shall  have  a  taste 
of  the  wort  too  like  the  rest.'  So  he  went  away  and  scooped  up  a 
little  from  the  bottom  of  the  brewing  vat  in  a  milk  pan,  and  gave 
it  to  her,  and  then  he  was  quit  of  the  whole  of  them. 

While  Minnikin  was  now  standing  there  looking  about  him,  he 
cast  his  eye  on  a  large  chest.  This  he  took  and  filled  it  with  gold 
and  silver,  and  then  he  tied  the  cable  round  himself  and  the 
Princess  and  the  chest,  and  tugged  at  the  rope  with  all  his  might, 
whereupon  his  men  drew  them  up  safe  and  sound. 

As  soon  as  Minnikin  had  got  safely  on  his  ship  again,  he  said  : 
'  Now  go  over  salt  water  and  fresh  water,  over  hill  and  dale,  and  do 
not  stop  until  thou  comest  unto  the  King's  palace.'  And  in  a 
moment  the  ship  went  off  so  fast  that  the  yellow  foam  rose  up  all 
round  about  it. 

When  those  who  were  in  the  King's  palace  saw  the  ship,  they 
lost  no  time  in  going  to  meet  him  with  song  and  music,  and  thus 
they  marched  up  towards  Minnikin  with  great  rejoicings ;  but 
the  gladdest  of  all  was  the  King,  for  now  he  had  got  his  other 
daughter  back  again. 

But  now  Minnikin  was  not  happy,  for  both  the  Princesses 
wanted  to  have  him,  and  he  wanted  to  have  none  other  than  the 
one  whom  he  had  first  saved,  and  she  was  the  younger.  For  this 
cause  he  was  continually  walking  backwards  and  forwards,  thinking 


MINNIKIN  321 

how  he  could  contrive  to  get  her,  and  yet  do  nothing  that  was  unkind 
to  her  sister.  One  day  when  he  was  walking  about  and  thinking 
of  this,  it  came  into  his  mind  that  if  he  only  had  his  brother,  King 
Pippin,  with  him,  who  was  so  like  himself  that  no  one  could  dis- 
tinguish the  one  from  the  other,  he  could  let  him  have  the  elder 
Princess  and  half  the  kingdom;  as  for  himself,  he  thought,  the 
other  half  was  quite  enough.  As  soon  as  this  thought  occurred  to 
him  he  went  outside  the  palace  and  called  for  King  Pippin,  biit  no 
one  came.  So  he  called  a  second  time,  and  a  little  louder,  but  no ! 
still  no  one  came.  So  Minnikin  called  for  the  third  time,  and  with 
all  his  might,  and  there  stood  his  brother  by  his  side. 

'  I  told  you  that  you  were  not  to  call  me  unless  you  were  in  the 
utmost  need,'  he  said  to  Minnikin,  '  and  there  is  not  even  so  much 
as  a  midge  here  who  can  do  you  any  harm  ! '  and  with  that  he 
gave  Minnikin  such  a  blow  that  he  rolled  over  on  the  grass. 

'  Shame  on  you  to  strike  me  !  '  said  Minnikin.  '  First  have  I  won 
one  Princess  and  half  the  kingdom,  and  then  the  other  Princess 
and  the  other  half  of  the  kingdom  ;  and  now,  when  I  was  just  think- 
ing that  I  would  give  you  one  of  the  Princesses  and  one  of  the 
halves  of  the  kingdom,  do  you  think  you  have  any  reason  to  give 
me  such  a  blow  ?  ' 

When  King  Pippin  heard  that  he  begged  his  brother's  pardon, 
and  they  were  reconciled  at  once  and  became  good  friends. 

'  Now,  as  you  know,'  said  Minnikin,  '  we  are  so  like  each  other 
that  no  one  can  tell  one  of  us  from  the  other ;  so  just  change  clothes 
with  me  and  go  up  to  the  palace,  and  then  the  Princesses  will  think 
that  I  am  coming  in,  and  the  one  who  kisses  you  first  shall  be 
yours,  and  I  will  have  the  other.'  For  he  knew  that  the  elder 
Princess  was  the  stronger,  so  he  could  very  well  guess  how  things 
would  go. 

King  Pippin  at  once  agreed  to  this.  He  changed  clothes  with 
his  brother,  and  went  into  the  palace.  "When  he  entered  the 
Princess's  apartments  they  believed  that  he  was  Minnikin,  and 
both  of  them  ran  up  to  him  at  once ;  but  the  elder,  who  was  bigger 
and  stronger,  pushed  her  sister  aside,  and  threw  her  arms  round 
King  Pippin's  neck  and  kissed  him ;  so  he  got  her  to  wife,  and 
Minnikin  the  younger  sister.  It  will  be  easy  to  understand  that 
two  weddings  took  place,  and  they  were  so  magnificent  that  they 
were  heard  of  and  talked  about  all  over  seven  kingdoms.1 

1  From  J.  Moe. 


322 


BUSHY  BEIDE 

THEEE  was  once  on  a  time  a  widower  who  had  a  son  and  a 
daughter  by  his  first  wife.  They  were  both  good  children, 
and  loved  each  other  with  all  their  hearts.  After  some  time  had 
gone  by  the  man  married  again,  and  he  chose  a  widow  with  one 
daughter  who  was  ugly  and  wicked,  and  her  mother  was  ugly  and 
wicked  too.  From  the  very  day  that  the  new  wife  came  into  the 
house  there  was  no  peace  for  the  man's  children,  and  not  a  corner 
to  be  found  where  they  could  get  any  rest ;  so  the  boy  thought  that 
the  best  thing  he  could  do  was  to  go  out  into  the  world  and  try  to 
earn  his  own  bread. 

When  he  had  roamed  about  for  some  time  he  came  to  the 
King's  palace,  where  he  obtained  a  place  under  the  coachman ;  and 
very  brisk  and  active  he  was,  and  the  horses  that  he  looked  after 
were  so  fat  and  sleek,  that  they  shone  again. 

But  his  sister,  who  was  still  at  home,  fared  worse  and  worse. 
Both  her  step-mother  and  her  step-sister  were  always  finding 
fault  with  her,  whatsoever  she  did  and  whithersoever  she  went, 
and  they  scolded  her  and  abused  her  so  that  she  never  had 
an  hour's  peace.  They  made  her  do  all  the  hard  work,  and  hard 
words  fell  to  her  lot  early  and  late,  but  little  enough  food  accom- 
panied them. 

One  day  they  sent  her  to  the  brook  to  fetch  some  water  home, 
and  an  ugly  and  horrible  head  rose  up  out  of  the  water,  and  said, 
'  Wash  me,  girl !  ' 

'  Yes,  I  will  wash  you  with  pleasure,'  said  the  girl,  and  began 
to  wash  and  scrub  the  ugly  face,  but  she  couldn't  help  thinking 
that  it  was  a  very  unpleasant  piece  of  work.  When  she  had  done 
it,  and  done  it  well,  another  head  rose  up  out  of  the  water,  and 
this  one  was  uglier  still. 

'  Brush  me,  girl !  '  said  the  head. 

4  Yes,  I  will  brush  you  with  pleasure,'  said  the  girl,  and  set  to 


BUSHY  BRIDE 


323 


work  with  the  tangled  hair,  and,  as  may  be  easily  imagined,  this 
too  was  by  no  means  pleasant  work. 

When  she  had  got  it  done,  another  and  a  much  more  ugly  and 
horrible -looking  head  rose  up  out  of  the  water. 

'  Kiss  me,  girl  !  '  said  the  head. 

'  Yes,  I  will  kiss  you,'  said  the  man's  daughter,  and  she  did  it, 
but  she  thought  it  was  the  worst  bit  of  work  that  she  had  ever  had 
to  do  in  her  life. 

So  the  heads  all  began  to  talk  to  each  other,  and  to  ask  what 
they  should  do  for  this  girl  who  was  so  full  of  kindliness. 

'  She  shall  be  the  prettiest  girl  that  ever  was,  and  fair  and 
bright  as  the  day,'  said  the  first  head. 


'  Gold  shall  drop  from  her  hair  whenever  she  brushes  it,'  said 
the  second. 

'  Gold  shall  drop  from  her  mouth  whenever  she  speaks,'  said 
the  third  head. 

So  when  the  man's  daughter  went  home,  looking  as  beautiful 
and  bright  as  day,  the  step -mother  and  her  daughter  grew  much 
more  ill-tempered,  and  it  was  worse  still  when  she  began  to  talk, 
and  they  saw  that  golden  coins  dropped  from  her  mouth.  The 
step-mother  fell  into  such  a  towering  passion  that  she  drove  the 
man's  daughter  into  the  pig-stye — she  might  stay  there  with  her 
fine  show  of  gold,  the  step-mother  said,  but  she  should  not  be  per- 
mitted to  set  foot  in  the  house. 

Y2 


324  BUSHY  BRIDE 

It  was  not  long  before  the  mother  wanted  her  own  daughter  to 
go  to  the  stream  to  fetch  some  water. 

"When  she  got  there  with  her  pails,  the  first  head  rose  up  out  of 
the  water  close  to  the  bank.  '  Wash  me,  girl ! '  it  said. 

'Wash  yourself! '  answered  the  woman's  daughter. 

Then  the  second  head  appeared. 

'  Brush  me,  girl !  '  said  the  head. 

'  Brush  yourself !'  said  the  woman's  daughter. 

So  down  it  went  to  the  bottom,  and  the  third  head  came  up. 

'  Kiss  me,  girl !  '  said  the  head. 

'  As  if  I  would  kiss  your  ugly  mouth  !  '  said  the  girl. 

So  again  the  heads  talked  together  about  what  they  should  do 
for  this  girl  who  was  so  ill-tempered  and  full  of  her  own  importance, 
and  they  agreed  that  she  should  have  a  nose  that  was  four  ells 
long,  and  a  jaw  that  was  three  ells,  and  a  fir  bush  in  the  middle  of 
her  forehead,  and  every  time  she  spoke  ashes  should  fall  from  her 
mouth. 

When  she  came  back  to  the  cottage  door  with  her  pails,  she 
called  to  her  mother  who  was  inside,  '  Open  the  door  !  ' 

'  Open  the  door  yourself,  my  own  dear  child  !  '  said  the  mother. 

'  I  can't  get  near,  because  of  my  nose,'  said  the  daughter. 

When  the  mother  came  and  saw  her  you  may  imagine  what  a 
state  of  mind  she  was  in,  and  how  she  screamed  and  lamented,  but 
neither  the  nose  nor  the  jaw  grew  any  the  less  for  that. 

Now  the  brother,  who  was  in  service  in  the  King's  palace,  had 
taken  a  portrait  of  his  sister,  and  he  had  carried  the  picture  away 
with  him,  and  every  morning  and  evening  he  knelt  down  before  it 
and  prayed  for  his  sister,  so  dearly  did  he  love  her. 

The  other  stable-boys  had  heard  him  doing  this,  so  they  peeped 
through  the  key-hole  into  his  room,  and  saw  that  he  was  kneeling 
there  before  a  picture  ;  so  they  told  everyone  that  every  morning 
and  evening  the  youth  knelt  down  and  prayed  to  an  idol  which  he 
had  ;  and  at  last  they  went  to  the  King  himself,  and  begged  that  he 
too  would  peep  through  the  key -hole,  and  see  for  himself  what  the 
youth  did.  At  first  the  King  would  not  believe  this,  but  after  a 
long,  long  time,  they  prevailed  with  him,  and  he  crept  on  tip-toe 
to  the  door,  peeped  through,  and  saw  the  youth  on  his  knees,  with 
his  hands  clasped  together  before  a  picture  which  was  hanging  on 
the  wall. 

'  Open  the  door ! '  cried  the  King,  but  the  youth  did  not 
hear. 


BUSHY  BRIDE  325 

So  the  King  called  to  him  again,  but  the  youth  was  praying  so 
fervently  that  he  did  not  hear  him  this  time  either. 

'  Open  the  door,  I  say  ! '  cried  the  King  again.  '  It  is  I !  I  want 
to  come  in.' 

So  the  youth  sprang  to  the  door  and  unlocked  it,  but  in  his 
haste  he  forgot  to  hide  the  picture. 

When  the  King  entered  and  saw  it,  he  stood  still  as  if  he  were 
in  fetters,  and  could  not  stir  from  the  spot,  for  the  picture  seemed 
to  him  so  beautiful. 

'  There  is  nowhere  on  earth  so  beautiful  a  woman  as  this ! '  said 
the  King. 

But  the  youth  told  him  that  she  was  his  sister,  and  that  he  had 
painted  her,  and  that  if  she  was  not  prettier  than  the  picture  she 
was  at  all  events  not  uglier. 

1  Well,  if  she  is  as  beautiful  as  that,  I  will  have  her  for  my 
Queen,'  said  the  King,  and  he  commanded  the  youth  to  go  home 
and  fetch  her  without  a  moment's  delay,  and  to  lose  no  time  in 
coming  back.  The  youth  promised  to  make  all  the  haste  he  could, 
and  set  forth  from  the  King's  palace. 

When  the  brother  arrived  at  home  to  fetch  his  sister,  her  step- 
mother and  step-sister  would  go  too.  So  they  all  set  out  together, 
and  the  man's  daughter  took  with  her  a  casket  in  which  she  kept 
her  gold,  and  a  dog  which  was  called  Little  Snow.  These  two 
things  were  all  that  she  had  inherited  from  her  mother.  When 
they  had  travelled  for  some  time  they  had  to  cross  the  sea,  and  the 
brother  sat  down  at  the  helm,  and  the  mother  and  the  two  half- 
sisters  went  to  the  fore-part  of  the  vessel,  and  they  sailed  a  long, 
long  way.  At  last  they  came  in  sight  of  land. 

'Look  at  that  white  strand  there;  that  is  where  we  shall  land,' 
said  the  brother,  pointing  across  the  sea. 

'  What  is  my  brother  saying  ?  '  inquired  the  man's  daughter. 

'  He  says  that  you  are  to  throw  your  casket  out  into  the  sea,' 
answered  the  step -mother. 

'Well,  if  my  brother  says  so,  I  must  do  it,'  said  the  man's 
daughter,  and  she  flung  her  casket  into  the  sea. 

When  they  had  sailed  for  some  time  longer,  the  brother  once 
more  pointed  over  the  sea.  '  There  you  may  see  the  palace  to 
which  we  are  bound,'  said  he. 

'  What  is  my  brother  saying  ?  '  asked  the  man's  daughter. 

'Now  he  says  that  you  are  to  throw  your  dog  into  the  sea," 
answered  the  step-mother. 


326  BUSHY  BRIDE 

The  man's  daughter  wept,  and  was  sorely  troubled,  for  Little 
Snow  was  the  dearest  thing  she  had  on  earth,  but  at  last  she  threw 
him  overboard. 

'  If  my  brother  says  that,  I  must  do  it,  but  Heaven  knows  how 
unwilling  I  am  to  throw  thee  out,  Little  Snow  !  '  said  she. 

So  they  sailed  onwards  a  long  way  farther. 

'  There  may'st  thou  see  the  King  coming  out  to  meet  thee,'  said 
the  brother,  pointing  to  the  sea-shore. 

'What  is  my  brother  saying  ?  '  asked  his  sister  again. 

'  Now  he  says  that  you  are  to  make  haste  and  throw  yourself 
overboard,'  answered  the  step-mother. 

She  wept  and  she  wailed,  but  as  her  brother  had  said  that,  she 
thought  she  must  do  it ;  so  she  leaped  into  the  sea. 

But  when  they  arrived  at  the  palace,  and  the  King  beheld  the  ugly 
bride  with  a  nose  that  was  four  ells  long,  a  jaw  that  was  three  ells,  and 
a  forehead  that  had  a  bush  in  the  middle  of  it,  he  was  quite  terrified  ; 
but  the  wedding  feast  was  all  prepared,  as  regarded  brewing  and 
baking,  and  all  the  wedding  guests  were  sitting  waiting,  so,  ugly 
as  she  was,  the  King  was  forced  to  take  her. 

But  he  was  very  wroth,  and  none  can  blame  him  for  that ;  so  he 
caused  the  brother  to  be  thrown  into  a  pit  full  of  snakes. 

On  the  first  Thursday  night  after  this,  a  beautiful  maiden 
came  into  the  kitchen  of  the  palace,  and  begged  the  kitchen-maid, 
who  slept  there,  to  lend  her  a  brush.  She  begged  very  prettily, 
and  got  it,  and  then  she  brushed  her  hair,  and  the  gold  dropped 
from  it. 

A  little  dog  was  with  her,  and  she  said  to  it,  '  Go  out,  Little 
Snow,  and  see  if  it  will  soon  be  day  !  ' 

This  she  said  thrice,  and  the  third  time  that  she  sent  out  the 
dog  to  see,  it  was  very  near  dawn.  Then  she  was  forced  to  depart, 
but  as  she  went  she  said  : 

'  Out  on  thee,  ugly  Bushy  Bride, 
Sleeping  so  soft  by  the  young  King's  side, 
On  sand  and  stones  my  bed  I  make, 
And  my  brother  sleeps  with  the  cold  snake, 
Unpitied  and  imwept.' 

I  shall  come  twice  more,  and  then  never  again,'  said  she. 

In  the  morning  the  kitchen-maid  related  what  she  had  seen  and 
heard,  and  the  King  said  that  next  Thursday  night  he  himself 


BUSHY  BRIDE  327 

would  watch  in  the  kitchen  and  see  if  this  were  true,  and  when  it 
had  hegtin  to  grow  dark  he  went  out  into  the  kitchen  to  the  girl. 
But  though  he  rubbed  his  eyes  and  did  everything  he  could  to  keep 
himself  awake  it  was  all  in  vain,  for  the  Bushy  Bride  crooned  and 
sang  till  his  eyes  were  fast  closed,  and  when  the  beautiful  young 
maiden  came  he  was  sound  asleep  and  snoring. 

This  time  also,  as  before,  she  borrowed  a  brush  and  brushed  her 
hair  with  it,  and  the  gold  dropped  down  as  she  did  it ;  and  again 
she  sent  the  dog  out  three  times,  and  when  day  dawned  she 
departed,  but  as  she  was  going  she  said  as  she  had  said  before,  '  I 
shall  come  once  more,  and  then  never  again.' 

On  the  third  Thursday  night  the  King  once  more  insisted  on 
keeping  watch.  Then  he  set  two  men  to  hold  him  ;  each  of  them 
was  to  take  an  arm,  and  shake  him  and  jerk  him  by  the  arm 
whenever  he  seemed  to  be  going  to  fall  asleep ;  and  he  set  two  men 
to  watch  his  Bushy  Bride.  But  as  the  night  wore  on  the  Bushy 
Bride  again  began  to  croon  and  to  sing,  so  that  his  eyes  began  to 
close  and  his  head  to  droop  on  one  side.  Then  came  the  lovely 
maiden,  and  got  the  brush  and  brushed  her  hair  till  the  gold  dropped 
from  it,  and  then  she  sent  her  Little  Snow  out  to  see  if  it  would 
soon  be  day,  and  this  she  did  three  times.  The  third  time  it  was 
iust  beginning  to  grow  light,  and  then  she  said : 

'  Out  on  thee,  ugly  Bushy  Bride, 
Sleeping  so  soft  by  the  young  King's  side, 
On  sand  and  stones  my  bed  I  make, 
And  my  brother  sleeps  with  the  cold  snake, 
Unpitied  and  unwept.' 

'  Now  I  shall  never  come  again,'  she  said,  and  then  she  turned  to  go. 
But  the  two  men  who  were  holding  the  King  by  the  arms  seized  his 
hands  and  forced  a  knife  into  his  grasp,  and  then  made  him  cut 
her  little  finger  j  ust  enough  to  make  it  bleed. 

Thus  the  true  bride  was  freed.  The  King  then  awoke,  and  she 
told  him  all  that  had  taken  place,  and  how  her  step-mother  and 
step-sister  had  betrayed  her.  Then  the  brother  was  at  once  taken 
out  of  the  snake -pit — the  snakes  had  never  touched  him — and  the 
step-mother  and  step-sister  were  flung  down  into  it  instead  of  him. 

No  one  can  tell  how  delighted  the  King  was  to  get  rid  of  that 
hideous  Bushy  Bride,  and  get  a  Queen  who  was  bright  and  beau- 
tiful as  day  itself. 


828  BUSHY  BRIDE 

And  now  the  real  wedding  was  held,  and  held  in  such  a  way 
that  it  was  heard  of  and  spoken  about  all  over  seven  kingdoms. 
The  King  and  his  bride  drove  to  church,  and  Little  Snow  was  in 
the  carriage  too.  When  the  blessing  was  given  they  went  home 
again,  and  after  that  I  saw  no  more  of  them.1 

1  From  J.  Moe. 


THE    SLEEPING    KING,    GUIDED    BY    HIS    ATTENDANTS,    CUTS    THE    FINGER 
OF    THE    BEAUTIFUL    MAIDEN. 


329 


SNOWDROP 

ONCE  upon  a  time,  in  the  middle  of  winter  when  the  snow-flakes 
were  falling  like  feathers  on  the  earth,  a  Queen  sat  at  a  window 
framed  in  black  ebony  and  sewed.  And  as  she  sewed  and  gazed 
out  to  the  white  landscape,  she  pricked  her  finger  with  the  needle, 
and  three  drops  of  blood  fell  on  the  snow  outside,  and  because  the 
red  showed  out  so  well  against  the  white  she  thought  to  herself : 

'  Oh  !  what  wouldn't  I  give  to  have  a  child  as  white  as  snow,  as 
red  as  blood,  and  as  black  as  ebony  !  ' 

And  her  wish  was  granted,  for  not  long  after  a  little  daughter 
was  born  to  her,  with  a  skin  as  white  as  snow,  lips  and  cheeks  as 
red  as  blood,  and  hair  as  black  as  ebony.  They  called  her  Snow- 
drop, and  not  long  after  her  birth  the  Queen  died. 

After  a  year  the  King  married  again.  His  new  wife  was  a 
beautiful  woman,  but  so  proud  and  overbearing  that  she  couldn't 
stand  any  rival  to  her  beauty.  She  possessed  a  magic  mirror,  and 
when  she  used  to  stand  before  it  gazing  at  her  own  reflection  and 
ask  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 

it  always  replied : 

'You  are  most  fair,  my  Lady  Queen, 
None  fairer  in  the  land,  I  ween.' 

Then  she  was  quite  happy,  for  she  knew  the  mirror  always  spoke 
the  truth. 

But  Snowdrop  was  growing  prettier  and  prettier  every  day,  and 
when  she  was  seven  years  old  she  was  as  beautiful  as  she  could  be, 
and  fairer  even  than  the  Queen  herself.  One  day  when  the  latter 
asked  her  mirror  the  usual  question,  it  replied  : 

'  My  Lady  Queen,  you  are  fair,  'tis  true, 
But  Snowdrop  is  fairer  far  than  you." 


330 


SNOWDROP 


Then  the  Queen  flew  into  the  most  awful  passion,  and  turned 
every  shade  of  green  in  her  jealousy.  From  this  hour  she  hated 
poor  Snowdrop  like  poison,  and  every  day  her  envy,  hatred,  and 


SNOWDROP  331 

malice  grew,  for  envy  and  jealousy  are  like  evil  weeds  which  spring 
up  and  choke  the  heart.  At  last  she  could  endure  Snowdrop's 
presence  no  longer,  and,  calling  a  huntsman  to  her,  she  said : 

'  Take  the  child  out  into  the  wood,  and  never  let  me  see  her  face 
again.  You  must  kill  her,  and  bring  me  back  her  lungs  and  liver, 
that  I  may  know  for  certain  she  is  dead.' 

The  Huntsman  did  as  he  was  told  and  led  Snowdrop  out  into 
the  wood,  but  as  lie  was  in  the  act  of  drawing  out  his  knife  to  slay 
her,  she  began  to  cry,  and  said : 

'  Oh,  dear  Himtsman.  spare  my  life,  and  I  will  promise  to  fly  forth 
into  the  wide  wood  and  never  to  return  home  again.' 

And  because  she  was  so  young  and  pretty  the  Huntsman  had  pity 
on  her,  and  said : 

'  Well,  run  along,  poor  child.'  For  he  thought  to  himself :  '  The 
wild  beasts  will  soon  eat  her  up.' 

And  his  heart  felt  lighter  because  he  hadn't  had  to  do  the  deed 
himself.  And  as  he  turned  away  a  young  boar  came  running  past, 
so  he  shot  it,  and  brought  its  lungs  and  liver  home  to  the  Queen  as 
a  proof  that  Snowdrop  was  really  dead.  And  the  wicked  woman 
had  them  stewed  in  salt,  and  ate  them  up,  thinking  she  had  made 
an  end  of  Snowdrop  for  ever. 

Xow  when  the  poor  child  found  herself  alone  in  the  big  wood  the 
very  trees  around  her  seemed  to  assume  strange  shapes,  and  she  felt 
so  frightened  she  didn't  know  what  to  do.  Then  she  began  to  run 
over  the  sharp  stones,  and  through  the  bramble  bushes,  and  the  wild 
beasts  ran  past  her,  but  they  did  her  no  harm.  She  ran  as  far  as 
her  legs  would  carry  her,  and  as  evening  approached  she  saw  a  little 
house,  and  she  stepped  inside  to  rest.  Everything  was  very  small 
in  the  little  house,  but  cleaner  and  neater  than  anything  you  can 
imagine.  In  the  middle  of  the  room  there  stood  a  little  table, 
covered  with  a  white  tablecloth,  and  seven  little  plates  and  forks 
and  spoons  and  knives  and  tumblers.  Side  by  side  against  the  wall 
there  were  seven  little  beds,  covered  with  snow-white  counterpanes. 
Snowdrop  felt  so  hungry  and  so  thirsty  that  she  ate  a  bit  of  bread 
and  a  little  porridge  from  each  plate,  and  drank  a  drop  of  wine  out 
of  each  tumbler.  Then  feeling  tired  and  sleepy  she  lay  down  on 
one  of  the  beds,  but  it  wasn't  comfortable ;  then  she  tried  all  the 
others  in  turn,  but  one  was  too  long,  and  another  too  short,  and  it 
was  only  when  she  got  to  the  seventh  that  she  found  one  to  suit  her 
exactlj'.  So  she  lay  down  upon  it,  said  her  prayers  like  a  good  child, 
and  fell  fast  asleep. 


332  SNOWDROP 

When  it  got  quite  dark  the  masters  of  the  little  house  returned. 
They  were  seven  dwarfs  who  worked  in  the  mines,  right  down  deep 
in  the  heart  of  the  mountain.  They  lighted  their  seven  little  lamps, 
and  as  soon  as  their  eyes  got  accustomed  to  the  glare  they  saw  that 
someone  had  been  in  the  room,  for  all  was  not  in  the  same  order  as 
they  had  left  it. 

The  first  said : 

'  Who's  been  sitting  on  my  little  chair  ?  ' 

The  second  said : 

'  Who's  been  eating  my  little  loaf?  ' 

The  third  said : 

'  Who's  been  tasting  my  porridge  ?  ' 

The  fourth  said : 

'  Who's  been  eating  out  of  my  little  plate  ?  ' 

The  fifth  said : 

4  Who's  been  using  my  little  fork  ?  ' 

The  sixth  said  : 

'  Who's  been  cutting  with  my  little  knife  ?  ' 

The  seventh  said : 

'  Who's  been  drinking  out  of  my  little  tumbler  ?  ' 

Then  the  first  Dwarf  looked  round  and  saw  a  little  hollow  in  his 
bed,  and  he  asked  again  : 

4  Who's  been  lying  on  my  bed  ?  ' 

The  others  came  running  round,  and  cried  when  they  saw  their 
beds : 

4  Somebody  has  lain  on  ours  too.' 

But  when  the  seventh  came  to  his  bed,  he  started  back  in 
amazement,  for  there  he  beheld  Snowdrop  fast  asleep.  Then  he 
called  the  others,  who  turned  their  little  lamps  full  on  the  bed,  and 
when  they  saw  Snowdrop  lying  there  they  nearly  fell  down  with 
surprise. 

'  Goodness  gracious  ! '  they  cried,  '  what  a  beautiful  child  ! ' 

And  they  were  so  enchanted  by  her  beauty  that  they  did  not 
wake  her,  but  let  her  sleep  on  in  the  little  bed.  But  the  seventh 
Dwarf  slept  with  his  companions  one  hour  in  each  bed,  and  in  this 
way  he  managed  to  pass  the  night. 

In  the  morning  Snowdrop  awoke,  but  when  she  saw  the  seven 
little  Dwarfs  she  felt  very  frightened.  But  they  were  so  friendly 
and  asked  her  what  her  name  was  in  such  a  kind  way,  that  she 
replied : 

4 1  am  Snowdrop.' 


SNOWDROP  333 

'  Why  did  you  corne  to  our  house  ?  '  continued  the  Dwarfs. 

Then  she  told  them  how  her  stepmother  had  wished  her  put  to 
death,  and  how  the  Huntsman  had  spared  her  life,  and  how  she  had 
run  the  whole  day  till,  she  had  come  to  their  little  house.  The 
Dwarfs,  when  they  had  heard  her  sad  story,  asked  her  : 

'  Will  you  stay  and  keep  house  for  us,  cook,  make  the  beds,  do 
the  washing,  sew  and  knit  ?  and  if  you  give  satisfaction  and  keep 
everything  neat  and  clean,  you  shall  want  for  nothing.' 

'  Yes,'  answered  Snowdrop,  '  I  will  gladly  do  all  you  ask.' 

And  so  she  took  up  her  abode  with  them.  Every  morning  the 
Dwarfs  went  into  the  mountain  to  dig  for  gold,  and  in  the  evening, 
when  they  returned  home,  Snowdrop  always  had  their  supper  ready 
for  them.  But  during  the  day  the  girl  was  left  quite  alone,  so  the 
good  Dwarfs  warned  her,  saying : 

'  Beware  of  your  step-mother.  She  will  soon  find  out  you  are 
here,  and  whatever  you  do  don't  let  anyone  into  the  house.' 

Now  the  Queen,  after  she  thought  she  had  eaten  Snowdrop's 
lungs  and  liver,  never  dreamed  but  that  she  was  once  more  the 
most  beautiful  woman  in  the  world ;  so  stepping  before  her  mirror 
one  day  she  said  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 

and  the  mirror  replied  : 

'  My  Lady  Queen,  you  are  fair,  'tis  true, 
But  Snowdrop  is  fairer  far  than  you. 
Snowdrop,  who  dwells  with  the  seven  little  men, 
Is  as  fair  as  you,  as  fair  again.' 

When  the  Queen  heard  these  words  she  was  nearly  struck  dumb 
with  horror,  for  the  mirror  always  spoke  the  truth,  and  she  knew 
now  that  the  Huntsman  must  have  deceived  her,  and  that  Snowdrop 
was  still  alive.  She  pondered  day  and  night  how  she  might  destroy 
her,  for  as  long  as  she  felt  she  had  a  rival  in  the  land  her  jealous 
heart  left  her  no  rest.  At  last  she  hit  upon  a  plan.  She  stained  her 
face  and  dressed  herself  up  as  an  old  peddler  wife,  so  that  she  was 
quite  unrecognisable.  In  this  guise  she  went  over  the  seven  hills 
till  she  came  to  the  house  of  the  seven  Dwarfs.  There  she  knocked 
at  the  door,  calling  out  at  the  same  time  : 
'  Fine  wares  to  sell,  fine  wares  to  sell !  ' 
Snowdrop  peeped  out  of  the  window,  and  called  out ; 


334  SNOWDROP 

'  Good-day,  mother,  what  have  you  to  sell '?  ' 

'  Good  wares,  fine  wares,'  she  answered  ;  '  laces  of  every  shade 
and  description,'  and  she  held  one  up  that  was  made  of  some  gay 
coloured  silk. 

'  Surely  I  can  let  the  honest  woman  in,'  thought  Snowdrop  ;  so 
she  unbarred  the  door  and  bought  the  pretty  lace. 

1  Good  gracious !  child,'  said  the  old  woman, '  what  a  figure  you've 
got.  Come  !  I'll  lace  you  up  properly  for  once.' 

Snowdrop,  suspecting  no  evil,  stood  before  her  and  let  her  lace 
her  bodice  up,  but  the  old  woman  laced  her  so  quickly  and  so  tightly 
that  it  took  Snowdrop's  breath  away,  and  she  fell  down  dead. 

'  Now  you  are  no  longer  the  fairest,'  said  the  wicked  old  woman, 
and  then  she  hastened  away. 

In  the  evening  the  seven  Dwarfs  came  home,  and  you  may 
think  what  a  fright  they  got  when  they  saw  their  dear  Snowdrop 
lying  on  the  floor,  as  still  and  motionless  as  a  dead  person.  They 
lifted  her  up  tenderly,  and  when  they  saw  how  tightly  laced  she 
was  they  cut  the  lace  in  two,  and  she  began  to  breathe  a  little  and 
gradually  came  back  to  life.  When  the  Dwarfs  heard  what  had 
happened,  they  said : 

'  Depend  upon  it,  the  old  peddler  wife  was  none  other  than  the 
old  Queen.  In  future  you  must  be  sure  to  let  no  one  in,  if  we  are 
not  at  home.' 

As  soon  as  the  wicked  old  Queen  got  home  she  went  straight  to 
her  mirror,  and  said  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 

and  the  mirror  answered  as  before  : 

'  My  Lady  Queen,  you  are  fair,  'tis  true, 
But  Snowdrop  is  fairer  far  than  you. 
Snowdrop,  who  dwells  with  the  seven  little  men, 
Is  as  fair  as  you,  as  fair  again.' 

When  she  heard  this  she  became  as  pale  as  death,  because  she 
saw  at  once  that  Snowdrop  must  be  alive  again. 

'  This  time,'  she  said  to  herself,  '  I  will  think  of  something  that 
will  make  an  end  of  her  once  and  for  all.' 

And  by  the  witchcraft  which  she  understood  so  well  she  made 
a  poisonous  comb  ;  then  she  dressed  herself  up  and  assumed  the 
form  of  another  old  woman.  So  she  went  over  the  seven  hills  till 


SNOWDROP  335 

she  reached  the  house  of  the  seven  Dwarfs,  and  knocking  at  the 
door  she  called  out : 

'  Fine  wares  for  sale.' 

Snowdrop  looked  out  of  the  window  and  said  : 

'  You  must  go  away,  for  I  may  not  let  anyone  in.' 

'  But  surely  you  are  not  forbidden  to  look  out  ?  '  said  the  old 
woman,  and  she  held  up  the  poisonous  comb  for  her  to  see. 

It  pleased  the  girl  so  much  that  she  let  herself  be  taken  in,  and 
opened  the  door.  When  they  had  settled  their  bargain  the  old 
woman  said  : 

'  Now  I'll  comb  your  hair  properly  for  you,  for  once  in  the 
way.' 

Poor  Snowdrop  thought  no  evil,  but  hardly  had  the  comb  touched 
her  hair  than  the  poison  worked  and  she  fell  down  unconscious. 

'  Now,  my  fine  lady,  you're  really  done  for  this  time,'  said  the 
wicked  woman,  and  she  made  her  way  home  as  fast  as  she  could. 

Fortunately  it  was  now  near  evening,  and  the  seven  Dwarfs  re- 
turned home.  When  they  saw  Snowdrop  lying  dead  on  the  ground, 
they  at  once  suspected  that  her  wicked  step-mother  had  been  at 
work  again  ;  so  they  searched  till  they  found  the  poisonous  comb, 
and  the  moment  they  pulled  it  out  of  her  head  Snowdrop  came  to 
herself  again,  and  told  them  what  had  happened.  Then  they 
warned  her  once  more  to  be  on  her  guard,  and  to  open  the  door  to 
no  one. 

As  soon  as  the  Queen  got  home  she  went  straight  to  her  mirror, 
and  asked  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 

and  it  replied  as  before  : 

'  My  Lady  Queen,  j'ou  are  fair,  'tis  true, 
But  Snowdrop  is  fairer  far  than  you. 
Snowdrop,  who  dwells  with  the  seven  little  men, 
Is  as  fair  as  you,  as  fair  again.' 

When  she  heard  these  words  she  literally  trembled  and  shuok 
with  rage. 

'  Snowdrop  shall  die, 'she  cried;  ''yes,  though  it  cost  me  my  own 
life.' 

Then  she  went  to  a  little  secret  chamber,  which  no  one  knew  01 
but  herself,  and  there  she  made  a  poisonous  apple.  Outwardly  it 
looked  beautiful,  white  with  red  cheeks,  so  that  everyone  who  saw 


336  SNOWDROP 

it  longed  to  eat  it,  but  anyone  who  might  do  so  would  certainly  die 
on  the  spot.  When  the  apple  was  quite  finished  she  stained  her 
face  and  dressed  herself  up  as  a  peasant,  and  so  she  went  over 
the  seven  hills  to  the  seven  Dwarfs'.  She  knocked  at  the  door,  as 
usual,  but  Snowdrop  put  her  head  out  of  the  window  and  called 
out: 

'  I  may  not  let  anyone  in,  the  seven  Dwarfs  have  forbidden  rue 
to  do  so.' 

'  Are  you  afraid  of  being  poisoned '?'  asked  the  old  woman.  '  See,  I 
will  cut  this  apple  in  half.  I'll  eat  the  white  cheek  and  you  can  eat 
the  red.' 

But  the  apple  was  so  cunningly  made  that  only  the  red  cheek 
was  poisonous.  Snowdrop  longed  to  eat  the  tempting  fruit,  and  when 
she  saw  that  the  peasant  woman  was  eating  it  herself,  she  couldn't 
resist  the  temptation  any  longer,  and  stretching  out  her  hand  she 
took  the  poisonous  half.  But  hardly  had  the  first  bite  passed  her 
lips  than  she  fell  down  dead  on  the  ground.  Then  the  eyes  of  the 
cruel  Queen  sparkled  with  glee,  and  laughing  aloud  she  cried  : 

'  As  white  as  snow,  as  red  as  blood,  and  as  black  as  ebony,  this 
time  the  Dwarfs  won't  be  able  to  bring  you  back  to  life.' 

When  she  got  home  she  asked  the  mirror  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 

and  this  time  it  replied  : 

'  You  are  most  fair,  my  Lady  Queen, 
None  fairer  in  the  land,  I  ween.' 

Then  her  jealous  heart  was  at  rest — at  least,  us  much  at  rest 
as  a  jealous  heart  can  ever  be. 

When  the  little  Dwarfs  came  home  in  the  evening  they  found 
Snowdrop  lying  on  the  ground,  and  she  neither  breathed  nor  stirred. 
They  lifted  her  up,  and  looked  round  everywhere  to  see  if  they 
could  find  anything  poisonous  about.  They  unlaced  her  bodice, 
combed  her  hair,  washed  her  with  water  and  wine,  but  all  in  vain ; 
the  child  was  dead  and  remained  dead.  Then  they  placed  her  on 
a  bier,  and  all  the  seven  Dwarfs  sat  round  it,  weeping  and  sobbing 
for  three  whole  days.  At  last  they  made  up  their  minds  to  bury 
her,  but  she  looked  as  blooming  as  a  living  being,  and  her  cheeks 
were  still  such  a  lovely  colour,  that  they  said : 

'  We  can't  hide  her  away  in  the  black  ground.' 


SNOWDROP 


387 


So  they  had  a  coffin  made  of  transparent  glass,  and  they  laid  her 
in  it,  and  wrote  on  the  lid  in  golden  letters  that  she  was  a  royal 
Princess.  Then  they  put  the  coffin  on  the  top  of  the  mountain,  and 
one  of  the  Dwarfs  always  remained  beside  it  and  kept  watch  over  it. 


And  the  very  birds  of  the  air  came  and  bewailed  Snowdrop's  death, 
first  an  owl,  and  then  a  raven,  and  last  of  all  a  little  dove. 

Snowdrop  lay  a  long  time  in  the  coffin,  and  she  always  looked 
the  same,  just  as  if  she  were  fast  asleep,  and  she  remained  as  white 
as  snow,  as  red  as  blood,  and  her  hair  as  black  as  ebony. 

R.  z 


838 


SNOWDROP 


Now  it  happened  one  day  that  a  Prince  came  to  the  wood  and 
passed  by  the  Dwarfs'  house.  He  saw  the  coffin  on  the  hill,  with 
the  beautiful  Snowdrop  inside  it,  and  when  he  had  read  what  was 
written  on  it  in  golden  letters,  he  said  to  the  Dwarf : 

'  Give  me  the  coffin.     I'll  give  you  whatever  you  like  for  it.' 
But  the  Dwarf  said :  '  No  ;  we  wouldn't  part  with  it  for  all  the 
gold  in  the  world.' 

'  Well,  then,'  he  replied,  '  give  it  to  me,  because  I  can't  live  with- 
out Snowdrop.  I  will  cherish 
and  love  it  as  my  dearest  posses- 
sion.' 

He  spoke  so  sadly  that  the 
good  Dwarfs  had  pity  on  him, 
and  gave  him  the  coffin,  and  the 
Prince  made  his  servants  bear 
it  away  on  their  shoulders.  Now 
it  happened  that  as  they  were 
going  down  the  hill  they  stumbled 
over  a  bush,  and  jolted  the  coffin 
so  violently  that  the  poisonous 
bit  of  apple  Snowdrop  had 
swallowed  fell  out  of  her  throat. 
She  gradually  opened  her  eyes, 
lifted  up  the  lid  of  the  coffin, 
and  sat  up  alive  and  well. 

'  Oh !  dear  me,  where  am  I  ?  ' 
she  cried. 

The  Prince  answered  joy- 
fully, '  You  are  with  me,'  and 
he  told  her  all  that  had  happened, 

adding,  '  I  love  you  better  than  anyone  in  the  whole  wide  world. 
Will  you  come  with  me  to  my  father's  palace  and  be  my  wife  ?  ' 

Snowdrop  consented,  and  went  with  him,  and  the  marriage  was 
celebrated  with  great  pomp  and  splendour. 

Now  Snowdrop's  wicked  step-mother  was  one  of  the  guests 
invited  to  the  wedding  feast.  When  she  had  dressed  herself  very 
gorgeously  for  the  occasion,  she  went  to  the  mirror,  and  said  : 

'  Mirror,  mirror,  hanging  there, 
Who  in  all  the  land's  most  fair  ?  ' 


and  the  mirror  answered  : 


SNOWDROP  339 

'  My  Lady  Queen,  you  are  fair,  'tis  true, 
But  Snowdrop  is  fairer  far  than  you.' 

When  the  wicked  woman  heard  these  words  she  uttered  a 
curse,  and  was  beside  herself  with  rage  and  mortification.  At  first 
she  didn't  want  to  go  to  the  wedding  at  all,  but  at  the  same  time 
she  felt  she  would  never  be  happy  till  she  had  seen  the  young 
Queen.  As  she  entered  Snowdrop  recognised  her,  and  nearly 
fainted  with  fear  ;  but  red-hot  iron  shoes  had  been  prepared  for  the 
wicked  old  Queen,  and  she  was  made  to  get  into  them  and  dance 
till  she  fell  down  dead.1 

1  Grimm. 


Z2 


340 


THE   GOLDEN  GOOSE 


THEKE  was  once  a  man  who  had  three  sons.     The  youngest  of 
them  was  called  Bullhead,  and  was  sneered  and  jeered  at  and 
snubbed  on  every  possible  opportunity. 

One  day  it  happened  that  the  eldest  son  wished  to  go  into  the 
forest  to  cut  wood,  and  before  he  started  his  mother  gave  him  a  fine 
rich  cake  and  a  bottle  of  wine,  so  that  he  might  be  sure  not  to  suffer 
from  hunger  or  thirst. 

When  he  reached  the  forest  he  met  a  little  old  grey  man  who 
wished  him  '  Good-morning,'  and  said  :  '  Do  give  me  a  piece  of  that 
cake  you  have  got  in  your  pocket,  and  let  me  have  a  draught  of 
your  wine — I  am  so  hungry  and  thirsty.' 

But  this  clever  son  replied  :  '  If  I  give  you  my  cake  and  wine  I 
shall  have  none  left  for  myself ;  you  just  go  your  own  way  ;'  and 
he  left  the  little  man  standing  there  and  went  further  on  into  the 
forest.  There  he  began  to  cut  down  a  tree,  but  before  long  he  made 
a  false  stroke  with  his  axe,  and  cut  his  own  arm  so  badly  that  he 
was  obliged  to  go  home  and  have  it  bound  up. 

Then  the  second  son  went  to  the  forest,  and  his  mother  gave 
him  a  good  cake  and  a  bottle  of  wine  as  she  had  to  his  elder  brother. 
He  too  met  the  little  old  grey  man,  who  begged  him  for  a  morsel  of 
cake  and  a  draught  of  wine. 

But  the  second  son  spoke  most  sensibly  too,  and  said  :  '  What- 
ever I  give  to  you  I  deprive  myself  of.  Just  go  your  own  way,  will 
you  ? '  Not  long  after  his  punishment  overtook  him,  for  no  sooner 
had  he  struck  a  couple  of  blows  on  a  tree  with  his  axe,  than  he  cut 
his  leg  so  badly  that  he  had  to  be  carried  home. 

So  then  Bullhead  said  :  '  Father,  let  me  go  out  and  cut  wood.' 
But   his   father  answered :  '  Both  your  brothers  have  injured 
themselves.     You  had  better  leave  it  alone ;  you  know  nothing 
about  it.' 

But  Bullhead  begged  so  hard  to  be  allowed  to  go  that  at  last 


THE   GOLDEN  GOOSE 


341 


his  father  said :  '  Very  well,  then — go.  Perhaps  when  you  have  hurt 
yourself,  you  may  learn  to  know  better.'  His  mother  only  gave 
him  a  very  plain  cake  made  with  water  and  baked  in  the  cinders, 
and  a  bottle  of  sour  beer. 

When  he  got  to  the  forest,  he  too  met  the  little  grey  old  man, 
who  greeted  him  and  said :  '  Give  me  a  piece  of  your  cake  and  a 
draught  from  your  bottle  ;  I  am  so  hungry  and  thirsty.' 


And  Bullhead  replied  :  '  I've  only  got  a  cinder-cake  and  some 
sour  beer,  but  if  you  care  to  have  that,  let  us  sit  down  and  eat.' 

So  they  sat  down,  and  when  Bullhead  brought  out  his  cake  he 
found  it  had  turned  into  a  fine  rich  cake,  and  the  sour  beer  into 
excellent  wine.  Then  they  ate  and  drank,  and  when  they  had 
finished  the  little  man  said  :  '  Now  I  will  bring  you  luck,  because 


842  THE   GOLDEN   GOOSE 

you  have  a  kind  heart  and  are  willing  to  share  what  you  have  with 
others.  There  stands  an  old  tree  ;  cut  it  down,  and  amongst  its 
roots  you'll  find  something.'  With  that  the  little  man  took  leave. 

Then  Dullhead  fell  to  at  once  to  hew  down  the  tree,  and  when 
it  fell  he  found  amongst  its  roots  a  goose,  whose  feathers  were  all 
of  pure  gold.  He  lifted  it  out,  carried  it  off,  and  took  it  with  him 
to  an  inn  where  he  meant  to  spend  the  night. 

Now  the  landlord  of  the  inn  had  three  daughters,  and  when 
they  saw  the  goose  they  were  filled  with  curiosity  as  to  what  this 
wonderful  bird  could  be,  and  each  longed  to  have  one  of  its  golden 
feathers. 

The  eldest  thought  to  herself :  '  No  doubt  I  shall  soon  find  a  good 
opportunity  to  pluck  out  one  of  its  feathers,'  and  the  first  time 
Dullhead  happened  to  leave  the  room  she  caught  hold  of  the  goose 
by  its  wing.  But,  lo  and  behold !  her  fingers  seemed  to  stick  fast 
to  the  goose,  and  she  could  not  take  her  hand  away. 

Soon  after  the  second  daughter  came  in,  and  thought  to  pluck  a 
golden  feather  for  herself  too ;  but  hardly  had  she  touched  her 
sister  than  she  stuck  fast  as  well.  At  last  the  third  sister  came 
with  the  same  intentions,  but  the  other  two  cried  out :  '  Keep  off ! 
for  Heaven's  sake,  keep  off ! ' 

The  younger  sister  could  not  imagine  why  she  was  to  keep  oi'f, 
and  thought  to  herself :  '  If  they  are  both  there,  why  should  not  I  be 
there  too  ?  ' 

So  she  sprang  to  them ;  but  no  sooner  had  she  touched  one  of 
them  than  she  stuck  last  to  her.  So  they  all  three  had  to  spend  the 
night  with  the  goose. 

Next  morning  Dullhead  tucked  the  goose  under  his  arm  and 
went  oft',  without  in  the  least  troubling  himself  about  the  three  girls 
who  were  hanging  on  to  it.  They  just  had  to  run  after  him  right 
or  left  as  best  they  could.  In  the  middle  of  a  field  they  met  the 
parson,  and  when  he  saw  this  procession  he  cried :  '  For  shame, 
you  bold  girls !  What  do  you  mean  by  running  after  a  young  fellow 
through  the  fields  like  that  ?  Do  you  call  that  proper  behaviour  ? ' 
And  with  that  he  caught  the  youngest  girl  by  the  hand  to  try  and 
draw  her  away.  But  directly  he  touched  her  he  hung  on  himself, 
and  had  to  run  along  with  the  rest  of  them. 

Not  long  after  the  clerk  came  that  way,  and  was  much  surprised 
to  see  the  parson  following  the  footsteps  of  three  girls.  '  Why,  where 
is  your  reverence  going  so  fast  ? '  cried  he ;  '  don't  forget  there  is 
to  be  a  christening  to-day ; '  and  he  ran  after  him,  caught  him  by 


THE   GOLDEN  GOOSE 


843 


the  sleeve,  and  hung  on  to  it  himself.  As  the  five  of  them  trotted 
along  in  this  fashion  one  after  the  other,  two  peasants  were  coming 
from  their  work  with  their  hoes.  On  seeing  them  the  parson  called 
out  and  begged  them  to  come  and  rescue  him  and  the  clerk.  But 
no  sooner  did  they  touch  the  clerk  than  they  stuck  on  too,  and  so 
there  were  seven  of  them  running  after  Dullhead  and  his  goose. 

After  a  time  they  all  came  to  a  town  where  a  King  reigned  whose 
daughter  was  so  serious  and  solemn  that  no  one  could  ever  manage 


to  make  her  laugh.     So  the  King  had  decreed  that  whoever  should 
succeed  in  making  her  laugh  should  marry  her. 

"When  Dullhead  heard  this  he  marched  before  the  Princess  with 
his  goose  and  its  appendages,  and  as  soon  as  she  saw  these  seven 
people  continually  running  after  each  other  she  burst  out  laughing, 
and  could  not  stop  herself.  Then  Dullhead  claimed  her  as  his 
bride,  but  the  King,  who  did  not  much  fancy  him  as  a  son-in-law, 
made  all  sorts  of  objections,  and  told  him  he  must  first  find  a  man 
who  could  drink  up  a  whole  cellarful  of  wine. 


344  THE   GOLDEN   GOOSE 

Dullhead  bethought  him  of  the  little  grey  man,  who  could,  he 
felt  sure,  help  him  ;  so  he  went  off  to  the  forest,  and  on  the  very 
spot  where  he  had  cut  down  the  tree  he  saw  a  man  sitting  with  a 
most  dismal  expression  of  face. 

Dullhead  asked  him  what  he  was  taking  so  much  to  heart,  and 
the  man  answered  :  '  I  don't  know  how  I  am  ever  to  quench  this 
terrible  thirst  I  am  suffering  from.  Cold  water  doesn't  suit  me  at 
all.  To  be  sure  I've  emptied  a  whole  barrel  of  wine,  but  what  is  one 
drop  on  a  hot  stone  ?  ' 

'  I  think  I  can  help  you,'  said  Dullhead.  '  Come  with  me,  and 
you  shall  drink  to  your  heart's  content.'  So  he  took  him  to  the 
King's  cellar,  and  the  man  sat  down  before  the  huge  casks  and 
drank  and  drank  till  he  drank  up  the  whole  contents  of  the  cellar 
before  the  day  closed. 

Then  Dullhead  asked  once  more  for  his  bride,  but  the  King  felt 
vexed  at  the  idea  of  a  stupid  fellow  whom  people  called  '  Dullhead  ' 
carrying  off  his  daughter,  and  he  began  to  make  fresh  conditions. 
He  required  Dullhead  to  find  a  man  who  could  eat  a  mountain  of 
bread.  Dullhead  did  not  wait  to  consider  long  but  went  straight  off 
to  the  forest,  and  there  on  the  same  spot  sat  a  man  who  was  drawing 
in  a  strap  as  tight  as  he  coiild  round  his  body,  and  making  a  most 
woeful  face  the  while.  Said  he  :  '  I've  eaten  up  a  whole  oven  full  of 
loaves,  but  what's  the  good  of  that  to  anyone  who  is  as  hungry  as 
I  am  ?  I  declare  my  stomach  feels  quite  empty,  and  I  must  draw 
my  belt  tight  if  I'm  not  to  die  of  starvation.' 

Dullhead  was  delighted,  and  said  :  '  Get  up  and  come  with  me, 
and  you  shall  have  plenty  to  eat,'  and  he  brought  him  to  the  King's 
Court. 

Now  the  King  had  given  orders  to  have  all  the  flour  in  his 
kingdom  brought  together,  and  to  have  a  huge  mountain  baked  ot 
it.  But  the  man  from  the  wood  just  took  up  his  stand  before  the 
mountain  and  began  to  eat,  and  in  one  day  it  had  all  vanished. 

For  the  third  time  Dullhead  asked  for  his  bride,  but  again  the 
King  tried  to  make  some  evasion,  and  demanded  a  ship  '  which  could 
sail  on  land  or  water !  When  you  come  sailing  in  such  a  ship,'  said 
he,  'you  shall  have  my  daughter  without  further  delay.' 

Again  Dullhead  started  off  to  the  forest,  and  there  he  found  the 
little  old  grey  man  with  whom  he  had  shared  his  cake,  and  who 
said  :  '  I  have  eaten  and  I  have  drunk  for  you,  and  now  I  will  give 
you  the  ship.  I  have  done  all  this  for  you  because  you  were  kind 
and  merciful  to  me.' 


THE   GOLDEN   GOOSE  345 

Then  he  gave  Dullhead  a  ship  which  could  sail  on  land  or  water, 
and  when  the  King  saw  it  he  felt  he  could  no  longer  refuse  him 
his  daughter. 

Ho  they  celebrated  the  wedding  with  great  rejoicings ;  and  after 
the  King's  death  Dullhead  succeeded  to  the  kingdom,  and  lived 
happily  with  his  wife  for  many  years  after.1 

1  Grimm. 


346 


THE   SEVEN  FOALS 


riYHERE  was  once  upon  a  time  a  couple  of  poor  folks  who  lived  in 
J-  a,  wretched  hut,  far  away  from  everyone  else,  in  a  wood.  They 
only  just  managed  to  live  from  hand  to  mouth,  and  had  great  diffi- 
culty in  doing  even  so  much  as  that,  but  they  had  three  sons,  and 
the  youngest  of  them  was  called  Ciiiderlad,  for  he  did  nothing  else 
but  lie  and  poke  about  among  the  ashes. 

One  day  the  eldest  lad  said  that  he  would  go  out  to  earn  his  living ; 
he  soon  got  leave  to  do  that,  and  set  out  on  his  way  into  the  world. 
He  walked  on  and  on  for  the  whole  day,  and  when  night  was  begin- 
ning to  fall  he  came  to  a  royal  palace.  The  King  was  standing 
outside  on  the  steps,  and  asked  where  he  was  going. 

'  Oh,  I  am  going  about  seeking  a  place,  my  father,'  said  the  youth. 

'  Wilt  thou  serve  me,  and  watch  my  seven  foals '? '  asked  the 
King.  '  If  thou  canst  watch  them  for  a  whole  day  and  tell  me  at 
night  what  they  eat  and  drink,  thou  shalt  have  the  Princess  and 
half  my  kingdom,  but  if  thou  canst  not,  I  will  cut  three  red  stripes 
on  thy  back.' 

The  youth  thought  that  it  was  very  easy  work  to  watch  the 
foals,  and  that  he  could  do  it  well  enough. 

Next  morning,  when  day  was  beginning  to  dawn,  the  King's 
Master  of  the  Horse  let  oiit  the  seven  foals  ;  and  they  ran  away, 
and  the  youth  after  them  just  as  it  chanced,  over  hill  and  dale,  through 
woods  and  bogs.  When  the  youth  had  run  thus  for  a  long  time  he 
began  to  be  tired,  and  when  he  had  held  011  a  little  longer  he  was 
heartily  weary  of  watching  at  all,  and  at  the  same  moment  he  came 
to  a  cleft  in  a  rock  where  an  old  woman  was  sitting  spinning  with 
her  distaff  in  her  hand. 

As  soon  as  she  caught  sight  of  the  youth,  who  was  running  after 
the  foals  till  the  perspiration  streamed  down  his  face,  she  cried  : 

'  Come  hither,  come  hither,  niy  handsome  son,  and  let  me  comb 
your  hair  for  you.' 


THE   SEVEN  FOALS 


347 


The  lad  was  willing  enough,  so  he  sat  down  in  the  cleft  of  the 
rock  beside  the  old  hag,  and  laid  his  head  on  her  knees,  and  she 
combed  his  hair  all  day  while  he  lay  there  and  gave  himself  up  to 
idleness. 

When  evening  was  drawing  near,  the  youth  wanted  to  go. 

'  I  may  just  as  well  go  straight  home  again,'  said  he,  '  for  it  is 
no  use  to  go  to  the  King's  palace.' 

'  Wait  till  it  is  dusk,'  said  the  old  hag,  '  and  then  the  King's 
foals  will  pass  by  this  place  again,  and  you  can  run  home  with 
them  ;  no  one  will  ever  know  that  you  have  been  lying  here  all  day 
instead  of  watching  the  foals.' 


So  when  they  came  she  gave  the  lad  a  bottle  of  water  and  a  bit 
of  moss,  and  told  him  to  show  these  to  the  King  and  say  that  this 
was  what  his  seven  foals  ate  and  drank. 

'  Hast  thou  watched  faithfully  and  well  the  whole  day  long  ?  ' 
said  the  King,  when  the  lad  came  into  his  presence  in  the  evening. 

'  Yes,  that  I  have  !  '  said  the  yoiith. 

'  Then  you  are  able  to  tell  me  what  it  is  that  my  seven  foals  eat 
and  drink,'  said  the  King. 

So  the  youth  produced  the  bottle  of  water  and  the  bit  of  moss 
which  he  had  got  from  the  old  woman,  saying : 

'  Here  you  see  their  meat,  and  here  you  see  their  drink.' 


348  THE   SEVEN  FOALS 

Then  the  King  knew  how  his  watching  had  been  done,  and  fell 
into  such  a  rage  that  he  ordered  his  people  to  chase  the  youth  back 
to  his  own  home  at  once ;  but  first  they  were  to  cut  three  red 
stripes  in  his  back,  and  rub  salt  into  them. 

When  the  youth  reached  home  again,  anyone  can  imagine  what 
a  state  of  mind  he  was  in.  He  had  gone  out  once  to  seek  a  place, 
he  said,  but  never  would  he  do  such  a  thing  again. 

Next  day  the  second  son  said  that  he  would  now  go  out  into  the 
world  to  seek  his  fortune.  His  father  and  mother  said  '  No,'  and 
bade  him  look  at  his  brother's  back,  but  the  youth  would  not  give 
up  his  design,  and  stuck  to  it,  and  after  a  long,  long  time  he  got 
leave  to  go,  and  set  forth  on  his  way.  When  he  had  walked  all  day 
he  too  came  to  the  King's  palace,  and  the  King  was  standing  outside 
on  the  steps,  and  asked  where  he  was  going ;  and  when  the  youth 
replied  that  he  was  going  about  in  search  of  a  place,  the  King  said 
that  he  might  enter  into  his  service  and  watch  his  seven  foals.  Then 
the  King  promised  him  the  same  punishment  and  the  same  reward 
that  he  had  promised  his  brother. 

The  youth  at  once  consented  to  this  and  entered  into  the  King's 
service,  for  he  thought  he  could  easily  watch  the  foals  and  inform 
the  King  what  they  ate  and  drank. 

In  the  grey  light  of  dawn  the  Master  of  the  Horse  let  out  the 
seven  foals,  and  off  they  went  again  over  hill  and  dale,  and  off  went 
the  lad  after  them.  But  all  went  with  him  as  it  had  gone  with  his 
brother.  When  he  had  run  after  the  foals  for  a  long,  long  time  and 
was  hot  and  tired,  he  passed  by  a  cleft  in  the  rock  where  an  old 
woman  was  sitting  spinning  with  a  distaff,  and  she  called  to  him  : 

'  Come  hither,  come  hither,  my  handsome  son,  and  let  me  comb 
your  hair.' 

The  youth  liked  the  thought  of  this,  let  the  foals  run  where 
they  chose,  and  seated  himself  in  the  cleft  of  the  rock  by  the  side 
of  the  old  hag.  So  there  he  sat  with  his  head  on  her  lap,  taking  his 
ease  the  livelong  day. 

The  foals  came  back  in  the  evening,  and  then  he  too  got  a  bit  of 
moss  and  a  bottle  of  water  from  the  old  hag,  which  things  he  was  to 
show  to  the  King.  But  when  the  King  asked  the  youth :  '  Canst 
thou  tell  me  what  my  seven  foals  eat  and  drink  ?  '  and  the  youth 
showed  him  the  bit  of  moss  and  the  bottle  of  water,  and  said  :  '  Yes 
here  may  you  behold  their  meat,  and  here  their  drink,'  the  King 
once  more  became  wroth,  and  commanded  that  three  red  stripes 
should  be  cut  on  the  lad's  back,  that  salt  should  be  strewn  upon 


THE   SEVEN  FOALS  349 

them,  and  that  he  should  then  be  instantly  chased  back  to  his  own 
home.  So  when  the  youth  got  home  again  he  too  related  all 
that  had  happened  to  him,  and  he  too  said  that  he  had  gone  out  in 
search  of  a  place  once,  but  that  never  would  he  do  it  again. 

On  the  third  day  Cinderlad  wanted  to  set  out.  He  had  a  fancy 
to  try  to  watch  the  seven  foals  himself,  he  said. 

The  two  others  laughed  at  him,  and  mocked  him.  '  What ! 
when  all  went  so  ill  with  us,  do  you  suppose  that  you  are  going  to 
succeed?  You  look  like  succeeding — you  who  have  never  done 
anything  else  but  lie  and  poke  about  among  the  ashes  !  '  said  they. 
'  Yes,  I  will  go  too,'  said  Cinderlad,  '  for  I  have  taken  it  into  my 
head.' 

The  two  brothers  laughed  at  him,  and  his  father  and  mother 
begged  him  not  to  go,  but  all  to  no  purpose,  and  Cinderlad  set  out 
on  his  way.  So  when  he  had  walked  the  whole  day,  he  too  came 
to  the  King's  palace  as  darkness  began  to  fall. 

There  stood  the  King  outside  on  the  steps,  and  he  asked  whither 
he  was  bound. 

'  I  am  walking  about  in  search  of  a  place,'  said  Cinderlad. 
'  From  whence  do  you  come,  then  ?  '  inquired  the  King,  for  by 
this  time  he  wanted  to  know  a  little  more  about  the  men  before  he 
took  any  of  them  into  his  service. 

So  Cinderlad  told  him  whence  he  came,  and  that  he  was  brother 
to  the  two  who  had  watched  the  seven  foals  for  the  King,  and  then 
he  inquired  if  he  might  be  allowed  to  try  to  watch  them  on  the  fol- 
lowing day. 

'  Oh,  shame  on  them  !  '  said  the  King,  for  it  enraged  him  even  to 
think  of  them.  '  If  thou  art  brother  to  those  two,  thou  too  art  not 
good  for  much.  I  have  had  enough  of  such  fellows.' 

'  Well,  but  as  I  have  come  here,  you  might  just  give  me  leave 
to  make  the  attempt,'  said  Cinderlad. 

'  Oh,  very  well,  if  thou  art  absolutely  determined  to  have  thy 
back  flayed,  thou  may'st  have  thine  own  way  if  thou  wilt,'  said  the 
King. 

'  I  would  much  rather  have  the  Princess,'  said  Cinderlad. 
Next  morning,  in  the  grey  light  of  dawn,  the  Master  of  the  Horse 
let  out  the  seven  foals  again,  and  off  they  set  over  hill  and  dale, 
through  woods  and  bogs,  and  off  went  Cinderlad  after  them.  When 
he  had  run  thus  for  a  long  time,  he  too  came  to  the  cleft  in  the  rock. 
There  the  old  hag  was  once  more  sitting  spinning  from  her  distaff, 
and  she  cried  to  Cinderlad. : 


350  THE   SEVEN  FOALS 

'  Come  hither,  come  hither,  my  handsome  son,  and  let  me  comb 
your  hair  for  you.' 

'  Come  to  me,  then  ;  come  to  me  ! '  said  Cinderlad,  as  he  passed 
by  jumping  and  running,  and  keeping  tight  hold  of  one  of  the  foals' 
tails. 

When  he  had  got  safely  past  the  cleft  in  the  rock,  the  youngest 
foal  said : 

'  Get  on  my  back,  for  we  have  still  a  long  way  to  go.'  So  the 
lad  did  this. 

And  thus  they  journeyed  onwards  a  long,  long  way. 

'  Dost  thou  see  anything  now  ?  '  said  the  Foal. 

'  No,'  said  Cinderlad. 

So  they  journeyed  onwards  a  good  bit  farther. 

'  Dost  thou  see  anything  now '?  '  asked  the  Foal. 

'  Oh,  no,'  said  the  lad. 

When  they  had  gone  thus  for  a  long,  long  way,  the  Foal  again 
asked : 

'  Dost  thou  see  anything  now  ? ' 

'Yes,  now  I  see  something  that  is  white,'  said  Cinderlad.  'It 
looks  like  the  trunk  of  a  great  thick  birch  tree.' 

'  Yes,  that  is  where  we  are  to  go  in,'  said  the  Foal. 

When  they  got  to  the  trunk,  the  eldest  foal  broke  it  down  on 
one  side,  and  then  they  saw  a  door  where  the  trunk  had  been 
standing,  and  inside  this  there  was  a  small  room,  and  in  the  room 
there  was  scarcely  anything  but  a  small  fire-place  and  a  couple  of 
benches,  but  behind  the  door  hung  a  great  rusty  sword  and  a  small 
pitcher. 

'  Canst  thou  wield  that  sword  ?  '  asked  the  Foal. 

Cinderlad  tried,  but  coiild  not  do  it ;  so  he  had  to  take  a  draught 
from  the  pitcher,  and  then  one  more,  and  after  that  still  another, 
and  then  he  was  able  to  wield  the  sword  with  perfect  ease. 

'  Good,'  said  the  Foal ;  '  and  now  thou  must  take  the  sword  away 
with  thee,  and  with  it  shalt  thou  cut  off  the  heads  of  all  seven  of  us 
on  thy  wedding-day,  and  then  we  shall  become  princes  again  as  we 
were  before.  For  we  are  brothers  of  the  Princess  whom  thou  art 
to  have  when  thou  canst  tell  the  King  what  we  eat  and  drink,  but 
there  is  a  mighty  Troll  who  has  cast  a  spell  over  us.  When  thou 
hast  cut  off  our  heads,  thou  must  take  the  greatest  care  to  lay  each 
head  at  the  tail  of  the  body  to  which  it  belonged  before,  and  then 
the  spell  which  the  Troll  has  cast  upon  us  will  lose  all  its  power.' 

Cinderlad  promised  to  do  this,  and  then  they  went  on  farther. 


THE   SEVEN  FOALS  351 

When  they  had  travelled  a  long,  long  way,  the  Foal  said  : 
'  Dost  thou  see  anything  ?  ' 
'  No,'  said  Cmderlad. 
So  they  went  on  a  great  distance  farther. 
'  And  now  ?  '  inquired  the  Foal,  '  seest  thou  nothing  now  ?  ' 
'  Alas  !  no,'  said  Cinderlad. 

So  they  travelled  onwards  again,  for  many  and  many  a  mile, 
over  hill  and  dale. 

'  Now,  then,'  said  the  Foal,  '  dost  thou  not  see  anything  now  ?  ' 


'  Yes,'  said  Cinderlad ;  '  now  I  see  something  like  a  bluish  streak, 
far,  far  away.' 

'  That  is  a  river,'  said  the  Foal,  '  and  we  have  to  cross  it.' 

There  was  a  long,  handsome  bridge  over  the  river,  and  when 
they  had  got  to  the  other  side  of  it  they  again  travelled  on  a  long, 
long  way,  and  then  once  more  the  Foal  inquired  if  Cinderlad  saw 
anything.  Yes,  this  time  he  saw  something  that  looked  black,  far, 
far  away,  and  was  rather  like  a  church  tower. 

'  Yes,'  said  the  Foal,  '  we  shall  go  into  that.' 

\Yhen  the  Foals  got  into  the  churchyard  they  turned  into  men 
again,  and  looked  like  the  sons  of  a  king,  and  then:  clothes  were  so 


352  THE  SEVEN  FOALS 

magnificent  that  they  shone  with  splendour,  and  they  went  into 
the  church  and  received  bread  and  wine  from  the  priest,  who  was 
standing  before  the  altar,  and  Cinderlad  went  in  too.  But  when  the 
priest  had  laid  his  hands  on  the  princes  and  read  the  blessing,  they 
went  out  of  the  church  again,  and  Cinderlad  went  out  too,  but  he 
took  with  him  a  flask  of  wine  and  some  consecrated  bread.  No 
sooner  had  the  seven  princes  come  out  into  the  churchyard  than  they 
became  foals  again,  and  Cinderlad  got  upon  the  back  of  the  youngest, 
and  they  returned  by  the  way  they  had  come,  only  they  went  much, 
much  faster. 

First  they  went  over  the  bridge,  and  then  past  the  trunk  of  the 
birch  tree,  and  then  past  the  old  hag  who  sat  in  the  cleft  of  the  rock 
spinning,  and  they  went  by  so  fast  that  Cinderlad  could  not  hear 
what  the  old  hag  screeched  after  him,  but  just  heard  enough  to 
understand  that  she  was  terribly  enraged. 

It  was  all  but  dark  when  they  got  back  to  the  King  at  nightfall, 
and  he  himself  was  standing  in  the  courtyard  waiting  for  them. 

'  Hast  thou  watched  well  and  faithfully  the  whole  day  ?  '  said  the 
King  to  Cinderlad. 

'  I  have  done  my  best,'  replied  Cinderlad. 

'  Then  thou  canst  tell  me  what  my  seven  foals  eat  and  drink  ?  ' 
asked  the  King. 

So  Cinderlad  pulled  out  the  consecrated  bread  and  the  flask  of 
wine,  and  showed  them  to  the  King.  '  Here  may  you  behold  their 
meat,  and  here  their  drink,'  said  he. 

'  Yes,  diligently  and  faithfully  hast  thou  watched,'  said  the  King, 
'  and  thou  shalt  have  the  Princess  and  half  the  kingdom.' 

So  all  was  made  ready  for  the  wedding,  and  the  King  said  that 
it  was  to  be  so  stately  and  magnificent  that  everyone  should  hear 
of  it,  and  everyone  inquire  about  it. 

But  when  they  sat  down  to  the  marriage-feast,  the  bridegroom 
arose  and  went  down  to  the  stable,  for  he  said  that  he  had  forgotten 
something  which  he  must  go  and  look  to.  When  he  got  there,  he 
did  what  the  foals  had  bidden  him,  and  cut  off  the  heads  of  'all 
the  seven.  First  the  eldest,  and  then  the  second,  and  so  on  accord- 
ing to  their  age,  and  he  was  extremely  careful  to  lay  each  head  at 
the  tail  of  the  foal  to  which  it  had  belonged,  and  when  that  was 
done,  all  the  foals  became  princes  again.  When  he  returned  to  the 
marriage -feast  with  the  seven  princes,  the  King  was  so  joyful  that 
he  both  kissed  Cinderlad  and  clapped  him  on  the  back,  and  his  bride 
was  still  more  delighted  with  him  than  she  had  been  before. 


THE   SEVEN  FOALS  353 

'  Half  niy  kingdom  is  thine  already,'  said  the  King,  '  and  the 
other  half  shall  be  thine  after  niy  death,  for  my  sons  can  get 
countries  and  kingdoms  for  themselves  now  that  they  have  become 
princes  again.' 

Therefore,  as  all  may  well  believe,  there  was  joy  and  merriment 
at  that  wedding.1 

1  From  J.  Moe. 


A  A 


354 


THE  MARVELLOUS  MUSICIAN 


was  once  upon  a  time  a  marvellous  musician.  One  dny 
•JL  he  was  wandering  through  a  wood  all  by  himself,  thinking  now 
of  one  thing,  now  of  another,  till  there  was  nothing  else  left  to  think 
about.  Then  he  said  to  himself  : 

'  Time  hangs  very  heavily  on  my  hands  when  I'm  all  alone  in 
the  wood.  I  must  try  and  find  a  pleasant  companion.' 

So  he  took  his  fiddle  out,  and  fiddled  till  he  woke  the  echoes 
round.  After  a  time  a  wolf  came  through  the  thicket  and  trotted 
lip  to  the  musician. 

'  Oh  !  it's  a  Wolf,  is  it  ?  '  said  he.  '  I've  not  the  smallest  wish 
for  his  society.' 

But  the  Wolf  approached  him  and  said  : 

'  Oh,  my  dear  musician,  how  beautifully  you  play  !  I  wish  you'd 
teach  me  how  it's  done.' 

'  That's  easily  learned,'  answered  the  fiddler  ;  '  you  must  only  do 
exactly  as  I  tell  you.' 

'  Of  course  I  will,'  replied  the  Wolf.  '  I  can  promise  that  you 
will  find  me  a  most  apt  pupil.' 

So  they  joined  company  and  went  on  their  way  together,  and 
after  a  time  they  came  to  an  old  oak  tree,  which  was  hollow  and 
had  a  crack  in  the  middle  of  the  trunk. 

'  Now,'  said  the  Musician,  '  if  you  want  to  learn  to  fiddle,  here's 
your  chance.  Lay  your  front  paws  in  this  crack.' 

The  Wolf  did  as  he  was  told,  and  the  Musician  quickly  seized  a 
stone,  and  wedged  both  his  fore  paws  so  firmly  into  the  crack  that 
he  was  held  there,  a  fast  prisoner. 

'  Wait  there  till  I  return,'  said  the  Fiddler,  and  he  went  on  his 
way. 

After  a  time  he  said  to  himself  again  : 

'  Time  hangs  very  heavily  on  my  hands  when  I'm  all  alone  in 
the  wood  ;  I  must  try  and  find  a  companion.' 


THE   MARVELLOUS   MUSICIAN  355 

So  he  drew  out  his  fiddle,  and  fiddled  away  lustily.  Presently 
a  fox  slunk  through  the  trees. 

'  Aha  !  what  have  we  here  ?  '  said  the  Musician.    '  A  fox ;  well, 
I  haven't  the  smallest  desire  for  his  company.' 
The  Fox  came  straight  up  to  him  and  said  : 
'  My  dear  friend,  how  beautifullv  you  play  the  fiddle  ;  I  would 
like  to  learn  how  you  do  it.' 

'  Nothing  easier,'  said  the  Musician.  '  if  you'll  promise  to  do  ex- 
actly as  I  tell  you.' 

'  Certainly,'  answered  the  Fox,  '  you  have  only  to  say  the  word.' 
'  Well,  then,  follow  me,'  replied  the  Fiddler. 

When  they  had  gone  a  bi  of  the  way,  they  came  to  a  path  with 
high  trees  on  each  side.  Here  the  Musician  halted,  bent  a  stout 
hazel  bough  down  to  the  ground  from  one  side  of  the  path,  and  put 
his  foot  011  the  end  of  it  to  keep  it  down.  Then  he  bent  a  branch 
down  from  the  other  side  and  said  : 

'  Give  me  your  left  front  paw,  my  little  Fox,  if  you  really  wish  to 
learn  how  it's  done.' 

The  Fox  did  as  he  was  told,  and  the  Musician  tied  his  front  paw 
to  the  end  of  one  of  the  branches. 

'  Now,  my  friend,'  he  said,  '  give  me  your  right  paw.' 
This  he  bound  to  the  other  branch,  and  having  carefully  seen 
that  his  knots  were  all  secure,  he  stepped  off  the  ends  of  the  branches, 
and  they  sprang  back,  leaving  the  poor  Fox  suspended  in  mid-air. 
'Just  you  wait  where  you  are  till  I  return,'  said  the  Musician, 
and  he  went  011  his  way  again. 
Once  more  he  said  to  himself  : 

'  Time  hangs  heavily  on  my  hands  when  I'm  all  alone  in  the 
wood ;  I  must  try  and  find  another  companion.' 

So  he  took  out  his  fiddle  and  played  as  merrily  as  before.  This 
Lime  a  little  hare  came  running  up  at  the  sound. 

'  Oh  !  here  comes  a  hare,'  said  the  Musician ;  '  I've  not  the 
smallest  desire  for  his  company.' 

'  How  beautifully  you  play,  dear  Mr.  Fiddler,'  said  the  little  Hare. 
'  I  wish  I  could  learn  how  you  do  it.' 

'  It's  easily  learnt,'  answered  the  Musician  ;  'just  do  exactly  as  I 
tell  you.' 

'That  I  will,'  said  the  Hare,  'you  will  find  me  a  most  attentive 
pupil.' 

They  went  on  a  bit  together,  till  they  came  to  a  thin  part  of  the 
wood,  where  they  found  an  aspen  tree  growing.  The  Musician  bound 

A  2 


356  THE  MARVELLOUS  MUSICIAN 

a  long  cord  round  the  little  Hare's  neck,  the  other  end  of  which  he 
fastened  to  the  tree. 

'  Now,  my  merry  little  friend,'  said  the  Musician,  '  run  twenty 
times  round  the  tree.' 

The  little  Hare  obeyed,  and  when  it  had  run  twenty  times  round 
the  tree,  the  cord  had  twisted  itself  twenty  times  round  the  trunk, 
so  that  the  poor  little  beast  was  held  a  fast  prisoner,  and  it  might 
bite  and  tear  as  much  as  it  liked,  it  couldn't  free  itself,  and  the  cord 
only  cut  its  tender  neck. 

1  Wait  there  till  I  return,'  said  the  Musician,  and  went  on  his 
way. 

In  the  meantime  the  Wolf  had  pulled  and  bitten  and  scratched 
at  the  stone,  till  at  last  he  succeeded  in  getting  his  paws  out.  Full 
of  anger,  he  hurried  after  the  Musician,  determined  when  he  met 
him  to  tear  him  to  pieces.  When  the  Fox  saw  him  running  by,  he 
called  out  as  loud  as  he  could  : 

'  Brother  Wolf,  come  to  my  rescvie,  the  Musician  has  deceived 
me  too.' 

The  Wolf  pulled  the  branches  down,  bit  the  cord  in  two,  and  set 
the  Fox  free.  So  they  went  on  their  way  together,  both  vowing 
vengeance  on  the  Musician.  They  found  the  poor  imprisoned  little 
Hare,  and  having  set  him  free  also,  they  all  set  out  to  look  for  their 
enemy. 

During  this  time  the  Musician  had  once  more  played  his  fiddle, 
and  had  been  more  fortunate  in  the  result.  The  sounds  pierced  to 
the  ears  of  a  poor  woodman,  who  instantly  left  his  work,  and  with 
his  hatchet  under  his  arm  came  to  listen  to  the  music. 

'  At  last  I've  got  a  proper  sort  of  companion,'  said  the  Musician, 
'  for  it  was  a  human  being  I  wanted  all  along,  and  not  a  wild  animal.' 

And  he  began  playing  so  enchantingly  that  the  poor  man  stood 
there  as  if  bewitched,  and  his  heart  leapt  for.  joy  as  he  listened. 

And  as  he  stood  thus,  the  Wolf  and  Fox  and  little  Hare  came 
up,  and  the  woodman  saw  at  once  that  they  meant  mischief.  He 
lifted  his  glittering  axe  and  placed  himself  in  front  of  the  Musician, 
as  much  as  to  say  :  'If  you  touch  a  hair  of  his  head,  beware,  for  you 
will  have  to  answer  for  it  to  me.' 

Then  the  beasts  were  frightened,  and  they  all  three  ran  back  into 
the  wood,  and  the  Musician  played  the  woodman  one  of  his  best 
tunes,  by  way  of  thanks,  and  then  continued  his  way.1 

1  Grimm. 


357 


THE   STOEY  OF  SIGUED 

[This  is  a  very  old  story  :  the  Danes  who  used  to  fight  with  the  English  in  King 
Alfred's  time  knew  this  story.  They  have  carved  on  the  rocks  pictures  of 
some  of  the  things  that  happen  in  the  tale,  and  those  carvings  may  still  be 
seen.  Because  it  is  so  old  and  so  beautiful  the  story  is  told  here  again, 
but  it  has  a  sad  ending — indeed  it  is  all  sad,  and  all  about  fighting  and  kill- 
ing, as  might  be  expected  from  the  Danes.] 

ONCE  upon  a  time  there  was  a  King  in  the  North  who  had  won 
many  wars,  but  now  he  was  old.  Yet  he  took  a  new  wife,  and 
then  another  Prince,  who  wanted  to  have  married  her,  came  up 
against  him  with  a  great  army.  The  old  King  went  out  and  fought 
bravely,  biit  at  last  his  sword  broke,  and  he  was  wounded  and  his  men 
fled.  But  in  the  night,  when  the  battle  was  over,  his  young  wife  came 
out  and  searched  for  him  among  the  slain,  and  at  last  she  found 
him,  and  asked  whether  he  might  be  healed.  But  he  said  '  No,'  his 
luck  was  gone,  his  sword  was  broken,  and  he  must  die.  And  he 
told  her  that  she  would  have  a  son,  and  that  son  would  be  a  great 
warrior,  and  would  avenge  him  on  the  other  King,  his  enemy.  And 
he  bade  her  keep  the  broken  pieces  of  the  sword,  to  make  a  new  sword 
for  his  son,  and  that  blade  should  be  called  Gram. 

Then  he  died.  And  his  wife  called  her  maid  to  her  and  said, 
'  Let  us  change  clothes,  and  you  shall  be  called  by  my  name,  and  I 
by  yours,  lest  the  enemy  finds  us.' 

So  this  was  done,  and  they  hid  in  a  wood,  but  there  some  strangers 
met  them  and  carried  them  off  in  a  ship  to  Denmark.  And  when 
they  were  brought  before  the  King,  he  thought  the  maid  looked  like 
a  Queen,  and  the  Queen  like  a  maid.  So  he  asked  the  Queen,  '  How 
do  you  know  in  the  dark  of  night  whether  the  hours  are  wearing  to 
the  morning  ? ' 

And  she  said : 

'  I  know  because,  when  I  was  younger,  I  used  to  have  to  rise 
and  light  the  fires,  and  still  I  waken  at  the  same  time.' 

'  A  strange  Queen  to  light  the  fires,'  thought  the  King. 


358  THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD 

Then  he  asked  the  Queen,  who  was  dressed  like  a  maid,  '  How 
do  you  know  in  the  dark  of  night  whether  the  hours  are  wearing 
near  the  dawn  ?  ' 

4  My  father  gave  me  a  gold  ring,'  said  she,  '  and  always,  ere  the 
dawning,  it  grows  cold  on  my  finger.' 

'  A  rich  house  where  the  maids  wore  gold,'  said  the  King.  '  Truly 
you  are  no  maid,  but  a  lung's  daughter.' 

So  he  treated  her  royally,  and  as  time  went  on  she  had  a  son 
called  Sigurd,  a  beautiful  boy  and  very  strong.  He  had  a  tutor  to 
be  with  him,  and  once  the  tutor  bade  him  go  to  the  King  and  ask 
for  a  horse. 

'Choose  a  horse  for  yourself,'  said  the  King;  and  Sigurd  went  to 
the  wood,  and  there  he  met  an  old  man  with  a  white  beard,  and 
said,  '  Come  !  help  me  in  horse-choosing.' 

Then  the  old  man  said,  '  Drive  all  the  horses  into  the  river,  and 
choose  the  one  that  swims  across.' 

So  Sigurd  drove  them,  and  only  one  swam  across.  Sigurd  chose 
him  :  his  name  was  Grani,  and  he  came  of  Sleipnir's  breed,  and  was 
the  best  horse  in  the  world.  For  Sleipnir  was  the  horse  of  Odin,  the 
God  of  the  North,  and  was  as  swift  as  the  wind. 

But  a  day  or  two  later  his  tutor  said  to  Sigurd,  '  There  is  a  great 
treasure  of  gold  hidden  not  far  from  here,  and  it  would  become  you 
to  win  it.' 

But  Sigurd  answered,  '  I  have  heard  stories  of  that  treasure,  and 
I  know  that  the  dragon  Fafnir  guards  it,  and  he  is  so  huge  and 
wicked  that  no  man  dares  to  go  near  him.' 

'  He  is  no  bigger  than  other  dragons,'  said  the  tutor,  '  and  if  you 
were  as  brave  as  your  father  you  would  not  fear  him.' 

'  I  am  no  coward,'  says  Sigurd  ;  '  why  do  you  want  me  to  fight 
with  this  dragon  ?  ' 

Then  his  tutor,  whose  name  was  Regin,  told  him  that  all  this 
great  hoard  of  red  gold  had  once  belonged  to  his  own  father.  And 
his  father  had  three  sons — the  first  was  Fafnir,  the  Dragon  ;  the  next 
was  Otter,  who  could  put  on  the  shape  of  an  otter  when  he  liked  ; 
and  the  next  was  himself,  Regin,  and  he  was  a  great  smith  and 
maker  of  swords. 

Now  there  was  at  that  time  a  dwarf  called  Andvari,  who  lived  in 
a  pool  beneath  a  waterfall,  and  there  he  had  hidden  a  great  hoard  of 
gold.  And  one  day  Otter  had  been  fishing  there,  and  had  killed  a 
salmon  and  eaten  it,  and  was  sleeping,  like  an  otter,  on  a  stone. 
Then  someone  came  by,  and  threw  a  stone  at  the  otter  and  killed  it, 


THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD 


359 


and  flayed  off  the  skin,  and  took  it  to  the  house  of  Otter's  father. 
Then  he  knew  his  son  was  dead,  and  to  punish  the  person  who  had 
killed  him  he  said  he  must  have  the  Otter's  skin  filled  with  gold, 
and  covered  all  over  with  red  gold,  or  it  should  go  worse  with  him. 
Then  the  person  who  had  killed  Otter  went  down  and  caught  the 
Dwarf  who  owned  all  the  treasure  and  took  it  from  him. 


Only  one  ring  was  left,  which  the  Dwarf  wore,  and  even  that 
was  taken  from  him. 

Then  the  poor  Dwarf  was  very  angry,  and  he  prayed  that  the 
gold  might  never  bring  any  but  bad  luck  to  all  the  men  who  might 
own  it,  for  ever. 

Then  the  otter  skin  was  filled  with  gold  and  covered  with  gold, 
all  but  one  hair,  and  that  was  covered  with  the  poor  Dwarf's  last 
ring. 

But  it  brought  good  luck  to  nobody.     First  Fafnir,  the  Dragon, 


360  THE  STORY  OF  SIGURD 

killed  his  own  father,  and  then  he  went  and  wallowed  on  the 
gold,  and  would  let  his  brother  have  none,  and  no  man  dared  go 
near  it. 

When  Sigurd  heard  the  story  he  said  to  Begin  : 

'  Make  me  a  good  sword  that  I  may  kill  this  Dragon. ' 

So  Regin  made  a  sword,  and  Sigurd  tried  it  with  a  blow  on  a 
lump  of  iron,  and  the  sword  broke. 

Another  sword  he  made,  and  Sigurd  broke  that  too. 

Then  Sigurd  went  to  his  mother,  and  asked  for  the  broken  pieces 
of  his  father's  blade,  and  gave  them  to  Regin.  And  he  hammered 
and  wrought  them  into  a  new  sword,  so  sharp  that  fire  seemed  to 
burn  along  its  edges. 

Sigurd  tried  this  blade  on  the  lump  of  iron,  and  it  did  not  break, 
but  split  the  iron  in  two.  Then  he  threw  a  lock  of  wool  into  the 
river,  and  when  it  floated  down  against  the  sword  it  was  cut  into 
two  pieces.  So  Sigurd  said  that  sword  would  do.  But  before  he 
went  against  the  Dragon  he  led  an  army  to  fight  the  men  who  had 
killed  his  father,  and  he  slew  their  King,  and  took  all  his  wealth, 
and  went  home. 

When  he  had  been  at  home  a  few  days,  he  rode  out  with  Regin 
one  morning  to  the  heath  where  the  Dragon  used  to  lie.  Then  he 
saw  the  track  which  the  Dragon  made  when  he  went  to  a  cliff  to 
drink,  and  the  track  was  as  if  a  great  river  had  rolled  along  and 
left  a  deep  valley. 

Then  Sigurd  went  down  into  that  deep  place,  and  dug  many  pits 
in  it,  and  in  one  of  the  pits  he  lay  hidden  with  his  sword  drawn. 
There  he  waited,  and  presently  the  earth  began  to  shake  with  the 
weight  of  the  Dragon  as  he  crawled  to  the  water.  And  a  cloud  of 
venom  flew  before  him  as  he  snorted  and  roared,  so  that  it  would 
have  been  death  to  stand  before  him. 

But  Sigurd  waited  till  half  of  him  had  crawled  over  the  pit,  and 
then  he  thrust  the  sword  Gram  right  into  his  very  heart. 

Then  the  Dragon  lashed  with  his  tail  till  stones  broke  and  troos 
crashed  about  him. 

Then  he  spoke,  as  he  died,  and  said : 

'  Whoever  thou  art  that  hast  slain  me  this  gold  shall  be  thy  ruin, 
and  the  ruin  of  all  who  own  it.' 

Sigurd  said : 

'  I  would  touch  none  of  it  if  by  losing  it  I  should  never  die.  But 
all  men  die,  and  no  brave  man  lets  death  frighten  him  from  his 
desire.  Die  thou,  Fafnir,'  and  then  Fafnir  died. 


THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD 


361 


And  after  that  Sigurd  was  called  Fafhir's  Bane,  and  Dragon- 
slayer. 

Then  Sigurd  rode  back,  and  met  Begin,  and  Begin  asked  him  to 
roast  Fafnir's  heart  and  let  him  taste  of  it. 

So  Sigurd  put  the  heart  of  Fafnir  on  a  stake,  and  roasted  it.  But 
it  chanced  that  he  touched  it  with  his  finger,  and  it  burned  him.  Then 
he  put  his  finger  in  his  niouth,  and  so  tasted  the  heart  of  Fafnir. 

Then  immediately  he  understood  the  language  of  birds,  and  he 
heard  the  Woodpeckers  say  : 


'  There  is  Sigurd  roasting  Fafnir's  heart  for  another,  when  he 
should  taste  of  it  himself  and  learn  all  wisdom.' 

The  next  bird  said  : 

'  There  lies  Begin,  ready  to  betray  Sigurd,  who  trusts  him.' 

The  third  bird  said  : 

'  Let  him  cut  off  Begin's  head,  and  keep  all  thej*old  to  himself.' 

The  fourth  bird  said  : 

'  That  let  him  do,  and  then  ride  over  Hindfell,  to  the  place  where 
Brj-nhild  sleeps.' 


362  THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD 

When  Sigurd  heard  all  this,  and  how  Eegin  was  plotting  to 
betray  him,  he  cut  off  Regin's  head  with  one  blow  of  the  sword 
Gram. 

Then  all  the  birds  broke  out  singing  : 

'  We  know  a  fair  maid, 
A  fair  maiden  sleeping  ; 
Sigurd,  be  not  afraid, 
Sigurd,  win  thou  the  maid 
Fortune  is  keeping. 

'  High  over  Hindfell 
Re«d  fire  is  naming, 
There  doth  the  maiden  dwell 
She  that  shoiild  love  thee  well, 
Meet  for  thy  taming. 

'  There  must  she  sleep  till  thou 
Comest  for  her  waking 
Rise  lip  and  ride,  for  now 
Sure  she  will  swear  the  vow 
Fearless  of  breaking.' 

Then  Sigurd  remembered  how  the  story  went  that  somewhere, 
far  away,  there  was  a  beaxitifhl  lady  enchanted.  She  was  under  a 
spell,  so  that  she  must  always  sleep  in  a  castle  surrounded  by  flaming 
fire ;  there  she  must  sleep  for  ever  till  there  came  a  knight  who 
would  ride  through  the  fire  and  waken  her.  There  he  determined 
to  go,  but  first  he  rode  right  down  the  horrible  trail  of  Fafnir.  And 
Fafnir  had  lived  in  a  cave  with  iron  doors,  a  cave  dug  deep  down 
in  the  earth,  and  full  of  gold  bracelets,  and  crowns,  and  rings;  and 
there,  too,  Sigurd  found  the  Helm  of  Dread,  a  golden  helmet,  and 
whoever  wears  it  is  invisible.  'All  these  he  piled  on  the  back  of  the 
good  horse  Grani,  and  then  he  rode  south  to  Hindfell. 

Now  it  was  night,  and  on  the  crest  of  the  hill  Sigurd  saw  a  red 
fire  bla/ing  up  into  the  sky,  and  within  the  flame  a  castle,  and  a 
banner  on  the  topmost  tower.  Then  he  set  the  horse  Grani  at  the 
fire,  and  he  leaped  through  it  lightly,  as  if  it  had  been  through  the 
heather.  So  Sigurd  went  within  the  castle  door,  and  there  he  saw 
someone  sleeping,  clad  all  in  armour.  Then  he  took  the  helmet  off 
the  head  of  the  sleeper,  and  behold,  she  was  a  most  beautiful  lady. 
And  she  wakened  and  said,  '  Ah  !  is  it  Sigurd,  Sigmund's  son,  who 
has  broken  the  curse,  and  comes  here  to  waken  me  at  last  ?  ' 


THE   STOEY  OF  SIGURD 


3G3 


This  curse  came  upon  her  when  the  thorn  of  the  tree  of  sleep 
ran  into  her  hand  long  ago  as  a  punishment  because  she  had  dis- 
pleased Odin  the  God.  Long  ago,  too,  she  had  vowed  never  to 
marry  a  man  who  knew  fear,  and  dared  not  ride  through  the  fence 
of  flaming  fire.  For  she  was  a  warrior  maid  herself,  and  went 
armed  into  the  battle  like  a  man.  But  now  she  and  Sigurd  loved 


each  other,  and  promised  to  be  true  to  each  other,  and  he  gave  her 
a  ring,  and  it  was  the  last  ring  taken  from  the  dwarf  Andvari. 
Then  Sigurd  rode  away,  and  he  came  to  the  house  of  a  King  who 
had  a  fair  daughter.  Her  name  was  Gudrun,  and  her  mother  was  a 
witch.  Now  Gxidrun  fell  in  love  with  Sigurd,  but  he  was  always 
tallying  of  Brynhild,  how  beautiful  she  was  and  how  dear.  So  one 


364 


THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD 


day  Gudrun's  witch  mother  put  poppy  and  forgetful  drugs  in  a 
magical  cup,  and  bade  Sigurd  drink  to  her  health,  and  he  drank,  and 
instantly  he  forgot  poor  Brynhild  and  he  loved  Gudrun,  and  they 
were  married  with  great  rejoicings. 


Now  the  witch,  the  mother  of  Gudrun,  wanted  her  son  Gunnar 
to  marry  Brynhild,  and  she  bade  him  ride  out  with  Sigurd  and  go 
and  woo  her.  So  forth  they  rode  to  her  father's  house,  for  Brynhild 
had  quite  gone  out  of  Sigurd's  mind  by  reason  of  the  witch's  wine, 


THE   STORY  OF  SIGURD  365 

but  she  remembered  him  and  loved  him  still.  Then  Brynhild' s 
father  told  Gunnar  that  she  would  marry  none  but  him  who  could 
ride  the  flame  in  front  of  her  enchanted  tower,  and  thither  they  rode, 
and  Gunnar  set  his  horse  at  the  flame,  but  he  would  not  face  it. 
Then  Gunnar  tried  Sigurd's  horse  Grani,  but  he  would  not  move 
with  Gunnar  on  his  back.  Then  Gunnar  remembered  witchcraft 
that  his  mother  had  taught  him,  and  by  his  magic  he  made  Sigurd 
look  exactly  like  himself,  and  he  looked  exactly  like  Gunnar.  Then 
Sigurd,  in  the  shape  of  Gunnar  and  in  his  mail,  mounted  on  Grani, 
and  Grani  leaped  the  fence  of  fire,  and  Sigurd  went  in  and  found 
Brynhild,  but  he  did  not  remember  her  yet,  because  of  the  forgetful 
medicine  in  the  cup  of  the  witch's  wine. 

Now  Brynhild  had  no  help  but  to  promise  she  would  be  his  wife, 
the  wife  of  Gunnar  as  she  supposed,  for  Sigurd  wore  Gunnar's  shape, 
and  she  had  sworn  to  wed  whoever  should  ride  the  flames.  And  he 
gave  her  a  ring,  and  she  gave  him  back  the  ring  he  had  given  her 
before  in  his  own  shape  as  Sigurd,  and  it  was  the  last  ring  of  that 
poor  dwarf  Andvari.  Then  he  rode  out  again,  and  he  and  Gunnar 
changed  shapes,  and  each  was  himself  again,  and  they  went 
home  to  the  witch  Queen's,  and  Sigurd  gave  the  dwarfs  ring  to 
his  wife,  Gudrun.  And  Brynhild  went  to  her  father,  and  said 
that  a  King  had  come  called  Gunnar,  and  had  ridden  the  fire, 
and  she  must  marry  him.  '  Yet  I  thought,'  she  said,  '  that  no 
man  could  have  done  this  deed  but  Sigurd,  Fafnir's  bane,  who  was 
my  true  love.  But  he  has  forgotten  me,  and  my  promise  I  must 
keep.' 

So  Gunnar  and  Brynhild  were  married,  though  it  was  not  Gunnar 
but  Sigurd  in  Gunnar's  shape,  that  had  ridden  the  fire. 

And  when  the  wedding  was  over  and  all  the  feast,  then  the  magic 
of  the  witch's  wine  went  out  of  Sigurd's  brain,  and  he  remembered 
all.  He  remembered  how  he  had  freed  Brynhild  from  the  spell, 
and  how  she  was  his  own  true  love,  and  how  he  had  forgotten  and 
had  married  another  woman,  and  won  Brynhild  to  be  the  wife  of 
another  man. 

But  he  was  brave,  and  he  spoke  not  a  word  of  it  to  the  others  to 
make  them  unhappy.  Still  he  could  not  keep  away  the  curse  which 
was  to  come  on  every  one  who  owned  the  treasure  of  the  dwarf 
Andvari,  and  his  fatal  golden  ring. 

And  the  curse  soon  came  upon  all  of  them.  For  one  day,  when 
Brynhild  and  Gudrun  were  bathing,  Brynhild  waded  farthest  out 
into  the  river,  and  said  she  did  that  to  show  she  was  Gudrun's 


36G 


THE   STORY   OF  SIGURD 


superior.  For  her  husband,  she  said,  had  ridden  through  the  flame 
when  no  other  man  dared  face  it. 

Then  Gudrun  was  very  angry,  and  said  that  it  was  Sigurd,  not 
Gunnar,  who  had  ridden  the  flame,  and  had  received  from  Brynhild 
that  fatal  ring,  the  ring  of  the  dwarf  Andvari. 

Then  Brynhild  saw  the  ring  which  Sigurd  had  given  to  Gudrun, 
and  she  knew  it  and  knew  all,  and  she  turned  as  pale  as  a  dead 


woman,  and  went  home.  All  that  evening  she  never  spoke.  Next 
day  she  told  Gunnar,  her  husband,  that  he  was  a  coward  and  a  liar, 
for  he  had  never  ridden  the  flame,  but  had  sent  Sigurd  to  do  it  for 
him,  and  pretended  that  he  had  done  it  himself.  And  she  said  he 
would  never  see  her  glad  in  his  hall,  never  drinking  wine,  never 
playing  chess,  never  embroidering  with  the  golden  thread,  never 
speaking  words  of  kindness.  Then  she  rent  all  her  needlework 
asunder  and  wept  aloud,  so  that  everyone  in  the  house  heard  her. 


THE   STORY  OF  SIGUBD  367 

For  her  heart  was  broken,  and  her  pride  was  broken  in  the  same 
hour.  She  had  lost  her  true  love,  Sigurd,  the  slayer  of  Fafnir,  and 
she  was  married  to  a  man  who  was  a  liar. 

Then  Sigurd  came  and  tried  to  comfort  her,  but  she  would  not 
listen,  and  said  she  wished  the  sword  stood  fast  in  his  heart. 

'  Not  long  to  wait,'  he  said,  '  till  the  bitter  sword  stands  fast  in 
my  heart,  and  thou  will  not  live  long  when  I  am  dead.  But,  dear 
Brynhild,  live  and  be  comforted,  and  love  Gunnar  thy  husband,  and 
I  will  give  thee  all  the  gold,  the  treasure  of  the  dragon  Fafnir.' 

Brynhild  said  : 

'  It  is  too  late.' 

Then  Sigurd  was  so  grieved  and  his  heart  so  swelled  in  his  breast 
that  it  burst  the  steel  rings  of  his  shirt  of  mail. 

Sigurd  went  out  and  Brynhild  determined  to  slay  him.  She 
mixed  serpent's  venom  and  wolfs  flesh,  and  gave  them  in  one  dish 
to  her  husband's  younger  brother,  and  when  he  had  tasted  them  he 
was  mad,  and  he  went  into  Sigurd's  chamber  while  he  slept  and 
pinned  him  to  the  bed  with  a  sword.  But  Sigurd  woke,  and  caught 
the  sword  Gram  into  his  hand,  and  threw  it  at  the  man  as  he  fled, 
and  the  sword  cut  him  in  twain.  Thus  died  Sigurd,  Famir's  bane, 
whom  no  ten  men  could  have  slain  in  fair  fight.  Then  Gudrun 
wakened  and  saw  him  dead,  and  she  moaned  aloud,  and  Brynhild 
heard  her  and  laughed ;  but  the  kind  horse  Grani  lay  down  and  died 
of  very  grief.  And  then  Brynhild  fell  a-weeping  till  her  heart  broke. 
So  they  attired  Sigurd  in  all  his  golden  armour,  and  built  a  great 
pile  of  wood  on  board  his  ship,  and  at  night  laid  on  it  the  dead  Sigurd 
and  the  dead  Brynhild,  and  the  good  horse,  Grani,  and  set  fire  to  it, 
and  launched  the  ship.  And  the  wind  bore  it  blazing  out  to  sea, 
flaming  into  the  dark.  So  there  were  Sigurd  and  Brynhild  burned 
together,  and  the  curse  of  the  dwarf  Aiidvari  was  fulfilled.1 

1  The  Volsimga  Saga. 


miXTED    BY 
SrOTTISrtOODE    AXn    CO.,    NEW-STREET 
LONDON 


BOOKS    FOE    THE    YOUNG. 


SNAP:  a  Legend  of  the  Lone  Mountain.  By  C.  PHILLIPPS- 
WOLLEY,  Author  of  '  Sport  in  the  Crimea  and  Caucasus '  &c. 
With  13  Illustrations  by  H.  G.  WlLLlNK.  Second  Edition. 
Crown  8vo.  6s. 

'  •'  Oh !  to  be  a  boy  again  ! "  to  revel  as  was  our  wont  in  stnries  of  this  sort.  It  is 
impossible  to  conceive  a  more  delightful  book  for  boys  than  "Suap."  ' 

WHITEHALL  RKVIKW-. 

'  Many  an  "old  boy"  of  fifty  will  peruse  this  chronicle  of  moving  accident  by  flood 
and  field  with  as  keen  a  relish  as  his  grandson,  and  with  perhaps  keener  appreciation  of 
the  manly  style  in  which  it  is  written.' — PALL  MALL  GAZETTE. 

'  The  special  gift  for  writing  books  for  boys  is  a  rare  one,  and  Mr.  Phillipps-Wollpy  is 
to  be  highly  congratulated  on  his  possession  of  it.  "  Snap"  is  an  admirable  boy's  b  iok, 
interesting  ami  invigorating  throughout.  .  .  .  A  book  which  should  please  everyone  and 
delight  boys.  It  should  come  as  a  boon  and  a  blessing  to  fathers,  uncles,  and  god- 
parents.'—SATURDAY  REVIEW. 

HURSTLEIGH  DENE.  By  Mrs.  O'REILLY,  Aulhor  of 
'Sussex  Stories '&c.  With  Illustrations  by  M.  ELLEN  EDWARDS. 
Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'  A  very  charming  story.  It  never  flags  in  interest ....  and  with  its  pretty  binding 
and  really  good  illustrations  is  a  delightful  book  for  girls.' — SCOTSMAN. 

WILL  0'  THE  WISP:  a  Story.  By  Mrs.  HUGH  BELL. 
Illustrated  by  E.  L.  SHUTE.  Crown  8vo.  3*.  Gti. 

The  story  is  bright  and  wholesome— two  excellent  features  in  books  for  the  young— 
and.  moreover,  it  is  nicely  illustrated.' — Conirr  JOURNAL. 

"•Will  o' the  Wisp"  is  a  fa  cinating  little  scaramouch,  whose  daring  deed-*  will 
endear  him  to  the  child  readers  ot  this  attractive  little  book.' — AT  HEX  JiL'M. 

RIDERS  LEAP :  a  Story  for  Boys.  By  the  Rev.  FREDERICK 
LAXGBRIDGE,  Author  of  '  Mysteriously  Missing,'  '  Peacock 
Alley,'  &c.  With  Illustrations  by  W.  B.  WOLLEN.  Crown  8vo.  5,v. 

'  A  very  well  written  book,  containing  a  capital  story.  The  interest  of  the  taleis 
admirably  kept  up,  and  the  incidents  are  interesting  and" numerous,  and  the  characters 
are  drawn  with  a  care  and  completeness  very  rare  in  boys'  books.'— STANDARD. 

THE  WHITE  MAN'S  FOOT.     By  GRANT  ALLEN.     With 

Illustrations  by  J.  FINXEMORE.     8vo.  5s. 

'  A  singular  and  altogether  exceptional  tale,  breaking  entirely  new  ground.  This 
story,  although  dealing  with  wonders,  possesses  the  charm  of  probability.  It  is  very 
well  written,  and  the  only  regret  of  readers  will  be  that  it  is  not  double  its  actual 
length.' — STANDARD. 

'  A  thrilling  story.  Mr.  Grant  Allen  has  never  done  better  in  the  way  of  story-telling 
than  in  this  persuasively-told  and  dramatic  narrative.' — SATURDAY  REVIEW. 

B    B 


BOOKS  FOR    THE   YOUNG. 


NIGEL  BROWNING.  By  AGNES  GIBERNE,  Author  of 
'  Miss  Con,' '  Ralph  Hardcastle's  Will,'  .fee.  Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'  The  characters  are  lightly  yet  firmly  drawn,  the  conversations  are  natural,  and  the 
whole  story  is  thoroughly  healthy.'-  SCOTSMAN. 

SILVERTHORNS.  By  Mrs.  MOLESWOBTH.  With  Illustra- 
tions by  F.  NOEL  PATON.  Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'  Boys  and  girls  alike  will  be  charmed  by  "  Silverthorns."  Nothing  could  be  more 
simple  than  the  plan  of  this  story,  yet  the  interest  is  deep  and  sustained  from  first  to 
last.' — SATURDAY  REVIEW. 

'  We  can  heartily  recommend  this  story.  The  heroine  is  delightful,  and  the  family 
and  school  life  to  which  the  story  introduces  us  is  very  well  drawn.  It  is  a  book  that 
may  be  read  by  any  grown  person  of  good  taste.'— GUARDIAN. 

'A  most  attractive  book.    The  story  is  sure  to  be  popular.'— LONDON  FIGARO. 

THE  PALACE  IN  THE  GARDEN.  By  Mrs.  MOLES- 
WOBTH. With  Illustrations  by  HARRIET  M.  BENNETT.  Crown 
8vo.  5*. 

'  One  of  the  most  perfect  of  Mrs.  Molesworth's  children's  stories.  The  illustrations 
are  very  good,  and  the  book  is  altogether  very  prettily  and  daintily  got  up.' — GUARDIAN. 

'Children  of  both  sexes  will  be  charmed  with  Mrs.  Molesworth's  newest  contribution 
to  juvenile  literature,  "The  Palace  in  the  Garden."' — MORNING  POST. 

'  Mrs.  Molesworth  has  written  several  charming  stories  for  children,  but  none  more 
pleasantly  conceived  to  rouse  the  wonder  and  admiration  of  her  little  readers  than  the 
tale  of  "  The  Palace  in  the  Garden."  '—SCOTSMAN. 

THE  THIRD  MISS  ST.  QUENTIN.     By  Mrs.  MOLES- 
WORTH.     Crown  8vo.  6s. 
'A  pretty  and  graceful  story.'— SATURDAY  RKVIKW. 
'  Mrs.  Molesworth  surpasses  herself  in  her  book.' — MORNING  POST. 

NEIGHBOURS.  By  Mrs.  MOLESWORTH.  With  Illustra- 
tions by  M.  ELLEN  EDWARDS.  Crown  8vo.  6*. 

THE  STORY  OF  A  SPRING  MORNING,  &c.  By 
Mrs.  MOLESWORTH,  Author  of  '  Carrots,'  « The  Palace  in  the 
Garden,'  £c.  With  Illustrations  by  M.  ELLEN  EDWARDS. 
Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'  These  stories  are  various  in  character,  are  all  more  or  less  humorous,  and  all 
charming.  ...  In  no  previous  volume  has  Mrs.  Molesworth's  pre-eminence  as  a  creator 
of  real  child  character  been  more  conspicuous.'— SCOTSMAN. 

RALPH  HARDCASTLE'S  WILL.  By  AGNES  GIBEENE. 
With  Frontispiece.  Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'A  cleverly- written  story  of  strong  domestic  interest.'— SCOTSMAN. 
'A  tale  of  much  interest,  and  written  in  an  excellent  style.'— GLASGOW  HERALD. 
'  Decidedly  good  reading.    Audrey  is  really  a  fascinating  creature.    Children  will 
follow  her  fortunes  breathlessly.'— ATHENAEUM. 
'  Told  with  great  spirit.'— ACADEMY. 


BOOKS   FOR    THE    YOUNG, 


A  STB  AY :  a  Tale  of  a  Country  Town.  By  CHABLOTTE  M. 
YONGE,  MARY  BEAMSTON,  CHEISTABEL  COLERIDGE,  and 
ESME  STUART.  New  and  Cheaper  Edition,  with  Frontispiece  by 
GORDON  BROWNE.  Crown  8vo.  3s.  6d. 

'  Charmingly  told.  The  weaknesses,  the  ridicules,  and  also  the  good  points  of  a 
small  country-side  community  are  here  portrayed  with  a  keenness  of  observation  and  a 
vivacity  of  style  that  places  this  "  Tale  of  a  Country  Town  "  much  above  its  peers.' 

MORNING  POST. 
'  A  very  agreeable  and  wonderfully  successful  experiment  in  joint-authorship.' 

ACADEMY. 

'  Told,  as  far  as  may  be,  in  the  fashion  in  which  Miss  Yonge  has  told  so  many  popular 
stories.' — SATURDAY  REVIEW. 

THE  O'DONNELLS  OF  INCHFAWN.  ByL.T.  MEADE, 
Author  of  '  .Scamp  and  I,' '  A  World  of  Girls,'  &c.  With  Frontis- 
piece by  A.  CHASEMORE.  Crown  8vo.  6*. 

1  The  author  has  done  good  and  pleasant  work  in  her  time,  hut  "The  O'Donnells  of 
Inchfawn  "  is  far  and  away  the  best  thing  she  has  done  yet.' — WHITEHALL  REVIEW 

DADDY'S  BOY.  By  L.  T.  MEADE,  Author  of  <  Scamp  and 
I,'  'A  World  of  Girls,'  &c.  With  Illustrations.  Crown  8vo.  cloth 
extra,  5s. 

'  One  of  the  most  charming  and  pathetic  tales  that  we  have  seen  for  a  long  time.' 

ATHEX^EO.M. 

'  This  beautiful  story,  pathetic  without  being  harrowing,  reminds  us  of  Miss 
Florence  Montgomery's  "  Misunderstood  " — reminds  us  without  suggesting  the  idea  of 
an  imitation.' — SPECTATOR. 

DEB  AND  TEE  DUCHESS.  By  L.  T.  MEADE,  Author 
of  '  Scamp  and  I,' '  A  World  of  Girls,'  &c.  With  Illustrations  by 
M.  E.  EDWARDS.  Crown  8vo.  cloth  extra,  5s. 

'  There  arc  few  stories  "  for  boys  and  girls  "  which  successfully  compete  with  "  Deb 
and  the  Duchess."  The  character  of  the  wilful  but  charming  little  heroine  is  cleverly 
drawn,  and  shows  the  author  to  be  a  keen  sympathiser  with  the  often  very  real  woes  of 
childhood.' — MORNING  POST. 

'  A  charming  tale  of  charming  children,  who  are  naughty  enough  to  be  interesting! 
and  natural  enough  to  be  made  lovable  ;  and  very  prettily  their  story  is  told.' 

GLASGOW  HERALD. 

'  This  is  one  of  the  sweetest  stories  published  this  season.'— LADY'S  PICTORIAL. 
The  quaintest  jet  most  natural  stories  of  child-life.    Simply  delightful.' 

VANITY  FAIR. 

HOUSE  OF  SURPRISES.  By  L.  T.  MEADE,  Author  of 
'Scamp  and  I,' 'A  World  of  Girls,  &c.'  With  Illustrations 
by  EDITH  M.  SCANNELL.  Crown  8vo.  cloth  extra,  3s.  Gd. 

THE  BERESFORD  PRIZE.  By  L.  T.  MEADE.  With 
7  Illustrations  by  M.  ELLEN  EDWARDS.  Crown  8vo.  5s. 

'  The  story  will  be  read  with  the  greatest  sympathy  by  school-girls,  for  it  is  alive 
with  the  right  kinds  of  incidents  to  sustain  their  interest.' — WESTERN  DAILY  MERCURY. 

'  What  "  Tom  Brown's  Schooldays  "  did  for  boys,  this  book  may  in  some  measure  be 
expected  to  do  for  girls.  .  .  .  The  story  is  very  interesting,  and  graphically  depicts  life 
in  a  well  regulated  boarding- school  for  girls.' — MANCHESTER  EXAMINER. 


BOOKS  FOR    THE   YOUNG. 


JOAN   WENTWORTH.      By  KATHARINE    S.    MACQUOID. 

With  Illustrations  by  GORDON  BROWNE.     Crown  8vo.  3*.  6d. 
'  An  admirable  study  of  girl  life.'— ATHEN<EDM. 

'It  is  a  real  pleasure  to  come  across  so  thoroughly  bright  and  piquant  a  girl's  book 
The  story  is  very  charming,  and  we  feel  sure  will  prove  a  source  of  great  enjoyment.' 

LITERAKY  WOULD. 

'One  of  the  best  stories  for  young  girls  that  has  lately  appeared.  Graphically  ami 
profusely  illustrated.' — MOHXIXG  POST. 

THAT  CHILD.  By  the  Author  of  'The  Atelier  du  Lys,' 
'  Mademoiselle  Mori,'  &c.  Illustrated  by  GORDON  BHOWNE. 
Crown  8vo.  3s.  Gd. 

'  Written  by  the  c'ever  authoress  of  the  "  Atelier  du  Lys."  In  the  conscientiousness 
of  the  workmanship,  and  in  the  refinement  of  her  finish,  the  writer  reminds  us  of  Miss 
Thackeray  ;  and  "  That  Child  "  recalls  in  some  respects  the  novel  of  '  Old  Kensin.urt'>n.'' ' 

TIMES. 

'A  clever,  well  sustained  story,  well  worthy  of  tlu  author  of  "Mademoiselle 
Mori."' — SATUHDAY  REVIEW. 

UNDER  A  CLOUD.     By  the  Author  of  '  The  Atelier   du 

Lys,'  '  Mademoiselle  Mori,'  &c.     Crown  8vo.  5$. 

'The;iuthoress  of  this  book  is  well  known  for  the  refinement  and  artistic  finish  of 
her  work.  Tliis,  her  last  story,  will  in  no  way  detract  from  the  high  reputation  which  she 
has  gained.  Altogether,  the  book  is  worthy  of  the  highest  praise.  We  d  >  not  remember 
to  have  seen  anything  much  better  from  the  drawing  of  this  authoress.' — SPKCTATOH. 

THE  FIDDLER  OF  LUGAU.  By  the  Author  of  '  The 
Atelier  du  Lys,'  '  Mademoiselle  Mori,'  &c.  With  Illustrations  by 
W.  RALSTON.  Crown  8vo.  6s. 

'  Just  the  book  that  might  be  expected  from  the  author  of  "  Mademoiselle  Mori," 
and  quite  in  her  best  manner.' — ST.  JAMES'S  GA/KTTK. 
'  A  very  artistic  story.'— SPECTATOR. 

'  A  very  pretty,  graceful,  and  interesting  story.  Goda  is  a  character  who  could  have 
been  conceived  only  by  a  writer  endowed  with  a  true  sympathetic  compicuension  of  the 
nature  of  the  creative  artist.' — ACADEMY. 

A  CHILD  OF  THE  REVOLUTION.     By  the  Author  of 
'  The  Atelier  du  Lys,' '  Mademoiselle  Mori,'  &c.  With  Illustrations 
by  C.  J.  STANILAND.     Crown  8vo.  6s. 
As  charming  a  novelette  as  any  girl  will  enjoy  this  Christmas.'— GHAPHIC. 

WITHOUT  A    REFERENCE.      By  BRENDA,    Author  of 

'  Nothing   to    Nobody,'   '  Froggy's    Little    Brother,'   &c.      Small 
crown  8vo.  Illustrated,  3s.  Gd. 

'  One  of  the  most  cleverly  constructed  and  touchiugly  told  stories  we  have  ever  met 
with.'  —  RHVIBW. 

OLD'  ENGLAND'S  STORY.     OLD  ENGLAND'S   STORY  IN 

LITTLE  WORDS  FOR  LITTLE  CHILDREN.   By  BRENDA,  Author  of 

'  Nothing  to  Nobody,'  '  Froggy's  Little  Brother,'  &c.     Illustrated 

by  SIDNEY  HALL  and  other  artists.     Square  crown  8vo.  3s.  6d. 

'  Well  written,  and  free  from   the  sentimentalism  which  infects  so  many  rf  the 

historical  books  provided  for  the  young.'— QUKKN. 


London:  LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO. 


GENERAL  LISTS  OF  WOMS 

PUBLISHED   BY 

MESSES.    LONGMANS,    GREEN,    &    CO. 

LONDON    AND    NEW    YORK. 


HISTORY,    POLITICS,    HISTORICAL   MEMOIRS,  &c, 

Abbey  and  Overtoil's  English  Church  in  the  Eighteenth  Century.  Cr.  Svo.  7*.  64. 
Arnold's  Lectures  on  Modern  History.    Svo.  7*.  6d. 

Bagwell's  Ireland  under  the  Tudors.    Vols.  1  and  2.    8vo.  32*.    Vol.  3.    Svo.  18s. 
Ball's  Legislative  Systems  in  Ireland,  1172-1800.    Svo.  6*. 

—  The  Keformed  Church  of  Ireland,  1537-1886.    Svo.  It.  6d. 

Boultbee's  History  of  the  Church  of  England,  Pro-Reformation  Period.  Svo.  I5t, 
Bowen's  (Sir  G.  F.)  Thirty  Tears  of  Colonial  Government  :  a  Selection  of 

Official  Papers.    2  vols.  Svo.  32*. 

Buckle's  History  of  Civilisation.    3  vols.  crown  Svo.  24*. 
Churchill's  (Lord  Randolph)  Speeches.    2  vols.  Svo. 24$. 
Cox's  (Sir  G.  W.)  General  History  of  Greece.    Crown  Svo.  Maps,  It.  6<i. 
Oreighton's  Papacy  during  the  Reformation.  Svo.  Vols.  1  &  2, 32*.  Vols.  3  &4, 24*. 
Cnrzon's  Russia  in  Central  Asia  in  1889.    With  Maps.    Illustrated.    Svo.  21*. 
De  Redcliffe's  (Viscount  Stratford)  Life.  By  Stanley  Lane-Poole.  2  vols.  Svo.  36*. 
De  Tocqueville's  Democracy  in  America.    2  vols.  crown  Svo.  16*. 
Doyle's  English  in  America  :  Virginia,  Maryland,  and  the  Carolinas,  Svo.  18*. 

—  —  —         The  Puritan  Colonies,  2  vols.  Svo.  36*. 
Freeman's  Historical  Geography  of  Europe.    2  vols.  Svo.  31*.  6d. 
Froude's  English  in  Ireland  in  the  18th  Century.    3  vols.  crown  Svo.  l&s. 

—  History  of  England.    Popular  Edition.   12  vols.  crown  Svo.  3*.  6d,  each. 

—  Short  Studies  on  Great  Subjects.    4  vols.  crown  Svo.  24*. 
Gardiner's  History  of  England  from  the  Accession  of  James  I.  to  the  Outbreak 

of  the  Civil  War.    10  vols.  crown  Svo.  60*. 
—        History  of  the  Great  Civil  War.  1642-1649  (3  vols.)    Vol.  1, 1642-1644, 

Svo.  21*.     Vol.  2,  1644-1647,  Svo.  24*. 
Gibbs'  England  in  South  Africa.    Svo.  5s. 
Greville'a  Journal  of  tt«  Reigns  of  King  George  IV.,  King  William  IV.,  and 

Queen  Victoria.    Oabinet  Edition.    8  vols.  crown  Svo.  6*.  each. 
Historic  Towns.     Edited  by  E.  A.  Freeman,  D.C.L.  and  the  Rev.  William  Hunt, 
M.A.    With  Maps  and  Plans.    Crowu  Svo.  3*.  6d.  each. 


Londoo.    By  W.  J.  Loftie. 
Exeter.    By  E.  A.  Freeman. 
Cinque  Ports.     By  Montagu 
Burrows. 


Oxford.    By  the  Rev.  C.  W.  Boase. 
Colchester.    By  the  Rev.  E.  0.  Outti. 
Carlisle.    By  the  Rev.  M.  Oreightou. 
Winchester.   By  G.  W.  Kitchin,  DJ). 


Bristol.    By  the  Rev.  W.  Hunt. 
Hurlbert's  France  and  her  Republic  :  a  Record  of  1889.    Svo.  18*. 


LONGMANS,  GEEEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  "Works. 


BIOGRAPHICAL    WORKS. 

Armstrong's  (E.  J.)  Life  and  Letters.  Edited  by  G.  P.  Armstrong.  Pop.  8vo.  7».6<t. 

Bacon's  Life  and  Letters,  by  Spedding.    7  vols.  8vo.  £4.  it. 

Bagehot's  Biographical  Studies.    1  vol.  8vo.  12*. 

Burdett's  Prince,  Princess,  and  People  :  the  Public  Life  and  Works  of  T.R.H. 

the  Prince  and  Princess  of  Wales.    8vo.  21*. 
Carlyle's  (Thomas)  Life.  By  James  A.  Froude.  Crown  8vo.  Vols.  1  and  2,  7s. 

Vols.  3  and  4,  7s. 

Clavers,  the  Despot's  Champion.    By  A  Southern.    Crown  8vo.  7s.  6d. 
English  Worthies.    Edited  by  Andrew  Lang.    Crown  8vo.  each  It.  sewed; 
It.  6d.  cloth. 


Charles  Darwin.    By  Grant  Allen. 
Bhaftesbury  (The  First  Earl).    By 

H.  D.  Traill. 
Admiral  Blake.  By  David  Hannay. 


Steele.    By  Austin  Dobson. 
Ben  Jonson.    By  J.  A.  Symonds. 
George  Canning.    By  Frank  H.  Hill. 
Claverhouse.    By  Mowbray  Morris. 


Marlborough,  By  Geo.  Saintsbury. 
For  (Charles  James)  The  Early  History  of.  By  Sir  G.  0.  Trevelyan.    Or.  8vo.  6*. 
Froude's  Cassar  :  a  Sketch.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  6d. 
Hamilton's  (Sir  W.  K.)  Life,  by  Graves.    3  vols.  8vo.  16*.  each, 
Havelock's  Life,  by  Marshman.    Crown  8vo.  3s.  6d. 
Macaulay's  (Lord)  Life  and  Letters.    By  his  Nephew,  Sir  G.  0.  Trevelyan,  Bart. 

Popular  Edition,  1  vol.  cr.  8vo.  2s.  6d.    Student's  Edition,  1  vol.  cr.  8vo.  6*. 

Cabinet  Edition,  2  vols.  post  8vo.  124.    Library  Edition,  2  vols.  8vo.  36*. 
McDougall's  Memoirs  (Bishop  of  Labuan).    By  C.  J.  Bunyon.    8vo.  14*.' 
Mendelssohn's  Letters.    Translated  by  Lady  Wallace.    2  vols.  cr.  8vo.  5*.  eaob. 
Newman's  Apologia  pro  Vita  Suft.  Crown  8vo.  6*.   Cheap  Edition,  cr.  8vo.  3s.  6 d. 
Pasteur  (Louis)  His  Life  and  Labours.    Crown  8vo.  7i.  6d. 
Shakespeare,  Outline  of  the  Life  of.    By  J.  0.  Halliwell-Phillipps.    Illustrated. 

2  vols.  royal  8vo.  21*. 

Shakespeare's  True  Life.  By  James  Walter.  With  500  Illustrations.  Imp.Svo.  21*. 
Southey's  Correspondence  with  Caroline  Bowles.    8vo.  14*. 
Stephen's  Essays  in  Ecclesiastical  Biography.    Crown  8vo.  Ji.  6d. 
Vignoles'  (C.  B.)  Life.    By  his  Son.    8vo.  16*. 
Wellington's  Life,  by  Gleig.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  Gd. 

MENTAL  AND    POLITICAL   PHILOSOPHY,    FINANCE,    &C. 

Adams'  Public  Debts  ;  an  Essay  on  the  Science  of  Finance.    8vo.  12*.  64. 
Amos'   View  of  the  Science  of  Jurisprudence.    8vo.  18*. 

—  Primer  of  the  English  Constitution.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 
Bacon's  Essays,  with  Annotations  by  Whately.    8vo.  10*.  6d, 

—  Works,  edited  by  Spedding.    7  vols.  8vo.  73*.  Gd. 
Bagehot's  Economic  Studies,  edited  by  Hutton.    8vo.  10*.  M. 
Bain's  Logic,  Deductive  and  Inductive.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  6d. 

PART  I.  Deduction,  4*.        |        PART  n.  Induction,  C*.  6d- 

—  Mental  and  Moral  Science.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  6d, 

—  The  Senses  and  the  Intellect.    8vo.  15* 

—  The  Emotions  and  the  Will.    8vo.  16*. 

Blake's  Tables  for  the  Conversion  of  5  per  cent.  Interest  from  ,V  to  7  per  cent. 
8vo,  12*.  Gd. _ 

LONGMANS,  GKREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works. 


Case's  Physical  Realism.    8vo.  15». 

Crump's  Short  Enquiry  into  the  Formation  of  English  Political  Opinion,  Sy  o.  7*.6d 

—  Causes  of  the  Great  Fall  in  Prices.    8vo.  6s. 

Dowell's  A  History  of  Taxation  and  Taxes  In  England.    8vo.   Vols.  1  &  2,  21 J. 

Vols.  3  &  4,  21|. 
Green's  (Thomas  Hill)  Works.   (3  vols.)   Vols.  1  &  2,  Philosophical  Works.  Svo. 

16«.  each.    Vol.  3,  Miscellanies.    With  Memoir.    8vo.  21*. 
Home's  Essays,  edited  by  Green  &  Gross.    2  vols.  Svo.  28*. 

—  Treatise  of  Human  Nature,  edited  by  Green  &  Grose.    1  vols.  Svo.  28*. 
Ladd's  Elements  of  Physiological  Psychology.    Svo.  21*. 

Lang's  Custom  and  Myth  :  Studies  of  Early  Usage  and  Belief.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  6d. 

Leslie's  Essays  in  Political  Economy.    Svo.  10*.  6d. 

Lewes's  History  of  Philosophy.    2  vols.  Svo.  32*. 

Lubbock's  Origin  of  Civilisation.    Illustrated.    Svo.  18*. 

Macleod's  The  Elements  of  Economics.    2  vols.  crown  Svo.  7*.  6d.  each. 

—  The  Elements  of  Banking.    Crown  Svo.  5*. 

—  The  Theory  and  Practice  of  Banking.    Vol.  1,  Svo.  12*.  VoL  2, 14*, 

—  The  Theory  of  Credit.    (2  vols.  Svo.)    Vol.  1.  7s.  6d.    Vol.  2   Part  1, 

4*.  6d. 

Max  MUller's  The  Science  of  Thought.    Svo.  21*. 

Mill's  (James)  Analysis  of  the  Phenomena  of  the  Human  Mind.   2  vols.  avo.  28i. 
Mill  (John  Stuart)  on  Representative  Government.    Crown  Svo.  2*. 

—  —  on  Liberty.    Crown  8vo.  1*.  4d. 

—  —  Examination  of  Hamilton's  Philosophy.    Svo.  16», 

—  —  Logic.    Crown  Svo.  5*. 

—  —  Principles  of  Political  Economy.    9  vols.  Svo.  80*.    People's 

Edition,  1  vol.  crown  Svo.  6*. 

—  —  Utilitarianism.    Svo.  6*. 

—  —  Three  Essays  on  Religion,  &c.    Svo.  5*. 
MulhaU's  History  of  Prices  since  1850.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Rickaby's  General  Metaphysics.    Crown  Svo.  5*. 

Bandars'  Institutes  of  Justinian,  with  English  Notes.    Svo.  18*, 
Seebohm's  English  Village  Community.    Svo.  16*. 
Bully's  Outlines  of  Psychology.    Svo.  12*.  6d. 

—    Teacher's  Handbook  of  Psychology.    Crown  Svo.  6*.  6<t. 
Swinburne's  Picture  Logic.    Post  Svo.  5*. 
Thompson's  A  System  of  Psychology.    2  vols.  Svo.  36*. 

—  The  Problem  of  Evil.    Svo.  10*.  6d. 

—  The  Religious  Sentiments  of  the  Human  Mind.    Svo.  7*.  6d, 

—  Social  Progress  :  an  Essay.    Svo.  7t.  6d. 
Webb's  The  Veil  of  Isis.    Svo.  10*.  6d. 
Whately's  Elements  of  Logic.    Crown  Svo.  4*.  6d. 

—  —       —  Rhetoric.    Crown  Svo.  4*.  6<J. 

Zeller'a  History  of  Eclecticism  in  Greek  Philosophy.    Crown  Svo.  lo».  tki. 

—  Plato  and  the  Older  Academy.    Crown  Svo.  18*. 

—  Pre-Socra,  tic  Schools.    2  vols.  crown  Svo.  30*. 

—  Socrates  and  the  Socratic  Schools.    Crown  Svo.  10*.  64. 

—  Stoics,  Epicureans,  and  Sceptics.    Crown  Svo.  15*. 

—  Outlines  of  the  History  of  Greek  Philosophy.    Crown  Svo.  10*.  60. 


LONGMANS,  GKEEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works. 


CLASSICAL    LANGUAGES    AND    LITERATURE. 

JEschylus,  The  Eumenidee  of.      Text,  with  Metrical  English  Translation,  by 

J.  F.  Daviei.    8vo.  7«. 

Aristophanes'  The  Acharnians,  translated  by  R.  Y.  Tyrrell.    Crown  8vo.  2*.  64. 
Aristotle's  The  Ethics,  Text  and  Notes,  by  Sir  Alex.  Grant,  Bart.  2  voli.8vo.  32*. 

—  The  Nicomachean  Ethics,  translated  by  Williams,  crown  8vo.  7*.  64. 

—  The  Politics,  Books  I.  III.  IV.  (VII.)  with  Translation,  <ko.  by 

Bollaud  and  Lang.    Crown  8vo.  7s.  64. 

Becker's  CharicUt  and  Gallut,  by  Metcalfe.    Post  8vo.  7i.  64.  each. 
Cicero's  Correspondence,  Text  and  Notes,  by  R.  Y.  Tyrrell.  Vols.  1,  2,  &  3,  8vo. 

12*.  each. 

Plato's  Parmenides,  with  Notes,  &e.  by  J.  Maguire.    8vo.  7*.  64. 
Tlrgil's  Works,  Latin  Text,  with  Commentary,  by  Kennedy.   Crown  8vo.  10*.  64. 

—  2Eneid,  translated  into  English  Verse,  by  Conington.       Crown  8vo.  6*. 

—  —  —  —       —         —     byW.J.Thornhill.  Or.8vo.7i.6d. 

—  Poems,        —  —       —      Prose,  by  Conington.     Crown  STO.  6*. 
Witt's  Myths  of  Hellas,  translated  by  P.  M.  Younghusband.    Crown  8vo.  8*.  64. 

—  The  Trojan  War,  Fcp.  8vo.  2*. 

—  The  Wanderings  of  Ulyises,  —  drown  8vo.  3i.  64 


ENCYCLOPEDIAS     DICTIONARIES,    AND    BOOKS    OF 
REFERENCE. 

Acton's  Modern  Cookery  for  Private  Families.    Fcp.  8vo.  4*.  64, 

Ayre'a  Treasury  of  Bible  Knowledge.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

Blake's  Tables  for  the  Conversion  of  6  per  Cent.  Interest,  &c.    8vo.  12*.  84. 

Chisholm's  Handbook  of  Commercial  Geography.    29  Maps.    8vo.  16*. 

Gwllt'B  Bnoyclopeedia  of  Architecture.    8vo.  52*.  6d. 

Keith  Johnston's  Dictionary  of  Geography,  or  General  Gazetteer.    8vo.  42s. 

Longmans'  New  Atlas.    56  Maps.    Edited  by  G.  G.  Chisholm.    4to.  or  imperial 

8vo.  12*.  6d. 

M'Culloch'a  Dictionary  of  Commerce  and  Commercial  Navigation.    8vo.  63*. 
Maandcr's  Biographical  Treasury.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

—  Historical  Treasury.    Fcp.  8vo.  6«. 

—  Scientific  and  Literary  Treasury.    Fcp.  8vo.  6». 

—  Treasury  of  Bible  Knowledge,  edited  by  Ayre.    Fop.  8vo.  61. 

—  Treasury  of  Botany,  edited  by  Lindley  &  Moore.    Two  Parts,  12*. 

—  Treasury  of  G«ography.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

~        Treasury  of  Knowledge  and  Library  of  Referenoe.    Pop.  8vo.  6*. 

—  Treasury  of  Natural  History.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

Quoin's  Dictionary  of  Medicine.    Medium  8vo.  31*.  6d.,  or  in  2  vols.  34*. 
Reeve's  Cookery  and  Housekeeping.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
Rich's  Dictionary  of  Roman  and  Greek  Antiquities.    Crown  8yo.  7*.  64. 
Roget's  Thesaurus  of  English  Worda  and  Phrases.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  64. 
Willioh'g  Popular  Tables,  by  Marriott    Crown  8vo.  10*.  64. 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works. 


CHEMISTRY,  ENGINEERING,   &   GENERAL  SCIENCE. 

Abbott's  Elementary  Theory  of  the  Tides.    Grown  8vo.  2*. 
Allen's  (Grant)  Force  and  Energy :  a  Theory  of  Dynamics.    8vo.  7i.  fid. 
Arnott's  Elements  of  Physics  or  Natural  Philosophy.    Crown  8vo.  12*.  6d. 
Bourne's  Catechism  of  the  Steam  Engine.    Crown  8vo.  It.  6d. 

—  Handbook  of  the  Steam  Engine.    Fcp.  8vo.  9*. 

—  Recent  Improvements  in  the  Steam  Engine.    Fcp.  8vo.  6j, 
Clerk's  The  Gas  Engine.    With  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo.  7s.  6d. 
Olodd's  The  Story  of  Creation.    Illustrated.    Crown  8vo.  3.?.  6d. 
Crookes's  Select  Methods  in  Chemical  Analysis.    8vo.  24*. 
Oulley's  Handbook  of  Practical  Telegraphy.    8vo.  16*. 

Earl's  Elements  of  Laboratory  Work.    Crown  8vo.  is.  6d. 

Forbes'  Lectures  on  Electricity.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 

Galloway's  Principles  of  Chemistry  Practically  Taught.    Crown  8vo.  6*.  6d. 

Ganot's  Elementary  Treatise  on  Physics,  by  Atkinson.    Large  crown  8vo.  16$. 

—  Natural  Philosophy,  by  Atkinson.    Crown  8vo.  7*.  6<i. 
Gibson's  Text-Book  of  Elementary  Biology.    Crown  8vo.  6.1. 
Harrison's  The  Creation  and  Physical  Structure  of  the  Earth.    8vo.  Is.  6d. 
Haughton'a  Six  Lectures  on  Physical  Geography.    8vo.  15*. 

HeJmholtz  on  the  Sensations  of  Tone.    Royal  8vo.  28*. 

Helmholtz's  Lectures  on  Scientific  Subjects.    2  vols.  crown  8vo.  7*.  Sd.  each. 

Herschel'g  Outlines  of  Astronomy.    Square  crown  8vo.  12*. 

Hjelt's  General  Organic  Chemistry.    Crown  8vo.  [In  the  pren. 

Hudson  and  Gosse's  The  Rotifera  or  '  Wheel  Animalcules.'     With  34  Plates. 

6  parts.  4to.  10*.  Sd.  each.    Supplement,  12*.  6d.  Complete,  2  vols.  4to.  with 

Supplement,  £4.  4*. 
Hnllah's  Lectures  on  the  History  of  Modern  Music.    8vo.  8*.  Sd. 

—  Transition  Period  of  Musical  History.    8vo.  10*.  6d. 

Jago's  Inorganic  Chemistry,  Theoretical  and  Practical.    Fcp.  8vo.  2*.  6d. 

Jeans'  Handbook  for  the  Stars.    Royal  8vo.  5*. 

Kolbe's  Short  Text-Book  of  Inorganic  Chemistry.    Crown  8vo.  7*.  Sd. 

Lloyd's  Treatise  on  Magnetism.    8vo.  10*.  6d. 

Macaliater*s  Zioology  and  Morphology  of  Vertebrate  Animals.    8vo.  10*.  64, 

Macfarren's  Lectures  on  Harmony.    8vo.  12*. 

—         Addresses  and  Lectures.    Crown  8vo.  8*.  6d. 
Martin's  Navigation  and  Nautical  Astronomy.    Royal  8vo.  18*. 
Meyer's  Modern  Theories  of  Chemistry.    8vo.  18*. 
Miller's  Elements  of  Chemistry.  Theoretical  and  Practical.    3  vols.  8vo.    Part  I. 

Chemical  Physics,  16*.   Part  II.  Inorganic  Chemistry,  24*.  Part  III.  Organic 

Chemistry,  price  31*.  6d. 
Mitchell's  Manual  of  Practical  Assaying.    8vo.  31*.  8<i. 

—       Dissolution  and  Evolution  and  the  Science  of  Medicine.    8vo.  16*. 
Noble's  Hours  with  a  Three-inch  Telescope.    Crown  8vo.  4*.  6d. 
Northoott'B  Lathes  and  Turning.    8vo.  18*. 
Oliver's  Astronomy  for  Amateurs.    Crown  8vo.  7*.  6d. 
Richardson's  The  Commonhealth  ;  a  Series  of  Esaayi.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 
—         National  Health.    Crown  8vo.  4.s.  6rf. 


LONGMANS,  GEE  EN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  List*  of  Work*, 


Sohellen'a  Spectrum  Analysis.    8vo.  31s.  6d. 

Scott's  Weather  Charts  and  Storm  Warnings.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 

Bennett's  Treatise  on  the  Marine  Steam  Engine.    8vo.  21  j. 

Slingo  &  Brooker's  Electrical  Engineering  for  Electric  Light  Artisans.    Crown 

8vo.  103  6d. 
Smith's  Graphics,  or  the  Art  of  Calculation  by  Drawing  Lines.     Part  I.  with 

Atlas  of  Plates,  8vo.  15s. 

Stoney's  The  Theory  of  the  Stresses  on  Girders,  <fco.    Royal  8vo.  88*. 
Thorpe's  Dictionary  of  Applied  Chemistry.    3  vols.    Vol.  1,  42s. 
Tilden's  Practical  Chemistry.    Fcp.  Svo.  It.  6d. 
Tyndall'a  Faraday  as  a  Discoverer.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  6d. 

—  Floating  Matter  of  the  Air.    Crown  8vo.  7*.  6d, 
Fragments  of  Science.    2  vote,  post  8vo.  I6i. 

—  Heat  a  Mode  of  Motion.    Crown  8vo.  12*. 

—  Lectures  on  Light  delivered  in  America.    Crown  Svo.  Si, 

—  Lessons  on  Electricity.    Crown  8vo.  2s.  6<J. 

—  Notes  on  Electrical  Phenomena.    Crown  8vo.  It.  sewed,  1*,  &d.  cloth. 
mm       Notes  of  Lectures  on  Light.    Crown  8vo.  la.  sewed,  It.  8d.  cloth. 

—  Researches  on  Diamagnetism  and  Magne-Crystallic  Action.    Or.  8vo. 

13*. 

—  Sound,  with  Frontispiece  and  203  Woodcuts.    Crown  8vo.  10J.  6d. 
XJnwin's  The  Testing  of  Materiali  of  Construction.    Illustrated.    8vo.  21i. 
Watts'  Dictionary  of  Chemistry.    New  Edition  (4  vols.),    Vol».  1  and  2,  8vo. 

42*.  each. 
Webb's  Celestial  Objects  for  Common  Telescopes.    Crown  8vo.  9s. 


NATURAL    HISTORY,    BOTANY     &    GARDENING. 

Bennett  and  Murray's  Handbook  of  Cryptogamic  Botany.    8vo.  16*. 
Hartwig's  Aerial  World,  8vo.  10*.  6<J. 

—  Polar  World,  8vo.  10s.  6d. 

—  Sea  and  its  Living  Wonderi.    8vo.  10*.  6A 

—  Subterranean  World.  Svo.  10*.  6d. 

—  Tropical  World,  8vo.  10*.  6d. 
Lindley's  Treasury  of  Botany.    2  vols.  fcp.  8vo.  12*. 
London's  Encyclopaedia  of  Gardening.    8vo.  21*. 

—  Plants.    8vo.  42*. 
Rivera's  Orchard  House.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

—  Miniature  Fruit  Garden.    Fcp.  8vo.  4*. 

Stanley's  Familiar  History  of  British  Birds.    Crown  8vo.  3s.  6d. 
Wood's  Bible  Animals.    With  112  Vignettes.    8vo.  10*.  64. 

—  Homes  Without  Hands,  8vo.  10*.  64. 

—  Insects  Abroad,  8vo.  10*.  6d. 

—  Insects  at  Home.    With  700  Illustrations.    Svo.  10.  9d. 

—  Out  of  Doors.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  6<J. 

—  Fetland  Revisited.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  6A 

—  Strange  Dwellings.    Crown  8vo.  3s.  6d. 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works. 


THEOLOGICAL    AND    RELIGIOUS    WORKS. 

Arnold's  (Bev.  Dr.  Thomas)  Sermons.    6  vols.  crown  8vo.  5*.  each. 

Boultbee's  Commentary  on  the  39  Articles.    Crown  Svo.  8*. 

Browne's  (Bishop)  Exposition  of  the  39  Articles.    8vo.  16*. 

Bnlltnger's  Critical  Lexicon  and  Concordance  to  the  English  and  Greek  New 

Testament.    Royal  Svo.  15*. 

Oolenso  on  the  Pentateuch  and  Book  of  Joshua.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Condor's  Handbook  of  the  Bible.    Poet  Svo.  7*.  64. 
Conybeare  &  Howson's  Life  and  Letters  of  St.  Paul : — 

Library  Edition,  with  Maps,  Plates,  and  Woodcuts.    2  vols.  square  crown 
Svo.  21*. 

Student's  Edition,  revised  and  condensed,  with  46  Illustrations  and  Maps. 

1  vol.  crown  Svo.  61. 
Bdersheira's  Life  and  Times  of  Jesus  the  Messiah.     2  vols.  Svo.  24*. 

—  Jesus  the  Messiah.    An  Abridged  Edition  of  the  '  Life  and  Times  of 

Jesus  the  Messiah.'     Crown  Svo.  7f .  Gd. 

—  Prophecy  and  History  in  relation  to  the  Messiah.    Svo.  12*. 
Ellioott's  (Bishop)  Commentary  on  St.  Paul's  Epistles.   Svo.   Corinthians  1. 16*. 

Galatiaus,  B».  Gd.  Ephesians,  St.  6d.  Pastoral  Epistles, 
10*.  Gd.  Philippians,  Oolossians  and  Philemon,  10*.  64. 
Thessalouians,  7*.  6<f. 

—  —       Lectures  on  the  Life  of  our  Lord.    Svo.  12*. 

Bwald'a  Antiquities  of  Israel,  translated  by  Solly.    Svo.  12*.  84. 

—  History  of  Israel,  translated  by  Carpenter  &  Smith.    8  vote.  Svo.   Volf . 

1  &  2,  24*.    Vols.  3  &  4,  21*.   Vol.  5,  18*.    Vol.  6,  16*.    Vol.  7,  81*. 

Vol.  8, 18*. 

Hobart's  Medical  Language  of  St.  Luke.    Svo.  16*. 
Hopkins's  Christ  the  Consoler.    Pep.  Svo.  2*.  Bd. 
Hutchinson's  The  Record  of  a  Human  Soul.    Fcp.  Svo.  3*.  Gd, 
Jameson's  Sacred  and  Legendary  Art.    6  vols.  square  Svo. 
Legends  of  the  Madonna.    1  vol.  10*.  net. 

—  —    —    Monastic  Orders.    1  vol.  10/.  net. 

—  —    —    Saints  and  Martyrs.    3  vols.  20*.  net. 

—  —    —    Saviour.    Completed  by  Lady  Easilake.    3  vols.  20*.  net. 
Jukes's  New  Man  and  the  Eternal  Life.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 

—  Second  Death  and  the  Restitution  of  all  Things.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  64. 

—  Types  of  Genesis.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  6<i. 

—  The  Mystery  of  the  Kingdom.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  64. 

—  The  Names  of  God  in  Holy  Scripture.    Crown  Svo.  4*.  64. 
Lyra  Germanica  :  Hymns  translated  by  Miss  Winkworth.    Pep.  Svo.  5*. 
Macdwiald's  (G.)  Unspoken  Sermons.  First  and  Second  Seriei.  Crown  Svo.  3*.  64. 

each.    Third  Series.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  64. 

—  The  Miracles  of  cur  Lord.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  64. 

Manning's  Temporal  Mission  of  the  Holy  Ghost.    Crown  Svo.  8*.  6(1. 
Martineau's  Endeavours  after  the  Christian  Life.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  64. 

—  Hymns  of  Praise  and  Prayer.    Crown  Svo.  4*.  64.    32mo.  1*.  64. 

—  The  Seat  of  Authority  in  Religion.    Svo.  14*. 

—  Sermons,  Hours  of  Thought  on  Sacred  Things.    2  vols.  7*.  84.  each. 
Max  MUller'a  Origin  and  Growth  of  Religion.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  64. 

—  —      Science  of  Religion.    Crown  Svo.  7*.  64. 

—  —      Gifford  Lectures  on  Natural  Religion.    Crown  Svo.  10*.  64. 
Mozley's  The  Word.    Crown  Svo.  7s.  6d. 


LONGMANS,  GKEEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York, 


10  General  Lists  of  Works. 

Newman's  Apologia  pro  Vita  SuS.  Crown  8vo.  6*.    Cheap  Edition,  cr.  8vo.  3s.  6<f. 

—  The  Arians  of  the  Fourth  Century.    Crown  8vo.  63.    Cheap  Edition, 

cro'mi  8vo.  3.?.  6<i. 

—  The  Idea  of  a  University  Defined  and  Illustrated.    Crown  8vo.  7*. 

—  Historical  Sketches.    3  vol».  crown  8vo.  6*.  each. 

—  Discussions  and  Arguments  on  Various  Subjects.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 

—  An  Essay  on  the  Development  of  Christian  Doctrine.    Crown  8vo.  Bt, 

Cheap  Edition,  crown  8vo.  3.s.  6d. 

—  Certain   Difficulties  Pelt  by  Anglicans  in  Catholic  Teaching  Con- 

sidered.    Vol.  1 ,  crown  8vo.  Is.  6d.    Vol.  2,  crown  8vo.  6*.  Bd. 

—  The  Via  Media  of  the  Anglican  Church,  Illustrated  in  Lecturts,  &o, 

2  vols.  crown  8vo.  6*.  each. 

—  Essays,  Critical  and  Historical  2  vols.  crown  8vo.  12*.  Cheap  Edition, 

crown  8vo.  7s. 

—  Essays  on  Biblical  and  on  Ecclesiastical  Miracles.    Crown  8vo.  Sj, 

—  Present  Position  of  Catholics  in  England.    Crown  8vo.  7s.6d. 

—  An  Kssay  in  Aid  of  a  Grammar  of  Assent.    7s.  Bd. 

—  Select  Treatises  of  St.  Athanasius  in  Controversy  with  the  Ariam. 

Translated.  2  vols.  crown  8vo.  15*. 
Perring's  The  '  Work  and  Days  '  of  Moses.  3s.  6d. 
Reply  to  Dr.  Lightfoot's  Essays.  By  the  Author  of  '  Supernatural  Religion.' 

8vo.  6*. 

Roberts'  Greek  the  Language  of  Christ  and  His  Apostles.    8vo.  18*. 
Supernatural  Religion.    Complete  Edition.    3  vols.  8vo.  36*. 
Twells'  Colloquies  on  Preaching.    Crown  8vo.  5* 
Younghusband's  The  Story  of  Our  Lord  told  in  Simple  Language  for  Children. 

Illustrated.    Crown  8vo,  2*.  Bd.  cloth. 
—  The  Story  of  Genesis.    Crown  8vo.  2*.  6d.  cloth. 

TRAVELS,    ADVENTURES,    &.C. 

Baker's  Bight  Years  in  Ceylon.    Crown  8vo.  3.s.  6d. 

—      Rifle  and  Hound  in  Ceylon.    Crown  8vo.  3s.  Bd. 

Brassey's  Sunshine  and  Storm  in  the  East.    Library  Edition,  8vo.  21*.    Cabinet 
Edition,  crown  8vo.  7*.  6<i.    Popular  Edition,  4to.  Bd. 

—  Voyage  in  the  '  Sunbeam.'    Library  Edition,  8vo.  21*.   Cabinet  Edition, 

cr.  8vo.  7*.  Bd.    School  Edit.  fcp.  8vo.  2*.    Popular  Edit.  4to.  Gd. 

—  In  the  Trades,  the  Tropics,  ana  the  '  Roaring  Forties."   Cabinet  Edition, 

crown  8vo.  17*.  Bd.    Popular  Edition,  4to.  Bd. 

—  Last  Journals,  1886-7.    Illustrated.    8vo.  21s. 

Bryden's  Kloof  and  Karroo.    Sport,  Legend,  &c.,  in  Cape  Colony.    8vo.  10*.  6d. 

Clutterbuck's  The  Skipper  in  Arctic  Seas.    Illustrated.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  Bd. 

Coolidge's  Swiss  Travel  and  Swiss  Guide-Books.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  Bd. 

Crawford's  Reminiscences  of  Foreign  Travel.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

Deland's  Florida  Days.    Illustrated.    4to.  21*. 

Fronde's  Ooeana ;  or,  England  and  her  Colonies.    Cr.  8vo.  2*.  boards  ;  2*.  Bd.  cloth. 

—  The  English  in  the  West  Indies.    Crown  8vo.  2*.  boards  ;  2*.  Bd.  cloth. 
Hewitt's  Visits  to  Remarkable  Place*.    Crown  8vo.  3.?.  6d. 

James's  The  Long  White  Mountain  ;  or,  a  Journey  in  Manchuria.    8vo.  Z4*. 

Lees  and  Clutterbuck's  B.C.  1887  :  a  Ramble  in  British  Columbia.   Cr.8vo.  6*. 

Norton's  Guide  Book  to  Florida. 

Pennell's  Our  Sentimental  Journey  through  France  and  Italy.    Cr.  8vo.  6*. 

Riley's  Athos ;  or,  The  Mountain  of  the  Monks.    8vo.  21*. 

Smith's  The  White  Umbrella  in  Mexico.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*.  Bd. 

Three  in  Norway.    By  Two  of  Them.    Crown  8vo.  2*.  boardi ;  Si.  Bd.  cloth. 

Willoughby's  East  Africa  and  its  Big  Game.    8vo.  21*. 

Wolffs  Rambles  in  the  Black  Forest.    Crown  8vo  7*.  Bd. 


LONGMANS,  GKEEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works.  11 


WORKS    BY    RICHARD    A     PROCTOR. 

Old  and  New  Astronomy.    12  Parts,  2*.  6d.  each.    Supplementary  Section,  1*. 

Complete  In  1  vol.  4to.  3Si.  [In  covrse  of  publication. 

The  Orbs  Around  Us.    With  Chart  and  Diagram!.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 
Other  Worlds  than  Ours.    With  14  Illustrations .    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
The  Moon.    With  Plates,  Charts,  Woodcuts,  and  Photographs.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
Universe  of  Stars.    With  22  Charts  and  22  Diagrams.   8vo.  10*.  Sd, 
Light  Science  for  Leisure  Hours.    3  vols.  crown  8vo.  5*.  each. 
Chance  and  Luck.    Crown  8vo.  2j.  boards ;  2s.  6d.  cloth. 
Larger  Star  Atlas  for  the  Library,  in  12  Circular  Maps.    Folio,  15*. 
New  Star  Atlas,  in  12  Circular  Maps  (with  2  Index  Plates).    Crown  8vo.  6». 
The  Student's  Atlas.    12  Circular  Maps.    8vo.  5*. 

Transits  of  Venus.    With  20  Lithographic  Plates ;  and  38  Illustrations.  8vo.  St.  6d. 
Studies  of  Venus-Transits.    With  7  Diagrams  and  10  Plates.    8vo.  5*. 
Elementary  Physical  Geography.    With  33  Maps  and  Woodcuti.   Fcp.  8vo.  1*.  6d. 
Lessons  in  Elementary  Astronomy.    With  47  Woodcuts.    Fcp.  8vo.  1*.  6d. 
First  Steps  in  Geometry.    Fcp.  8vo.  3*.  6d. 
Easy  Lessons  in  the  Differential  Calculus.    Fcp.  8vo.  2i.  6d. 
How  to  Play  Whist,  with  the  Laws  and  Etiquette  of  Whist.    Crown  8vo.  3$.  6d. 
Home  Whist :  an  Easy  Guide  to  Correct  Play.    16mo.  1*. 
The  Stars  in  their  Seasons.    Imperial  8vo.  6*. 
Strength.    With  9  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo.  2s, 
Strength  and  Happiness.    With  9  Illustrations.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
The  Seasons  Pictured  in  Forty-eight  Sun- Views  of  the  Earth,  and  ^Twenty-four 

Zodiacal  Maps  and  other  Drawings.    Demy  4to.  6*. 

The  Star  Primer ;  showing  the   Btarry  Sky,  week  by  week.    Crown  4to.  2*.  6<J. 
Nature  Studies.  By  Grant  Allen,  A.Wilson,  E.  Clodd,  and  E.  A.  Proctor.  Cr .  8vo.  5i . 
Leisure  Headings.    By  E.  Clodd,  A.  Wilson,  and  B.  A.  Proctor,  &c.    Cr.  8vo.  8*. 
Rough  Ways  Made  Smooth.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
Our  Place  Among  Infinities.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 
The  Expanse  of  Heaven  :  Essays  on  the  Wonders  of  the  Firmament.    Crown 

8vo.  5s. 

Pleasant  Ways  in  Science.    Crown  8vo.  S*. 
Myths  and  Marvels  of  Astronomy.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 
The  Great  Pyramid  :  Observatory,  Tomb,  and  Temple.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

AGRICULTURE,    HORSES,    DOGS     AND    CATTLE. 

Fitzwygram's  Horses  and  Stables.    8vo.  5*. 

Lloyd's  The  Science  of  Agriculture.    8vo.  IS*. 

London's  Encyclopaedia  of  Agriculture.    21*. 

Prethero's  Pioneers  and  Progress  of  English' Farming.    Orown  8vo.  5*. 

Steel's  Diseases  of  the  Ox,  a  Manual  of  Bovine  Pathology.    8vo.  If*. 

—  —        Dog.    8vo.  10*.  6d. 

Stonehenge's  Dog  in  Health  and  Disease.    Square  crown  8vo.  7*.  64. 
Villa  on  Artificial  Manures,  by  Crookes.    8vo.  21*. 
Youatt'B  Work  on  the  Dog.    8vo.  6*. 
—        —    —   —  Horse.    8vo.  7*.  6d. 


LONGMANS,  GKREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


12 


General  Lists  of  Works, 


WORKS    OF    FICTION. 


By  H.  RIDER  HAGGARD. 


She.  3*.  6d. 
Allan  Quater- 
main.  3s.  6d. 
Cleopatra.  6*. 
Beatrice.  6s. 


Maiwa's  Revenge. 

2s.  Ms. ;  2*.  6d. 

cloth. 
Colonel  Quaritch. 

3s.  6d. 


By  the  EARL  OF  BEACONSFIKLD. 


Alroy,  Ixion,  &c. 
Endymion. 
The  Young  Duke. 
Contarinl  Fleming. 
Henrietta  Temple. 


Vivian  Grey. 
Venetia. 
Coningsby. 
Lothair. 
Tancred. 
Sybil. 

Price  It.  each,  bds. ;  Is.  6d.  each,  cloth. 
The  HUGHENDEN  EDITION.     With 

2   Portraits   and    11    Vignettes. 

11  vols.    Crown  8vo.  42j. 

By  Q-.  J.  WHYTE-MKLVLLLE. 

The  Gladiators.       Kate  Coventry. 

The  Interpreter.      Digby  Grand. 

Holmby  House.       General  Bounce. 

Good  for  Nothing.  Queen's  Maries. 
Price  Is. each,  bds.;  Is.  6d.each,  cloth. 

By  ELIZABETH  M.  SEWBLL. 

Amy  Herbert.         Cleve  Hall. 

Gertrude.  Ivors. 

Ursula.  Earl's  Daughter. 

The  Experience  of  Life. 

A  Glimpse  of  the  World. 

Katharine  Ashton. 

Margaret  Percival. 

Laneton  Parsonage. 
ls.6d.  each,  cloth;  '2i.6d.each.  gilt  edges. 

By  Mrs.  MOLES  WORTH. 
Marrying  and  Giving  in  Marriage. 
2«.  6d. 

By  MAT  KENDALL. 
Such  is  Life.    6s. 


By  Mrs.  OLEPHAXT. 

In  Trust.  |        Madam. 

Price  Is.  each,  bds. ;  Is.  6d.  each,  cloth. 

Lady  Car.    2s.  Qd. 

By  G.  H.  JESSOP. 
Judge  Lynch.    6s. 
Gerald  Ffrench's  Friends.    64. 

By  A.  C.  DOTLK. 
Micah  Clarke.  3s.  6d. 
The  Captain  of  the  Polestar,  &c.  Cs. 

By  G.  G.  A.  MURRAY. 
Gobi  or  Shamo.    6.?. 


By  C.  PHILLIPPS-WOLLEY. 
Snap.    C.?. 


By  STANLEY  J.  WKYMAN. 
The  House  of  the  Wolf.    6s. 


By  JAMES  PAYN. 
The  Luck  of  the  Darrells. 
Thicker  than  Water. 
Is.  each. Boards ;  Is.  Gd.  each,  cloth. 

By  ANTHONY  TKOLLOPB. 
The  Warden. 
Barchester  Towers. 
!'•  each,  boards  ;  It.  Gd.  each,  cloth. 

By  BRET  HAKTE. 
In  the  Carqninez  Woods. 

Price  Is.  boards  ;  li.  6d.  cloth, 
On  the  Frontier.    Is. 
By  Shore  and  Sedge.    1*. 

Jy  EGBERT  L.  STEVENSON. 
The  Dynamiter.    Ij.  gwd.    lj.  6d.  cl. 
Strange  Case  of  Dr.  Jekyll  and  Mr. 
Hyde.     Is.  sewed ;  1*.  6d.  cloth. 

By  R.  L.  STEVKNSON  and  L.  OSBOURNE. 
The  Wrong  Box.    bs. 

By  EDNA  LYALL. 
Autobiography  of  a  Slander.    1*. 

By  F.  AXSTEY. 

The  Black  Poodle,  and  other  Stories. 
Price  2s.  boards  ;  2s.  6d.  cloth. 

By  the  AUTHOB  OF  TII  K  '  ATELIER  DD 

LYS.' 

The  Atelier  du  Lys.  2*.  6d. 
Mademoiselle  Mori.  2i.  6d. 
In  the  Olden  Time.  2s.  6d. 
Hester's  Venture.  2s.  6<t 


By  Mrs.  DELANO. 

John  Ward,  Preacher.    2s.  boards  ; 
2s.  6d.  cloth. 

By  CHRISTIE  MURRAY  &  HY.  HERMAN. 
Wild  Dame.    2s.  bds,    2s.  6d.  cloth. 


By  CHRISTIE  MUIIRAY  &  HY.  MURRAY. 
A  Dangerous  Catspaw.     '2s.  6d. 

By  J.  A.  FRODDK. 
The  Two  Chiefs  of  Dunboy.  fti. 

By  Mrs.  HUGH  BKI.L. 
Will  o'  the  Wisp.    3.».  Gd. 


By  WILLIAM  O'BRMN,  M.P. 
When  we  were  Bovs.     G.t. 


By  the  AUTHOR  OK  '  THOTH.' 
Toxar.    6.«. 


By  JAMES  BAKE):. 

By  the  Western  Sea.     6s. 

By  W.  E.  NOKKIS. 
Mrs.  Fenton  :  a  Sketch.    6*. 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works.  13 

POETRY    AND   THE    DRAMA. 

Armstrong's  (Ed.  J.)  Poetical  Works.    Fcp.  8vo.  61. 
(G.  F.)  Poetical  Works  :— 


Poems,  Lyrical  and  Dramatic.  Fcp. 

8vo.  6t. 

ITgone  :  a  Tragedy.    Pop.  8vo.  6*. 
A.  Garland  from  Greece.  Fcp.  8vo.9i. 
King  Saul.    Fcp.  8vo.  5*. 
King  David.  Fcp.  8vo.  6t. 


Stories  of  Wicklow.    Fcp.  8vo.  9i. 
Mephistopheles  in  Broadcloth:   a 

Satire.    Fcp.  8vo.  4*. 
Victoria  Regina  et  Imperatrts  :  a 

Jubilee  Song  from  Ireland,  1887. 

4to.  2t.  6d. 


King  Solomon.    Fcp.  8vo.  61. 
Ballads  of  Books.    Edited  by  Andrew  Lang.    Fcp.  8ro.  6*. 
Bowcn's  Harrow  Songs  and  other  Verses.    Fcp.  8vo.  2*.  M. 
Bowdler's  Family  Shakespeare.    Medium  8vo.  14*.    6  vols.  fcp.  8vo.  111. 
Deland's  The  Old  Garden,  and  other  Verses.    Fcp.  8vo.  5*. 
Goethe's  Faust,  translated  by  Birds     Crown  8vo.    Part     6*. ;  Part  II.  6*. 

—  —      translated  by  Webb.    8vo.  12*.  M. 

—  —      edited  by  Selss.    Crown  8vo.  5t. 

Haggard's  (Ella)  Life  and  its  Author.    With  Memoir,  &c.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  Gd. 
Higginson's  The  Afternoon  Landscape.    Fcp.  8vo.  5*. 
Ingelow's  Poems.    2  Vols.  fcp.  8vo.  12*. ;  Vol.^3,  fcp.  8vo.  5t. 

—  Lyrical  and  other  Poems.    Fcp.  8vo.  2*.  6<t  cloth,  plain  ;  3i.  cloth, 

gilt  edges. 

Kendall's  (May)  Dreams  to  SelL    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 
Lang's  Grass  of  Parnassus.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

Macaulay's  Lays  of  Ancient  Home.    Illustrated  by  Bcharf.    4to.  10*.  6<f.    Bijou 
Edition,  fcp.  8vo.  2s.  6d.  Popular  Edit.,  fcp.  4to.  6<i.  swd.,  It.  cloth. 

—  Lays  of  Ancient  Rome.,  with  Ivry  and  the  Armada.    Illustrated  by 

Weguelin.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  6d.  gilt  edges. 
Neebit's  Lays  and  Legends.    Crown  8vo.  6*. 

—  Leaves  of  Life.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

Newman's  The  Dream  of  Geroutius.    16mo.  6<f.  sewed  :  1*.  cloth. 

—  Verses  on  Various  Occasions.  Fcp.  8vo.  6s.  Cheap  Edit.  cr.  8vo.  3*.  C<7. 
Reader's  Voices  from  Flowerland  :  a  Birthday  Book.    2*.  Gd.  cloth,  81.  6d.  roan. 

—  Echoes  of  Thought :  a  Medley  of  Verse.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

Smith's  (Gregory)  Fra  Angelico,  and  other  short  Poems.    Crown  8vo.  4*.  6<£. 

Southey's  Poetical  Works.    Medium  8vo.  14*. 

Stevenson's  A  Child's  Garden  of  Verses.    Fcp.  8vo.  5*. 

Sumner's  The  Besom  Maker,  and  other  Country  Folk  Songs.    4to.  2*.  6d. 

Tomson's  The  Bird  Bride.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 

Virgil's  JSneid,  translated  by  Conington.    Crown  8ve.  6*. 

—  Poems,  translated  into  English  Prose.    Crown  8vo.  64. 

SPORTS    AND    PASTIMES. 

American  Whist,    Illustrated.    By  G.  W.  P.    Fcp.  8vo.  Ss.  6d. 
Campbell-Walker's  Correct  Card,  or  How  to  Play  at  Whist.    Fcp.  8vo.  2».  6<L 
Ford's  Theory  and  Practice  of  Archery,  revised  by  W.  Butt.    8vo.  Hi. 
Francis's  Treatise  on  Fishing  in  all  its  Branches.    Post  8vo.  1  St. 
Longman's  Chess  Openings.    Fcp.  8vo.  2*.  6d. 

Pole's  Theory  of  the  Modern  Scientific  Game  of  Whist.    Fcp.  8vo.  J«.  8d. 
Proctor's  How  to  Play  Whist.    Crown  8vo.  3*.  6d. 

—  Home  Whist.    18mo.  1*.  sewed. 
Ronalds's  Fly-Fisher's  Entomology.    8vo.  lit. 
Wilcocks's  Sea-Fisherman.    Post  8vo.  61. 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


14 


General  Lists  of  Works. 


MISCELLANEOUS    WORKS- 

A.  K.  H.  B.,  The  Essays  and  Contributions  ot  Crown  8vo,  3s.  6d. 
Autnmn  Holidays  of  a  Country  Parson  |  Leisure  Hours  in  Town. 
Changed  Aspects  of  Unchanged 

Truths. 
Common-Place  Philosopher    in    Town 

and  Country. 
Critical  Essays  of  a  Country  Parson. 


Counsel  and  Comfort  spoken    from  a 

City  Pulpit. 

East  Coast  Day*  and  Memories. 
Graver  Thoughts  of  a  Country  Parson. 

Three  Seriec. 
Landscapes,  Churches,  and  Moralities. 


Lessons  ot  Middle  Age. 

Our  Homely  Comedy  ;  and  Tragedy. 

Our  Little  Life.     Essays  Consolatory 

and  Domestic.  Two  Series. 
Present-day  Thoughts. 


Recreations    of   a   Country   Parson. 

Three  Series. 
Seaside  Musings  on  Sundays  andWeek- 

Days. 
Sunday  Afternoons    in    the   Pariah 

Church  of  a  University  City. 


To  Meet  the  Day  '  through  the  Christian  Year.    4s.  6d. 
Archer's  Masks  or  Faces  ?   A  Study  in  the  Psychology  of  Acting.  Or.  8vo.6*.  6d. 
Armstrong's  (Ed.  J.)  Essays  and  Sketches.    Fcp.  8vo.  6*. 
Arnold's  (Dr.  Thomas)  Miscellaneous  Works.    8vo  It.  64. 
Bagehot's  Literary  Studies,  edited  by  Hutton.    2  vols.  8vo.  28*. 
Baker's  War  with  Crime.    Reprinted  Papers.    8vo.  12*.  6d. 
Blue  Fairy  Book  (The).    Edited  by  Andrew  Lang.     Illustrated.  Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Book  (The)  of  Wedding  Days.    Illustrated  by  Walter  Crane.    4to.  21*. 
Pan-air's  Language  and  Languages.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Henderson's  The  Story  of  Music.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Huth's  The  Marriage  of  Near  Kin.    Royal  Svo.  21*. 
Jefferies'  Field  and  Hedgerow  :  Last  Essays.    Crown  Svo.  3*.  6d. 
Lang's  Books  and  Bookmen.    Crown  Svo.  6*.  6d, 

Letters  on  Literature.    Fcp.  Svo.  6*.  6d. 

—     Old  Friends  :  Essays  in  Epistolary  Parody.    Crown  Svo.  6*.  6rf. 
Lavigerie  (Cardinal)  and  the  African  Slave-Trade.    Svo.  14*. 
Matthews'  (Brander)  Pen  and  Ink.    Reprinted  Papers.    Crown  Svo.  8*. 
Max  MUller's  Lectures  on  the  Science  of  Language.    2  vols.  crown  Svo.  16*. 

_        _       Lectures  on  India.    Svo.  12*.  6d. 

—        —       Biographies  of  Words  and  the  Home  of  the  Aryas.    Crown  8vo.7*.64. 
Red  Fairy  Book  (The).    Edited  by  Andrew  Lang.    Illustrated.    Crown  Svo.  6*. 
Rendle  and  Norman's  Inni  of  Old  Southwark.    Illustrated.    Royal  Svo.  28*. 
Wendt'B  Papers  on  Maritime  Legislation.    Royal  Svo.  £1. 11*.  6d. 

WORKS    BY    MR.    SAMUEL    BUTLER. 


Op.  1.  Erewhon.    5*. 
Op.  2.  The  Fair  Haven.    7*.  6<J. 
Op.  3.  Life  and  Habit.    7*.  M. 
Op.  4.  Evolution,   Old    and   New. 

10*.  6rf. 
Op.  5.  Unconscious  Memory.   7*.  6d. 


Op.  6.  Alps  and  Sanctuaries  of  Pied- 
mont and  the  Canton  Ticino. 
10*.  8d. 

Op.  7.  Selections  from  Ops.  1-6. 7*.  6d. 

Op.  8.  Luck,  or  Cunning.    7*.  6(i. 

Op.  9.  Ex  Voto.    10*.  6d. 

Holbein's '  La  Danse."    3*. 


WORKS    BY    MRS.    DE    SALIS. 


Cakes  and  Confections.    1*.  M. 
Entrees  a  la  Mode     Fop.  Svo.  1*.  64. 
Game  and  Poultry  a  Is  Mode.    1*.  64. 
Oysters  a  la  Mode.    Fcp.  Svo.  1*.  64. 
Puddings  and  Pastry  ft  la  Mode.  1*.  6d, 
Savourie*  a 1*  If  ode.    Fcp.  Svo.  1  *. 


Soups  and  Dressed  Fish  a  la  Mode. 
Fop.  Svo.  1*.  6d. 

Sweets  &  Supper  Dishes  a  la  Mode,  li.td. 

Vegetables  &  la  Mode.    Fcp.  Svo.  1*.  64. 

Wrinkles  and  Notions  for  Every  House- 
hold. Crown  Svo.  2*.  64 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


General  Lists  of  Works.  15 


MEDICAL   AND    SURGICAL    WORKS. 

Ashby's  Notes  on  Physiology  for  the  Use  of  Students.  134  Illustrations.  18mo.  5*. 
Ashby  and  Wright's  The  Diseases  of  Children,  Medical  and  Surgical.  8vo.  21*. 
Barker's  Short  Manual  of  Surgical  Operations.  With  61  Woodcuts.  Or.  8vo.  12*.  6d. 
Bennett's  Clinical  Lectures  on  Varicose  Veins.  8vo.  6*. 

Bentley's  Text-book  of  Organic  ilateria  Medica.    62  Illustrations.  Cr.  8vo.  7s.  6d. 
Coats's  Manual  of  Pathology.    With  339  Illustrations.    Svo.  31*.  6d. 
Oooke's  Tablets  of  Anatomy.    Post  4to.  Is.  Gd. 

Dickinson's  Kenal  and  Urinary  Affections.    Complete  in  Three  Parts,  8vo.  with 
12  Plates  and  122  Woodcuts.    £3.  4*.  Bd.  cloth. 

—  The  Tongue  as  an  Indication  of  Disease.    Svo.  7s.  6d. 
Brichsen's  science  and  Art  of  Surgery.    1,025  Engravings.    2  vols.  8vo.  48*. 

—  Concussion  of  the  Spine,  &c.    Crown  8vo.  10*.  6d. 

Gairdner  and  Coats's  Lectures  on  Tabes  Mesenterfca.  28  Illustrations.  8vo.12i.6d. 
Garrod's  (Sir  Alfred)  Treatise  on  Gout  and  Rheumatic  Gout.  8vo.  21*. 

—         Materia  Medica  and  Therapeutics.    Crown  8vo.  12*.  6d. 
Garrod's  (A.  G.)  Use  of  the  Laryngoscope.    With  Illustrations.    8vo.  3*.  6d. 
Gray's  Anatomy.    With  569  Illustrations.    Royal  8vo.  36*. 
Hassall's  San  Remo  Climatically  and  Medically  Considered.    Crown  8vo.  5*. 

—  The  Inhalation  Treatment  of  Disease.    Crown  8vo.  12*.  6d. 
Holmes's  System  of  Surgery.     3  vols.  royal  8vo.  £4.  4*. 

Ladd's  Elements  of  Physiological  Psychology.  With  113  Illustrations.  Svo.  21*. 
Little's  In-Knee  Distortion  (Genu  Valgum).  With  40  Illustrations.  8vo.  7*.  6d. 
Liveing's  Handbook  on  Disease*  of  the  Skin.  Fcp.  8vo.  5*. 

—  Notes  on  the  Treatment  of  Skin  Diseases.     18mo.  3f. 

—  Elephantiasis  Graecorum,  or  True  Leprosy.    Crown  8vo.  4*.  6d. 
Longmore's  The  Illustrated  Optical  Manual.    With  74  Illustrations.    8vo.  14*. 

—  Gunshot  Injuries.    With  58  Illustrations.    8vo.  31*.  6d. 
Mitchell's  Dissolution  and  Evolution  and  the  Science  of  Medicine.    Svo.  16*. 
Munk's  Euthanasia  ;  or,  Medical  Treatment  in  Aid  of  an  Easy  Death.  Cr.  8vo.  4*.  6d. 
Murchison's  Continued  Fevers  of  Great  Britain.    Svo.  25i. 

—  Diseases  of  the  Liver,  Jaundice,  and  Abdominal  Dropsy.    8vo.  24*. 
Owen's  Manual  of  Anatomy  for  Senior  Students.    Crown  Svo.  12s.  6d. 
Paget's  Lectures  on  Surgical  Pathology.    With  131  Woodcuts.    Svo.  21*. 

—      Clinical  Lectures  and  Essays.    Svo.  15*. 

Quain's  (Jones)  Elements  of  Anatomy.  1,000  Illustrations.  2  vols.  Svo.  18*.  each  . 
Quain's  (Dr.  Richard)  Dictionary  of  Medicine.  With  138  Illustrations.  1  vol.  Svo. 

31*.  6d.  cloth.    To  be  had  also  in  2  vols.  34.?.  cloth. 

Baiter's  Dental  Pathology  and  Surgery.    With  133  Illustrations.    Svo.  18*. 
Schafer's  The  Essentials  of  Histology.    With  283  Illustrations.    Svo.  6*. 
Smith's  (H.  F.)  The  Handbook  for  Midwives.    With  41  Woodcuts.    Cr.  Svo.  5*. 
Smith's  (T.)  Manual  of  Operative  Surgery  on  the  Dead  Body.    46  Illus.   Svo.  12*. 
West's  Lectures  on  the  Diseases  of  Infancy  and  Childhood.    Svo.  18*. 

—     The  Mother's  Manual  of  Children's  Diseases.    Fcp.  Svo.  2*.  6d. 
Wilks  and  Moxon's  Lectures  on  Pathological  Anatomy.    Svo.  18*. 
Williams's  Pulmonary  Consumption,    With  4  Plates  and  10  Woodcuts.   Svo.  16*. 
Wright's  Hip  Disease  in  Childhood.    With  48  Woodcuts.    Svo.  10*.  6d. 


LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 


16  General  Lists  of  Works. 


THE  BADMINTON  LIBRARY. 

Edited  by  the  DUKE  OP  BEAUFORT,  K.G.  and  A.  E.  T.  WATSON. 

Crown  8vo.    Price  10$.  6<f.  each  Volume. 

Hunting.  By  the  Duke  of  Beaufort,  K.G.  and  Mowbray  Morris.  With  Con- 
tributions by  the  Earl  of  Suffolk  and  Berkshire,  Rev.  E.  W.  L.  Davies, 
Digby  Collins,  and  Alfred  E.  T.  Watson.  With  Frontispiece  and  63  Illus- 
trations by  J.  Sturgess,  J.  Charlton.and  Agnes  M.Biddulph. 

Fishing.  By  H.  Cholrnondeley-Pennell.  With  Contributions  by  the  Marquis 
of  Exeter,  Henry  R.  Francis,  M.A.  Major  John  P.  Traherne,  G.  Christopher 
Davies,  R.  B.  Marston,  &c. 

Vol.  I.  Salmon,  Trout,  and  Grayling.    With  168  Illustrations. 
Vol.  II.  Pike  and  other  Coarse  Fish.    With  132  Illustrations. 

i  Racing  and  Steeple-Chasing.  Racing :  By  the  Earl  of  Suffolk  and  W.  G. 
Craven.  With  a  Contribution  by  the  Hon.  F.  Lawley.  Steeple-chasing  :  By 
Arthur  Coventry  and  A.  E.  T.  Watson.  With  56  Illustrations  by  J.  Sturgess. 

Shooting.  By  Lord  Walsingham  and  Sir  Ralph  Payne-Gallwey.  With  Con- 
tributions by  Lord  Lovat,  Lord  Charles  Lennox  Kerr,  the  Hon.  G.  Lascelles, 
and  A.  J.  Stuart-Wortley.  With  21  Plates,  and  149  Woodcuts,  by  A.  J. 
Stuart-Wortley,  Harper  Pennington,  C.  Whymper,  J.  G.  Millais,  G.  E. 
Lodge,  and  J.  H.  Oswald  Brown. 
Vol.  I.  Field  and  Covert.  |  Vol.  II.  Moor  and  Marsh. 

Cycling.  By  Viscount  Bury,  K.O.M.G.  and  G.  Lacy  Hillier.  With  19  Plates, 
and  61  Woodcuts,  by  Viscount  Bury  and  Joseph  Pennell. 

Athletics  and  Football.  By  Montague  Shearman.  With  an  Introduction 
by  Sir  Richard  Webster,  Q.C.  M.P.  and  a  Contribution  on  '  Paper  Chasing ' 
by  Walter  Rye.  With  6  Plates  and  45  Woodcuts. 

Boating.  By  W.  B.  Woodgate.  With  an  Introduction  by  the  Rev.  Edmond 
Warre,  D.D.  And  a  Chapter  on  '  Rowing  at  Eton '  by  R.  Harvey  Mason. 
With  10  Plates,  and  39  Woodcuts,  by  Frank  Dadd. 

Cricket.  By  A.  G.  Steel  and  the  Hon.  R.  H.  Lyttelton.  With  Contributions 
by  Andrew  Lang,  R.  A.  H.  Mitchell,  W.  G.  Grace,  and  F.  Gale.  With  11 
Plates  and  62  Woodcnte. 

Driving.  By  the  Duke  of  Beaufort,  K.G. ;  with  Contributions  by  other 
Authorities.  Photogravure  Integlio  Portrait  of  his  Grace  the  Duke  of 
Beaufort,  11  full-page  Illustrations,  and  64  Woodcuts  in  the  Text,  after 
Drawings  by  G.  D.  Giles  and  J.  Sturgess.  Second  Edition.  Or.  8vo  .10*.  Gd. 

Fencing,  Boxing,  and  Wrestling.  By  Walter  H.  Pollock.  P.  0.  Grove, 
CanTille  Prevost,  Mattre  d'Armes,  E.  B.  Michell,  and  Walter  Armstrong. 
With  a  complete  Bibliography  of  the  Art  of  Fencing  by  Egerton  Castle, 
M.A.  F.S.A.  With  18  Intaglio  Plates  and  24  Woodcuts. 

Tennis,   Lawn  Tennis,   Rackets,   and  Fives.     By  J.  M.  and  C.  G. 

Heathcote,  E.  O.  Pleydell-Bouverie,  A.  C.  Ainper,  &c.    With  12  Plates  and 
67  Woodcuts,  &c.  by  Lucien  Davis  and  from  Photographs. 

Golf.  By  Horace  Hutchinson,  the  Right  Hon.  A.  J.  Balfour,  M.P.  Sir  Walter 
G.  Sirnnson,  Bart.  Lord  Wellwood,  H.  S.  0.  Everard,  Andrew  Lang,  and 
other  Writers.  With  22  Plates  and  69  Woodcuts,  &c. 

In  Preparation, 

Riding.  By  W.  R.  Weir,  the  Earl  of  Suffolk  and  Berkshire,  the  Duke  of  Beaufort, 
and  A.  E.  T.  Watson.  With  a  Chapter  on  Polo,  by  Capt.  Moray  Brown. 

[In  the  press. 
Yachting.    By  Lord  Brassey,  Lord  Dunraven,  and  other  writers. 

[In  preparation. 

LONGMANS,  GREEN,  &  CO.,  London  and  New  York. 

Spottiiwoode  <jfc  Co.  Printers,  New-street  Square,  London, 
26,000/9/90 


University  of  California 

SOUTHERN  REGIONAL  LIBRARY  FACILITY 

Return  this  material  to  the  library 

from  which  it  was  borrowed. 


APR  09 1990